This is a digital copy of a book that was preserved for generations on library shelves before it was carefully scanned by Google as part of a project
to make the world's books discoverable online.
It has survived long enough for the copyright to expire and the book to enter the public domain. A public domain book is one that was never subject
to copyright or whose legal copyright term has expired. Whether a book is in the public domain may vary country to country. Public domain books
are our gateways to the past, representing a wealth of history, culture and knowledge that's often difficult to discover.
Marks, notations and other marginalia present in the original volume will appear in this file - a reminder of this book's long journey from the
publisher to a library and finally to you.
Usage guidelines
Google is proud to partner with libraries to digitize public domain materials and make them widely accessible. Public domain books belong to the
public and we are merely their custodians. Nevertheless, this work is expensive, so in order to keep providing this resource, we have taken steps to
prevent abuse by commercial parties, including placing technical restrictions on automated querying.
We also ask that you:
+ Make non-commercial use of the files We designed Google Book Search for use by individuals, and we request that you use these files for
personal, non-commercial purposes.
+ Refrain from automated querying Do not send automated queries of any sort to Google's system: If you are conducting research on machine
translation, optical character recognition or other areas where access to a large amount of text is helpful, please contact us. We encourage the
use of public domain materials for these purposes and may be able to help.
+ Maintain attribution The Google "watermark" you see on each file is essential for informing people about this project and helping them find
additional materials through Google Book Search. Please do not remove it.
+ Keep it legal Whatever your use, remember that you are responsible for ensuring that what you are doing is legal. Do not assume that just
because we believe a book is in the public domain for users in the United States, that the work is also in the public domain for users in other
countries. Whether a book is still in copyright varies from country to country, and we can't offer guidance on whether any specific use of
any specific book is allowed. Please do not assume that a book's appearance in Google Book Search means it can be used in any manner
anywhere in the world. Copyright infringement liability can be quite severe.
About Google Book Search
Google's mission is to organize the world's information and to make it universally accessible and useful. Google Book Search helps readers
discover the world's books while helping authors and publishers reach new audiences. You can search through the full text of this book on the web
at|http : //books . google . com/
^ ^
•
•
w
i
«
I
I»
^
I
HARVARD COLLEGE LIBRARY
FROM THE UBRARY OF
GEORGE EDWARD RICHARDS
A.B. 1867, M.D. 1883
THE GIFT OF
ANNA M. RICHARDS
1919
STUDIES
GENERAL HISTORY.
BY
MARY D. SHELDON,
rOKMBRLT PBOrBSBOR OF HISTORY IN WKLLKSLKT COLUEQE, AKD
TBACUER or RI8TOBT IV OSWEOO MOBMAL
SCHOOL, N.Y.
Stuiient'g lEWtion*
' Human affairs are neither to be laughed at nor wept over, hut
to be understood**
BOSTON:
D. C. HEATH & COMPANY.
1891.
K oT.^t , O HARVARD COLLE^P ' IBRARY
THE 6IF1 ^^
MRS. 6E0RQE E. fflCHAROS
NOV. 1, 1919.
Copyright, Sbpt. 80, 188Su
Bt MARY SHELDON BARNBS.
Typography by Frbbbwork by
J. S. Cubbing fc Co., Bbrwick fc Smith,
Boston. Boston.
TO
MY PUPILS AT WELLE SLEY COLLEGE
AND AT OSWEGO,
TO WHOSE WARM ENCOURAGEMENT AND SYM-
PATHY THIS BOOK IS LARGELY DUE, IT
IS MOST LOVINGLY DEDICATED.
MARY D. SHELDON.
THE MAKING OP HISTORY.
To THE Student: —
How, then, is history made? If a man wanted to write the
history of England, and no one before had eyer attempted it,
so that no books existed from which he could read it, how
would he go to work to find it ont? He would go to the *'*' origi-
nal sources," as people say ; that is, he would go to London,
to Oxford and Cambridge, and hunt through offices, libraries,
and museums for all the old records, despatches, and letters,
for reports of parliamentary debates, for the manuscripts of the
old chroniclers, for copies of treaties and laws ; and from all
these things he could find what had been the goyernment of
England, what powers she had, from time to time, giyen to her
king, her parliament, and the general mass of her people ; what
classes of societ}' were recognized. by law, and how each class
was regarded by the government and by other classes. He
would discover what affairs of national importance had hap-
pened, what had been the wars of England, and what she had
deemed worth fighting for; what nations she had been con-
nected with, and in what relations. And as he went along,
he would note down all these things as material for his history.
Further than this, he would travel England over from end to
end, and see what sorts of buildings these English had left
behind them at different times ; he would examine all the old
cathedrals, castles, and town walls, study the tombs in churches
and graveyards, look out for all the old bits of painting or
VI THE MAKING OF HISTORY.
sculpture still remaining, and thus discover what had been the
state of material civilization at this or that time, and what prog-
ress had been made as centuries passed. These old structures
would tell him what the English knew of building and engineer-
ing, of working in stone and wood and metal, how much wealth
they had and how they spent it ; these old bits of architecture,
painting, and sculpture would tell him what they admired and
loved as beautiful.
Not even this would finish his work ; it would be his business
to read the English poetry and the English stories, the sermons
of famous preachers and the speeches of great orators, for
^' out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh." In
this way he would best learn the English character and temper ;
he would know what they liked and disliked, how they thought
and felt about all that went on around them.
Meanwhile, throughout his studies of chronicles, of laws, of
buildings and writings, he would note what men were oftenest
mentioned and most highly honored, and thus discover the ideal
of the English folk, that is, — what sort of men they tried to
be themselves and wanted their children to become.
After all these inquiries and labors, our historian would at
last be ready to sit down peacefully and write a history of Eng-
land ; that is, he would embody in a continuous narrative all
that he knew of the growth, development, and character of the
English people; if his judgment were perfect, if he were a
man without prejudice and with a perfect sense of the relative
value of facts, if he knew how to tell what he knew so that
all men could read and understand, and if, at last, he lived to
complete his work, no one would care to write a second serious
history of England. Such a work would be unnecessary; it
would be easier far for a man to read this history, even if it
TEtE MAKING OF HISTORY. vii
were rather dry, than to go searching through yellow, dusty, and
badly written manuscripts, through the heavy statute-books,
and through volumes of half-forgotten literature, to say nothing
of traveling over £ngland, exploring all the old remains and
monuments. But since men's judgments widely vary, and since
the observation of any single mind is imperfect, the work must
be done again and again, and that, too, from the original
sources, by different men with all their different points of view
and different bents of genius. By reading and comparing
these various histories, which would still be easier far than to
make one for one's self, we should get a just idea of the
history of England.
We Americaus are situated something like the man who has a
history to write from original sources. We are called upon every
day to judge of laws, of men, of events, of poems and stories,
to decide between them, to see what they mean and where they
are leading us ; and since we are citizens of a republic, we must
not only see what they mean and where they are leading us,
but decide whether these laws shall become the laws of the
land, whether these poems and stories shall become popular
among us and so come to mark our character, whether we shall
make this man or that great and powerful among us. In short,
we Americans are all making history — an American history,
of a sort that no man has ever made before us, and which
lies entirely in our own hands to shape according to our best
judgment of all that goes on about us from year to year.
Now this book is not a histoiy, but a collection of historical
materials ; it contains just the sort of things that historians
must deal with when the}* want to describe or judge any period
of history, and just the kind of things, moreover, which we
Americans must constantly attend to and think about. In
VIU THE MAKING OF HISTORY.
Greek history, it gives bare chronicles of deeds, pictares of
buildings and statues, extracts from speeches, laws, poems ; from
these materials you must form 3*our own judgment of the Greeks,
discover their style of thinking, acting, living, feeling; you
must, in short, imagine that yon yourself are to write a Greek
history, or that you are a Greek citizen, called upon to judge
of the life about you. To help you in 'this, I have insei*ted
in the midst of the material such questions and problems as
the historian or citizen must always be asking himself, or
rather must always be putting to the laws, events, poetry, and
ruins which he studies, whether they belong to times and
peoples far away or near at hand. In this way, you can
learn how to judge and interpret what you see before you in
your own country, and help to make of America that which
she may become, — the strongest, noblest, finest nation in all
the world.
Hoping that you will take kindly to this new way of studying
history, I am
Very cordially and sincerely your friend,
MARY D. SHELDON.
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
PA6S.
pRSFACB y-viii
Civilized World beforb 776 b.c 3-29
Introductory 3
A. Study on Egypt 4-16
Historical sources and authorities 4
Organization 4-5
Leading events, works, and names . . . . . 6-6
Memphite period 5
Theban period 6
List of objects found in tombs . . . . 7
niustrative extracts from Egyptian literature . . 9-16
B, Study on Tigro-Euphrates Valley .... 16-23
Historical sources and authorities 16
Periods of history 16
Leading events, works, and names 16-18
Illustrative extracts from Assyrian and Babylonian
remains 18-22
C Study on Phcenicia 23-25
Historical authorities 23
Leading events, works, and names 23-24
Illustrative extracts 24-25
/>. Study on the Jkws 25-29
Historical sources and authorities 25
Periods of history 25
Leading events, names, and works .... 26
Illustrative extracts from Bible 27-29
Hellas, 1000 (?)-338 b.c 32-118
Introductory 32-33
A. Study on Heroic Age 33-47
Historical sources and authorities 33
Famous events, men, and works of Heroic Age . . 33-36
List of Greek gods, with attributes .... 36
Illustrative extracts from Homer 37-47
X STUDIES IN GBNEBAL HISTORY.
PAoa.
B. Study on Historic Grsege, 776-500 .... 47-72
Historical sources and authorities .... 47
I. General Hellenic development .... 48-56
Organization of people . • • . • 48
Leading events 49-50
Famous names and works 51-53
Illustrative extracts from original sources . . 53-56
II. Constitution and laws of Sparta .... 56-60
Spartan constitution 57
Institutions of Lycurgus, with illustrative ex-
tracts and stories 58-60
m. Development of Athenian constitution . • . 61-72
Athens before Solon 61-63
Constitution 63
Legislation of Solon 63-65
Constitution ..*.... 64
Tyranny of Pisistratids 65-69
Legislation of Cleisthenes 69-71
Constitution 70-71
C. Study on Persian Wars 72-87
Original authorities 72
L First Persian War (abridged from Herodotus) . 73-76
II. Interval of Preparation (abridged from Hero-
dotus) 76-80
III. Second Persian War (abridged from Herodotus), 80-87
Z>. Study on the Athenian Leadership or the Age
OF Pericles 87-113
Historical sources and authorities .... 87
Summary of leading events 89-^6
List of famous names and works .... 96-101
Illustrative extracts and stories from original sources, 102-112
E.F. Spartan, Theban, and Macedonian Leaderships,
431-338 B.C. . 113-117
Historical sources and authorities .... 113
Summary of leading events 113-117
Hellenistic or Alexandrian Conquests and King-
doms 119-127
Historical sources and authorities .... 119
Summary of leading events . . . . . 119-121
List of famous names and works • • • . 122-126
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XI
Ron 120-285
Introductory 120-130
A.B. I. Study of Regal Rome and PRiE-PuNic Re-
public 130-151
Organization and constitutions 130-136
niustratiye extract from Livy 136-137
Summary of leading events 137-140
Notable works and innovations of period . . . 140-143
List of religious feasts 143-144
Remains of Twelve Tables 145-146
Illustrative stories from Livy 147-151
B. 11. Study on Republican Rome, Punic Period . 152-169
Authorities 152
Note on Carthage 152
Summary of events, 265-201 b.c 153-155
Summary of events, 201-146 b.c 155-158
Extracts from Livy illustrative of Second Punic War, 158-162
List of famous men, deeds, and works . • . 162-163
Incidents, extracts, and facts illustrative of later Punic
period 164-169
B. III. Study on Republican Rome, Pobt-Punio
Period 170-189
Authorities 170
Summaries of events 170-175
List of famous men, works, and deeds . . . 175-176
Illustrative extracts from original sources . . . 177-189
C. I. Study on Pagan Empire, Augustus to Diocle-
tian 192-221
Authorities 192
Imperial organization according to Augustus . . 193-195
List of emperors, events, and works .... 196-205
List of famous imperial works and names . . 206-211
Extracts from original sources iUustrative of period . 212-221
The Teutonic Barbarians before 476 a.d. . . . 222-227
Authorities 222
Teutonic land-tenure 222
Extracts from << Gerinania " of Tacitus . . . 222-225
Extracts from Teutonic sources 226
C. II. Christian Empire, Constantine to Charlemagne, 228-285
Authorities . 228
xu
STUDIES IN OBNERAL HISTORY.
PACK.
A, Christian Empire under Roman Control . . 229-250
Imperial organization 229-231
Summary of leading events 281-235
List of famous names 236-240
Significant laws and customs 242-244
Illustrative extracts from contemporary sources . 244-250
B, and C, The West under Barbarian Control; Em-
fire OF Charlemaone 250-286
Summary of events 250-255
List of famous names and works .... 258-264
Significant laws and customs 267-270
Extracts from contemporary sources illustrative of
Christian empire . 270-275
Extracts illustrative of first century of Islam . . 276-280
Extracts illustrative of Islam in eighth and ninth
centuries 281-285
European History, 814-1880 286-539
Introductory 286
A, Early MEoiiEVAL Period; Charlemagne to the
Crusades, 814-1095 286-318
Historical sources and authorities .... 286
Organizations of period (feudal) .... 287-291
Summary of leading events 293-299
Lists of great names and works of period . . . 300-309
Extracts and stories illustrative of European life of
the period 310-314
Facts and stories illustrative of Islam . • . 315-318
B. Study on Crusading Period, 1095-1215 . . . 318-335
Historical authorities and sources .... 318
Summary of leading events 319-324
List of famous names and works of twelfth century . 325-329
Extract and stories illustrative of period . . . 329-335
C Study on Later Medieval Period . . 336-395
Historical authorities and sources .... 336
Organizations of period ; state, church, guild, town . 336-342
Summary of leading events 343-353
List of famous names, works, foundations, enterprises,
etc., of the period . . . . . . 353-870
Extracts and notes illustrative of law, custom, and
organization of period 378-395
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XUl
D. Renaissance and Reform ation Era, 1492-1648
(1649 in England) 396-438
Introductory 396
Historical source and authorities .... 396-397
Events and movements of period .... 398-410
List of famous works, structures, foundations, inven-
tions, discoveries, etc., of period . . 410-420
Ck>ntemporary extracts iUustrative of life and thought
of the time 421-438
E, Modern Europe 438-538
I. The "Old Regime,*' 1648-1789; Peace of West-
phalia TO French Revolution . . 438-474
Aa, In Europe in general 438-459
Historical sources and authorities . . . 438-439
Summary of leading events .... 439-451
Famous works, foundations, enterprises, etc., of
period 451-458
Ab. Special study of " Old Regime '' in France . . 459-474
Historical sources and authorities . . . 459
Organization of France 460-461
Extracts Ulustrative of organization . . . 462-465
Attempted reforms 465-466
Extracts from contemporary sources illustrative
of life of period 466-469
Extracts illustrative of thought and feeling . 470-474
II. French Revolution and Wars of Napoleon . 474-491
Historical sources and authorities .... 474
Summaiy of leading events 475-484
Special study of the Pinissian leadership and the
Prussian revolution 486-491
III. The Nineteenth Century 491-538
Historical sources and authorities .... 491
Constitutions of modem states; England, France,
Germany 492-500
General summary of events 501-514
Special study on development of the German Empire, 514-525
Special study on development of Italy . . . 525-533
jSpecial study on socialism . • . • • 534-539
LIST OF ILLUSTRATION&
1. Pyramids of Ghizeh (gee'-za) 8
2. Court of Temple of fche Sun at Karnak 9
3. Colossus of Barneses II 11
4. The Sun-god Ra (ra) 13
5. Winged figure from a gate at Nimroud 19
6. Lion-gate at Mycenae (ml-see'-nee) 34
7. Parthenon 88
8. Sculpture from Parthenon frieze .... .89
0. Mosaic floor pattern from Olympia 95
10. Zeus of Phidias 101
11. Venus of MeMos 103
12. Etruscan wall at Volterra • 141
13. Roman wall of the kings 142
14. Part of Claudian aqueduct 198
15. Colisr-ura 199
16. Trajan and the lictors 201
17. Mosaic from baths of Caracalla 202
18. Pantheon of Agrippa 207
19. Relief from Christian sarcophagus of fourth century . . 241
20. Church of St. Sophia 265
21. LfCgend of St. Martin of Tours (toor) ; tapestry . . . 272
22. Mosaic of tenth century ; temporal and spiritual powers . 275
23. Interior of mosque at Cordova 277
24. Feudal interior ; serfs receiving orders from their lord . . 292
25. St. Mark's, Venice 306
26. Detail of Ducal palace, Venice 307
27. Fa9ade of Ducal palace 308
28. Cathedral of Amiens, France 371
29. Interior of Cologne cathedral 372
30. Portal of Notre Dame (n5treh-dahra') of Paris . . . 373
31. Monastery court at Pavia ........ 374
32. Castle of Pierrefonds (pe'-air-fond) near Paris . . . 375
XVI
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS.
33. Castle of St. Ulric, on the Rhine .
34. Cloth hall at Ypres (ee'-p'r) ....
35. Renaissance frieze-pattern from Venetian church
36. Fountains hall, Yorkshire . .
37. Court of Borghese (borga'-zeh) palace, Rome
38. The Escorial
39. St. Peter's
40. Bird's-eye view of Versailles (ver-salz')
376
377
398
413
415
416
417
457
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
LIST OF MAPS.
Mediterranean lands before 776 b.c.
Greece, with shoi*es and islands of the ^gean
Greece and the Greek colonies {Freeman)
Attica
Persian, afterward Macedonian empire
ThermopylfiB
Italy
Mediterranean lands, 218 B.C.
Mediterranean lands, 146 B.C.
Roman empire under Trajan
Europe in the time of Theodoric (Freeman)
Europe in the time of Charlemagne (Freeman)
England about 600 a.d
Europe in the twelfth century (crusading era)
Western Europe in fourteenth century (1360) (Freeman)
Western Europe in time of Charles V. (Freeman)
Western Europe in 1648, Treaty of Westphalia .
Empire of Napoleon ; Europe in 1810 (Freeman) .
Europe in 1815, Peace of Vienna (Freeman)
Turkish dominion in Europe before and after Treaty
Berlin
Europe at the present day .
The World at the present day
Italy in 1815
2
30-31
44-45
66
74
81
128
152
157
190-191
252-253
256-257
. 299
316-317
. 347
. 397
. 402
. 482
. 485
of
. 505
516-517
520-521
. 524
Prof. P. V. N. Myers, who was so fortunate as to obtain the right
to use Mr. Freeman's most admirable maps in the preparation of his
"Outlines of Mediaeval and Modem History," has been so kind as to
share with me the benefits of that permission. m. b. b.
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOET.
MAP OF LANDS 07 MEDITERRANBAN BBFORB 776 RQ
PAOSa
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
THE CIVILIZED WORLD BEFORE 776 B.C.
A« Egypt m
B. The Tigro~£uphrai98 Vaffey.
C. ^hmnkia.
D. Judma.
** I met a traveller from an antique land
Who said : Two vast and trunkless legs of stone
Stand in the desert. Near them, on the sand.
Half sunk, a shattered visage lies. . . .
And en the pedestal, these words appear:
Mj name is O^ymandias, king of kings ;
Look on mj works, ye mighty, and despair!
Nothing heside remains. Bomid the decay
Of that colossal wreck, boundless and bare,
The lone and level sands stretch faraway." — Shellet.
Note on Sffap. — The yaUeys of the Nile, of the Tigris, and Eu*
phrates were famous for their heavy yield of wheat. Their soil was
fertile, level, and watered and fertilized by the overflow or the irriga-
tion from their respective rivers. The cities of Lilybsemn, Fanormns,
and Carthage were founded by Phoenicians, who also had in Spain two
famous colonies; namely, Gades (Cadiz) and Tartessus (Tarshish),
both of which were on the coast, near Gibraltar.
Questions on Sffap and Note. — How was Egypt naturally pro-
tected from invasion? How could she feed a large population? How
did these two facts help develop an early civilization ? What would
be the chief natural occupation and support of her people ? Answer
the same questions in regard to Assyria, Babylonia, and Chaldea.
4 STUDIES IN 6ENBBAL HISTORY.
How were Phoenicia tod Judaea protected? Which of the civilized
people of that time were sailors ? What great cities now stand at or
near the same foundations as those given on the map? In what
latitude did civilization arise? What reason for this ? What reasons
can you give why Southern Europe was civilized before Northern ?
What part of it would first become civilized, and why? How is
Southern Europe protected from invasion?
A. STUDY OH EGYPT.
Chief contemporary sources of its history: the Pyramids,
the temples of Karnak, and other remains near or at the
site of Thebes ; the contents and inscriptions of the tombs
near Memphis, Thebes, and elsewhere.
Other original sources: Old Testament, Herodotus,
Manetho, Records of the Past (Eng. trans, of inscriptions).
Chief modern authorities accessible in English : Wilkin-
son, Bunsen, Duncker, Brugsch, Rawlinson, Lenormant,
Chevallier, Sayce, Birch, Mariette.
1. Classes of People in EgypU
Xinsi who divides the land, makes the laws, decides on
war or peace, appoints and removes judges, generals, and
all officers in general; he is believed to be son of the
chief deity while living, and is himself worshipped as a
deity when dead ; he leads the army in war, is one of the
chief priests of the land, directs the making and building
of roads, canals, cities, temples, palaces.
Priests, who hold government offices, have entire charge
of religion and education, hold one-third of the land of
^gyP^ P*y ^o taxes. The chief high priest is second to
the king.
"Warriors or Nobles, who hold government offices, hold
about a third of the land, pay no taxes, aid the king in war.
STUDY ON EGYPT. 5
Country ZiaborexB, who work the land of the priests and
nobles, are sold with it, pay heavy taxes, and are forced
to work on canals, roads, temples and palaces, when
ordered by the king.
Tradesmen and Artisans of the towns.
2. Leading Periods of Egyptian Migtory^ tvith Chief
EventSf Works^ and Nanmes of Each Period,
Old and Middle Empires of Bgypt. — Cheops
(Khufu), king of Memphis, builds the Great
Pyramid of Ghizeh, near Memphis, for his tomb
TO
9000 (T)
(see picture, p. 8). Other kings build the second and third
pyramids, the sphinx^^ and the temple of the sphinx.
From this time dates the " Book of the Dead," a book of
directions for the soul after death, written by the priests ;
and a book on morals and manners, by the Memphite
prince, Ptah-hotep.
In the latter part of this time the famous Lake Mceris
is constructed, — an enormous artificial reservoir for re-
taining and evenly distributing through the country, by
means of irrigating canals, the overflow of the Nile. With
this is connected the necessary canal, and a protecting
dyke twenty-seven miles long ; the necessary sluices and
flood-gates, and a Nilometer for measuring the height of
the river. The so-called " Labyrinth," in some way con-
nected with religion, is also built. All these works are
begun and carried through by kings ruling at Thebes.
1 The (1) placed after a date or a statement implies that the date or
the statement is disputed or approximate.
' The sphinx is a colossal crouching figure, half beast, half man, near
the Great Pyramid. It is cut from the solid rock, and nearly 200 ft. in
length. The head alone measures about 30 ft. from the top of the fore-
head to the bottom of the clun. It is a sjrmbol of the sun-god.
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
5M)00(?)
TO
1600 (?)
The Hyksos, or shepherd kings, foreigners firom
Syria or Arabia, hold the country. Under them the
Jews (Jacob and his sons) probably enter Egypt.
1600 (T)
TO
1850 (T)
New ISmpiTe, centering at Thebes. — The The-
ban kings expel the shepherds, and rule the whole
of Egypt. Under their eighteenth and nineteenth
dynasties, conquests are made in Phoenicia, Palestine,
Mesopotamia, Nubia. The horse and chariot are brought
into Egypt from Asia. In the latter part of the period,
the Exodus of the Jews takes place. Thothmes III.
(eighteenth dynasty) builds magnificent temples at Mem-
phis, Thebes, and at Karnak and Luxor, near Thebes, and
is a famous conqueror. About 1400, the colossi of Mem-
non are made, sitting monolithic statues of the reigning
king, more than sixty feet high. The father of Rameses
II. causes old gold mines to be reopened and worked, and
builds the Q-reat Hall of the temple at Karnak. This
" Hall of Columns " is composed of 184 stone pillars, and
covers a larger area than Cologne Cathedral. The col-
umns at Karnak, many of them, are 62 ft. high and 88 ft.
around ; many others are 46 ft. high and 27 or 28 ft. in cir-
cumference. One of these columns fell against another,
but neither injured nor shook it ; both yet remain, one
bearing the other. The ceiling of the temple was com-
posed of single stones, extending from column to column.
Rameses II., wlio was known as Sesostris to the Greeks,
opens a canal from the Nile to the Red Sea, maintains a
fleet, builds cities and temples, erects obelisks and statues
to himself and the gods, establishes a royal library under
the care of the priests, in which are the works of his-
torians, moralists, philosophers, poets, and novelists.
Decline of Egyptian power; final conquest of
Egypt by the Persians, in 527.
isftocr)
TO
587.
STUDY OK EGYPT. 7
8. List of Objects found within or represented upon
Egyptian Tombs.
a. From all PeriodB. — Mummies^ or the bodies of the
dead preserved in natron, bitumen, spices, oils, gums and
aromatics, and wrapped about with linen bandages of all
degrees of fineness, the whole enclosed in a wooden coffin,
shaped like the body, painted and ornamented according
to the means of its owner ; sarcophagi^ or stone cases of
granite, alsibaster, or other fine stone, variously engraved
and carved, each containing within it mummy and mummy-
case ; papyri^ or manuscripts written on paper made from
the papyrus reed, which grew in ancient Egypt ; wooden
plows and hoes ; boats with oars, and with plain or em-
broidered sails ; oxen, asses, sheep, goats, pigs, poultry ;
trained grape-vines; statuettes and amulets of alabaster,
of glazed and unglazed pottery, and opaque glass ; jewelry
of gold, silver, bronze, and precious stones.
I, From Theban Period. — VJ'ar-horses and chariots ; all
sorts of weapons, spears, javelins, arrows, clubs, frequently
of brouze; saws, mallets, chisels, frequently of bronze;
looms, embroidered linen robes; many sorts of musical
instruments, leather sandals, chairs, stools, flower-stands,
couches, perfumery bottles.
STUDY ON I, 2, AND 3.
Who held the central political and military power in ancient
Egypt? Prove it from 1 and 2. What belief confirmed this power?
What classes were aristocrats ? Of what use was each class ? What
class supported the rest? What class was oppressed, and how?
What name do you give to such a form of government ? Of society ?
What classes would support this form of government and society?
What seem to have been the chief desires of the Memphite kings? Of
the Theban ? On whom did Egypt depend for her success in war and
commerce, and her glory in civilization ? What does the absence of
8
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
monuments and records under the Ilyksos kings seem to indicate
about them? Make a list of the arts known among the Egyptians;
of the occupations; of the different sorts of knowledge. Of these,
THB F7SAMID6 OF OHIZIH.
which specially belonged to the Theban period ? Wliat tell us about
tliese things ? What position gave a man the chance for greatness,
and how could he achieve it ?
STUDY ON EGYPT.
4. JPietures and :ExtractB lUtMtriUive of Egyptian
CivUiza;tian.
Note on PyramidB. — Of the sixty or seventy pyramids in Egypt,
the most famous is the Pyramid-group of Ghizeh ; and of this group,
the Great Pyramid is the most wonderful. Its original height, ap-
proaching 500 ft., was greater than that of any other structure, and it
covers an area of more than thirteen acres. Many of the basement
stones are thirty feet long, and nearly five feet high, and, even to the
top of the pyramid, the mass of single stones is great. These stones
OOURT or TlMPLl Of THB SUN AT KABICAK. BUILT BY RAMBSBS m.
are united by a cement harder than themselves, and by joints as thin as
a sheet of paper. Within the pyramid are three sepulchral chambers,
to which access is had by long galleries. The chief of these is the
King's Chamber, where the sarcophagus of the builder of the pyramid
was found. This room is made wholly of finely polished granite,
whose great blocks were brought down the Nile from quarries more
than 500 miles away. In order to lighten the weight of masonry upon
its roof, five low chambers are consti-ucted above it ; to ventilate it,
10 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
two small passages lead from it to the outside air, through the solid
masses of the pyramid. The cutting and polishing of its stones is
equal to any work that can be produced to-day, with the best perfected
tools. Much of its stone was brought from the Arabian quarries, and
the causeway on which it was brought from the Kile to the pyramids
is still to be traced for a good distance.
EXTRACTS.
From the »' Book of the Dead."
When the deceased was brought before Osiris, the judge of
the dead, he was questioned as to his whole past life. In i*eply
he should be able to answer : " I have not blasphemed ; I have
not deceived ; I have not stolen ; I have not slain any one
treacherously ; I have not been cruel to any one ; I have not
caused disturbance; I have not been idle; I have not been
drunken; I have not issued unjust orders; I have not been
indiscreetly curious ; I have not multiplied words in speaking ;
I have struck no one ; I have caused fear to no one ; I have
not eaten my heart through envy ; 1 have not reviled the face
of the king, nor the face of my father. ... I have not ill-used
my slaves ; I have not killed sacred beasts ; I have not defiled
the river. ... I have made it my delight to do what men com-
mand, and the gods approve. I have offered to the deities all
the sacrifices that were their due ; I have given bread to the
hungry and drink to him that was athirst ; I have clothed the
naked with garments. ..." Could the deceased thus justify
himself, he was allowed to pass on his way toward Elysium.
From a Prayer to the Chief God. (Memphite period.)
'^Hail to thee. Lord of truth! ... at whose command the
gods were made ; . . . the maker of men ; that supportest their
works, that givest them life ; . . . that listenest to the poor who
is in distress ; that art gentle of heart when a man crieth unto
thee ; thou who deliverest the fearful man from the violent ;
who judgest the poor and oppressed ; Lord of wisdom ... at
whose pleasure the Nile overflows her banks ; Lord of mercy,
most loving, at whose coming men live ; . . . cause of pleasure
STUDY ON EGYPT.
11
TBI ODLOSBDB or
n.
Tbii coloMOf to nearly WTenty feet In height; it is one of four, cut from the toNd roek»
that gnanl the entranoe to the rocJi-iMWB temple of IpaambouU la Nabia.
12 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
and light, at whose goodness the gods rejoice, their hearts
reviving when they see Thee."
From the Precepts of Prince Ptah-hotep.
'^ The obedience of a docile son is a blessing. . . . The son
who accepts the words of his father will grow old on account of
it. For obedience is of God, disobedience is hateful to God.
. . . Fulfil the word of thy master. . . . The obedient will be
happy through his obedience ; he will attain old age, he will
acquire favor. I have mj'self in this way become one of the
ancients of the eailh; I have passed one hundred and ten
years of life by the gift of the King . . . fulfilling my duty to
the King in the place of his favor.'*
From a Hymn to the Nile^ of the Time of Rameses IL
Hail to thee, O Nile !
Thou showest thyself in this land.
Coming in peace, giving life to Egypt :
Overflowing the gardens created by Ra ; *
Giving life to all animals ;
Watering the land without ceasing :
Lover of food, bestower of corn,
Giving light to ever}' home ... I
Thou shinest in the city of the King ;
Then the house-holders are satiated with good things ;
The poor man laughs at the lotus. ^
All things are perfectly ordered, —
Every kind of herb for thy children.
If food should fail.
All enjoyment is cast on the ground.
The land falls in weariness.
^ Ra, the chief sun-god.
^ Which he ate when he could get nothing else.
STUDY ON EGYPT.
13
Shine forth, shine forth, O Nile ! shine forth !
Giving life to men by his oxen :
Giving life to his oxen by the pastures I
Shine forth in glory, O Nile.
From a Prayer to the Sun. (Theban period.) .
^^ Thou Disk of the sun, thou living god, there is none othei
beside thee I thou givest health to the eyes. . . . Creator of all
beings. Thou goest up in the eastern
horizon of the heaven, to dispense
life to all which thou hast created, —
man . . . beasts, birds, and creeping
things of the earth . . . and they go
to sleep when thou settest."
From a Prayer of Barneses^ when hard
pressed in Battle,
" I call on thee, my father Ammon^ ;
I am amid multitudes unknown, na-
tions gathered against me: I am
alone, no other with me ; my foot and
horse have left me. I called aloud to
them, none of them heard. I find
Ammon worth more than millions of
soldiers, thousands of cavalry, . . .
were they gathered all in one. No
works of many men avail, Ammon
against them. . . . My ovy rang unto Hermonthis ; Ra heard when
I called, he put his hand to me ; I was glad ; he called to me :
^ Rameses, I am with thee, I thy father Ra ; my hand is with
thee. I am worth to thee myriads joined in one ; I am sovran
lord of victory, loving valor ; if I find courage, my heart over-
flows with joy; all my doing is fulfilled.'" "Then," adds
Rameses, " not one of them joined his hand to fight, their heart
■OYFTIAH RBPRBSIRTATION Gf
TBI SnV-OOD RA.
God of heaven, afterward united with Ra, the sun-god.
14 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
shrank within them ; . . . I slew them ; . . . none escaped me ;
. . . Ammon brings very low them that know not God."
From an Inscription concerning Rameses,
'' Prince, Sovran Lord . . . who can soothe thee in the day of
thy wrath ? . . . Dread of his might is in every heart, he protects
his Army, all nations come to the great name, falling down and
adoring his noble countenance."
The following is from an inscription regarding another The-
ban king : —
" Then came the prince Pefaabast, with tributes to the
reigning Pharaoh of gold, silver, and all precious stones, with
steeds the choicest of his stud. He threw himself prostrate
before the king and said, ' Hail to thee, Horus, saci-ed majesty !
. . . Hades has seized me. I am immersed in darkness ! Give
me light, I pray thee. I have not found a friend in the evil
time standing by me in the da}* of battle, save thee only, O King.
Do thou lift the darkness from me. I am thy slave, together
with all my subjects, attached to thy royal apartments : thou
glorious image of the sun, ruling over the indestructible con-
stellations ! While he exists thou existest, as he is indestructi-
ble thou art indestructible, O King of all Egypt, living for
evermore.' "
And again : ^' Corn is brought as an offering to thee ; it is in
its season : do not destroy the tree together with its fruit. All
hail to thee ! Thy terror is in ray body ; thy fright is in my
teeth ! I sit not in the house of feasting ; the harp is not
brought to me ; lo, I eat the bread of hunger and drink in
thirst. For since the day thou heardest my name terror is in
my bones, my head is untrimmed, my garments are squalid:"
From a Writer of the Time of Ramesea II.
" Have you ever represented to yourself the state of the iiistic
who tills the ground ? Before he has put the sickle to the crop,
the locusts have blasted a part of it ; then come the rats and
the birds. . . . Anon, the tax-gatherer arrives, his agents are
STUDY ON EGYPT. 15
armed with clubs ; he has negroes with him who carry whips
of palm branches. They all cry ' Give us your grain ! ' and he
has no eas}' way of avoiding their extortionate demands. Next,
the wretch is caught, bound and sent off to work without wages
at the canals ; his wife is taken and chained ; his children are
stripped and plundered."
From a Writer of the Time of Thothmes III. — accompanying
the picture of a taskmaster armed with a stick, who thus
addresses the laborers : —
''The stick is in my hand. Be not idle."
" Here are to be seen the prisoners, which have been carried
away as living captives in very great numbers ; they work at
the building with active fingers ; their overseers are in sight ;
these insist with vehemence (on the others) obeying the
orders of the great skilled lord (head-architect) who prescribes
to them the works ; . . . they are rewarded with wine and all
kinds of good dishes ; they perform their service with a mind
full of love for the king ; they build for Thothmes ... a Holy
of Holies for the gods. May it be rewarded to him through a
range of years."
STUDY ON 4.
What qualities did the Egyptians evidently admii*e in architecture
and sculpture? (See text of 2, as well as pictures.) Make a list of all
the arts and sciences that are indicated by the pictures. (See notes
also.) What did the Egyptians believe in regard to the immortality
of the soul? Of the body? What did they believe of the nature of
deity? Of the number of deities? Of their relative rank ? Of the
moral duties of man ? What moral duties stood highest in their re-
gard? Any relation between this and their form of government? In
theb religious life how was human equality regarded ?
What reasons had they for thinking the sun divine ? The Nile ?
How could their gods be reached and pleased? Judging from the
sphinx and the picture of the sun-god (p. 13), what peculiarity was
there in the Egyptian representation of deity ? What proof have we
that the Egyptians believed that the gods could and would interfere
with and direct human affairs ?
16 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
What was true of liberty among the Egyptians? Of equality?
Prove it from 1 and 4. What was the Egyptian ideal of manhood?
What right had the Egyptians to be called civilized ? What superior
right have we? What Egyptians were uncivilized?
B. STUDY OH THE TKJEO-EUPHRATES VALLEY.
Chief contemporary and original sources of history: The
ruins of the palaces of Nineveh and Babylon ; cuneiform
inscriptions on brick cylinders and tablets^; the Hebrew
scriptures of the Old Testament; and the fragments of
Berosus, Records of the Past (see page 4).
Chief modern authorities accessible in English : Rawlin-
son, Smith, Layard, Birch, Lenorniant, Sayce, Duncker.
Periods of History (all dates B.C.)-
Dynasties ruling at or near Babylon in chief power, 4000 (?)-
1250 (?).
Assyrian dynasties ruling at or near Nineveh in chief power,
1250 (?)- 625 (?).
Nineveh destroyed by Babylonians and Medes, 625 (?).
Babylon chief power of the valley, 625 (?) -538.
Babylon conquered by the Persians, 538.
1. Leading EventSf Works f and Katnes in the History of
Bahylonia and Assyria*
Observations made at or near Babylon on stars,
comets, planets, on the sun and moon; stars
named, length and divisions of the year deter-
mined, zodiac described and divided; calendar formed,
1 The brick cylinders and tablets were the Assyrian books ; the law,
record, or story, to be preserved, was written in cuneiform (wedge-shaped)
characters, on a clay surface, from which, when hard, a number of dupli*
cate impressions might be made. Thousands of these clay records bar*
been found, and are being deciphered.
4000 (T)
TO
1260 (T)
STUDY ON THE TIGRO-BUPH BATES VALLEY. 17
eclipses observed and piedicted. Canals built, and an
embankment for the Tigris made ; a library founded, in
which are many books (of clay) on astronomy and as-
trology. About 1900, Nineveh founded by settlers from
Babylonia,
Tiglath-Pileser I., Assyrian king, conquers
territory in every direction, and rules from the
Mediterranean to the Caspian; Sardanapalus
1»50(?)
TO
625 (?)
(Assur-natzir-pal), a great warrior, conquers most of Phoe-
nicia ; builds a great palace near Nineveh. Shalmaneser
II., a great warrior, builds himself a splendid palace near
Nineveh. Tiglath-Pileser II. temporarily conquers Phoe-
nicia, Palestine, Syria. Sargon conquers Samaria and
Judaea, builds a new city with palaces and temples. Sen-
nacherib, a great warrior, maintains a fleet, founds Tarsus,
constructs canals and aqueducts, builds himself a grand
palace at Nineveh. Esarhaddon, a great warrior, holds
Phoenicia, Syria, and Judah in tribute ; conquers Egypt ;
begins the walls of Babylon. Sardanapalus II. (Asshur-
bani-pal) subdues Egypt and various neighboring territo-
ries ; builds at Nineveh the most magnificent of Assyrian
palaces, and establishes a royal library, in which are found
treatises on grammar, dictionaries of native languages,
laws, collections of hymns, lists of plants, minerals, and
animals ; many books on arithmetic ; catalogues of obser-
vations on the stars, planets, sun, and moon.
Nineveh destroyed by Babylonians and Medes. | 625 (?) [
Nebuchadnezzar, king of Babylon, conquers Jerusalem,
Egypt, Syria, and Phoenicia ; builds a great pal-
ace, and the famous *' hanging gardens " at Baby-
lon ; surrounds his city by walls, reckoned as one
625 (?)
TO
538.
of the wonders of the world for their thickness, strength,
and height. He completes the quays of the Euphrates,
re-opens a royal canal, constructs a great lake as an arti-
18 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOIiY.
ficial reservoir for watering the plain, and establishes a
harbor city for Babylon at the mouth of the Euphrates.
2. Extr<ict8 Illustrative of Assy rio- Babylonian History,
taken from the Inscriptions of Various Monarchs.
From Tiglath'FUeser /., about 1120.
" Tiglath-Pileser, the powerful King ; supreme King of vari-
ous tongues ; King of all Kings ; Lord of Lords ; the Supreme ;
Monarch of Monarchs ; the illustrious Chief, who under the
auspices of the Sun God, being armed with the sceptre and girt
with the girdle of power over mankind, rules over all the people
of Bcl.^ . . . With a host of kings I have fought . . . and have
imposed on them the bond of servitude. There is not to me a
second in war nor an equal in buttle. 1 have added territory to
Assyria and peoples to her people. ... I conquered the whole
counti'y of Comukba. I plundered their movables, their wealth,
and their valuables. Their cities I burnt with fire, I destroyed
them and ruined them. ... I took the entire country of Sugi.
Twenty-five of their gods, their movables, their wealth, and
their valuables I carried off. All of their cities I burnt with
fire, I destroyed and overthrew. The men of their armies sub-
mitted to my yoke. I had mercy on them. I imposed on them
tribute and offerings. Among the subjects of Asshur,' my
Lord, I reckoned them. ..."
From Esar-haddon.
" In a fortunate month, and a lucky day, I began to build
great palaces for the residence of my Majesty upon that mound.
Bulls and lions, carve<l in stone, which, with their majestic
mien, deter wicked enemies from approaching, right and left
I placed them at the gates.
^ Bel, or Baal, one of the chief Assyrian gods.
' Asuhor, or Assur, one of the oldest Assyrian gods.
STUDY ON THE TIG RO-EUPH RATES VALLEY.
19
*' Winged lionesses of bronze I placed within. Of fine
cedar wood and ebony I made the ceilings of the apartments.
The whole of that palace I embellished with veneered slabs of
ivory and alabaster, and I embroidered its tapestries. With
flat roofs, like a floor of lead, I covered the whole building,
and with plates of pure silver and bright bronze I erected it
within."
WDTOID fTOURI FROM A OATl AT NDiROnD. NIIAR NINIVBH.
From Asaur-natzir-paL (Sardanapalus.)
"To Ninip [an Assyrian god], most powerful hero, war-
rior, . . . i>owerful lord, whose onset in battle has not been
opposed, ... he who rolls along the mass of heaven and earth,
opener of canals, . . . the god who in his divinity nourishes
heaven and earth, . . . bestower of sceptres, ... a king in bat-
20 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
tie, mighty, . . . smiting the land of the enemy, . . . the deitj
who changes not his purposes, the light of heaven and earth,
a bold leader on the waters, destroyer of them that hate [him]] ,
a spoiler [and] Loixl of the disobedient, dividing enemies, whose
name in the speech of the gods no god has ever disregarded, —
... to him, in the reverence of my heart for his mighty Lord-
ship, I founded a temple, where I caused to be made an image
of Ninip himself in mountain-stone and brilliant gold."
Prom an Inscription of Sargon^ upon a Palace.
"I built in the city palaces covered with skins, with wood-
work of sandal, tamarisk, cedar, and cypress, palaces of incom-
parable magnificence for the seat of my royalty. . . . There I
wrote up the glory of the gods. ... I made a spiral staircase
like that of the great temple in Syria. . . . Between the doors,
I placed eight double lions of massive bronze. ... I placed
over them architraves of gypsum stone of great dimensions. . . .
My palaces contain gold, silver, vessels of these two metals,
precious stones, iron, bronze, blue and purple stuffs, . . . amber,
sealskins, pearls, sandal and ebony wood, horses from Egypt,
oxen, mules, camels. These are the tributes I asked for the
gods."
From Sennacherib.
'' In the first campaign I conquered . . . the King of Chaldea.
... I opened his treasure house, I seized gold, silver, his fur-
niture, his robes, his wife, his men, his courtiers, his male and
female slaves, his domestics of the palace, his soldiera ; I
brought them out and sold them for slaves. . . . But Hezekiah,
king of Judah, did not submit. There were forty-six walled
towns, and nn infinite number of villages that I fought against,
humbling their pride, and braving their anger. By means of
fire, massacre, battles, and siege-operations, I took them ; I
occupied them ; I brought out 200,150 persons, great and
small, men and women, horses, asses, mules, camels, oxen, and
STUDY ON THE TIGROEUPH KATES VALLEY. 21
sheep without numher, and carried them ofif as booty. As for
himself I shot him np in Jerusalem, the city of his power, like
a bird in its cage. . . . Then the fear of my majesty terrified
Hezekiah; ... He sent messengers to me . . . with thirty
talents of gold and eight hundred talents of silver, metals,
rubies, pearls, great carbuncles, seats covered with skins,
thrones ornamented with leather, amber, sealskins, sandal
wood, and ebony, the contents of his treasury, as well as his
daughters, the women of his palace, his male and female
slaves. ... By my care I caused the uprising of springs in
more than forty places in the plain ; I divided them into irri-
gating canals for the people of Nineveh, and gave them to be
their own property. To obtain water to turn the flour-mills,
I brought it in pipes ... to Nineveh, and skilfully constructed
water-wheels. I brought down the perennial waters of the
river Kutzuru from the distance of three miles and a half, into
those reservoirs, and covered them well.
" That I might conquer my powerful enemies, I prayed to
the gods my protectors, to Assur, the Moon, the Sun, Bel,
Nebo, Nergal, Ishtar of Nineveh and Ishtar of Arbela. They
heard my earnest prayers, and came to my assistance. From
my heart I vowed a thank-offering for it."
Of Asaur-bani-pcU.
" Those men who uttered the curses of their mouth, against
Assur my god, and against me, the prince his worshipper, had
devised evil; — their tongues I pulled out, their overthrow I
accomplished. The rest of the people I threw alive among the
stone lions and bulls. Their cut-off limbs I caused to be eaten
by dogs, bears, . . . birds of heaven, and fishes of the deep.
By these things, ... I satisfied the hearts of the great gods my
lords."
From Nebuchadnezzar^ 8 Description of a Temple built by him
at Babylon.
" I employed for the woodwork of the chamber of oracles the
largest trees I had caused to be transported from the summit of
22 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Lebanon. I covered with pure gold the enormous beams of
cypress, employed for the woodwork of the chamber of oracles ;
the lower portion of the woodwork I incrusted with gold, silver,
other metals, and gems. I had the vault of the mystic sanctu-
ary incrusted with glass and gems, so as to represent the firma-
ment with the stars. The wonder of Babylon, I rebuilt and
restored it : it is this temple of the base of heaven and earth
whose summit I raised of bricks, and covered it externally with
a cornice of copper."
From a Prayer at the Death of a Righteous Man,
^' To the Sun, greatest of the gods, may he ascend ! and may
the Sun, greatest of the gods, receive his soul into his holy
hands ! "
FVom an Assyrian Ode.
" O Fire, great Lord, who art the most exalted in the world,
O Fire, with thy bright flame in the dark house thou dost cause
light. Of all things that can be named, Thou dost form the
fabric ! Of bronze and of lead, Thou art the melter ! Of sil-
ver and of gold, Thou art the refiner ! ... Of the wicked man
in the night-time ; Thou dost repel the assault ! But the man
who ser\'^es his god, Thou wilt give him light for his actions."
STUDY ON I AND 2.
What were the two centres of power in the Tigro-Euphrates valley ?
What gave men power and greatness in tliis valley ? Make a list of the
arts and sciences known to the Assyrians and Babylonians. Of indus-
tries. What right had they to be called civilized ? How were they not
civilized ? On whom were they dependent for all the civilization they
had? With what or whom was the king identified? Who were
thought to aid him, and for whom did he fight? Which deities were
better, those of Assyria, or Egypt? Prove it. What was the am-
bition of an Assyrian or Babylonian king? Which of these kings
do you consider greatest, and why ?
What did the Assyrio-Babylonians believe about the number and
nature of the deities? About the future existence of the soul? How
were their gods reached, and how i)lease(l? What made fire seem
STUDY ON PHCENICIA. 23
diviue ? What proves that they believed iii tlie interference of the
gods in the human affairs ?
What did the Assyrians seem to admire in art ? What was the
purpose of such a winged, colossal figure as is represented on p. 19 ?
C. STUDY OIT PHCEHIOIA.
Chief contemporary authorities : Hebrew scriptures and
a few scattered inscriptions ; other original authorities :
notices of the Greek writers, and Josephus.
Chief modern authorities accessible in English : Ken-
rick, Heeren, Rawlinson Lenormant, Duncker.
Periods of History.*
1500(?)-1100(?), — Sidonian power greatest.
1100(?) to about 850, — Tyrian power greatest.
850 onward, — Phoenicia for the most part subject to foreigners.
1. Leading Events , Works f and Natnes of the Fhcsnician
History^
About
10S6.
Hiram, king of Tyre, builds and restores splen-
did temples ; constructs a new harbor, lines the
old one with quays, and protects all by a strong dyke;
sends an exploring expedition through the Red Sea to
India (Ophir).
The Pho6nicians establish colonies in Cyprus,
Rhodes, and the Greek Archipelago ; on the
BmwoBM
776.
coasts of Greece itself, in Sicily, Spain, and Northern
Africa; the most famous are Paphos, in Cyprus, — Lily-
baeum and Panormus, in Sicily, — Utica and Carthage,
in Africa, — Tartessus and Gades (Cadiz), in Spain.
They obtain British tin and Baltic amber, probably by
1 All dates B.C.
24 STUDIES IN GENERAL UISTOltY,
an overland trade, at the mouths of the Rhine and Po ;
from the Red Sea they reach India, and bring thence
its carved ivories, its wrought metals, and finely-woveu
stuffs ; they cause the gold and silver mines of Greece to
be opened and worked.
They adapt the Egyptian characters to the phonetic
alphabet, which becomes the basis of the Hebrew, Greek,
Latin, and following European alphabets.
2« Extracts lUustrcUive of PhcetUcian CivUixatlon.
Description of Tyre.
"Thy borders are in the midst of the seas, thy builders have
perfected thy beauty. They have made all thy ship boards of
fir trees : . . . they have taken cedars from Lebanon to make
masts for thee. Of . . . oaks . . . have they made thine
oars ; the company of the Asshurites (Assyrians) , have made
thy benches of ivory. . i . Fine linen with broidered work from
Egypt was that which thou spreadest forth to be thy sail ; blue
and purple from the isles of Elishah was that which covered
thee. The inhabitants of Zidon and Arvad were thy mariners :
thy wise men, O Tyrus (Tyre), that were in thee, were thy
pilots. . . . Tarehish (Tartessus) was thy merchant by reason
of the multitude of all kinds of riches ; with silver, iron, tin, and
lead they traded in thy fairs. . . . Syria was thy merchant by
reason of the multitude of the wares of thy making : they occu-
pied in thy fairs with emeralds, purple, and broidered work,
and fine linen, and coral, and agate. Judah, and the land of
Israel, they were thy merchants : they traded in thy market
wheat, . . . and honey, and oil, and balm. . . . Arabia, and
all the princes of Kedar, they occupied with thee in lambs, and
rams, and goats." — Ezekiel xxvii.
The prophet also names, among articles of merchandise, the
" peraons of men," *' vessels of brass," horses, horsemen, mules,
" precious horns of ivory and ebony," wine, white wool, iron,
cassia, *' precious clothes for chariots."
STUDY ON THE JEWS. 25
From an Assyrian Inscription,
*^I attacked the city of Sidon, standing in the midst of the
sea. ... I carried away all that I could of its treasures ; gold,
silver, precious stones, amber, seal-skins, sandal-wood, and
ebony, sta£Fs dyed purple and bine."
STUDY ON I AND 2.
Make a list of the occupations and industries of the Phoenicians.
What occupation was their own as distinct from Assyrians, Babylo-
nians, and Egyptians ? In order to carry on this occupation, what others
must they have? Where would the Phoenicians find the best market
for their goods, and why? What would they learn from their occu-
pation that we learn from books ? What reason can you find in the
physical geography of Phoenicia for its chief occupations ? Of what
use were the Phoenicians to the world of their own time ? Of times
since then? Make a list of the countries which must have been
visited by them. Why should they receive amber and tin at the
months of the Po and Rhone rather than at any other point along
the coast? Plow did Phoenicia begin the civilization of Europe?
In GtoneraL — What right have the Assyrians, Babylonians,
Phoenicians, and Egyptians to be called civilized ? What facts among
those given prove the highest civilization ? What sort of civilization
is seen in these facts ?
D. STUDY ON THE JEWS.
Chief contemporary sources of its history: its own
scriptures and the Egyptian and Assyrian records ; other
original authority, Josephus.
Chief modern authorities accessible in English : Milman,
Ewald, Stanley, Wellhausen, Duncker, Kuenen.
Periods op History.^
Exodus from Egypt, 1320(?).
Period of Judges, Conquest of Palestine, 1320(?)-1055(?).
» All dates B.C.
26 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOKV.
Period of United Monarchy, Saul, David, Solomon, 1055(?)-9o3(?)
Period of Divided Monarchy and Decline, 953(?)-586.
The people taken captive and Jerusalem destroyed by Nebuchad-
nezzar, 586.
1. LecUling Events, Names, and Works, 1820 (?}-SS6.
About
1320.
Moses, a priest, " learned in all the wisdom of
the Egyptians," leads the Jews out of Egypt,
where they had been in bondage, into Palestine; gives
the people a code of civil law in the name of one God,
Jehovah; these laws and the early history of the world,
and of the Jews, are embodied in the first five books of
the Old Testament.
Joshua, the minister of Moses, leads the Jews
to conquer a place for themselves in Palestine ;
About
1250.
the strongholds of the country are taken, and the Jews,
settled by their twelve tribes, become the chief people of
Palestine.
Constant war between the Jews, who believe
in one God, and the other people of Palestine, who
are polytheists and idolaters. The rulers of the
15860 (?)
TO
106R (?)
Jews are prophets, priests, or men believed to be chosen
by God himself ; they are leaders in battle, and a continu-
ous record of their deeds is preserved in the Old Testament.
Saul is anointed the first king of the Jews by
the prophet Samuel, who is his chief adviser until
his death. Under his rule, Palesthie is more
1066 (?)
TO
963 (?)
thoroughly brought under the Jewish dominion.
David is secretly anointed Saul's successor by the proph-
et Samuel, and on Saul's death is chosen by the people
as king, being their strongest warrior and a very devout
man. He makes Jerusalem tlie chief city of Palestine, he
conquers and holds much neighboring territory, and
gathers a great treasure for building a temple in honor of
953 (?)
TO
586.
STUDY ON THE JEWS, 27
Jehovah; dies before he begins it; chief advisers, the
priests and prophets. He composes many psalms for use
in sacred service. Solomon, his son, becomes king of
Palestine; forms alliances with Egypt and Phoenicia;
builds the great temple at Jerusalem, and a rich palace for
himself, using in both great quantities of gold and silver,
of precious woods, and fine carved work, mostly made by
Tyrian workmen ; poet, scholar, and author of many
Proverbs. A continuous historical record of this whole
period is made by the Jewish priests, and preserved in the
Old Testament.
A continuous record is kept by the priests
during this last period, and a mass of religious
poetry is written by Isaiah, Ezekiel, Jeremiah,
and other prophets; otherwise, there are no notable works
or deeds among the Jews before 586.
2. ExtrcLcts lUuatrative of Jewish Belief and Feeling.
From the Laws.
" And God spake all these words, saying, I am the Lord th}'
God, which have brought thee out of the land of Egypt. . . .
Thou shalt have no other gods before me. Thou shalt not
make unto thee any graven image. . . . Honour thy father and
th}' mother : that thy days may be long upon the land which the
Lord thy God giveth thee. Thou shalt not kill. Thou shalt not
commit adultery. Thou shalt not steal. Thou shalt not bear
false witness against thy neighbour. Thou shalt not covet. . . .
If thou buy an Hebrew servant, six years he shall serve : and in
the seventh he shall go out free for nothing. . . . Thou shalt
give life for life, eye for eye, tooth for tooth, foot for foot.
. . . He that sacrificeth unto any God, save unto the Lord
only, he shall be utterly destroyed. Thou shalt neither vex a
stranger, nor oppress him : for yQ were strangers in the land of
Egypt. Ye shall not afflict any widow or fatherless child. If
28 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
thou afflict them in any wise, and they cry at all unto me, I will
surely hear their cry. . . . Thou shalt not wrest the judgment
of thy poor in his cause. Keep thee far from a false matter ;
and the innocent and righteous slay thou not : for I will not
justify the wicked."
From the Psalms.
" The Lord also will be a refuge for the oppressed, a refbge
in times of trouble. . . • The Loid is king for ever and ever :
the heathen are perished out of his land. Lord, thou hast
heard the desire of the humble : thou wilt prepare their heart,
thou wilt cause thine ear to hear : to judge the fatherless and
the oppressed, that the man of the earth may no more oppress.
... It is God that girdeth me with strength, and maketh my
way perfect. ... He teacheth my hands to war, so that a bow
of steel is broken by mine arms. . . . Thou hast also given
me the works of mine enemies ; that I might destroy them that
hate me. . . . Some trust in chariots, and some in horses : but
we will remember the name of the Lord our God. They are
brought down and fallen : but we are risen and stand upright.
. . . Many are the afflictions of the righteous : but the Lord
delivereth him out of them all. He keepeth all his bones : not
one of them is broken. Evil shall slay the wicked : and they
that hate the righteous shall be desolate. . . . Blessed is he
that considereth the poor : the Lord will deliver him in time of
trouble. . . . For the Lord most high is terrible ; he is a great
king over all the earth. He shall subdue the people under us,
and the nations under our feet."
From the Proverbs,
"My son, if sinners entice thee, consent thou not. . . ,
When wisdom entereth into thine heart, and knowledge is
pleasant unto thy soul ; discretion shall preserve thee, under-
standing shall keep thee. . . . Let not mercy and truth forsake
thee : bind them about thy neck ; write them upon the table of
thine heart : so shalt thou find favour and good understanding in
STUDY ON THE JEWS. 29
iLe sight of God and man. Trust in the Lord with all thine heart ;
and lean not unto thine own understanding. In all thy ways
acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy paths. . . . Devise
not evil against thy neighbour, seeing he dwelleth securely by
thee. . . . The corse of the Lord is in the house of the wicked :
but he blesseth the habitation of the just. Surely he scorneth
the scomers : but he giveth grace unto the lowly."
STUDY ON I AND 2.
What seems to be the chief influence in Jewish life? Whafc
class of people are most powerful? Prove it from 1 and 2. In what
sort of works are they especially rich? What class produce these
works? Judging from the extracts, what are some of the chief
requirements of their moral code? ' What is true of its spirit?
What classes are especially cared for? What historical reason for
this? What virtues seem to be especially admired among them?
How does their belief conspicuously differ from that of other peo-
ples of their time ? How is their morality superior to that of the
Assyrians? How does the quality of their poetry as seen in the
Psalms compare with the hymns and prayers of the Assyrians and
Egyptians ? What conspicuous quality of character do they ascribe
to Jehovah? On what do they chiefly depend in war?
In Oenoral. — What did each of the nations we have been studying
care for most? or, to put it differently, what was the ideal man and
the ideal life among each people ? Which ideal was, in your opinion,
the best ? What did each people do that has endured and been of
use to all the world? Which people seem to you least useful? What
is the application of the motto given on p. 3 ?
32 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
HELLAS, 1000(?)-338 B.C.
PERIODS OF HISTORY.i
A. Homeric, Heroic, Legendary Age before 776.
B. Colonizing, Formative Period, 776-600.
C. Struggle with the Persiane, 500-479.
D. Athenian Leaderehip, 4l79 -431.
E. Peioponneaian War, 431-404.
F. Spartan, Theban, and Macedonian Leaderehipe, 404-338.
G. Macedonian Conquest, 338.
" For the whole earth is the sepulchre of famous men ; not only art
they commemorated by columns and inscriptions in their own country, but
tn foreign lands there dwells also an unwritten memorial of them, graven
not on stone, but in the hearts of men. Make them your examples, and,
esteeming courage to be freedom, and freedom to be happiness, do not
weigh too nicely the perils of war." — Pebicles.
Note on Map of Ghreece. — The purple fish, which the Phoeni-
cians used in dyeing their linens and wools, was found along the eastern
shore of Greece ; this shore abounded in deep and sheltering bays,
while the western coast was mostly composed of steep rock or flat
marsh. Iron was found in Eubcsa, Boeotia, Melos, and Laconia,
copper in Cyprus and Euboea, silver in Attica, gold and silver in
Thrace, Macedonia, and Epirus; marble was found in the moun-
tains and islands, the best coming from Pares and Pentelioon.
Nearly every state and island had its own fertile wheat-fields, its
own mountain-forests, and sheep-pastures ; while the soil was favor-
able for vine and olive culture.
The people dressed in wool or linen, and ate either barley or wheat
bread, with olive oil for a relish, and wine for their drink ; in Arcadia,
pork, in Attica, fish, was generally added to this diet.
1 Dates all B.C.
STUDY ON HEROIC AGE. 33
STUDY ON MAP AND NOTE.
What natural boundaries has Greece in each direction ? Give the
geogi*aphical reasons for the boundary of Thessaly. How far do these
reasons apply to the boundaries of other Greek states ? What advan-
tages are there in such boundaries? How far are the Greek states
able to supply their own needs for clothing, food, weapons, and
shelter? What effect will this have on the independence of the
various states? Compare the size of the Greek states with other
ancient and modem states.
Make a list of the occupations which you think the Greeks may
have. Which of these occupations will be common to all Greece?
Which will be found in Attica? In Arcadia? In Laconia? Will
it be easier to get to Asia or to other parts of Europe from Greece ?
Why? Why was it more desirable to go to Asia than to Europe easily ?
From which state of Greece is that way easiest ?
Make a list of reasons why the geography of Greece is favorable
to an early civilization. To which state of Greece do these reasons
most strongly apply ?
A, STUDY ON HEROIO AGE.
Chief contemporary sources of its history: Homeric
poems, the Iliad, Odyssey, and Hymns; the monuments
at Mycenffl, Tiryns (in Argos), and in the Troad.
Other original sources : Hesiod and the Greek tragedians,
Herodotus.
Chief modern authorities : Grote, Curtius, Duncker.
1. Same of the More Famous Events f Men, and Works
of the Heroic or Mythical Age.
The Settlement of Greece. — In the Greek myths regard-
ing the earliest settlement of Greece, we find it told that
the founder of Athens came from Egypt ; that the rulers
of Argos were partly of Egyptian race ; that the founder
of Thebes was Cadmus the Phoenician ; and that Pelops,
whose descendants became the kings of the Peloponnesus,
vras of Asia Minor. The walls and sculptures of Mycense
h-i
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
were said to have been built by Asiatic help ; the intro-
duction of the alphabet was ascribed to Cadmus; while
wheat was said to have been introduced from Libya. In
the Greek language, the following words are of Phoenician
origin: linen, sack-cloth, myrrh, frankincense, cinnamon,
soap, lyres, wine-jars, cosmetics, writing-tablets.
THB UON-OATB OF MYOENJB.
The Expedition of the Argonauts. — In Colchis, on the
Black Sea, there was, it was said, a fleece of pure gold.
To obtain this prize, Jason, a Thessalian Greek, sailed
with a band of heroes through the Hellespont to Colchis,
whence they brought this golden fleece.
STUDY ON HEROIC AGE. 85
The Trojan War. — Paris, son of Priam, king of Troy,
had seized Helen, wife of Menelaus, king of Sparta, and
had carried her home to the Troad. So Menelaus and his
brother Agamemnon, king of My cense, called their warriors
together and sailed for Troy, and with them went many
other chiefs of Greece; notably, Achilles, king of the
Myrmidons, from Thessaly ; Ajax, son of the king of Sala-
mis; Diomed, a chief from Argos; Odysseus (Ulysses),
king of Ithaca; Nestor, king of Pylos. For nine years
they laid siege to Troy, which at last fell into their hands,
and was destroyed.
The Dorian BCigration. — The Thessalians entered Thes-
saly from Epirus, settling and naming the land. Those
before dwelling in Thessaly moved to the southward;
among them were the Dorians, who, under the lead of the
sons of the god-born Heracles (Hercules), conquered and
settled the greater part of Peloponnesus, forming the states
of Sparta, Elis, Messenia, AryoSj Corinth, The lonians,
who were before in Peloponnesus, now crossed to Lydia,
where they founded twelve cities, Ephesus and Miletus
being the greatest. The people of these twelve cities
erected at Mycale a temple, called Panionium, where they
all went and worshipped Poseidon, with a joyous festi'
val. Such a union was called an Amphictyony, and similar
unions were formed in many of the*Greek states.
The Homeilo Poems. — About 1000, the bards began to
sing and recite the story of the Trojan war (the Iliad)
and the wanderings of Odysseus on his return from Troy
(Odyssey). The Iliad and Odyssey, together with certain
hymns to the gods, have long been attributed to the poet
Homer, though their authorship and date are much disputed.
The Eatabliahment of the Delphio Oracle. — The god Apollo,
descending from Olympus, looked on the hills and groves
of Greece, to choose a spot where he would reveal to men
36 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the will of Zeus and the events of the future, and whence
he would give them advice in their perplexing affairs. He
chose the slopes of Parnassus, and there the temple of
Delphi was built in his honor; and for priests he chose the
Cretans of a passing ship, who knew the sacred hymns
addressed to him in Crete. In this temple always dwelt a
priestess, through whom Apollo spoke to men, told them
of the future, and how to guide the present aright. Thus,
according to the myth, was founded the famous Delphic
Oracle. To guard it, a council was formed, comprising
members from all the leading Greek states, and known as
The Amphictyonic Council,
The Laws of Lyourgus. — (See p. 56.)
2. List of the Chief Gods of the Greeks^ with their
Attributes.
Zeus (Jove, Jupiter), the god of the sky, controlling rains, clouds,
and weather in general.
Poseidon (Neptune), god of the sea, controlling calm and storm.
Apollo, god of wisdom, of medicine, music, and poetry ; giving power
to heal, and inspiring lays and poems ; afterward, god of the sun.
Ares (Mars), god of war, of physical force, controlling the field of
battle.
HsPHiESTUS (Vulcan), god of fire, and of all the forging and casting
and moulding of metals; giving skill in all metal work; repre-
sented as lame.
Hermes (Mercury), god of Running ; of inventive skill ; of commercial
sharpness and wit.
Hera (Juno), wife of Zeus and queen of the sky.
Athena (Minerva), daughter of Zeus, and goddess of wisdom; of
strategy in war ; of housewifery.
Artemis (Diana), sister of Apollo, goddess of hunting; afterward
goddess of the moon .
Aphrodite (Venus), goddess controlling marriage and love,
Demeter (Ceres), goddess of harvest, controlling the yield of the seed
and the fertility of the soil.
Hestia (Vesta), goddess of fire, especially of the hearth-fire, thus
becoming the deity of the home.
STUDY ON HEROIC AGE. 37
These were the twelve great gods ; besides these, Diony-
sius (Bacchus) was widely worshipped. He was the god
of wine, controlling the yield of the vineyards and inspir-
ing drunken madness. Every wood, every stream, every
mountain, had its own presiding spirit, who might be
approached and pleased by prayers and gifts.
The following phrases are used of the gods : " the gods
who live forever;" "all power is with the gods;" "the
gods, if willing, can save a man, even from a distance."
STUDY ON I AND 2.
lu what way were the Greeks evidestly accustomed to go from place
zo place? What occupation would this encourage? What effect
would this habit have on civilization? Why? What do the myths
indicate of the origin of Greek civilization ? What does the list of
words given tell us of the Phoenicians? Of the Greeks? Which
tribes were most active in the Heroic Age? Why should an early
movement have taken place to gain Thessaly? (See Map.) In what
geographical directions did the Greek movements t.ake place? Why?
What do you understand by an Amphictyony? Name two things
which were in common to those belonging to an Amphictyony.
What does 2 indicate in regard to the occupations of the .Greeks?
What reason had they for propitiating each of their gods? What
relation evidently existed between their religion and their life and
surroundings?
WhiEkt proofs of intellectual life among the Greeks of the Heroic
Age ? Wliat directions did it take. The ** Lion-gate " indicates the
beginnings of what arts?
S. Extracts Illustrative of Heroic Age.
a. Agamemnon's Councils of War, (Iliad.)
In the ninth and final year of the Trojan war, the issues of
the contest still being doubtAil, Agamemnon, king of Mycenae,
called together a '^council of the great-hearted elders," the
leaders of the people, and said : *^ A dream from heaven came to
me in my sleep . . . and charged me, saying ; . . . ' To sleep all
night beseemeth not one who is a councilor, to whom the host
is entrusted. ... I am a messenger to thee from Zeus who . . .
38 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
hath great care for thee and pity. He biddeth thee call to arms
the Greeks, for now thou may est take . . . tlie city of the Tro-
jans.* So spake the dream. ... So come, let us now call to
arms . . . the sons of the Greeks. But first I will make trial of
them . . . and will bid them flee . . . only do ye from this side
and from that speak to hold them back." To this the chiefs
agreed, and when the people were assembled, Agamemnon pro-
posed a return to Greece, " and tliey with shouting hasted to
the ships ; " but Odysseus, king of Ithaca, who had been pres-
ent at the council of the elders, ran among the folk to call them
back ; ' ' whenever he found one that was a captain and a man
of mark, he . . . refrained him with gentle words : ' Good sir,
it is not seemly to affright thee like a coward, but do thou sit
thyself and make all thy folks sit down.' . . . But whatevei
man of the people he saw . . . shouting, him he drave with
his scepter and chode . . . ; * Good sir, sit still and heark-
en to the words of others that are thy betters ; but thou art
no warrior and . . . never reckoned; whether in battle or
in council ... let there be one master, one king, whom Zeus
hath given the scepter and made the giver of the laws to all
the rest.' "
The assembled Greeks were now addressed in favor of war,
first by one and then another prince ; at last, after a speech by
Odysseus, the Greeks " shouted aloud and praised the saying
of godlike " Odysseus ; and after two more speeches from their
princes they eagerly went to their tents to prepare for battle.
" And they did sacrifice, each man to one of the everlasting gods,
praying for escape from death." But Agamemnon offered sac-
rifice to Zeus, *' and emailed the elders, the princes of the . . .
host," to stand around the sacrifice while thus he pra3'ed ;
'* Zeus, most glorious, most great god of the stormcloud, . . .
grant that the sun set not, . . . till I have laid low upon the
earth Priam's palace."
Then each chief marshalled his own men for war, except
Achilles, who was angry with Agamemnon (see/.), and would
neither come to council nor to war, though Agamemnon sent
him many gifts, entreating him.
STUDY ON HEROIC A*GE. 89
Again, while the Trojans were keeping watch, the Greeks
*' were holden of heaven-sent panic " ; and again Agamemnon
summoned an assembly, in which he advised a return to Greece ;
but all kept silence until prince Diomed arose and said ; — ...
" With thee first in thy folly will I contend. . . . O King . . .
deemest thou that the sons of the Greeks are thus indeed cow-
ards? ... if thine own heart is set on departing, go thy way.
. . . But the rest will tarry here." Him the Greeks applauded,
shouting aloud, and after him another chief arose and advised
Agamemnon to call a council of the elders, saying, "In the
gathering of many shalt thou listen to him that deviseth the
most prudent council ; " and thus did Agamemnon.
b. The Law-suit. (Hiad.)
'* The folk were gathered in the assembly-place, for there a
strife was arisen, two men striving about the price of a man
slain ; ^ the one avowed that he had paid all, expounding to the
people, but the other denied that he had received aught : . . .
and the folk were cheering both, as they took part on either
side ; . . . while the elders were sitting in the sacred circle. . . .
Then before the people, they rose up and gave judgment."
STUDY ON a AND b.
What title has the chief ruler among the Greeks ? Make a list ot
the things which he does. What title may he have on account of each
one of these duties? How is his will made known to the people?
How does he know the opinion of the people ? Who help him accom-
plish his will? How do these men know his will? What means do
they take to make the people obey ? What means does Agamemnon
take to make the other chiefs or kings obey ? (See case of AchiDes.)
How many sorts of assemblies, or meetings, do we see among the
Greeks ? Who compose each, and what is the use of each ? What takes
the place of each nowadays, in our own country ? How do the people
show their opinion of proposals made to them ? How do the follow-
ing extracts show this government to have been supported ?
* In case of murder, the matter was often settled by the murderer's pay-
ing a sum of money to relatives of the man murdered.
40 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Odysseus, king of Ithaca, found, on his return, that his wife's suitors
had wantonly wasted his rich flocks, whereupon he said: *<But as
for the sheep which the proud wooers have slain, I myself will [seize]
many more as spoil, and others the Greeks will give, till they fill all
my folds. . . . But now go to my well-wooded farm-land ; " there, we
are told, were rich vineyards, and orchards of pear and apple, fig and
olive trees.
Achilles, king of the Myi-midons, says, speaking of his successes in
war : ** Many a man I took alive and sold."
Compare this form of government with that of Egypt or Assyria.
What is the most conspicuous difference?
c. Penelope and Telemachus, (Odyssey.)
Odysseus was so delayed in his return to Ithaca, that most
of the Ithacans thought him dead ; and many chiefs came to
woo his wife Penelope, but she put them off, hoping against hope
for the return of her husband. One day, as she was weaving
with her women, she heard a minstrel singing to her suitors of
the faring of the Greeks from Troy, and weeping she appeared
from her chamber, and asked him to change his theme ; but
Telemachus, her son, said to her : . . . " Let thy heart and mine
endure to listen, for not Odysseus only lost in Troy the day of
his returning, but many another likewise perished. Howbeit,
go to thy chamber and mind thine own housewiferies, the loom
and distaff. . . . But speech shall be for men . . . but for me in
dhief ; for mine is the lordship in the house." Soon after, one
of the suitors becoming importunate, said to Telemachus:
"... Send away thy mother and bid her be married to whom-
soever her father commands, and whoso is well pleasing to her."
But Telemachus replied : '* I may in no wise thrust forth . . . the
woman that bare me, that reared me : ... for I shall have
evil at the hand of her father, and some god will give me more
besides . . . and I shall have blame of men."
d, Odysseus and the Phceacians, (Odyssey.)
In the course of his wanderings, Odysseus was shipwrecked
on the coast of Phseacia (mythical) . Meanwhile, Nausicaa,
STUDY ON HEROIC AGE. 41
the daughter of ... a Phseacian king, came down to the river-
side with her maidens to wash ; and while the clothes were dry-
ing and the maidens playing ball, Odysseus appeared, asking
help ; and the princess directed him to the palace where her
mother was weaving and her father sitting among the council-
ors. The next day, the king made a feast for Odysseus, and
after it, a minstrel ^^ that was had in honor of the people " sang
a song of heroes ; then all went forth to games, matches in
wrestling, racing, and throwing, in leaping and boxing ; and
the king's son asked Odysseus to join them, saying, ^' . . . there
is no greater glory for a man while yet he lives, than that which
be achieves by hand and foot." Odysseus consenting, won the
praise of all by his strength and skill; then the king called
forth the dancers, '^ that so the stranger may tell his friends
• . . how far we surpass all men ... in speed of foot, and in
the dance and song." Then the '^ divine " minstrel sang again,
and Odysseus told the company the story of his wanderings.
e. The Return of Odysseus, (Odyssey.)
On the return of Odysseus, the first man whom he met was
his swineherd, EumsBus, who not knowing him, yet asked him
to his hut, and gave him bread and meat and wine, and when
Odysseus said, '^ May Zeus . . . and all the other deathless
gods grant thee thy dearest wish, since thou hast received me
heartily," the swineherd answered, "It were an impious thing
for me to slight a stranger ... for from Zeus are all strangers
and beggars ; ... the gods have stayed the returning of my
master, who would have loved me diligently and given me some-
what of my own, a house and a parcel of ground, and a comely
wife such as a kind lord gives to his man." And Eumseus
told him of the insolent wooers, saying, *' Verily the blessed
gods love not froward deeds but . . . justice and the righteous
deeds of men." Afterward Odysseus asked the swineherd how
he chanced to come to Ithaca : " Was «... town taken and
sacked, wherein dwelt thy father and thy lady-mother, or did
unfriendly men find thee lonely . . . and ship thee hence and
sell thee into the house of thy master here ? "
42 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
Eumseus replied that he was born a king's son in a far-off
land ; but that his nurse, enticed away by Phoenicians, carried
him with her to tbeir ship, which quickl^'^ sailed away; and
coming to Ithaca sold him to the king.
On reaching the palace and being still unrecognized, Odys-
seus boasted of his strength to mow a whole day long, and to
plow a straight and even furrow ; and later revealed himself to
Penelope by reminding her of how he had made his own bed-
stead, smoothing it with the adze, boring it with the anger,
inlaying it with ivory, silver, and gold, and how about it he had
built a chamber, " with stones close-set."
STUDY ON c, <l, 6.
Judging from these extracts, how many wives does one husband
have ? What form of marriage is this called ? Who rules the house V
What three things check the exercise of this power ? What name is
given to this form of family ? Say all you can of the position of
woman as indicated in the above extracts.
Make a list of the occupations named or indicated. How do kings
and princesses occupy themselves ? Compare their occupations with
those of common people. With those of modern kings and queens.
What remark can you make (a) about simplicity? and (b) about
equality, then as compared with now ? How is Odysseus treated by
the king ? by the swineherd ?
How do the Greeks amuse themselves ? Have such amusements a
good or bad effect ? Good or bad in what way ?
To what social class does Euraaeus belong? How does he com-
pare ^ in birth with Odysseus ? How is he treated ? How are
the men belonging to this class obtained? What other classes
appear? [See, also, p. 38, account of Odysseus summoning the Greeks
to council.]
/. The Wrath of ApoUo. (Iliad.)
The priest of Apollo had come to Agamemnon to ransom
his daughter, whom the Greeks had taken prisoner ; but Aga-
memnon refused his gifts, and the priest, going apart, thus
prayed Apollo: ''Hear me, god of the silver bow ... If
ever I built a temple gracious in thine eyes, or if ever I
STUDY ON HEROIC AGE. 48
burnt to thee fat flesh of bulls or goats, fulfil thou this my
prayer ; let the [Greeks] pay by thine aiTOws for my tears.*'
And Apollo hearing him, ^^came down from the peaks of
Olympus wroth in heart. . . . And the arrows clanged upon his
shoulders in his wrath, as the god moved." For nine days
he sent a plague among the Greeks, but on the tenth, Achilles
called a council, '' for in his mind the goddess Hera of the
white arms put the thought," for she grieved to see the sick
and dying Greeks. And Achilles thus advised: ^^Come, let
us now enquire of some soothsayer or priest or an interpreter of
dreams, . . . who shall say wherefore Apollo is so wroth."
Thea an augur arose, declaring that Apollo would never cease
his anger till Agamemnon should restore the daughter of his
priest. Agamemnon, though much enraged, obeyed, but
demanded as a recompense the maid who had been given to
Achilles. Then a grave quarrel arose until Achilles was even
about to draw his sword on Agamemnon ; but ^^ the bright-eyed
goddess Athene " suddenly appeared and bade him put back
the sword, and cease from present strife ; and Achilles, though
reluctant, yielded, saying, "whosoever obeyeth the gods, to
him they gladly hearken." So the priest regained his daughter
and prayed Apollo to remove the plague from the Greeks ; and
^* Apollo heard him," and the Greeks offered sacrifices and
" all day long . . . worshiped the god with music . . • and his
heart was glad to hear."
g. The Feast on Olympus.
The goddess Hera, wife of Zeus, had accused him of plan-
ning mischief to the Greeks, but Zeus replied, '* Abide thou
in silence and hearken to my bidding." Then Hera feared,
and all the gods were troubled ; but her son, the lame Hephses-
tus, advised her to submit and speak to Zeus with gentle words,
and not "bring wrangling among the gods." "Then he
poured wine to all the . . . gods, ladling the sweet nectar
from the bowl. And laughter unquenchable arose among
the blessed gods to see Hephaestus bustling through the
46 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
palace. So feasted they all day till the setting of the snn ;
nor was their soul aught stinted of the fair banquet, nor of
the beauteous lyre that Apollo held. . . . Now when the bright
light of the sun was set, these went each to his own house to
sleep, where each one had his palace ipade with cunning device
by famed Hephaestus,"
h. The Visit of Odysseus to Hades,
Odysseus was permitted, while yet alive, to visit the homes
of the dead ; and first he '^ besought the tribes of the dead in
vows and prayers" and offered sacrifice to them; and then
about him came ^^ the spirits of . . . old men of many and evil
days, and tender maidens . . . and many . . • wounded with
bronze-shod spears, men slain in fight with their bloody mail
about them." And among them was the spirit of his mother;
but when he tried to embrace her, she flitted away like ''a
shadow " or ^' a dream." Among the rest he saw Achilles,
who told him: ^'Bather would I live upon the earth as the
hireling or the landless man, who has no great livelihood, than
bear sway among all the dead."
STUDY ON /, g, hf REFERRING ALSO TO 2.
What did the Greeks believe (a) about the number, (h) about the
power, (c) about the relative rank of their gods? What part or parts
of the world seemed to them under divine direction ? It is said that
the Greek gods were anthropomorphic, or like men : prove it from the
text. How were they like men ? How unlike ? How did the Greeks
believe they could please or persuade their gods? Discover their will?
What spirit seemed to pervade their worship? Look over previous
work, and find additional facts to prove what you have said. What
difference between the Greek, the Egyptian, and the Assyrian gods ?
Find three things that the Greeks believed of the future state.
STUDY OP HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 47
B. STUDY OH HBTOBIO OEEEOE, OR HELLAB, 776^600.
I. General Hellenic Development.
II. Studies of Special States.
1. The Constitution and Laws of Sparta.
2. The Development of the Athenian Constitution.
Principal contemporary sources of history : Herodotus ;
lyric poets of period ; monuments and remains at Olympia,
at Psestum, Poseidonia, Agrigentum, and other places in
Sicily and Southern Italy ; at Ephesus, Assos ; in Samos,
and other islands of the jEgsean.
Other principal origin«al sources : Thucydides, Plutarch,
Aristotle, Xenophon.
Chief modern authorities : Grote, Curtius.
Note on the Map. — In Illyria were to be found cattle and slaves,
bitumen, timber, and silver ; in exchange for these, the Greeks gave
the Illyrians salt and salt-fish, oil and wine; while to the Illyrian
chiefs they gave the finely woven wool of Miletus, the famous pottery
of Corcyra, or wrought ornaments of gold and silver, whose material
had come, perhaps, from the rich mines of Thrace. The lands about
Gyrene and about the Italian and Sicilian towns, as well as the whole
of Asia Minor, were rich in cattle and wheat, in wine and oil. From
Athens went figs and olives, pottery and silver ; from Chalcis, famous
swords of bronze, wrought from the copper and iron of the neighboring
mines ; from Corinth, pottery and bronze, and the best-built ships.
The colonies about the Black Sea were mostly the daughter-cities of
Miletus ; to those on the southern shore, flocked the caravans of Assyria
and India; to those on the east, the Phasis washed down the gold of
Caucasus ; to those on the north and west, came wheat and timber,
flocks and herds, and Scythian gold.
STUDY ON THE MAP AND NOTE.
What part of each country is occupied by the Greeks? What
objects do you fancy the Greeks have in founding colonies? Why
should they choose the locations in which we find them ? Which of
the occupations of Homeric Greece seem to have become predominant,
judging from the map? What occupations support this one ? Which
of the Greek races lead in this occupation? What effect has this
occupation on the unity of Greek territory ? Why ?
48 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
What waters are familiar to the Greeks? Name four of their
colonies that seem peculiarly important to you by their position.
Which of them are placed where important modern cities now stand?
Which one would you choose as the most important of all, and why?
Why are so many placed at the mouths of rivers?
Make a list of the occupations and trades evidently known to the
Greeks at this time. What occupations seem to be most prevalent
among the people living near the Greek colonies, and what do you
judge their state of civilization to have been? What effect will the
colonies have upon these people ?
B. I. Study of General Hellenic Development, 776-490 B.C
1. CLASSES OF PEOPLE FOUND IN GREECE.
a. In Laoonia. — Spartans^ descendants of the Dorians
who conquered Peloponnesus; they hold the best land,
govern, determine peace and war, lead in battle and
share its spoils. They are supported by the produce
of their own land, which is worked for them by Helots,
or serfs ; and the only occupation allowed them is that
of war.
Perioeciy descendants of the original inhabitants of
Laconia. They serve the Spartans in war, but are other-
wise free, and engage in all sorts of occupations.
JTelots ; these are serfs whose duty it is to till the land
owned by the Spartan state.
b. In Attica. — lonians^ descended from Ionian con-
querors of Athens; position in Attica similar to that of
Spartans in Laconia, but allowed to engage in various
occupations.
MeticB^ the free non-Ionian inhabitants of Attica, pro-
tected by its laws but having no share in its government.
Slaves^ the personal and private property of the inhabi-
tants of Attica; that is, belonging to individuals, for whom
they perform all sorts of service and labor.
Similar classes, with local differences, are found in all
the Greek states. In each state the ruling class believes
STUDY OF HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 49
itself descended from some common ancestor of divine or
heroic birth, whom they honor with games, festivals, and
sacrifices. Thus, all the Dorians honor fferaehs^ and all
the lonians, Ion, the son of Apollo ; each tribe of lonians
or Dorians has, moreover, its own special ancestor, whom
all its members may worship in common.
2. LIST OP LEADING EVENTS OF THE PERIOD.
776.
The Olympio Bra. — The Olympic games were
celebrated in honor of Olympian Zeus, at his
temple at Olympia, in Elis. They consisted in contests in
running, leaping, throwing the disk, boxing, and wrestling,
and afterward, chariot racing became an important feature.
The prize of victory was simply a wreath of the wild olive.
Sparta arranged with Elis the laws for the games, to which
only Greeks were admitted. Statues were erected to the
victors, of which the historian Pausanias, visiting Olympia
in the second century B.C., mentions 200 as noteworthy
from a much larger number. During the time of the
games, truce was proclaimed in all the states whose citi-
zens were engaged at Olympia. In 776, the records of
victors in these games began to be kept, and from this
year the Greeks reckoned time by Olympiads, or periods
of four years each ; for instance, an event occurring by our
chronology in 770 B.c. would be dated by them as belong-
ing to the second Olympiad.
The Spartans conquer Messenia whose inhabi
tants either emigrate or become Spartan Helots
Those emigrating to Sicily found Messana. The
778
TO
600.
Spartans also conquer a mountain frontier for themselves
from Arcadia; Syracuse, Tarentum, Massalia, Corcyra,
Cyrene, and most of the other Greek colonies, are founded
during this period. Egypt is opened to Greek merchants,
who also find their way to Spain, and bring thence an
50 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
enormous amount of metal. In gratitude for this dis
covery, they dedicate to the Samiaii Juno a large bronze
vase» richly ornamented -and representing a tenth of their
gains. In Megara, a man said to have been a cook over-
throws the government of nobles, and he and his descend-
ants rule the state for about a hundred years. In Corinth,
also, the government of the few or of the nobles (Oli-
garchy) is overthrown by the leaders of the people,
Cypselus and his son Periander, who themselves succes-
sively hold the chief power. By these men a gilt colossal
statue of Zeus is dedicated to the god at Olympia, and
a large chest of cedar-wood, overlaid with carved gold and
ivory, is offered to Hera. In other Greek states, also, the
oligarchies are overthrown by popular leaders or power-
ful men, who become rulers under the title of "Tyrant**
or "despot." In several cases these "Tyrants" are
put down by the help of Sparta, who always opposes
them.
For Athens, see B. II. 2.
600
TO
ff90.
The first sacred war occurs, caused as fol-
lows: the pilgrims to Delphi are annoyed and
heavily taxed by the neighboring city Cirrha;
and at last, on the motion of the Athenian Solon, the
states of the Delphic Amphictyony join forces and
destroy Cirrha, and, dedicating the land on which it
stood to Apollo, there hold the Pythian games; these
games are at first simple contests in music and poetry,
but afterwards races and athletic sports are added.
The Nemean games are established in honor of
Zeus, and the Isthmean in honor of Poseidon.
Sparta gains part of the Argi ve territory, Croesus.
590
TO
ftOO.
king of Lydia, asks for aid from Greece, addressing him-
self to the Spartans.
STUDY OF HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 51
3. LIST OF FAMOUS NAMES OF THE PERIOD.
ll/ames.
BirtJi and
Circumstance.
1^
1*^
Cause of Fame.
Alc»U8.
Lesbos: citi-
7th
Lyric poet : that is, wrote short poems
zen.
descriptive of feelings, passions, mo-
mentary impressions; many poems
on love, on music, on particular
events and persons ; invented new
poetic measures.
Ale man.
Sardi8:saidto
7th
Lyric poet: made new arrangements
have been a
of music.
slave.
Anaximander.
Miletus.
6th
Made the first map, first globe and
sun-dial ; geographer, astronomer,
geometrician ; taught that the world
arose from a chaotic mixture of mat-
ter; philosopher.
Archilochns.
Paros: poor;
7th
Lyric poet, writing also on war; in-
son of slave-
vented new poetic forms.
mother.
Arion.
Lesbos: trav-
7th
Improvised lyric songs and poems at
elling harper.
the festivals and at courts; much
patronized by Periander, the tyrant
of Corinth.
Coriniia.
Bceotian.
6th
Lyric poetess : teacher of Pindar, from
whom she took tlie prize at one of
the sacred festivals of Thebes.
CypseluB.
Tyrant of
Corinth.
7th
See 2.
Hecatseus.
Citizen of
Miletus.
6th
Geographer; philosopher.
Heraclitu&
Citizen of
6th
Taught that a fiery ether was the
Ephesus.
source and original material of the
universe; philosopher.
Hesiod
BoBoUa (?) :
8th
Poet : writing on the gods, on the his-
citizen.
tory of creation, and the first races
of man ; also, didactic poems, giving
directions for agriculture.
M&o.
Crotona, in
6th
Athlete: six times crowned victor at
Italy : citizen
Olympia, and six times in the Pyth-
and general.
ian games, for skill in wrestling.
52
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Mamet.
Birth and
1^
Oau— of Fam€.
Phidon.
Tyrant of
8th
Adopted the Aaiatic atandards of
Argoa.
weight, meaaurea, and coin, which
were introduced into Peloponnesua,
and later into northern Hellas.
Periander.
Tyrant of
Corinth.
7th
See 2.
Pjthagoras.
Samoa : taught
6th
Trayeller, geometrician: taught that
in Magna
the univerae ia created after an ex-
Grsecia; aon
act harmonious order, and that the
of a rich mer-
end of human life is yirtue ; phi-
chant; citizen.
losopher.
Sappho.
Leaboa.
6th
Poeteaa: invented new poetic meas-
urea; taught poetry and music
among the women of Aaia Minor.
Solon.
Athenian citi-
zen of noble
birth.
6th
Lawgiver and poet (aee p. 63).
Stesichorus.
Sicily.
6th
Lyric poet: made new arrangements
of verse.
Terpander.
Leaboa.
7th
Invented a better harp on which to
accompany the Homeric hymna ;
gained the prize at a great Lacede-
monian featival.
Thales.
Citizen of
6th
Aatronomer, phyaiologist, geometri-
Miletus.
cian : taught that the original element
of the universe ia water, and that
the univerae ia animated by a living
aoul; philoaopher.
Theapis.
Megara.
6th
Firat dramatic poet: uaing for ma-
terial the atoriea of Greek mythology.
Tyrtaeua.
Attica; lame
7th
War aonga ; new arrangement of music ;
achoolmaater.
poet.
Xenophanea.
Lydia (Ionian
6th
Poet, writing on philosophy; taught
Greek).
that there ia one God, "neither in
body like unto mortala» neither in
mind"; attacked the old religioua
mytha.
STUDY OP HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 68
Other famous works of this period: The temple of
Artemis (Diana) at Ephesus ; of Hera, at Samos ; of Posei-
don, at Poseidonia (Paestum) in Italy ; three great temples
at Agrigentum in Sicily ; an artificial harbor at Corinth ; the
discovery of the casting of bronze in Samos, and of welding
iron in Chios ; at the latter place was made a famous iron
stand for a silver censer that the king of Lydia sent to Delphi.
STUDY ON I, 2, AND 3.
What two bonds of union existed among the Dorians? lonians?
How far was the position of Perioeci or Metics oppressive ? In what
regard was it favorable? Differences between Helots and slaves.
Which was the leading Greek state in this period? Name three
facts which prove it. What were the great centres of Greek life in
general ? What important common interests had the Greeks ? What
institutions and what event prove this? If you read that something
occuiTed in the 15th Olympiad, what date will you assign it in our own
chronology ? With what class of people does the Tyrant seem to have
been associated, or to have represented? What characterized the
Greek worship ? What influence would such a worship have on (a)
physique, (6) intellect, (c) art? What proofs have we from 2 and
3 that it did have such an influence in directions (b) and (c) ? Was
the simplicity of the Olympic prize good or bad? Why?
Name all the directions in which Greek activity turns itself during
this period. Of these, name the two chief ones. What parts of the
Greek world manifest this activity ? What reason can you offer for
this? What stimulated poetry among the Greeks? Art? What
arts ? What relation between the Tyrants and art and civilization ?
What was evidently meant by philosophy among the Greeks ?
What position or station or birth was necessary to acquire greatness
among the Greeks? What gave men greatness ? Compare with the
great men and deeds of Egypt and Assyria. What sort of civiliza-
tion is evidently arising among the Greeks ?
4* Extracts lUustrative of Period.
a. The Founding of Gyrene, (Herodotus.)
As the king of Thera was consulting the Delphic oracle
about other affairs, the oracle advised him to found a colony in
64 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Libya [Africa]. Accordingly men set sail from Thera t«
explore, and landing on Platea, an island near the Libyan
coast, sent back word that they had taken possession of Libya ;
'*■ the Theraeans resolved, therefore, to send one of every
family " of their own city to the new colony. But nothing
turning out prosperously, they inquired at Delphi, saying,
''they had settled in Libya and fared no better." But the
oracle replied that they had not yet reached Libya ; nor would
the god ''release them from founding the colony until they
had come to Libya itself." So seeking flirther, they founded
Cyrene, establishing there the same religious rites and wor-
ship they were accustomed to in Thera.
b. Solon and Croesus, (Herodotus.)
When Solon, the Athenian, visited Croesus, king of Lydia,
the latter showed him all his splendid treasures ; '^ and when
he had seen and examined everything sufficiently, Croesus
asked him ... ' Who is the most happy man that you have
seen?'" Solon answered, "Tellus, the Athenian, because he
lived in a well-governed commonwealth ; had sons who were
virtuous and good . . . and coming to the assistance of the
Athenians in a battle ... he put the enemy to flight, and died
nobly. The Athenians buried him at the public charge . . .
and honored him greatly." Croesus then asked for the next
happiest man whom Solon had seen, and Solon gave the names
of two youths of Argos, because they had a sufficient fortune,
and had withal, such strength of body, that they were both
alike victorious in the public games ; and he added this story,
that " when the Argives were celebrating a feast of Hera, it
was necessary that the mother of these youths h% drawn to the
temple in a chariot; and since the oxen did not come from
the field in time, the young men . . . drew the car in which
their mother sate " ; and the men of Argos, who stood around,
praised the strength of the youths ^ and " the women blessed
her as the mother of such sons " ; and after their death, the
Argives " caused their statues to be dedicated at Delphi."
STUDY OF HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 56
c. The Lydian Kings and Delphi.
Once, when Alyattes, the father of this Crcesus, was making
war, a temple of Athena was accidentally burned, and shortly
after he fell sick. '* When the disease continued a considerable
time, he sent messengers to Delphi to consult the oracle. . . .
The Pythian, however, refused to give any answer . . . until
the temple of Athena was rebuilt." This then Alj'attes imme-
diately attended to, and shortly after he recovered, and sent
to Delphi a large silver bowl inlaid with iron.
The very first of the Lydian kings had been confirmed in his
kingdom by the Delphic oracle, to which he sent a great quan-
tity of gold and silver, notably, six golden bowls. Croesus
himself, to show his esteem for the oracle, had sent thither the
figure of a lion in fine gold, bowls of gold and silver of "no
common work," fine-wrought vases, the statue of a woman,
and the necklaces and girdles of his wife.
d. The Marriage of ClistJienes' DaugJUer,
Clisthenes, the tyrant of Sicyon, had a daughter whom he
** resolved to give in marriage to . . . the most accomplished of
all the Greeks. When, therefore, the Olympian games were
being celebrated, Clisthenes, being victorious in them . . .
made there a proclamation," inviting to Sicyon " whoever of
the Greeks deemed himself worthy to become the son-in-law of
Clisthenes." Thereupon suitors came from Italy and the
Adriatic shore ; from Peloponnesus and Athens, and even from
Thessaly and the Hellespont. "When the day appointed for
the . . . marriage arrived . . . Clisthenes, having sacrificed a
hundred oxen, entertained the suitors . . . and when they had
concluded the feast, they had a contest in music and conversa-
tion, in order to show their powers." One of the Athenians
now "ordered the flute-player to play a dance; and when the
flute-player obeyed, he began to dance . . . Laeonian figures . . .
and then Attic ones ; and in the third place, having leant hfs
head on the table, he gesticulated with his legs." Then Clis-
thenes, " no longer able to restrain himself, said . . . ' You
66 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
have danced away your marriage,'" and chose as his son-in-law
the Athenian Megacles. The child of this marriage was
Clisthenes, the Athenian law-giver.
STUDY ON 4.
What were the two bonds of union between the mother-city of Thera
and the colony of Cyrene? Where have we found these bonds of
union before ? What sort of power and knowledge displayed by the
Delphic oracle ? What men were most admired among the Greeks
(their ideals)? What influence had the Delphic oracle on art through
its connection with Lydia? Why did Clisthenes choose the Olympic
games as the place for his proclamation? What facts justified bis
choice? AVhat does that story tell us of Greek amusements? Of
Greek refinement?
In General. — What common bond of union or what conmion
interest have all the Greeks ? What bonds of union in their various
units, — colonies, tribes, amphictyonies, social classes ? What do
the facts of 2, 3, and 4, so far as given, indicate of the position of
woman ? Of individual liberty ? Of the Greek ideal ? Of the leading
Greek occupation and source of Greek wealth ? How far does each of
these facts find some explanation in the Heroic Age? It is said that
Greece was composed of a multitude of little independent states ; what
reason have you for thinking so from the facts of this period?
II. 1. The Constitution and Laws of Sparta.
The constitution and laws of Sparta were by antiquity
credited to the Spartan Lycurgus, a man of royal blood
who was said to have studied the laws of Crete as a
model for those of Sparta, and whose introduction of
these laws was sanctioned by the Delphic oracle (see
p. 35). The following table represents the various parts
of the state, and their relative duties, according to this
constitution : —
STUDY OF UXSTOBIO GBBECE, OB HELLAS.
67
I
S
^ a * I
•w o « 9
^ q -
JJ ts-s § s
:g
I
lilll
5
a
at
2 « ** «
_ W 01 ** ^ fl*
5 o • 2 -•«
II J I s i
§ o "aJ o
&
I
a
i
S.
IS.
o
§
I
I
I *
O -G
^1^
► g.*'
S 2 I ?
[1^ C8 .2 o ^
>» .9
^^8
5.^ I as
« ^ ±» -^ <» g -g
cSi
58 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
The so-called institutions of Lycurgus, or laws of
Sparta, appear in the following account, adapted from
Plutarch.
According to the legend, Lycurgus, on going to Delphi,
obtained the promise that the laws that he ^should make
would be the best in the world: returning to Sparta,
he so arranged matters as to give a piece of land in heredi-
tary possession to every Spartan family. " Each lot was
capable of producing . . . enough for health. . . . He also
introduced . . . public tables, where all were to eat in
common of the same meat, and such kinds as were ap-
pointed by law." Their food was bread, cheese, figs, and
wine, with occasional flesh. The women, the men over
sixty, the children under seven, ate at home, and on rare
occasions the citizens were allowed to join them, but not
even the kings found it easy to gain this permission.
After dinner ** they went home without lights . . . that
they might accustom themselves to march boldly in the
darkest night. . . . Another law . . . directed that the ceil-
ings of houses should be wrought with no tool but the axe,
and the doors with nothing but the saw. ... He ordered
the virgins to exercise themselves in running, wrestling,
and throwing quoits and darts," that their children might
be strong and vigorous.
Every child must be " examined at birth by the most
ancient men of the tribe. ... If it were strong and well-
proportioned, they gave orders for its education ; . . . but
if it were weakly and deformed, they ordered it to be
thrown . . . into a deep cavern. . . . The nurses accustomed
the children to any sort of food, to have no terrors in the
dark, nor to be afraid of being alone. ... As soon as they
were seven years old, Lycurgus ordered them to be en-
rolled in companies . . . where they had their exercises
and recreations in common." These exercises consisted
STUDY OP HIBTORIO GREECE, OB HELIiAS. 5?
in military and gymnastic drill, in trials of strength and in
mock-battles. ^* They slept in companies, in beds made
• . • of reeds which they gathered with their own hands. . . .
The old men were present at their diversions ... to observe,
instruct, and chastise."
From childhood they were accustomed to hear all
the discourses of their elders upon the characters and
affairs of their countrymen. "If one of them were
asked, ^Who is a good citizen, or an infamous one?'
and hesitated in his answer, he was considered a boy
of slow mind, and of a sort that would not aspire to
honor. The answer was likewise to have a reason
assigned for it."
This manner of life was followed by the Spartan citizens
till old age. Nor was their life without its pleasures;
when not engaged in war or drill, they were hunting,
dancing, or conversing. Such were the institutions of
Lycurgus, who was afterwards worshipped as a god among
the Spartans.
The following are some of the stories told of Spartans :
A Spartan boy, having stolen a young fox, and concealed
him under his garment, allowed the creature to tear out
his vitals with his teeth and claws, rather than suffer
detection. As to the question whether they should enclose
Sparta with walls, it was answered, "That city is well
fortified which has a wall of men instead of brick."
XeuxLs, one of the most famous of Greek painters, wishing
to make the most beautiful picture of Venus, sought for
his models among the Spartan virgins. In one of the
plays of Aristophanes, an Athenian lady thus addresses
Lampito, a Lacedaemonian wife, "O dearest Spartan, O
Lampito, welcome ! How beautiful you look, sweetest one,
how fresh your complexion ! You could throttle an ox."
" Yes," says she, " I think I could." A Spartan mother
60 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
sent her five sons to war, and, knowing that a battle had
taken place, she waited for news on the outside of the cit)'.
Some one came up to her and told her that all her sons had
perished. " You vile slave," said she, " that is not what I
wanted to know ; I want to know how fares my country."
" Victorious," said he. " Willingly then," said she, " do
I hear of the death of my sons." When Croesus was ad-
vised by the oracle to obtain a Greek ally in an approach-
ing war, he sent for aid to Sparta; and on one occasion,
when Athens and Megara had been long at war, they
left the decision of their quarrel to a commission from
Sparta.
STUDY ON II. 1.
Who compose the Spartan state? What marks a man as a
Spartan? In other words, what bonds of imion exist among the
Spartans? AV ho holds the chief power in the Spartan state ? What
checks upon this power ? What resemblances do you find between the
Spartan and the Homeric constitution? What difference? What
part of the state has lost power since Homeric times ? Whom does
the chief power in this government represent? What takes the
place nowadays of the general assembly in its function of hearing
news, laws, etc. ? What name can you give to this sort of govern-
ment,— (a) considering Spartans alone? (b) considering all the
inhabitants of Laconia?
AVhat gave the institutions of Lycurgus their power over the people,
and what enabled them to keep that power? What seems to have
been the great aim of these institutions ? How did each provision
made help to attain that aim? What means had they for training the
intellect? What elements of character were evidently sought for?
What sentiment was cherished by the common treatment of all?
What effect would such institutions have upon the family life? Upon
the physique? Upon the manners? What adjectives would you apply-
to the Spartan life ? What do you infer as to the position of women
in such a state? How would labor be regarded in such a state?
Why? Did the Spartan laws look to the good of the individual, the
family, or the state ? AVhat does each story told of Sparta show as to
the influence of her discipline? What was her position among Greek
states ? What was evidently her ideal ?
STUDY OF HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 61
II. 2. The Development of the Athenian CongiUution*
a. Athens before Solon. 776-594 B.C.
In Athens, before Solon, every family had its own tomb,
generally near the house ; here and at the family hearth
they worshipped together their common ancestor. The
following is a prayer offered by a daughter at the tomb of
her father: " Take pity on me and on my brother Orestes ;
make him return to this country ; hear my praj-er, O my
father ; grant my wishes, receiving my offerings." If sons
were adopted, or daughters married into a family, this was
accomplished by teaching them how to share in its wor-
ship, which thus became their own. A union of such fam-
ilies formed a gens or elan^ whose members were recog-
nized " by the fact that they performed sacrifices in
common." A union of clans formed a brotherhood^ wor-
shipping some common ancestor or hero. Of such brother-
hoods were the four Ionic tribes composed ; who, claiming
a common descent from Ion, the son of Apollo, and wor-
shipping in common at the shrine of Athena on the Acrop-
olis ^ of Athens, composed the early city of Athens ; only
these tribesmen were her citizens. Even among the
tribesmen a distinction had risen between the " well-born "
or the Eupatrids^ as they were called, and the " Many^'
the former claiming to be of purer and nobler Ionic blood
than the latter.
The earliest political constitution of Athens was that of
the Heroic age ; just before the time of Solon, as far as
known, it appears as follows : —
^ The hill-fortress and shrine around which Athens was built.
62
STUDIES IN OENKBAIi HISTOKY.
Parts ofth€ State In
War.
Law.
Re/lffioti.
Chief-archon,
Judges in all family
a Eupatrid.
and clan disputes.
Ktng-archon,
Judges in religious
Offers lacrifices
a Eupatrid.
matters.
and decides on
religiouB matters.
Wdr-archon,
Commands in
Judges between citi-
a Eupatrid.
war.
zens and strangers.
Other carchons}
Assist the first
Assist the first
Eupatrids.
three.
three.
Areopagus? sitting
Decides, proclaims,
for life, and
and judges in re-
composed of ex-
gard to all the laws
archons.
of the state; pre-
serves such rec-
ords as are made
of them.
General Assembly
Composes
Probably meets
Worships together
of Ionic tribes-
army and
to hear the deci-
at common
men.
navy.
sions of the Areo-
shrines of
pagus and archons.
Athena, and
honors common
ancestor.
STUDY ON a.
Our own cities are made up of " wards " or districts, which may be
called the units of which the city is composed ; in Athens, what units
do you find? What bonds of union in each of these units? Which
of these bonds was fundamental and essential? Which class of peo-
ple held the ruling power ? Which had but little ? What fi-ee men
in Attica had no power ? What fact determined a man's chance for
power? What resemblances between the constitution of Athens and
that of Homeric times ? What great changes had taken place ? What
class had profited by this change ? IIow had this change probably
* All the archons were chosen annually from, and probably by, the
Eupatrids.
* In full, the Senate of Areopagus or of Mars* Hill.
STUDY OF HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 63
affected the influence of the " Many " ? If a man were rich but not a
Eupatrid, what would be true of his political power ? What name
will you give to this form of the Athenian government ? What view
was evidently taken among the Athenians of the state of the soul after
death?
b. The Legislaiion of Sohn.^ 694 B.C. (Abridged from Plu-
tarch.)
Solon, being himself of noblest Eupatrid birth, was
chosen archon for the purpose of composing the difficulties
of the Athenian state. " A saying of his which he had let
fall some time before, that * equality causes no war,'
was then much repeated, and pleased both the rich and
the poor." The first of his public acts was to free all
lands which had been mortgaged and all citizens who had
been enslaved for debt, and to enact that in future no
Athenian should pledge his own person as security for his
debts, nor sell the members of his own family into slavery
in order to meet his dues. In confirmation of this meas-
ure, the people offered the sacrifice called " Seisachtheia,"
or the thank-offering for freedom.
In the next place, Solon took an estimate of the estates
of the citizens. Those whose yearly income was equal to
about 700 bushels of barley he placed in the first class.
The second consisted of those . . . whose lands produced
between 420 and 700 bushels. In the third class came
those who were worth from 280 to 420 bushels, and in the
fourth, all those whose income fell below this : thus the
Eupatrids and the " Many " often found themselves in the
same class.
He next gave Athens the following political constitu-
tion : —
1 This legislation affected none but the Ionian " tribesmen " of Attica.
64
STUDIES IN GBNEUAL HISTORY.
FwUofiktBtafln
Wwr,
Uur.
R9U§hm.
Archons: elected
Duties and divisioiiB of
labor as before.
from Solon's
first class.
Areopagus: com-
Guards the con-
Has a gener-
Has a
posed of ex-
stitution.
al oTersight
general
archona.
of the state;
punishes
men of idle
and disso-
lute life.
over-
sight of
relig-
ion.
Senate: Four
Prepares meas-
Convokes
hundred loni-
ures for public
general as-
ans, elected
assembly.
sembly and
from the first
executes its
three classes of
decrees.
Solon.
General Assembly
Decides on
Discusses and
Elects ar-
of all four
peace and
votes on meas-
chons and
classes. £c-
war, and
ures proposed
senators.
clesia.
forms army
by senate ; forms
and navy.
courts of law for
judgment of
Athenian citi-
zens; judges ar-
chons and other
magistrates on
their leaving
office.
To this constitution Solon Added the following laws:
that any one, without children, might will away his prop-
erty as he pleased ; that no one should be obliged to main-
tain his father, if the latter had not taught him a trade ; that
trades should be honorable, and that the Areopagus should
examine into each man's way of life and should punish the
idle ; that the privileges of the city should be forbidden to
strangers, except such as were forever exiled from their
STUDY OF HISTORIC GREftCE, OR HeLLAS. 66
own country, or those who had come to Attica with their
families for the sake of exercising some trade.
He ordered also that women should travel with not
more than three dresses and with a limited amount of pro-
vision ; and that in the night they should go only in car-
riages, with torches before them. There should be no
mourners hired at funerals, nor should an ox be sacrificed
on these occasions, nor more than three garments buried
with the body.
Such were the laws of Solon ; and they were written
and placed in the citadel where all could see them, and
where they were under the care of the divinity of the city.
STUDY ON b.
What do you judge to have been those difficulties at Athens which
Solon was chosen to " compose " ? Why should the rich have been
pleased with his saying about equality? Why the poor? What had
been one great cause of slavery? What did Solon make the basis of
political power in Athens ?
How did the ease of obtaining power under his constitution com-
pare with the former ease of gaining it ? What new unit appeared in
the state ? What was the common bond or mark of the men in each
of these units ?
Lj his constitution what people lost political power, comparatively
speaking? Who gained it? What part of the state gave power?
What part exercised it ? What class must be favored by those who
wished to exercise power? What name will you give to this new
form of government at Athens ?
What would be the effect of these laws on trade and industry ?
Which laws of Solon would not be endured among us ? Why ?
What great difference do you notice between the laws of Solon and
those of Lycurgus ? In spirit ? In aim ? In both cases, were their
greatest changes political or social ?
c. The Tyranny of the Pisistratids, (Abridged from Plutarch
and Herodotus.)
Shortly after the new constitution of Solon was given
to Athens, three contending pjirties appeared in the state ;
66
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the party of the Shore, the party of the Plain, and the
" Mountaineers," among which last was a multitude of poor
laborers. The leader of the Mountaineers was Pisistratus,
I. The dweUing of the party of the Shore. II. The dwelling of
the party of the Plain. III. The dwelling of the " Moun-
taineers." P P P. Position of Persian fleet after message of
Themlstokles at opening of the battle of Salamis. G. Position
of Greek fleet at the same time. X. Throne of Xerxes.
Peirasus = the port and harbor of Athens.
of one of the oldest Eupatrid families, related to Solon, and
in his manners "remarkably courteous, affable, and liberal.
He had always two or three slaves near him with bags of
STUDY OF HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS. 67
silver coin ; when he saw any man looking sickly, or heard
that any died insolvent, he relieved the one, and buried
the others at his own expense. If he perceived people
melancholy, he inquired the cause, and if he found it was
poverty, he furnished them with what might enable them
to get bread, but not to live idly. Nay, he left even his
gardens and orchards open, and the fruit free to the citi-
zens." One day Pisistratus came into the market-place,
having intentionally wounded himself and his mules, and
told the people that he had been attacked by his enemies.
" Upon this, the multitude loudly expressed their indigna-
tion . . . and a General Assembly being summoned," a
motion was carried that Pisistratus have a bodyguard of
fifty clubmen; nor did the people "curiously inquire"
into the number employed, and presently Pisistratus
seized the citadel, and assumed the government of Athens.
Herodotus tells us further that he neither disturbed the
magistracies nor the ]aws ; but presently the parties of the
Plain and of the Shore, uniting, drove him out. "But
those who expelled Pisistratus quarrelled anew with
one another," and the leader of the Plain, having made
terms with Pisistratus, on condition of sharing the power,
contrived with him the following plan ; They selected a
woman of commanding height "and in other respects
handsome. Having dressed this woman in a complete suit
of armor, and placed her on a chariot, . . . they drove her
to the city, having sent heralds before, who . . . proclaimed
. . . * O Athenians, receive with kind wishes Pisistratus,
whom Athena herself . . . now conducts back to her own
citadel;* . . . and a report was presently spread among the
people that Athena was bringing back Pisistratus; and
the people in the city, believing this woman to be the god-
dess . . . received Pisistratus." Not long after, however.
68 STUDlfiS 1^ GfiKfiRAL fllStOfelT.
the parties of the Plain and the Shore again combined
against his power; and Pisistratus, hearing of it, with-
drew from the country for ten years, and collecting as
much money as possible, hired mercenary forces,^ with
which he marched against the Athenians and oyercame
them.
Thus Pisistratus, having for a third time possessed him-
self of Athens, secured his power more firmly, both by the
aid of mercenary forces and by revenues, drawn in part
from the Athenians and in part from the silver mines on
the Strymon.
His power being thus established, he introduced new
festivals to the gods and improved the old; invited to
Athens the greatest poets of Hellas; collected the Homeric
poems; gave the public access to his library of manu-
scripts ; adorned the city with new buildings ; supplied it
with water ; improved the roads of Attica ; improved the
culture of the olive; and preserved the forms of the
Solonian constitution, he himself being always chosen
the first Archon. At his death, he was succeeded by his
sons, who ruled in the same way. But the murder of one
of them by a conspiracy of young Athenians caused the
other to govern harshly and suspiciously, and to form an
alliance with Darius, the king of Persia, in order that he
might have help to uphold his power in Athens.
About this time the Delphian temple was burnt, and
the rich and powerful Athenian family of AlcmaBonids,
that had led the party of the Plain, and had been in exile
during the Pisistratid tyranny, took the contract for re-
building it ; and " they constructed the temple in a more
beautiful manner than the plan required, and . . . built
^ Men hired to fight for others beside their fellow-countTTineii.
STUDY OP HISTORIC GREECE, OR HELLAS, 69
its front of Parian marble. Accordingly, these men . . .
prevailed on the oracle, . . . when any Spartans came to
consult at Delphi, ... to propose to them to free Athens
fi'om the Tyranny. The Lacedaemonians, since the same
warning was always given them, sent ... an army to
expel the Pisistratids, . . . though they were united to
them by ties of friendship ; for they considered their duty
to the god greater than their duty to men. Thus the
Athenians were delivered," and Hippias, the son of Pisis-
tratus, becoming an exile, fled to the court of Darius, the
king of Persia.
STUDY ON c.
What fact given on the map shows that Athens was the centre of
Attica ? Name all the means which Fisistratus possessed or employed
for gaining power. Which of these means had he a perfect right to
employ? Which were wrong ? What right and what wrong means
did he choose? How did the constitution of Solon help him? What
relation between his tyranny and the spirit of that constitution ? What
elements of strengtli existed in the party of the mountaineers ? Why
should the mountain-men all go together, and the men of the plain do
the same ? Why will a party of poor men be more ready for revolu-
tion and change than one of rich men ? What faults on the part of
the Athenians allowed Pisistratus (a) to establish and (6) to main-
tain his tyranny? What really sustained the power of Pisistratus?
What nominally, and according to the constitution, sustained it?
What suspicious circumstance appears in this story concerning Del-
phi ? What additional confirmation of the strength of Sparta ? AVhat
resemblances between this tyranny and those before noted ? Of what
use was this tyranny to Athens?
d. The Legislation of Clisthenes. About 500 b.c.
The Pisistratids having been expelled, Clisthenes, one
of the AlcmsBonid famDy, became the foremost man in
Athens, and proposed a new constitution, which was ac-
cepted by the people, and consented to by the Delphic oracle.
70
STUDIES IN GENERAL. HISTORY.
The Athenian state had hitherto consisted simply of those
who had been born into the four Ionic tribes ; now it was
to consist of all the free-born native inhabitants of Attica,
divided into ten new tribes according to their places of
residence. Each tribe took its name from some native
hero, in whose honor it built a chapel, where the new
tribesmen worshipped and held their sacred feasts in com*
mon. Each tribe was composed of demes, or parishes;
the demes of the same tribe, however, were not all together,
though all the men of the same
parish were in the same tribe.
The accompanying diagram will
explain: let the large square
represent Attica, and the small
squares the demes; demes "«,"
we will say, belong to the first
tribe, demes " b " to the second,
"c" to the third, etc. Each
deme managed its own local affairs ; for those of Attica,
all the demes met by tribes in Athens, where they formed
the general Assembly, or Ecclesia. The following table
shows the new constitution.
a
h
a
b
a
c
c
h
b
c
a
c
c
a
c
h
a
b
c
Porta of Vie State in
War,
Lout,
AdmMatration,
ArchonSf chosen hy lot
1
As before, but subordina
te to new
from three upper classes
constitution.
of Solon.
Straiegi: ten generals, one
Command the
Conyoke Ec^
from each new tribe, an-
army in turn.
clesia.
nually elected from three
upper classes of Solon.
Areopagus, as before.
As before.
Senate of five hundred;
Deliberates on
ti u
ConvokeB Ec-
fifty from each new
foreign af-
cleda.
tribe, annually elected.
fairs.
STUDY OP HISTORIC GBBECE, OB HKLLAS.
71
PariM of th9 8tatt in
War.
Law,
AdmlnlttraUon.
Ecdesia: all adult free-
Composes the
Adopts or re-
Elects officers
boro inhabitants of A^
army and
jects, after
and senators,
tica.
navy.
public discus-
adopts new
sion, propo-
citizens into
sals of Senate
the Attic
and magis-
state.
trates ; judges
and ostra-
cizes.i
^ CllBihenes introduced the '* ostracism." If any man seemed to be
gaining great power among the people, the Senate announced that the
Ecclesia would shortly be called to pass a vote of exile against some
citizen, no name being announced. Should 6000 votes be cast against the
same man, he must go into exile for ten years. A smaller number passed
for nothing.
On the day when the Ecclesia met, from the early morn-
ing ** the priests walked around the Pnyx [the meeting-
place of the Ecclesia] immolating victims and calling
down the protection pf the gods. . . . An altar stood near
the speaker's stand. When all were seated, a priest pro-
claimed: 'Keep silence, religious silence; pray the gods
and goddesses that all may pass most prosperously in the
Assembly.' Then the people . . . replied : * We invoke
the gods, that they may protect the city.' "
The public income was paid over to " ten treasurers of
the goddess Athena," one chosen from each tribe ; and the
treasury was the inner chamber of the Parthenon, the
temple on the Acropolis.
STUDY ON d.
What is the unit in the constitution of Clisthenes ? What places
a man in this new unit ? What interests and duties have these new
tribesmen in common? in other words, what bonds of union in this
72 STUDIES IN QENER-AjL HISTORY.
new unit? Compare the difltribution of political power under Clia-
thenes and under former Athenian constitutions. Compare with the
Spartan constitution in this respect. What element appears in Athe-
nian warfare not seen in Spartan ? Compare the three Athenian con-
stitutions in regard to equality ; justice ; democracy ; the worth of the
individual man; size of state entering into each. Illustrate each
answer by facts. What Athenian experience may have suggested the
ostracism? The separation of the demes of the same tribe ? What
name will you give to this constitution of Clisthenes?
What one thing appears as a bond of union in all the constitutions?
What political term derived from deme f
a STUDY OF PEEBIAir WAE8, 49(M79 B.a
I. First Persian War : Darius against the Greeks, 490 b.c.
II. Interval of Preparation, 490-480 b.c.
III. Second Persian War : Xerxes against the Greeks, 480-479 B.C.
Chief contamporary authority : Herodotus. Other chief
original authority : Plutarch's Lives of Themistocles and
Aristides. Chief modern authorities : Grote, Curtius.
Note on the Map. — Each of the divisions of the Persian Empire
was called a satrapy, and was ruled by a satrap who was appointed
by the king and who could manage the satrapy as he pleased, if he
only kept the peace and sent the king the soldiers and the tribute
money due. In the time of Clisthenes, Darius was king of the
Persian Empire and received from it more than 920,000,000 of tribute
every year.
STUDY ON MAP AND NOTE.
Compare the Persian Empire with Greece and the Greek colonies
in regard to amount and distribution of territory. What does the
distribution of territory indicate in regard to the leading occupation
in each case? Compare the population of the Greek and Persian
territories in regard to civilization. AVhat unity did the Persian
possessions lack which the Greek possessed? What unity did they
possess that the Greek lacked? To whom was the Persian Empire
valuable? For what? W^hat was the spQci^ value o{ PhcQiiicial
STUDY ON PERSIAN WARS. 73
Of Egypt? Of the Tigro-Euphrates valley? To whom were the
Greek territories valuable ? In case of war, who would be most inter-
ested in it on the Persian side ? On the Greek side ?
I* Account of the JFiret Persian War. (Abridged from
Herodotus.)
During the reign of Darius, "some of the opulent men
[aristocrats] were exiled from Naxos by the people [dem-
ocrats], and . . . went to Miletus," asking aid; but the
Ty. :.at of Miletus advised them to ask it of Persia. When
the request came to the ears of Darius, and he heard that
Naxos was " beautiful and fertile . . . and in it was much
wealth and many slaves," he decided to give the exiles
aid. But this expedition sent against the Naxian demo-
crats was unsuccessful, and the Tyrant of Miletus, who
had promised King Darius rich returns from it, feared
that now he would lose his power, if not his life. So
^^ he established an equality in Miletus, in order that the
Milesians might more readily join him in revolt." In
other Ionian cities, also, he expelled the Tyrants, and estab-
lished democracies. Sailing then for Sparta, he asked for
their alliance, using words like these : " That the children of
lonians should be slaves instead of free is a great disgrace
and sorrow." But the Spartans turning a deaf ear, he
sailed to Athens, making the same request. Now the
Athenians had already declared the Persians their enemies,
because the Persian ruler at Sardis had ordered them
to take Hippias again as Tyrant. When the Milesian
(Aristagoras), therefore, asked for help against the Per-
sian, the Athenians voted, in public assembly, twenty
ships for the aid of the lonians. Thus Darius became
hostile to the Athenians, and, having put down the Ionian
revolt, resolved to conquer them. But first he sent
heralds to the various Grecian cities to demand earth and
wUter as tokens of submission by land and sea : and the
74
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
-+
H
n
en
11 II 11 11 11
OJCZJ H>
01 o 5 ■«
>
•z.
2.2. ?!
• »'* S 3 »
i
Ql
1 ri
O B.5'Di
=r
7t >< :J:
n>
i'-?=
s
H- ro « o
>
r?.5 >
o
"T'o &-«
m
o
O
§2- S-
z
•73 *• "1
>
z
o
p
m
n
2
-I]
:xj
m
STUDY ON PERSIAN WARS. 76
islanders and many Greeks of the continent gave what
was asked ; but Athens and Sparta threw the heralds, the
former into a pit, the latter into a well, and told them to
take their earth and water thence. So Darius sent against
them an army and a navy ; and with them came Hippias,
the Pisistratid. He it was who advised the Persians to
land at Marathon, where the ground was good for the
Persian cavalry. " The Athenians . . . also sent their forces
to Marathon; and ten generals led them, of whom Miltiades
was the tenth. • . . But first, while the generals were yet
in the city, they despatched a herald to Sparta. . . . On
coming into the presence of the magistrates, he said,
* Lacedaemonians, the Athenians entreat you to assist
them, and not to suffer . . . [them] to fall into bondage to
barbarians.' " The Spartans, however, though willing to
help Athens, " were unwilling to vicJIate their law ; for it
was the ninth day of the month ; and they said they could
not march out " until the full of the moon.
Meanwhile the Persians had landed, and the Athenians
and their allies were arrayed against them in a place
sacred to Hercules ; but the generals were divided about
giving battle, half counselling surrender; but the war-
archon had the casting vote ; him, therefore, Miltiades
addressed: "*If the Athenians succumb to the Medes
[Persians], it has been determined what they are to suffer
when delivered up to Hippias ; but if the city survive, it
wiU become the first of Grecian cities. . . . All these things
. . . depend on you.' . . . Miltiades, by these words, gained
over the war-archon, and ... it was determined to engage."
On the motion of Aristides, also one of the ten stra-
tegi, the other generals resigned their right of command
to Miltiades alone. " The Athenians being drawn up in
battle array, and the sacrifices offered being pleasing
to the gods, they advanced against the barbarians in
76 STUDIES IN GENERAl. HISTORY.
double-quick time." The battle was long and hard-fought,
but the Persians, although at least 100,000 strong, while
the Athenians were but 10,000 men, were driven back to
their ships; embarking, they wished ''to anticipate the
Athenians in reaching the city. . . . But the Athenians . . .
were . . • beforehand " ; so the barbarians " sailed away for
Asia," and the first Persian war was ended.
STUDY ON I.
Who or what decides on what shall be done in the Persian Empire?
What sort of a government will you name that of Persia? What is
the aim of Persian conquest? Prove it. Who or what decides on
what shall be done in the various Grecian states ? Mliat are the aims
of the war on the Greek side? What is the political unit on the
Greek side ; that is, how much of the Greek territory and population
act together in the matters of war, of peace, of alliance? What is
the unit on the Persian side? What forms of government appear
in the Greek cities at this time, and by whom is each supported?
Instances. Why does the Tyrant of Miletus fear he will lose his
power or life? IIow will "establishing equality " help him? What
city ranks first in Greece? Proof. What next? Proof. What
spirit in the Athenians makes them hostile to Persia? What party
in Athens will favor Persia? What city has the most sympathy
with other Greek cities? Proof. What part of the new Athenian
constitution do we see tested in this war? To what does it owe its
success? What good characteristic does Sparta show when Athens
asks her for help? What is your opinion of it in this particular
case? If Persia had conquered, who would have governed Athens?
WTiat advantage would Persia probably have gained in this event?
AYhat qualities are displayed by the Athenians in the Battle of Mara-
thon? by the Athenian generals? Comparing Athens and Persia,
why should Athens beat? Write a comparison between Persia and
Hellas at 490 b.c.
n. Accotmi of Interval of Preparation. (Abridged from
Herodotus.)
From the day of Marathon to the invasion of Xerxes,
the two men most prominent in Attica were Aristides
STUDY ON PERSIAN WABS. 77
and Themistocles. The former represented the aristo-
cratic, the latter, the democratic elements at Athens ; the
rivalry of their partisans so threatened the prosperity of
the city, that they appealed to the ostracism, by which
Aristides was sent into exile.
It was during this time that the Athenians had a
surplus in the treasury, and the Ecclesia was about to
vote its equal division among all the citizens; but The-
mistocles persuaded them instead to add two hundred
ships to their navy, arguing that thus they might better
prosecute the war then going on with ^gina, and also
be better prepared for any new contest with Persia.
He also indicated a better harbor for Athens, which
might be well defended by the use of some of the extra
funds.
Meanwhile, Darius had died; but his general, Mar-
donius, was constantly urging his son and successor,
Xerxes, to lead an army against Athens, and the Pisis-
tratids urged him no less. So his satraps gathered troops
diligently for three years ffom all parts of the Empire, and
in the tenth year from Marathon, Xerxes marched towards
the Hellespont with more than 1,000,000 men of Asia
and Africa. ^^ On his arrival at Sardis, he . . . sent her-
alds to Greece to demand earth and water . . . but he sent
neither to Athens nor LacedsBmon." The Athenians
at this juncture asked the advice of Delphi, and were
told that they must " inspire their minds with courage to
meet misfortunes." Deeply dejected, they sent once more
to the oracle, and received the answer that Zeus could not
be propitiated, that the Athenians must withdraw from
the forces advancing against them, but that Zeus gave a
"wooden wall" as an impregnable defence, and that
** divine Salamis" should cause many men to perish.
Themistocles interpreted this to mean that the Athenians
78 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
should make no defence on land, but should carry their
gods, their families, and their goods to Salamis, while they
themselves should retreat to the " wooden walls " of their
ships and meet the Persians by sea. He further said that
Salamis was called ''divine" because there the Persian
hosts would meet destruction. This interpretation was
accepted, and it was decided to abandon Attica for the
straits and the island of Salamis. (See map, p. 66.)
Themistocles also proposed, and the Ecclesia voted, to
revoke all decrees of banishment or ostracism, especially
that against Aristides. It was now thought best to call a
general Hellenic congress, and while the king was yet at
Sardis, " the Greeks who were better aflFected towards
Greece met together [at the Isthmus] . . . and determined
all existing enmities and quarrels with each other."
Thus JEgina and Athens made peace ; but Argos, being
hostile to Sparta, took no part in the council. Ambassa-
dors were sent even to Sicily to ask the Sicilian Greeks to
join the Lacedaemonians, the Athenians, and their allies ;
but the Tyrant of Syracuse would only consent on condi-
tion of having the command of the war, which neither
Athens nor Sparta would allow, and so they missed the
help of Sicily. The CorcyrsDans were also asked, and
promised help ; and prepjvring their sixty ships, they drew
near to the Peloponnesus, but there anchored and watched
how events would turn, thinking, if the Persians won,
they should get good terms, as not having opposed them ;
while to the Greeks they excused themselves on account
of contrary winds, which, they said, delayed them.
As to the leadership by sea, " from the first there had
been a talk . . . that it would be proper to trust the navy
to the Athenians. But as the allies opposed, the Atheni-
ans gave way, deeming it of high importance that Greece
should be saved."
STUDY OK PERSIAN WARS. 79
It was also decided at this congress that Greece should
make her first stand against Xerxes at Thermopylae.
Meanwhile Xerxes advanced to the Hellespont, which
had been bridged by the Phoenicians and Egyptians ; but
a storm had broken the bridges up; whereupon Xerxes
had the engineers beheaded, and the Hellespont scourged
with 300 lashes, while it was thus addressed: "Thy
master inflicts this punishment upon thee, because
thou hast injured him . . . and King Xerxes will cross
over thee whether thou wilt or not." New bridges were
then built and the army crossed them " under the lash " :
the passage occupied seven continuous days and nights.
In Thrace, the army was numbered, and Herodotus tells
us that the land forces alone amounted to more than
1,500,000 ; there were in this army Medes and Persians,
armed with spears, bows, and daggers; Assyrians, with
spears, daggers, and clubs knotted with iron ; Scythians,
with bows, daggers, and battle-axes; Arabians and Hin-
doos with bows and arrows; Ethiopians, painted for
battle, half in red and half in white, who had arrowheads
of stone. Herodotus names more than forty different
nations or tribes in the army, and more than twelve on
the 1200 ships of the fleet.
Provisions had been ordered long beforehand for this
host ; heralds had been sent along the route, and every-
body " made flour and meal for many months . . . fatted
cattle . . . fed land and water fowl in coops and ponds " ;
even then, it does not seem that the army was fed more
than once a day. As Xerxes marched through Thrace
and Macedonia, the tribes submitted without attempting
resistance. In Macedonia he received the heralds who
had been sent out to demand earth and water from the
Greek cities. Many had submitted, and "against these
the Greeks who had engaged in war with the barbarians
80 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
made this solemn oath : . . . * Whatever Greeks have given
themselves up to the Persian witliout compulsion, shall,
so soon as their aflfairs are restored to order, ... be
compelled to pay a tithe to the god at Delphi.' "
STUDY ON II.
What sort of a power does Themistocles wish to make of Athens ?
What geographical facts favor this policy? What provision of the
Clifithenean constitution appears at work in this interval? What
advantage does it give the state? What new Greek organization
appears during this time, and what has produced it? In order to
carry any political or military measure at Athens, what is necessary?
What is necessary to accomplish it in Persia ? What characteristics
shown hy the Athenians in the various incidents of the interval?
What by Themistocles? What spirit is displayed by the Tyrant
of Syracuse ? By the Corcyraeans ? The Argives ? What new proof
liave we that Hellas is composed of independent states? What
power in Greece is acknowledged to have a right to liold any individual
Greek state responsible? Name two occasions in which Athens
probably saves Greece during this time. How does she do it each
time? How are the forces of Xerxes governed? How is his army
a strong one ? How weak ? How does he conquer Thrace and Mace-
donia ? What Greek city is alone able to meet the Persian fleet ?
ni. Account of Second JPersian War. (Abridged from
Herodotus.)
1. According to the decision of the Hellenic congress
at the Isthmus, a force of Greeks was sent to await the
Persians at Thermopylae. This force consisted of 300
Spartans and about 5000 other Greeks, whom Leonidas,
king of Lacedaemon, was commanding. The Spartans
sent so few because a religious festival was then being
held, and, moreover, it was the season of the Olympic
games. Xerxes having been informed of this, asked what
could be the reward for wliich they so earnestly contended
in these games. On being answered, " An olive-wreath,"
STUDY OK PEltSlAN WAKS.
81
one of his nobles standing by exclaimed, "Heavens,
Mardonius, against what kind of men have you brought
us to fight, who contend not for wealth but for glory 1 "
Arriving near Thermopylae, Xerxes "let four days pass,
constantly expecting the Greeks to take to flight. But
on the fifth day, . . . being enraged," he sent men against
them "to take them alive"; so many of the Persians,
however, fell, that the king saw that he had " many men.
P&S8 of Thermopylae
THERMOPYLAE.
but few soldiers." Thereupon he sent his choicest war-
riors ; these, too, were beaten back with great loss.
While the king was in doubt what next to do, a Malian
Greek informed him of a mountain path around the pass.
Along this way the Persians marched all night. " Morn-
ing appeared, and they were on the summit of the moun-
tain. ... To those of the Greeks who were at Thermopylae,
a priest, having inspected the sacrifices, first made known
the death that would befall them," and shortly news cam«
82 STUDIES IN OENEKAL HISTORY.
of "the circuit the Persians were taking. . . . Upon this,
the Greeks held a consultation, and . . . some departed and
. . . others prepared to remain," Among the latter were
Leonidas and the Spartans, who " could not honorably
desert the post which they originally came to defend.''
Nor did Leonidas fear for Sparta, but thought by remain-
ing to gain glory for himself and safety for her ; since the
Delphic oracle had already foretold that, in this war,
either Sparta or her king must perish. The Thespians
also remained with the Spartans.
About noon the fight began. "Great numbers of the
barbarians fell ; for the olBcers of the companies flogged
their men forward with scourges, thus urging them on;
from which it occurred that many fell into the sea, and
many more were trampled . . . under foot." Leonidas
fell, but the Greeks fought on — with swords when their
javelins were broken, with hands and teeth when swords
were gone — until, .it last, they were overwhelmed with
barbarian missiles. " In honor of the slain . . . the follow-
ing inscription was engraved over them : ' Four thousand
from Peloponnesus once fought on this spot with 300
myriads' . . . and for the Spartans in particular was
written : ' Stranger, go tell the Lacedaemonians that here
we lie, obedient to their commands.' . . . The Delphic
Aniphictyons are the persons who honored them with
these inscriptions. . . . Thus the Greeks fought at Ther-
mopylse."
STUDY ON I.
What sort of unity had the Persian forces? What sort did they
lack ? Same of Greek forces. Which side had the best organization
for war? llow was the other side compensated for this lack? What
new proof have we that the object of the Persian £mpire was wealth?
Wliy are men that fight for glory worse foes than those who fight for
wealth ? Why was Thermopylas well chosen ? Why should Xerxes
expect the Spartans to flee? Explain the phrase "many men, but
STUDY ON PERSIAN WARS. 83
few soldiers." What spirit did Leonidas show? the Spartans? To
whom was a leader more necessary, the Persians or the Spartans?
Two proofs. Name all the facts in this war that would prove the
statement, '^ The Greeks honored their gods."
2. The Persians, then advancing, wasted the fields and
burned the cities as they went ; and the Athenians began
to send away their families to the islands; the faster,
because the priestess announced that the goddess Athena
had left the Acropolis.
The fleets of either side had been stationed near Ther-
mopylae, but, on receiving news of the battle there fought,
the Greeks sailed for Athens, putting in at Salarais, and
the Persians followed. The Grecian fleet, though fur-
nished by Athenians, Isthmians, and Islanders, was under
the command of the Spartan Eurybiades, who, after reach-
ing Salamis, quickly called a council of commanders to
decide where to engage the Persians ; the council decided
to retreat to the Isthmus, and there defend Peloponnesus,
since Athens was now burned and Attica wasted. An
Athenian, however, going to Themistocles, argued that if
once the ships left Salamis, no power would keep them
from dispersing. Themistocles thereupon begged Eurybi-
ades to call another council, and therein advised the
Greeks to remain in the Salaminian Straits rather than
retire to the open waters near the Isthmus (see map,
p. 66) ; he reminded them, too, of the words of the oracle
concerning " divine Salamis," and finally threatened that
if the allies would not remain, the Athenians would at
once set sail for Italy, and there found a new Athens.
Thus persuaded, the allies remained. '* Day came, and at
sunrise an earthquake passed over land and sea." The
Greeks invoked the aid of the gods, as the Persians " drew
up near, taking their stations in silence." News came
now that the Persian ' army was advancing upon the
84 STUDIES IN OENEBAL HISTOBY.
Isthmus, whereupon the Peloponnesians in the fleet once
more called a council, still wishing the ships to retire from
Salamis. Themistocles, no longer able to dissuade them,
secretly sent word to the Persians to close both ends of
the Salaminian Strait, and thus the Persians did, under
cover of the night. '* While the generals were disputing,
Aristides . . . crossed over from JEgina," and called
Themistocles out of council, and said, " It is right that we
should strive . . . which of us shall do the greatest service
to our country. . . . We are on all sides surrounded by the
enemy. Go in, therefore, and acquaint them with this."
Themistocles replied, " You . . . have brought good news. . . •
Know, then, that this . . . proceeds from me. For, since
the Greeks would not willingly come to an engagement,
it was necessary to force them against their will. But do
you . . . announce it to them yourself ; for if I tell them, I
shall appear to speak from my own invention." Aristides
then entered the council, and told them that they were
surrounded by the enemy, and must prepare to fight.
Themistocles also spoke with rousing eloquence. The
poet iEschylus thus describes the battle, which ended in
the victory of the Greeks ; —
*'When now the Day, driving white steeds, filled the wide
earth with glory, a shout from the Greeks rang forth, greeted
Echo like a song, and Echo answered from the island-rock,
inspiring. Then terror fell on the Persian ships and tents ; . . .
not for flight were the Greeks chanting their solemn pseans, but
for proud and daring battle. The clanging trumpet fired their
line ; instant at the word they smote the roaring brine with
dashing oars. . . . Then we heard the mighty shout : ' On, Sons
of the Greeks, free your land, your children, and your mves ;
the temples of the gods and the tombs of your fathers ' T[ is
day decides for all.'
"... Then ship dashed brazen prow at ship. ... At first,
indeed, the strong stream of the Persian fleet withstood the
STUDY OK PERSIAN WABS. 85
onset; but we were massed within the strait, while thej,
awkwardly crowding, struck each other with their brazen beaks ;
. . . but the Greeks were skilfully smiting them round about on
every side. . . . The shores aud rugged rocks were lined with
dead. . . • Never fell in a single day so many men."
STUDY ON 2.
Why are the Athenians in greater haste to leave Athens because
the goddess has left? What reason is there to think that the Greeks
will disperse if once they leave Salamis ? What geographical advan-
tage in Salamis? What three different kinds of argument does
Themistocles employ to keep the Greeks at Salamis? What spirit
is shown by Sparta at this time? Themistocles? Aristides? How
do you know which of these men has the greater character for hon-
esty? Who is the real commander at Salamis? What makes him
so ? What is the point of his sending word to the Persians to close
the straits ? What does the event of Salamis prove in regard to the
policy of Themistocles from 490 to 480?
8. After Salamis, the Greeks divide the booty, dedicating
the first fruits of their victory to Delphi. Xerxes hastily
returns to Persia, leaving picked forces with Mardonius,
with which to " reduce Greece to slavery." After wintering
in Thessaly, Mardonius marched into Greece. Before
starting, he sent ambassadors to the Athenians, hoping to
make them his allies, and promising them forgiveness, the
restoration of their lands, and the rebuilding of their
temples, if they would but be friendly to the Great King.
Sparta, fearing lest Athens might yield, also sent her an
embassy, promising aid in case of war. To the Persian
messenger, the Athenians replied, " We will defend our-
selves in such manner as we are able. But do not attempt
to persuade us to come to terms with the barbarians, for
we will not be persuaded. Go, then, and tell Mardonius
that ... so long as the sun shall continue in the same
course as now, we will never make terms with Xerxes, but
86 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
will go out to oppose him, trusting in the gods, who fight
for us." To the Spartans they answered, " There is not
so much gold anywhere in the world, nor a country so
preeminent in beauty and fertility as to persuade us to
side with Persia in enslaving Greece. For there are many
and powerful considerations that forbid us to do so, even
if we were inclined. First and chief, we must avenge to
the uttermost the images and dwellings of the gods now
burned and laid in ruins. - . . Secondly, the Grecian race
being of the same blood, and of the same language* and
having the temples anti sacrifices of the gods in common ...
for the Athenians to betray these would not be well.
Know, therefore . . . that so long as one Athenian is left
alive, we will never make terms with Xerxes."
Mardonius, receiving this answer, advanced towards
Athens. On reaching Thebes, the Thebans advised him
not to fight the Greeks, but to " send money to the chief
men in each city," and thus "split Greece into parties,
and . . . subdue those not on your side." Mardonius, how-
ever, did not take this advice, but marched on and met
the Greeks in battle at Platsea. In this battle the Spar-
tans held one wing, while the Arcadians and the Atheni-
ans each claimed the honor of leading the other; the
Arcadians because they had always had it, the Athenians
because of their deeds, especially at Marathon. But the
Athenians left it to the Lacedaemonians, saying, "*It is
not becoming on such an occasion as this to contend about
position. . . . Command us as ready to obey.' . . . And the
wliole army of Lacedaemonians shouted out that the
Athenians were more worthy to lead the wing than the
Arcadians." Sacrifices having been offered by either
army, the battle began. In this fight Mardonius fell, and
the Greek victory was complete. A tenth of the rich
spoils was given to Delphi. Thus the army of Xerxes
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP. 87
was finally overthrown, and on the same day his fleet
was beaten by Greek ships at My c ale. These two battles
effectively broke the strength of tlie Persian.
STUDY ON 3.
How does Mardonius try to conquer Athens? What makes him
naturally suppose this plan would succeed? What three feelings
are shown by the Athenians ? What do they name as the ^nds of
Hellenic union ? Who puts Greece in the greater danger, the Thebans
or Mardonius? Why? What reason have the Thebans to give the
advice they do? In the Battle of Plataea, what spirit is shown by
the Athenians? What proofs have we that war is a religious act
among the Greeks ?
In General. — In what cases in the Persian wars does the Greek
action depend on single men ? How are these men able to accomplish
their will? What is the use of the Battle of Thermopylae? What
city of Greece deserves the lead at the close of the wars? Why?
What results of Greek organization appear in tlie Persian wars?
(a) at Thermopylae? (b) at Salamis?
D. STUDY OH THE ATHEHAH LEADEE8HIP (AGE OF
PEEI0LE8), 479-431.
Chief contemporary sources: Herodotus, Thucydides;
the plays of Euripides, Aristophanes, and the other lit-
erary remains of the period; the monuments and remains
of Athens, — notably the Parthenon, the temple erected
on the Acropolis in honor of Athene, and the fragments
of Parthenon sculpture known as the "Elgin marbles,"
and now in the British Museum.
Other original sources : Plutarch, Xenophon, Aristotle,
Plato, and the extant writings of the philosophei*s,
orators, and sophists of the generation succeeding this
age.
Chief modern authorities : Grote, Curtius, Lloyd.
88
STUDIES IN GENERAL. HISTOBT.
■3
Z a
" I
1§
g -
i1
I
a
s
s.
.a
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP.
89
SunMnary of Principal Events. (QuoUtions from Thacy
dides unless otherwise indicated.)
479
TO
478.
Battles of Plataea and My c ale; after Plataea,
Aristides proposed a general Hellenic confed-
eracy against the Persians ; to this the Greeks
consented. After Mycale, the Samians, Chians, and Les-
bians were admitted into this confederacy, and the allied
Greeks sailed for the Hellespont ; all save the Peloponne-
sians . . • who decided to sail away home. Under the lead
of the Athenians, the allies recovered Lesbos. — State
SOaLPTURB FROM THB PARTHENON FRIBZB.
offices were opened to all classes of Athenian citizens. — The
Athenians "set to work rebuilding the city and the walls.
. . . The Lacedaemonians would rather themselves have
seen neither the Athenians nor any one else protected by
a wall ; and their allies dreaded not only the Athenian
navy, . . . but also the spirit which had animated them in
the Persian war. So the Lacedaemonians asked them not
to restore their walls." But the Athenians, " men, women
and children," urged on and advised by Themistocles,
completed them, before the Spartans could prevent. The
DO STUDIES IN GBNEBAL HISTORY,
spoils of Mycale were devoted to adorning public gardens
and porticoes.
The Hellenic allies under the lead of the
Spartan king, Pausanias, sailed for Byzantium,
which they recovered from the Persians. But
477
TO
467.
Pausanias had already begun to be despotic, and "the
allies were offended . . . and had recourse to . . . the
Athenians, begging them to be their leaders. . . • Thus
the Athenians obtained the leadership. They immediately
fixed which of the cities should supply money and which
. . . ships for the war against the Barbarian." Aristides,
then commander of the Athenian fleet, was chosen by
desire of the allies to determine the amount and manner
of this tribute for each. "Then was first instituted at
Athens the office of Hellenic Treasurers, who received
the tribute. . . . The island of Delos [sacred to Apollo]
was their treasury, and the meetings of the allies were
held in the temple there. The allies were at firat inde-
pendent, and deliberated in a common assembly under the
leadership of Athens."
Cimon, son of Miltiades, then took command of the
allied fleet, and freed the northern coast of the -ZEgsean
from the Barbarian.
The treasury was transferred to Athens, and many of
the allies began to pay in money instead of in men and
ships.
The island of Scyros, with its fine harbor, was rid of
pirates and settled by Athenians.
The Naxian allies revolted, and the Athenians
"made war against them. . . . This was the first
of the allied cities which was subjugated contrary
467
TO
461.
to the agreement." About the same time, the Thasian
allies revolted, quarreling with Athens concerning their
lights to a market and some mines near by. Athens
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP. 91
subduing tbem, compelled them to pull down their walls,
deliver up their ships, pay tribute, surrender their claims
to the mine and the market. — Pericles carried the meas-
ure of the " Theoricon," by which every Athenian citizen
might obtain from the public treasury, now well-filled by
the allies, the money necessary to attend the theatre.
The citizens now also began to receive pay for serving in
the army and in the courts. — The Helots, aided by the
Messenians, revolted against the Spartans.
The Spartans, hard pressed, called to their aid
the Athenians, who sent them a force under
Cimon ; but after its arrival, the LacedsBmonians,
461
TO
450.
"fearing the boldness and the progressive spirit of the
Athenians, and moreover considering that they were of a
different race from themselves, dismissed them alone of
all the allies." The Athenians therefore broke their alli-
ance with Sparta, and ostracizing Cimon, who had per-
suaded them to send her aid, followed rather the lead of
Pericles, joined themselves to the enemies of Sparta
abroad, and reduced the power of the Areopagus at home.
The Phocians attacked towns in Doris and
took control of the Delphic oracle ; the Spartans
interfering, restored the Doric towns and Delphi
458
TO
456.
to their previous posse8soi*s, strengthened the Oligarchs of
Thebes and the neighboring towns, and occupying the for-
tress of Tanagra, threatened Athens. At their departure,
the Athenians at once restored the democrats of the
Boeotian towns to power. Soon after, the ^ginetans
came to terms with the Athenians, "dismantling their
walls, surrendering their ships, and agreeing to pay
tribute."
The Messenians and Helots were conquered by Sparta ;
the Messenians, banished from Peloponnesus, were settled
by the Athenians in one of their own towns.
92 STUDIES IN GEKEBAL HISTORY.
TO
485.
Five years' truce between Athens and Sparta. —
Pericles proposed a Pan-Hellenic convention "to
consult about rebuilding the Grecian temples
which the barbarians had burnt, and about providing
those sacrifices which had been vowed, during the Persian
war, for the preservation of Greece, and likewise to enter
into such measures as might secure navigation and main-
tain the peace. ... It took no effect, however, nor did the
cities send their deputies ; the reason of which is said to
be the opposition of the LacedeBmonians." — About this
time new offices were established at Athens, for protecting
streets and markets, preserving just standards of weight
and measure, and overseeing the storing and sale of
grain.
It is reported that the Persians now made peace with the
Athenians, promising the independence of the Asiatic
Greeks, and agreeing that no Persian ship should appear
in the ^gaean or the Bosphorus. — The exiled Theban
Oligarchs [aristocrats] fought and defeated the Athenians
at Coronea. — Thirty years' peace was agreed upon between
Sparta and Athens.
Pericles thoroughly organized the citizen-jury assem-
blies, and obtained that those who served upon them
should be paid by the city from the treasury, now richly
supplied by the confederacy.
"Now war broke out between the Samians and Mile-
sians . . . ; and the Milesians being worsted . . . went to
the Athenians, . . . some private individuals from Samos
itself taking part with them, from a wish to effect a
revolution. . . . The Athenians therefore sailed to Samos
[Pericles commanding] . . . and established a democracy."
The exiled Oligarchs, then hiring troops, returned and
re-established their power ; but the Athenians, again
investing Samos, entirely reduced it, compelling it to " dis-
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP. 98
mantle its wall, deliver np its ships, and pay the cost of
the war."
STUDY ON I.
Why were Sestos and Byzantium important to gain? How and
when had the Greeks learned this ? To which Greek state were they
the most important, and why ? What was the character of Aristides
among the allies ? Prove it.
Fart of this period is called that of the Athenian leadership, and
part that of the Athenian empire ; when and why will you apply each
term ? Why was it necessary for every member of the Confederacy
of Delos to be held to that union by Athens ? What difference be-
tween this and former Hellenic unions? What new bond of union
in it? How did Athens obtain leadership? How empire? How did
she use her imperial power? Her imperial wealth? What seems to
have been the chief occupation of the Athenians? Prove it. What
policy adopted by the allies weakened themselves and strengthened
Athens ? Do you consider the Confederacy of Delos a failure or a
success? To whom or what do you attribute this ? What party ruled
in Athens? What proof of this? How could its leader carry its
measures ? What measures of this period were characteristic of the
ruling party? What inconsistency between the rule of Athens at
home and abroad ?
What seems to have been the state of affairs everywhere within the
cities at this time? What is the attitude of Athens toward these
affairs? of Sparta? What is the general relation of the Greek states
to each other? to Athens? "Where alone do we find a sentiment of
Panhellenism? When does this appear?
2* Sumtnary of Events from 485 to 481.
The affair of Corcyra and declaration of the Pelopon-
nesian war. — These things occurred as follows : In the
city of Epidamnns, a colony of Corcyra, herself colonized
from Corinth, the aristocrats were driven out by the
democrats ; the exiles " went over to the barbarians, and,
uniting with them, plundered the remaining inhabitants. . . .
These, finding themselves hard-pressed, sent an embassy to
94 STUDIES IK GENERAL HIST0B7.
the mother-city, Corcyra, begging the Corcyraeans not to
leave them to their fate. . . • But the Corcyreeans would
not listen." The Epidamnians then asked at Delphi if
they should send for aid to the Corinthians as being their
first founders, and " the god answered that they should. . . .
The Corinthians took up their cause, partly . . . because
they hated the Corcyraeans, who were their own colony,
but slighted them and often boasted that they were far
superior to the Corinthians by land and sea. Irritated by
these causes of offence, the Corinthians were too happy to
assist the Epidamnians. . . . Great was the rage of the
Corcyraeans when they found . . . that the colony had
been given up to the Corinthians. They at once set sail . . .
and bade the Epidamnians receive the exiled Oligarchs,
who had . . . implored the Corcyraeans to restore them,
appealing to the tie of kindred, and pointing to the sepul-
chres of their common ancestors. . . . But the Epidamnians
would not listen. . . . Whereupon the Corcyraeans attacked
them." When the Corinthians heard of this, they set sail
to help the Epidamnian democrats; but were badly de-
feated by the Corcyraeans, who then " sailed about plun-
dering the Corinthian allies." For two yeai*s the Corin-
thians took the utmost pains to collect a great fleet ; ^^ and
the Corcyraeans, in alarm . , . determined to go to Athens
. . . and get what help they could." The Athenians,
having "no mind to let Corcyra and her navy fall into
the hands of the Corinthians," consented to the alliance,
and Corinth was again defeated by the help of the Atheni-
ans. The Corinthians, irritated by this and other events,
now called for an assembly of the allies at Sparta, and war
was declared by the Peloponnesians against the Athenians,
unless the latter would restore independence to the allies ;
on the motion of Pericles, it was answered that they would
do this if the Spartans would allow their subject states
8TTTDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP.
95
the government each desired. Pericles also asked that
arbitration, instead of war, should settle their difficulties.
As the Lacedaemonians made no reply, both parties pre-
pared for war.
At the opening of this war, the chief allies of the
IfOSAIO PATTKtn.
Prom the floor of the temple of Zens at Olympla. The onUlde border Is a variation of
the " Greek Fret," and the ineide border a modification of the favorite convention-
alized boney-aockle; the central design represenU a Triton blowing his " wreathed
horn."
Athenians were Islanders and Greeks of the Thracian and
Asiatic coasts ; with the Spartans stood most of the Pelo-
ponnesians, and the states north of the Corinthian Gulf.
96
STUDIBS IK GENERAL HISTORtT.
STUDY ON 2.
Why did Athens not wish Corinth to have Corcjra? What
motives appeared in the conduct of each Greek state from 435 B.a
onward ? What spirit? What seems to have been the general com-
plaint of the Athenian leadership? of the Spartan? What state
showed most civilization in the declaration of war? What general
geographical difference between the Athenian and the Spartan group of
states at the close of this period ? What reason can you give for this
difference? What geographical advantage has each group? Name
the successive steps by which the Peloponnesian War was brought on.
What strikes you as its cause? If the affair of Corcyra had not
occurred, would war have followed? Sustain your opiuion.
8. List of Famous Greeks living 479-838 B.C.
Those marked with a * belong to the age of Pericles,
those with a f to the age of the Peloponnesian War, those
with a t to that of the Persian War, and those unmarked
to period 400-338.
Mame,
Birth, Olreumatance,
and Training.
OauM of Fame,
JEAc\iy\us*t
Athenian
Author of sixty or more tragedies
citizen, . . .
founded on Greek myths, except the
" Persians," which tells the story of
the battle of Salamis. IntroJuces
dialogue and action into dramatic
writing.
JEschines,
Athenian
Father of extemporary oratory amongst
citizen ; actor,
the Greeks; party opponent of De-
soldier, law-
mosthenes before Ecclesia.
yer's clerk.
Anaxagoras,*
Asia Minor;
Mathematician and astronomer; as-
citizen of
serts mind to be the originating
Ionian Greek
cause of the universe ; philosopher.
city.
Ari8tide8*t
Athenian citi-
Party leader; general and naval
zen of noble
commander. (See "Summaries of
family.
Events.")
STUDY ON THB ATHENIAN LKADBBSHIP.
9T
HtUM.
and Training,
CStfMO/AUM.
ArutophuieSjt
Athenian
Author of more than forty comedies,
citiien. • . •
satirizing political and military
events, the people and magistrates of
Athens, Socrates and the Sophisto,i
Euripides and other contemporaries.
Aristotle,
Citizen of Sta-
Tutor of Alexander the Great, after-
gira, a Greek
ward public teacher at Athens;
colony in
writes more than four hundred works
Macedonia;
on politics, rhetoric, and literature.
pupil of Plato.
morals, natural history; philosopher.
Demosthenes,
Citizen of
Speeches before Ecclesia, especially
Athens ; stud-
the ''Philippics" directed against
led with fine
Philip of Macedon, whose most dan-
orators.
gerous enemy was Demosthenes.
Euripides*
Athenian citi-
Author of seyenty-flre tragedies, found-
sen; finely
ed on Greek myths and stories, but
educated;
often adapted to contemporary polit-
special athle-
ical circumstances.
tic training.
Thehan citizen
Founder of Theban leadership. (See
of fine family.
" Summary of EvenU.")
educated in
military tac-
tics, gymnas-
tics, philoso-
phy, litersr
ture.
Gorgiss^t
Sicilian-Greek
Sophist at Athens ; speculator in the-
citizen of
ology; philosopher; still more famous
noble birth;
as a rhetorician.
trained by
noted philos-
ophers.
1 This name was given at Athens to men who taught for pay ; they
professed to prepare young men, as Isoc rates said, "to think, speak, and
act *' so as to become influential aad typical Athenians.
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Home,
and Training,
Cau99 of FanM,
Herodotus*!
Greek citizen of
Historian of the conflicts of the Greeks
Asia Minor;
and Persians, embodying in his ac-
trayelled
count many valuable observations on
through
the manners, customs, institutions.
Egypt, Ph<».
beliefs, and ideas of the world of
nicia, Pales-
his own day.
tine, Tigro-
Euphrates
valley(?).
along the
^giean and
Black Sea
coasts.
Hippocrates,
Greek citizen of
The first to discard superstition and
Cos; studied
base medical practice on observed
medicine and
facts; wrote on medicine and sur
philosophy at
gery.
Cos; trav-
elled widely;
physician and
teacher at
Athens.
I0OG rates,
Rich Athenian
Sophist; pupil of Gorgias; essayist
citizen ;
and orator.
trained in
music, gym-
nastics, litera-
ture; pupil
of Gorgias.
(See p. 07.)
Cimon*!
Athenian citi-
Party leader at Athens; naval com-
zen of noble
mander and general. (See "Sum-
birth.
maries of Events.*')
Myron,*!
Boeotian; stud-
Bronze statues of godi and Olympian
ied with an
victors.
Argive mas-
ter-sculptor.
STUDY OK THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP.
99
iVONM.
Birtk, OInumttamm,
and Training.
Oaunt 0/ FanM*
Pericles*
Athenian citi-
Party leader and orator at Athens;
zen of noble
general and admiral. (See " Summa-
birth; trained
ries of Evente.")
in philosophy.
oratory, liter-
ature, gym-
nastics, music.
FhidiM*
Athenian citi-
Designs for the Parthenon and the
zen; studied
temple of Olympian Zeus at Olym-
with artiste
pia; statues of Athena and Zeus,
and sculptors.
and the "Elgin marbles."
Pindar,»t
Theban citizen
Odes in praise of victors in the games ;
of noble
fragments of many other lyric poems.
family;
Counted the foremost lyric poet of
educated
Greece.
in music
and poetiy.
Plato,t
Citizen of
*' Dialogues " upon subjecto of mental.
Athens; pu-
moral, and social philosophy; phil-
pil of Socra-
osopher.
tes; educated
in gymnastics.
poetry, music.
Polycletu8,t
Citizen of Sicy-
on ; pupil of
Phidias.
Statues, mostly of athletes.
Pol7gnotii«,t
Thasian; of a
Interior painted decorations of temple
family of
of Theseus at Athens, and temple at
artiste, who
Delphi; chief artist of the famous
instructed
"Painted Porch*' at Athens; chose
and trained
his subjecte from Greek myths.
him ; adopted
citizen of
Athens.
Pnudtelei,
Athenian. . . .
Statue of Hermes ; portrait-statues of
contemporaries; his "Marble Faun"
is preserved in copies.
100
STUDIES IN OBKBBAIi HISTORY.
iVome.
and Training,
GoiiM of Fame,
Simonide8*t
Citizen of Ceos,
Lyric poet ; famous poems on subjects
of good fami-
connected with Persian ¥rars.
ly; trained in
music and
poetry.
Socrates»t
Athenian citi-
Dialogues with Athenian citizens upon
zen; son of a
subjecto of mental, moral, and social
sculptor; stud-
philosophy, touching oft€n upon the-
ied sculpture.
ology.
Scopas,
Parian; of a
Engaged with Uiree other Attic mas-
family of ar-
ters on the Mausoleum ; I supposed
tists ; worked
sculptor of the famous group of
in Athens.
Niobc and her children.
Sophocles,*
Athenian citizen,
Author of about seventy tragedies.
of good fami-
founded upon Greek myths and
ly ; trained in
storiesi with suspected references to
music, gym-
contemporary eventa.
nastics, litera-
ture.
Themistodef,*!
Athenian citizen
Party leader and orator at Athens;
of good fami-
naval commander. (See ''Summa-
ly ; trained in
ries of Evente.")
gymnastics.
oratory,
music, poetry.
Thucydide8,t
Athenian citi-
zen of good
family. . . .
Historian of Peloponnesian war.
Xenophon,
Athenian citi-
Historian and general of the "Re-
zen ; pupil of
treat of the Ten Thousand »';« his-
Socrates;
torian of contemporary and other
soldier of
Greek evento.
fortune.
1 The monument raised by Artemisia, queen of Caria, to her husband
Mausolus. ^ The retreat of ten thousand Greeks employed by Cyrus the
Younger, from near Babylon to the coasts of Asia Minor ; it was a march
of nearly 1500 miles, through a hostile and unknown country (401-400).
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP.
101
STUDY ON 3 AND ON PICTURES.
What seems to be the centre of Greek greatness daring this time ?
What kinds of greatness centred there? What reason have we for
calling Greek literature — dramatic, historical, and oratorical — origi-
nal? lUnstrate from each kind. Name three things that seem good
ZBUS OF OTRIOOLE.
Late Greek work; poBBibly after Phidean Zcui.
to you about the Parthenon (p. 88) ; the Parthenon frieze (p. 89) ;
the Olympic Mosaic (p. 95) ; the head of Zeus (p. 101) ; the Venus
of Melos (p. 103).
Why should Demosthenes be politically dangerous to Philip?
102 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
What are evident ideals of this period? What gives material and
impulse to most of the great men of this time? Illustrate from sculp-
ture, ai'chitecture, literature, politics. What relation do you note
between training and the ** cause of fame "? To what class do these
men mostly belong ? What do you know of free speech in the Athens
of this period ? Looking over this list and that on p. 51, what studies
do you find included under the name of philosophy?
4. Stories and Exl/rncts lUustraUve of Period.
a. Character of Pericles. (Plutarch.)
Pericles was of one of the old Eupatrid families, and trained
like the ordinary free Athenian, in music, literature, oratory,
and gymnastics. Anaxagoras was then in Athens, and this
man was ^^ the first who clearly proved that the universe owed
its formation ... to a pure . . . mind. . . . Charmed with the
company of this philosopher, and instructed by him in the
sublimest sciences, Pericles acquired not only an elevation of
sentiment and a loftiness and purity of style, . . . but likewise
a gravit}' of countenance ... a firm and even tone of voice, an
easy deportment, and a decency of dress. . . . We are told,
there was brought to Pericles from one of his farms a ram's
head with only one horn ; and Lampo, the soothsayer, observ-
ing that the horn grew strong and firm out of the middle of the
forehead, declared that the two parties in the state would unite
. . . and invest the power " in Pericles ; " but Anaxagoras hav-
ing dissected the head,'' discovered the cause of this defect in
some internal deformity.
'^ Such was the solicitude of Pericles, when he had to speak
in public, that he always first addressed a prayer to the gods,
' That not a word might unawares escape him unsuitable to the
occasion.' "
^^ As Cimon was his superior in point of fortune, which he
employed in relieving the poor Athenians, in providing food for
the needy, and clothing the aged, and, besides this, levelling
liis fences with the ground, that all might be at liberty to gather
his fruit, Pericles had recourse to . . . dividing the public
treasure ... by supplying the people with money for theatrical
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP. 103
STATUS OF APHRODITB.
The so-called Venus of Melos (Kf ilu) ; made in fifth century B.C. ; attributed to
a pupil of Phidias.
104 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
diversions and for their attendance in the courts. ... As for
the mechanics and meaner sort of people, they went not with-
out their share of the public money, nor yet did they have it to
support them in idleness. By the constructing of great edifices,
they had equal pretensions to be considered out of the treasury
. . . with the mariners and soldiers. For the different materials,
such as stone, brass, ivory, gold, ebony, and cypress, furnished
employment to carpenters, masons, brasiers, goldsmiths, paint-
ers, turners, and other artificers ; the conveyance of them by
sea employed merchants and sailors, and by land, wheelwrights,
wagoners, carriers, rope-makers, leather-cutters, pavers, and
iron-founders. Thus, by the exercise of these different trades,
plenty was spread among persons of every rank and condition."
'^Pericles exerted all his interest to have a decree made,
appointing a prize for the best performer in music, during tiie
PanatTiencea ; ^ and as he was himself appointed judge and
distributor of prizes, he gave the contending artists directions
in what manner to proceed, whether their performance was
vocal, or on the lute or lyre."
^'The orators of the opposite party raised a clamour against
Pericles, asserting that he wasted the public treasure, and
brought the revenue to nothing. Pericles, in his defence, asked
the people in full assembly, ' Whether they thought he had
spent too much?' Upon their answering in the affirmative,
*' Then be it,' said he, ' charged to my account, not yours ; but
let the new edifices be inscribed with my name, not that of the
people of Athens.*" Whereupon *'they cried out, *That he
might spend as much as he pleased of the public treasure,
without sparing it in the least.'"
'^ Money could not bribe him ; he was so much above the
(fesire of it, that though he added greatly to the opulence of
the state, which he found not inconsiderable, and though his
power exceeded that of many kings and tyrants, some of whom
have bequeathed to their posterity the sovereignty they bad
^ The Athenian festlTal in honor of Athena.
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADERSHIP. 105
obtained, jet he added not one drachma ' to his paternal estate/'
His family, indeed, '^complained of a pittance daily measured
out with scrupulous economy."
In the early part of the Lacedemonian War, Pericles was
opposed to the people at Athens, but remained firm '^ notwith-
standing the importunity of his friends and the threats and
accusations of his enemies, and notwithstanding the many
scoffs and songs sung to vilify his character as a general."
When about to set sail on a naval expedition, ^^ there hap«
pened an eclipse of the sun. This sudden darkness was looked
upon as an unfavorable omen, and threw the crews into the
greatest consternation. Pericles, observing that the pilot was
much astonished and perplexed, took bis cloak, and having
covered his eyes with it, asked him, 'If he found anything
terrible in that, or considered it as a bad presage ? ' Upon his
answering in the negative, he said, 'Where is the difference
then between this and the other, except that something bigger
than my cloak causes the eclipse?'" YThen dying, Pericles said
that the greatest and most honorable part of his character was
that no Athenian, through his means, ever put on mourning.
STUDY ON a.
Make a list of the qualities and characteristics of Pericles How
many of these helped him attain and keep his power in Athens?
How did each do this ? Which of these were virtues? How else did
he gain and keep power ? Did he use any means of which you dis-
approve? Why do you disapprove? What do we learn of the state
of religious belief in Athens from these anecdotes ? What was the
attitude of Pericles toward religion? of Anaxagoras? What do they
teach us of the Athenian people? In what ways did Pericles improve
the condition of the common people? Of what use was this to
Athens? To the world?
6. I\rom the Funeral Speech of Pericles over the First Dead in
the Peloponnesian War. (Thucj^dides, Jowett's translation.)
" But while the law secures equal justice to all alike in their
private disputes, the claim of excellence is also recognized ;
1 About 18 cent«.
106 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
and when a citizen is in anywaj distingaished, he is preferred
to the pabhc service, not as a matter of privilege, but as a
reward of merit. . . . And we have not forgotten to provide for
our weary spirits many relaxations from toil ; we have our r^-
ular games and sacrifices throughout the year; at home the
style of our life is refined ; and the delight which we daily feel
in all these things helps to banish melancholy. Because of the
greatness of our city, the fruits of the whole earth flow in upon
us ; so that we enjoy the goods of other countries as freely as
of our own. . • .
'' And in the matter of education, whereas our adversaries
from early youth are always undei^oing laborious exercises
which are to make them brave, we live at ease, and yet are
equally ready to face the perils which they face. . . .
''If then we prefer to meet danger with a light heart but
without laborious training, and with a courage which is
gained by habit and not enforced by law, are we not greatly
the gainers ?
'' We are lovers of the beautiful, yet simple in our tastes,
and we cultivate the mind without loss of manliness. Wealth
we emplo}', not for talk and ostentation, but when there is a
real use for it. To avow poverty with us is no disgrace ; the
true disgrace is in doing nothing to avoid it. An Athenian
citizen does not neglect the state because he takes care of his
own household ; and even those of us who are engaged in busi-
ness have a very fair idea of politics. We alone regard a man
who takes no interest in public affairs, not as a harmless but as
a useless character. . . .
'' To sum up : I say that Athens is the school of Hellas, and
that the individual Athenian in his own person .seems to have
the power of adapting himself to the most varied forms of
action with the utmost versatility and grace. . . .
*' I would have you day by day fix your eyes upon the great-
ness of Athens, until 3'ou become filled with the love of her ;
and when you are impressed by the spectacle of her glory,
reflect that this empire has been acquired by men who knew
STUDY ON THE ATHENIAN LEADEBSHIP. 107
their daty and had the courage to do it, who in the hour of con-
flict had the fear of dishonor always present to them. . . .
^^ For the whole earth is a sepulchre of famous men ; not only
are they commemorated by columns and inscriptions in their
own country, but in foreign lands there dwells also an un-
written memorial of them, graven not on stone but in the
hearts of men. Make them your examples, and, esteeming
conrage to be freedom and freedom to be happiness, do not
weigh too nicely the perils of war. . . ."
STUDY ON b.
Describe the Athenian ideal of character as shown in the " Speech
of Pericles." With whom does he contrast Athens in the matter of
education ? In what particulars do you think the general American
ideal of life agrees with the Athenian? Disagrees? On the whole,
which ideal do you think preferable? What does Pericles mean by
saying that "the whole earth is a sepulchre of famous men"? How
is it illustrated by Greek history ?
c. The Defence and Death of Socrates,
Xenophon tells us that Socrates, the Athenian philosopher,
was condemned to death on the following indictment : —
*' Socrates offends against the laws in not paying respect to
those gods whom the city respects, and introducing other new
deities ; he also offends against the laws in corrupting the
youth."
When brought before his accusers he defended himself as
follows (Plato, Jowett's translation) : —
" Let the event be as God wills ; in obedience to the law I
make my defense. . . •
" Some one will say : And are you not ashamed, Socrates, of
a course of life which is likely to bring you to an untimely end?
To him I may fairly answer : There you are mistaken : a man
who is good for anything ought not to calculate the chance of
liying or d3'ing ; he ought only to consider whether in doing
anything he is doing right or wrong, — acting tlie paiii of a good
man or a bad. . . .
108 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
'^If you say to me, Socrates, this time we will not mind
Anytus, and will let you off, but upon one condition, that you
are not to enquire and speculate in this way any more, and
that if 3'ou are caught doing this again you shall die, — if this
were the condition on which you let me go, I should reply : Men
of Athens, I honor and love you ; but I shall ol^ey God rather
than you, and while I have life and strength I shall never cease
from the practise and teaching of philosophy, exhorting any
one whom I meet after my manner, and convincing him, saying :
O my friend, why do you who are a citizen of the great and
mighty and wise city of Athens, care so much about laj ing up
the greatest amount of money and honor and reputation, and
so little about wisdom and truth and the greatest improvement
of the soul, which you never regard or heed at all ? . . .
*' I tell you that virtue is not given by money, but that from
virtue come money and every good of man, public as well as
private. This is my teaching ; and if this is the doctrine which
corrupts the youth, my influence is ruinous indeed. . . .
^^ I do believe that there are gods, and in a far higher sense
than that in which any of my accusers believe in them. And
to you and to God I commit my cause, to be determined by
you as is best for you and me. . . , "
Then followed the voting for and against the condemnation
of Socrates, and by a very small majority he was condemned
to death. After this Socrates still continued; "... Now I
depart hence, condemned by you to suffer the penalt}' of death,
and my accusers, too, go their ways condemned b}- truth to
suffer the penalty of villainy and wrong : and I must abide by
my reward — let them abide by theirs. . . .
" We shall see that there is great reason to hope that death
jq , a good, for one of two things : either death is a state of
nothii2g:ness and utter unconsciousness, or, as men say, there
is a chdtnge and migration of the soul from this world to
another. .\ .
*' WhereWe, O judges, be of good cheer about death, and
know this or^a truth — that no evil can happen to a good man,
STUDY OF THE ATHENIAN^ LEADERSHIP. 109
either in life or after death. He and his are not neglected by
the gods ; nor has my own approaching end happened by mere
chance. Bnt I see clearly that to die and be released was
better for me ; and therefore the oracle gave no sign. . . .
" The hour of departure has arrived, and we go our ways — I
to die, you to live. Which is better, God only knows. ..."
Socrates was then taken to prison, whither his disciples often
came. On the morning of their last meeting, Socrates is said
to have spoken thus : '' ^ I have good hope that there is 3'et
something remaining for the dead, and as has been said of old,
some far better thing for the good than for the evil. . . .
^^ ^ Then the foolishness of the body will be cleared away, and
we shall be pure and hold converse with other pure souls, and
know of ourselves the clear light everywhere ; and this is surely
the light of truth. For no impure thing is allowed to approach
the pure. . . . But then, O my friends,' he said, * if the soul
is really immortal, what care should be taken of her, not only in
respect of the portion of time which is called life, but of eter-
nity ! And the danger of neglecting her from this point of
view does indeed appear to be awful. If death had only been
the end of all, the wicked would have had a good bargain in
dying, for they would have been happily quit, not only of their
body, but of their own evil together with their souls. But
now, as the soul plainly appears to be immortal, there is no
release or salvation from evil except the attainment of the
highest virtue and wisdom. . . . Wherefore, . . . what ought
we not to do in order to obtain virtue and wisdom in life ? Fair
is the prize and the hope great.' . . . Soon the jailer entered
. . . and handed the cup to Socrates, who in the easiest and
gentlest manner, without the least fear or change of color or
feature, looking at the man with all his eyes, as his manner
was, took the cup and said : ' What do you say about making
the libation out of this cup to any god? May I or not?' The
man answered : ' We only prepare, Socrates, just so much as
we deem enough.' ' I understand,' he said, ' yet I may and
must pray to the gods to prosper my journey from this to that
110 STUDIES IN 6EN£RAIi HISTORY.
other world. May this then, which is my prayer, be granted
to mc'
^'Then holding the cup to his lips, quite readily and cheer-
fully he drank off the poison."
STUDY ON c.
What qualities of character did Socrates show in his defence?
What were his religious beliefs? How far were they like ours?
How far different ? Why was the religious belief of a man a matter
of political importance in a Greek state ? What was Socrates' ideal
of life? What proof can you give that Socrates had a large Athenian
following? What qualities of character did Socrates show in his
death?
d. Quotations from the Tragedians,
" The lips of Zeus know not to speak a lying speech.
But will perform each single word." — ^schylus.
" Nor did I deem thy edicts strong enough
That thou, a mortal man, should'st overpass
The unwritten laws of God that know not change."
— Sophocles.
" Let those who live do right ere death descendeth ;
The dead are dust ; mere nought to nothing tendeth."
" For mere high birth I have small meed of praise ;
The good man in my sight is nobly born."
« « « * « • « «
" For men of courage and of virtuous soul.
Though born of slaves, are far above vain titles."
" There are three virtues to observe, my son :
Honour the gods, the parents that begot you,
The laws of Hellas. Follow these,
And you will win the fairest crown of honour."
STUDY GN THE ATHENIAN LBADBRSHIP. Ill
^' For when the rabble is strong and falling into rage, it is as
hard to quell as a fierce lire. But if one quietly yield, watch-
ing well his chance, perhaps it may spend the fury of its blasts
and give you your own way as much as you please. For pity
and passion are alike inherent in the masses, giving excellent
advantage to one who carefully watches his opportunity.*'
'^ The populace is a terrible thing when it has evil leaders ;
but when it has good ones, it always deliberates well."
^^ God rules as he wills the events that happen to mortals."
«««««««
'' I think not that any of the gods is bad."
" This is more noble, my son, to honour equality, which ever
links friends with friends and states with states and allies with
allies ; for equality is sanctioned by law among men."
"Why dost thou honor so unboundedly that prosperous
injustice, royalty, and think so highly of her? "
" All the life of man is full of pain, nor is there any respite
from our toil ; but whatever state there may be better than this
is hid in shvouding clouds of darkness. Fond, indeed, we seem
of this glittering earthly life through want of trial of any other
and through want of proof of what there is beneath the ground."
"Confidence is seated in my soul that the man who reveres
the gods will fare prosperously."
" His state is easiest whose wife is settled in his house, a
cipher. ... A wise woman I detest ; may there not be in my
house, at least, a woman more highly gifted with mind than
women ought to be."
112 STUDIES IN GEKEEAL HISTORY.
'' Silence and modesty are best for a woman, remaining
quietly within." — Euripides.
e, From the Comedies of Aristophanes. (Frere's translation.)
" Demus [the personified Athenian people]. Why, sure, yon
don't believe in the gods.
Nicias. I do.
Dem. But what's your argument? Where's your proof?
Nic. Because I feel they persecute and hate me ; in spite of
everything I try to please 'em.
Dem. Well, well. That's true ; you're right enough in that.
In the following extract Aristophanes personifies the Athenian
Ecdesia: —
''He's a man in years.
A kind of a bean-fed, husky, testy character.
Choleric and brutal at times, and partly deaf."
In this same play, the ** KiiigJUs" the following conversation
occurs between a sausage-seller and a leading demagogue : —
^^ JS.S. Are there any means of making a great man
Of a sausage-selling fellow such as I?
Dem. The very means you have must make you so.
Low breeding, vulgar birth, and impudence, —
These, these must make ye what ye're meant to be.
Tell me truly : are ye allied
To the families of the gentry ?
S.S. Naugh, not I ;
I'm come from a common, ordinary kindred.
Of the lower order.
Dem. What a happiness !
What a footing will it give ye ! What a ground-work
For confidence and favor at your outset !
S.S. But bless ye ! Only consider my education I
I can but barely read, — in a kind of a way.
Dem. That makes against ye ! — The only thing against ye, —
The being able to read in any way."
STUDY ON PERIOD 431-^338. Il3
STUDY ON €i AND e.
What do the extracts from Euripides and Aristophanes show of the
political faults of Athens? lUustrate from the Athenian history.
What political virtues do they refer to ? What three religious tenden-
cies appear in these extracts and in the account of Socrates ? What
do these extracts tell us of social life ?
In General. — Why is the Age of Pericles thought so great ? Why
should not such an age have come to Sparta? What reasons can you
find for its coming to Athens ?
E.F. STUDY 01 PERIOD 431-338. — From Opening of the
Peloponnenan War to the Batde of Ohasronea.
Chief contemporary authorities : Xenophon, Demosthe-
nes, Isocrates, Plato.
Other chief original authorities : Plutarch, Diodorus.
Chief modern authorities : Grote and Curtius.
1* SufHmary of Brineipal FotUiealf MUUary, and Naval
Events, 4S1-862.
431
TO
404.
Peloponnesian War, carried on with varying
fortunes and with various combinations of the
Greek states under the opposing leaderships of
Sparta and Athens. Now a city revolts or changes sides,
now enters, now withdraws from the conflict. Peraian
money offcen helps the Spartan allies.
In 405 occurs the battle of ^gospotami; the fleet of
the Athenians is completely defeated, and the states
formerly allied with and subject to her submit to Sparta.
Athens herself holds out, though without allies and ill-
proYisioned.
The Athenians, perishing of famine, accede to
the following demands of the Laced»monians :
the tearing down of their walls, the surrender of
404
TO
114 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
all their ships but twelve, and the taking back of their
exiles; they shall, moreover, have the same friends and
foes as the Lacedaemonians, and "follow by land and by
sea wherever they may lead." The Athenian democracy
is now overthrown by the help of Sparta, and an oligarchy
of thirty, known as the Thirty Tyrants, is established.
These first expel or execute the democratic leaders, confis-
cate their property, and finally disarm and exclude from
Athenian privilege and protection all but 3,000 citizens,
chosen by themselves. They also forbid any sophist to
teach in Athens.
The exiles return and attack Athens ; the Spartan king
interferes, expels the Thirty on account of their atrocities,
restores the exiles. The Athenians, meeting now in full
assembly, vote back a democracy, declare a general am-
nesty for all save the most conspicuous oligarchs, and
decree a revision and publication of the Athenian laws.
The Persians attack the Asiatic Greeks, who
are under Spartan protection ; war between Per-
sia and Sparta ; Rhodes revolts from the Spartan
309
TO
3M.
leadership ; Corinth, Thebes, and Athens refuse her any
aid, and finally themselves attack her. In 394, at the
battle of Cnidus, the Persians overthrow the naval power
of Sparta, and release from her power the cities of the
jEgsean. War is made on Sparta by Thebes,
Athens, Argos, and Corinth; it ends by the
"Peace of Antalcidas," which is composed at
894
TO
387.
the Persian court by Spartan request, and sent to Greece
for the cities to sign. This peace reads as follows : —
'* Artaxerxes, the king, thinks it right that the cities in
Asia . . . should belong to himself, and that he should leave
the other Greek cities, small and great, free. . . . Whichsoever
of the two parties does not assent to those terms of peace, I
STUDY ON PERIOD 431-338. 115
myself, in conjunction with those who receive them, will make
war upon that party both by land and by sea, both with ships
and with money."
887
TO
879.
Growing dissatisfaction of Greeks with Sparta ;
Spartans expelled from Thebes ; Persians dis-
tribute money among the Greeks to help them
against Sparta.
Athens and Thebes, in alliance, lead in a war
against Sparta. At the battle of Leuctra the
Spartan military power on land is broken by
Thebes; Sparta is compelled to withdraw her officers
and garrisons from all the Greek cities, and leave them
independent.
Many of the Greek cities now ally themselves
with Thebes, who leads in war against Sparta,
Epaminondas being the Theban general.
378
TO
871.
871
TO
868.
STUDY ON I.
Why should the Persians help Sparta rather than Athens in the
Peloponnesian War ? Why should the battle of ^gospotami decide
this war for Athens? Why should "the Thirty" forbid any sophist
to teach in Athens ? Remark upon the proceedings of " the Thirty "
as compared with those of the restored Athenian democracy. What
power has Persia to dictate terms of peace ? What is the attitude
of the various states towards Sparta? PVove it. Towards Persia?
Prove-it.
8. Summary of Leading Events, 862-888,
Conquests of Philip of Macedon in Thrace, lUy-
ria, and along the northern coast of the ^gean ;
in spite of Athenian opposition, he conquers the
868
TO
34MI.
Greek towns of Chalcidice. He threatens the Hellespont
and Chersonese. Meanwhile a Sacred War goes on, in
which various Greek states, led by Thebes, war on Phocis,
because the Amphictyony has accused her of desecrating,
by cultivation, a part of the sacred fields of Delphi. Philip
116 STUDIES IN GEKERAL HISTORY.
declares himself the champion of Apollo, wins Delphi from
the Phocians, and in return gains a seat and two votes in
the Amphictyonic council, in spite of strong objections
on the part of the Athenians.
Diflficulties and ill-feeling between those Athen-
ians who favor and those who oppose Philip.
The latter party is led by the orator Demosthe-
a46
TO
840.
nes. Philip enters Thrace and advances on Chersonese;
the Athenians defend their threatened allies against him,
roused to activity by the third Philippic of Demosthenes,
in which he says : —
'' I observe that . . . you have conceded Philip a right, which
in former times has been the subject of contest in every Grecian
war. And what is this ? The right of doing what he pleases,
openly fleecing and pillaging the Greeks, one after another,
attacking and enslaving their cities. You were at the head of
the Greeks for seventy-three years, the Lacedaemonians for
twenty-nine ; and the Thebans had some power in these latter
times after the battle of Leuctra. Yet neither of you, my
countrymen, nor Thebans, nor Lacedaemonians, were ever
licensed by the Greeks to act as you please; far otherwise.
When you, or rather the Athenians of that time, appeared to
be dealing harshly with certain people, all the rest, even such
as had no complaint against Athens, thought proper to side
with the injured parties in a war against her. . . . Yet all the
faults committed by the Spartans in those thirty years, and by
our ancestors in seventy, are fewer, men of Athens, than the
wrongs which, in the less than thirteen years that Philip has
been uppermost, he has inflicted on the Greeks : . . . What is
the condition of Thessaly? Has he not taken away her consti-
tutions and the governments of her cities ? . . . Are not the
Euboean states governed now by despots, and that in an island
near to Thebes and Athens ? Does he not expressly write in
his epistles, ' I am at peace with those who are willing to obey
me '? . . . And we, the Greek community, seeing and hearing
STUDY OF PERIOD 431-338. 117
this, instead of sending embassies to one another abont it and
expressing indignation, are in such a miserable state, so in-
trenched in our separate towns, that to this day we can attempt
nothing that interest or necessity requires ; we cannot combine
or form any association for succor and alliance ; we look uncon-
cernedly on the man's growing power, each resolving, methinks,
to enjoy the interval that another is destroyed in, neither caring
nor striving for the salvation of Greece.
*' First, let us prepare for our own defense ; provide ourselves,
I mean, with ships, money, and troops ; for surely, though all
other people consented to be slaves, we at least ought to struggle
for freedom. When we have completed our own preparations
and made them apparent to the Greeks, then let us invite the
rest, and send our embassadors everywhere ... to Peloponnesus,
to Rhodes, to Chios, to the king. . . . This work belongs to you ;
this privilege your ancestors bequeathed to you, the prize of
many perilous exertions."
840
TO
888.
The Locrians are accused by the Amphictyony
of cultivating the sacred plain of Apollo ; war is
declared against them and Philip elected general.
Thebans and Athenians decline to join under his lead.
Philip conquers the Theban and Athenian forces in the
battle of Chseronea; he calls a congress of Greeks at
Corinth to settle their common affairs ; there war is pro-
posed and declared against Persia, for which each Greek
state is to furnish men or ships, while Philip is to be their
captain-general. From this time to 146 B.C., in spite of
many struggles and much confusion, Greece is under
Macedonian leadership or supremacy.
STUDY ON 2.
Name in order the states which lead the Greeks after the Pelopon-
nesian War. How in each instance is the leadership obtained?
What is the general condition of affairs among the Greek states from
118 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
439 to 338? The battle of Chseronea is often held to mark the fall of
Greece. Why? What seem to you to be the causes of that fall?
Why does Greece fall into the hand of the Macedonian and not into
that of the Persian? How might this fall have been averted? By
what change in organization ? In spirit ? Illustrate or remark on each
paragraph taken from Demosthenes.
STUDY ON GENERAL COURSE OF GREEK HISTORY.
What characterizes Greek political history? Wliat state appears
as the champion of Pan-hellenism ? Give instances. What is the
application of the motto on p. 32? How does each Homeric ideal
develop in later history? What relation between the Homeric ideals
and the development of the Greek character ? Why does that char-
acter develop so differently in different places? How does it codm to
vary so widely in Athens ?
8TUDT OM THE HBLLENISTIC KINGDOMS. 119
THE HELLENISTIC OR ALEXANDRIAN CON-
QUESTS AND KINGDOMS, 338-146 B.C.
" Think of the crowds of Dionysiac artists, and their jojous wandering
life, the festivals and games of old and new Greek cities, even in the
far East, to which are gathered from afar festive spectators in a common
worship. As far as the colonies on the Indus and Jaxartes, the Greek has
kinsmen and finds countrymen. . . . Science orders into system the marvel-
lous traditions of the Babylonians, Egyptians, and Hindoos, and strives,
from a comparison of them, to gain new results. All these streams of
civilization . . . are now united in the cauldron of Hellenistic culture/'
— DnOTSEN.
No contemporary authority, aside from existing monu-
ments, the most famous of these being the remains and the
sculptures found at Pergamos ; chief original authorities :
Arrian and Plutarch.
Chief modern authorities accessible in English : Grote,
Thirlwall, Finlay.
€Jhronolagiieal Sum/mary of Itnpartant Events in the
HeUenistic Worlds 888 B.C. to Period of Roman
l>ominion.
838
TO
834.
On the death of Philip, Alexander is chosen in
a congress of the Greek states at Corinth, as
general-in-chief of the Greek forces against the
Persian. Thebes revolts against him and is subdued.
Sparta remains independent. He receives the nominal
sanction of Delphi for his enterprise.
Alexander crosses the Hellespont, and follows the route
indicated in the map (see p. 74); at Troy he offers
sacrifices and honors to the Greek heroes of the Trojan
War, and raises altars to Zeus, Heracles, and Athena. At
the Gianicus, he wins a victory over the Persians ; from
120 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the spoils he sends three hundred suits of armor to be
dedicated to Athena, in the Acropolis ; Phrygia and Sardis
submit. Alexander proclaims liberty to the Lydians, and
restores the democratic government of Ephesus. Con-
tinued success along the coast.
Battle at Issus. — Alexander meets Darius,
king of Persia, and destroys his army; Darius,
escaping to Babylon, raises a second ; Damascus
834
TO
880.
and Sidon submit to Alexander, who wins Tyre by a diflB-
cult siege ; he gains the submission of Egypt and founds
Alexandria. On his return to Phoenicia, he celebrates
festivals and contests in the Greek style. Thence he
starts for Babylon, meets Darius at Arbela, thoroughly
defeats him, and becomes the master of the Persian Em-
pire; he apportions its satrapies to his followers or friends;
occupies Susa and Persepolis.
Alexander marches eastward, receiving the
submission of the tribes, and founding cities]
pressing through mountain passes, crossing des-
330
I TO
[ 8»8.
erts and rivers, he reaches India. The soldiers refuse to
go further. Alexander offers sacrifice and finds the omens
unpropitious ; erects altars to the great Greek gods and
starts homeward. He prepares a fleet, which coasts the
Indian Ocean from the Indus to the Euphrates, through
waters before unknown to Europeans. On bis return to
Susa he marries the daughter of Darius, and about ten
thousand Macedonians also take Persian wives. He goes
to Babylon and prepares to circumnavigate Arabia and
explore the Euphrates; but dies from the effect of a
drunken revel.
Wars of the generals of Alexander for the
right of dominion over his empire. In 801 is
fought the battle of Ipsus, in Phrygia, which
TO
301.
finally settles the division of the Alexandrian or Helleu-
STUDY ON THE HELLENISTIC KINGDOMS. 121
istic kingdoms : the chief of these are Egypt^ which falls
to the Ptolemies ; Syria under the Seleueidce ; PergamoB^
in the north-western part of Asia Minor, ruled by the
line of Attalids ; Macedon itself, to which Greece remains
more or less subject. These kingdoms maintain an inde-
pendent existence under absolute rulei-s, supported by
standing armies that are officered by Greeks and Macedo-
nians, until they become part of the Roman dominion in the
first and second centuries B.c. The period from 323 to
146 B.G. is marked in Greece by a series of attempts at
local independence and social and political reform ; these
attempts are made, — sometimes by individual cities, no-
tably, by Athens under Demosthenes, and by Sparta under
its kings Agis and Cleomenes, — and sometimes by the
Chreek leagueSy notably, the Achadan and ^tolian. Each
of the cities in these leagues has its own local govern-
ment, but their common business is done by an assem-
bly or council chosen by all, in which each city has one
vote.
QUESTIONS ON f.
In the name of what people are the conquests of Alexander made ?
Name all the proofs of this. How far is he himself Greek? Proofs.
Why does the conquest of a country mean the conquest of its cities ?
Of what value are his conquests to commerce? Why should the
motto on p. 119 be chosen ?
On the face of it, what fault is there in the Greek attempts at inde-
pendence? In these leagues what new political form do you note?
What modem governments do they somewhat resemble?
See Map facing p. 75.
Note. — Alexander himself is said to have founded
more than seventy towns; in each he left a permanent
Greek-«peaking garrison, ruling the native population
according to Greek political forms and ideas.
122
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
QUESTIONS ON MAP AND NOTE.
How does the size of this empire compare with that of those before
noticed? AVhat element of unity does it possess ? What element does
it lack ? Why should Alexander turn eastward rather than westward
for conquest ? What wisdom is displayed in choosing the coast-route
rather than in striking for the interior ? What is the use of his estab-
lishing towns along his route ? What great cities of the world are
due to the foundations of Alexander and his successors? Of what
value is the position of Alexandria? What does his march alone
tell us of the character of Alexander? Of his greatness? What
civilizations are brought into mutual contact by these conquests?
2. List of FennauB Names and Works in the Kingdoms
of the IHadochce (Successors of Alexander).
Nam:
^c5
Training.
Oauf of Fam:
ixufguaoe.
Apollonius
3d,
Greek; studied
Epic poet; took as sub-
Greek.
of Rhodes,
under Callimach-
us; taught rhet-
oric at Rhodes ;
superintendent of
Alexandrian
library.
ject the early Greek
myths of " The Argo-
nautic Expedition."
Aratus,
8d,
Greek of Asia
Minor; court
physician to Ma-
cedonian king ;
patronized by
Ptolemies.
Poet; giving scientific
instruction inverse;
his poems were popu-
lar among the Ro-
mans, and he was
imitated to some ex-
tent by Virgil.
Greek.
Archimedes,
3d,
Greek of Syracuse;
studied at Alex-
andria in the
Royal School of
the Ptolemies;
personal friend
of Hiero, his
patron, and king
of Syracuse.
Invented methods of
and instruments for
investigating natural
forces ; greatest math-
ematical and mechani-
cal genius of antiquity.
Greek.
STUDY ON THE HELLENISTIC KINGDOMS.
123
Mame.
1^
1-^
Training.
CmiB9 of Fame.
Aristophanes
3d,
Greek of Byzan-
Founded a school for
Greek.
of Byzan-
tium; studied
grammar and criti-
tium,
under Eratosthen-
es of Alexandria.
cism; superintendent
of Alexandrian libra-
ry; Homeric critic ;
commented on works
of Hesiod, Alcieus,
Pindar, Plato, and
Aristotle; invented
Greek system of
punctuation and
accent
Arifltarchus,
3d,
Greek of Samos.
Astronomer; the first
Greek.
to maintain that the
earth moves around
the sun, thus antici-
pating the discovery
of Copernicus.
Beroeos,
3d,
Babylonian priest ;
was patronized
by the Greek
Antiochua.
Translated Babylonian
history into Greek,
from original records.
Greek.
Bion,
3d,
Greek of Asia
Minor; spent the
latter part of his
life in Sicily.
Poet ; wrote on the
beauties of nature
and the pleasures of
life in the country.
Greek.
Diogenes,
4th,
Greek of Sinope;
banished; lived
in Athens and
Corinth.
Cynic philosopher;
teaching the vanity
of human desires, oc-
cupations, and achieve-
ments.
Greek.
124
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
MmM,
!§
Birth, CimumHano;
Training,
CauM of Fame,
EpicuniB,
4th.
Samian Greek ;
son of a common
school-master ;
teacher of phil-
osophy in Athens.
Founder of Epicurean
school of philosophy,
which teaches that
happiness should be
the aim of human
conduct.
Greek.
Eratosthenes
8d,
Alexandrian Greek,
horn at Gyrene ;
superintendent of
Alexandrian
library.
Astronomer, geogra-
pher, and geometri-
cian i invented present
method of measuring
the size of the earth,
which he taught was
round.
Greek.
Euemeros,
4th
Sicilian Greek; in
Author of a work to
Greek.
ud
service of Mace-
show that the gods
8d.
donian king.
were but heroes dei-
fied by men on ac-
count of their great
deeds.
Euclid,
•H
Greek; patronized
by Ptolemies.
Founded a mathemati-
cal school at Alexan-
dria; author of
" Elements of Geome-
try," which for twenty
centuries has held its
ground as an intro-
duction to geometry.
Greek.
Eumenes II.,
2d,
King of Pergamos.
Founded the famous
library * at Pergamos;
built the great Perga-
mon altar to Athena,
and had Pergamos
adorned with beauti-
ful sculptures.
Greek
^ The library conUined 200,000 volumes when Antony presented it to
Cleopatra.
STCDY ON THE HELLENISTIC KINGDOMS.
125
1^
Bfrtli, Cfreumstane*,
Training,
Hipparchus,
2d,
lAanetho,
Meiuuidery
3d,
4th,
Ptolemy
Soter,
4th
and
8d,
PtolemyPhil-
adelphus,
3d,
Greek of Nicsa in
Bithynia.
Egyptian priest
and annalist ;
patronized by
Ptolemies.
Athenian Greek ;
associate of phil-
osophers and a
man of society.
General of Alex-
ander the Great
in the Asiatic
campaign; king
of Egypt and
fomider of the
Gneco-Egyptian
dynasty.
Hereditary king of
Egypt.
Founder of mathemati-
cal astronomy and of
plane and spherical
trigonometry;
greatest astronomer
of antiquity.
Translated original
historical records of
Egypt into Greek.
Anthor of comedies
whose material was
taken from domestic
and common life.
(New Comedy).
Bebuilt and ornament-
ed the temples of the
Egyptian gods ; col-
lected a library and
founded the Museum,
or college of profes-
sors, thus forming a
true university .1
Reopened the canal of
Rameses II.; built
Arsinoe on the site of
modern Suez, also
built cities on the
Greek.
Greek.
Greek.
Greek.
Greek.
2 "The Museum, or university building, comprised chambers for the
professors ; a common hall where they took their meals together ; a long
corridor for exercise and ambulatory lectures; a theatre for scholastic
festivals and public disputations ; a botanical garden and a menagerie.''
126
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Nam€,
•3d
Birth, Cireumstanoe,
Training.
Cause of Fame,
Language.
Red Sea coast, through
which the merchan-
dise of India, Arabia,
and Ethiopia reached
Europe for several
centuries ; had the
Arabian coast ex-
plored ; the Hebrew
Scriptures translated
into Greek (JSepUia-
gint), about his tijne.
Pyrrho,
4th
Greek of Elis ;
Taught that truth from
Greek.
and
high priest ; poet,
a scientific point of
8d,
painter, philoso-
pher; joined the
expedition of
Alexander the
Great
view was imattaina-
ble; founder of a
school of skeptics.
Seleucus
4th,
Son of Antiochus,
Founded Syrian mon-
tjrreeK.
Nikator,
a general of
Philip of Mace-
don, who accom-
panied Alexander
the Great in his
Asiatic expedi-
tion.
archy; founded the
city of Seleucia ;
built Antioch.
Theocritus,
3d,
Greek of Syracuse ;
went to Alexan-
dria and secured
the patronage of
Ptolemy Phila-
delphus.
Poet ; using same ma-
terial as Bion.
STUDY ON THE HELLENISTIC KINGDOMS. 127
QUESTIONS ON 2.
It is sud that the conquests of Alexander were the conquests of
Hellenism; how far is this true? Proofs. In what directions was
Hellenism developed under the Diadochse? What effect had the
Alexandrian conquest on language? YHiat historic reason for the
rapid development of the Greek civilization in Egypt and in Asia ?
What were the centres of this development? On what did this
development depend for support? Illustrate from commerce, liter-
ature, art. What new forms of literature arose during this period?
Compare Theocritus and .£schylus; Menander and Aristophanes;
comparing material alone, which poets rank higher? What studies
were further developed? What historic reason for this? What did
men think about in philosophy? Compare with Socrates and the
earlier philosophers.
128
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
ni. Subinc Land.
IV. Cisalpine Gaul
V. Samuium. VII. Apulia.
VI. Campania. VUI. Umbria>
STUDY ON liEGAL AND PR.®-PUNIC ROME. 129
ROME, 753(?) B.C.- 800 A.D.
S.P.<{.B« (" Senatus Fbpulusque Bomanus," — The Senate and the People
of Rome).
"... Others, I grant indeed, shall with more delicacy mold the breathing
brsAs; from marble draw the features to the life; plead causes better;
describe with the rod the courses of the heayens, and explain the rising
stars : to rule the nations with imperial swaj be thy care, O Roman ;
these shall be thy arts ; to impose terms of peace, to spare the humbled
and crush the proud." — Yihoil.
Periods of Roman History.
A. R0ga/, 753(?)-510(7) B.C.
B. Republican, 610(?)-27.
I. Pra-Punie Period, 510 (?) ~ 264.
n. Punic^ Period, 264>146.
m. Post-Punic, 146-27.
C. Imperial, 27 B.C. - 1806 A.D.
I. Pagan Empire, 27B.C.-323A.D.
n. Christian Empire, 323-800, dividing into
Holy Roman Empire (Western), 800-1806,
Byzantine or Greek Empire (Eastern), 800-1453.
Hote on Map of Italy. — The valleys and table-lands of the
Apennines are connected by easy passes, and their slopes are grassy
and fertile, — scarcely reaching the snow-line. The products of the
land, and the dress and food of the people were similar to those
of Greece. Latium on the north " imperceptibly merged into the
broad highlands of Etruria " ; its plain was easily worked and
richly productive; Rome itself was placed on seven hills, where
three allied Italian tribes had their strongholds, and controlled either
shore of Tiber to the sea.
^ So-called because it is marked by the great wars of Rome and Car-
thage ; Pr»-Punic means the time before these wars, Post-Punic the period
after.
130 STUDIES IN OEKEBAIi HISTORY.
QUESTIONS ON MAP AND NOTE.
What are the natural boundaries of Italy ? How, and from what
do they protect her ? What geographical reasons can you give for
the race-division of Italy? What geographic contrasts do you see
between Greece and Italy? What difference will these contrasts
cause, (a) in relative dates of the beginnings of Greek and Italian
civilization? (b) in the size of Greek and Italian states? (c) in the
natural occupations of the inhabitants? Reason for each answer.
What advantages of position has Rome ? What advantages of posi-
tion have the people of Latium as compared with those of Samnium ?
The commerce of what countries can the masters of Italy and Sicily
control? How? (See map of Roman Empire under Trajan, pp.
190, 101.)
A. B. L STUDY ON BEOAL SOME ABD PSiB-FTTVIO
REPUBUO, 753(?)-510(?)-264 B.O.
Chief contemporary authorities: remains of laws and
inscriptions ; the walls and other monuments of the kings
and the early republic.
Other chief original authorities: Livy, Plutarch,
Dionysius.
Chief modern authorities : Mommsen, Ihne, Duruy.
1. Classes of People in Early Home.
Patricians^ who claim descent from the founders and
settlers of Rome ; they belong to three different Italian
tribes, each tribe being subdivided into clans, and these
again into families.
Plebeians^ who seem to be the descendants of strangers
and unrelated settlers on the Roman hills ; they are not
allowed to marry into patrician families, nor to share tlieir
religious rites.
SlaveSy who largely consist of those sold for debt or
taken captive in war.
STUDY ON REGAL AND PR^E-PUNIC ROME. 181
8. The BolUieai Organizations (CanstHutians) of the
Beriod*
a. Duties and Powers of Fanott* Parts of Regal Rome^
753(?)-510(?) B.C.
Porta of the State
in
War,
Law,
Religion,
King, patrician
Commands
Proposes ;
Chooses and
Nominates
from any
the army ;
judges.
summons sen-
priests and
tribe.
decides war
with power
ate and magis-
(except ag-
of life and
trates; is state
offers sacri-
gressive)
death.
treasurer; de-
fices, and
and peace.
crees and car-
ries through
public works ; ^
nominates
successor.
consults
the gods in
behalf of
the state.
Senate of SOO
Approves
Consulted
Senators rule
the motion
by king;
by turns in
100 clan-
for aggres-
approves
case of an
elders from
sive war.
or disap-
interregnum.^
each tribe.
proves his
measures.
Curiate Assem-
Composes
Confirms or
Constructs pub-
bly, com-
army;
rejects
lic works ; ac-
Worships
posed of the
votes upon
laws; has
cepts nomina-
together,
men of the
aggressive
right «f
tion of king ;
grouped in
patrician
war.
pardon if
meets to hear
curies,each
tribes diyided
king per-
commands,
cury with
into curies.*
mits an ap-
peal; no
discussion
allowed.
news, etc.
its own
priest.
1 For public works of Regal Rome, see p. 140.
^ Space of time between the rules of two successive kings.
' A " Cury " was a group of clans distinguished from the others by a
closer blood-relationship among themselves.
182
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Note. — Servius TuUius, the contemporary of Solon, adds to thu
organization the Centuriate Assembly^ composed of all land-holding
patricians and plebeians, divided into centuries or hundreds ; those
possessing property within certain fixed amounts are placed in the
same century. This new assembly composes the Roman army, builds
public works, and has the right to accept or reject by its vote aggres-
sive warfare.
STUDY ON a.
Of whom is this state practically composed? Where is its power
centred ? Who feels this power? How ? If a revolution occur, what
will you expect to find changed ? What are the bonds of union in this
state? Why should the plebeians be admitted to the army? What
does this change show in regard to their number in Rome ? What
power does it give them in case they are wronged ? At what may
the plebeians be dissatisfied? What name will you give this form
of government?
ft. Constitution of Borne as changed at 510 B.C.
Porta of Ui9 8tat0
in
War,
Law.
AdmMMtratiM.
Btllgkm,
Two annual
Command
Propose
Appoint dicta-
Offer sacri-
consuls; pa-
the army.
measures to
tor, quaestors.
fices and
tricians.
centuries
and senators ;
consult
and senate;
accept or re-
gods for
judge, but
ject consular
the com-
must allow
nominations of
munity, by
an appeal
centuries.
means of
to the
priests and
centuries.
augurs,^
who are
patricians.
^ The auspices and auguries played the part in Rome which the oracles
did in Greece. The flight of birds, the quivering entrails of freshly
slaughtered victims, the thunder, lightning, and earthquake revealed to
the Romans the will of their deities. This will was interpreted to them
by the augurs, who formed a regular college supported by the state. The
STUDY ON REGAL AND VRM-VWIC ROME.
133
Porta of the State
In
War.
Law,
Religion.
One dictator
1 1
Same powers as those of king in Regal Period.
on occasion ;
patrician.
Senate, essen-
Declares
Confirms or
Confirms or re-
Appoints
tially patri-
war and
rejects de-
jects elected
days of spe-
cian.
peace.
cisions of
officers; con-
cial suppli-
centuries;
trols expendi-
cation.
debates
ture; makes
sacrifice,
measures to
and breaks
or thanks-
be proposed
alliances.
giving.
by consuls.
Curiate
Takes oath of
Decides on
Assembly ;
allegiance to
some
patrician.
the consul or
dictator.
religious
matters.
Centuriate
Composes
Confirms or
Elects consuls.
Is present
Assembly, as
the army ;
rejects pro-
at acts of
before.
consents to
posals of
public
aggressire
consuls;
worship.
war.
has right of
pardon on
an appeal ;
meets to
hear com-
mands,
news, etc. ;
no debate.
Romans did not feel justified in entering on any public action, unsanctioned
by the gods ; thus their laws, their treaties, their records, their standards
of weight and measure, were protected by the temples and the priests.
The former were built, the latter were supported, by the public treasury;
the senate-house was a temple; every public assembly, erexy expedition,
began with prayers to the gods.
134
STUDIES IN GENERAL HI8TOBY.
STUDY ON I AND 2, a, 6.
What are the two greatest differences between this and the formei
constitution? What is now the strongest part of the state? In
whose hands is the power? What class has probably made this
change, and why? What name will you give to this sort of govern-
ment ? What part of the state is now oppressed, and in what does
that oppression consist ? What power has this part to overcome this
oppression ? What bonds of union are there in this state ? Where
does each bond appear? Which bond is most prominent? What
part of the state is increasing in power ?
c. The Roman Constitution at 264 b.c.
P€urta of tke State
In
w^.
Law,
AdffiMstraUott,
Religion.
Two annual
As before.
Propose
Convene senate,
As before;
Consuls, pa-
measures
centuries, and
but the
trician and
to centuries
tribes.
priests and
plebeian.
and senate.
augurs are
patrician
and
plebeian.
One annual
Judges.
Convenes and
PrsBtor, patri-
gets decrees
cian or
from senate.
plebeian.
Two Censors,
Declare who has
Perform
patrician and
the right to sit
lustrations.^
plebeian.
in the senate,
vote in this or
that assembly,
hold this or
that office;
look after pre-
servation of
manners and
morals.
1 Sacrifices for purification from some public crime.
STUDY ON KEGAL AND PK2B-PUNIC KOMJS.
136
Pttrt»oftk4Stata
In
War.
Lour.
AdmlnlstraUon.
R9llghm,
Ten annual
Propose
Convene, con-
Tribunes,
measures
sult, obtain.
to Tribal
assembly ;
veto;
judge.
and veto de-
crees from the
senate ; convene
tribal assembly.
One Dictator
As before, he has absolute power during office.
on occasion,
patrician or
plebeian.
Senate, patri-
As before.
Deliberates
As before.
As before.
cian and
on meas-
plebeian.
ures to be
proposed
to the
assemblies.
Curiate
As before.
As before.
As before.
As before.
Assembly.
Centuriate
As before.
As before.
Elect censors
As before.
assembly,
and pnetors ;
as before,
otherwise as
adding free-
before.
bom landless
dtijBens and
freedmen.
Tribal or
Confirm or
Elect tribunes.
IMstrict
reject the
assembly^
measures
of citizenf.
proposed by
the tribunes;
court of
justice.
^ A District Assembly was composed of Roman citizens, divided into
tribes according to residence, those living in the same district or ward
being placed in the same tribe ; in such an assembly one vote was as good
as another, whereas, in the Centuries, the votes of the richest counted for
most
186 STUDIES IN QENEBAL HISTOEY.
STUDY ON 2, a, 6, c.
What great changes have occurred in the Roman constitution since
510 B.C. ? Compare this constitution with the Athenian in regard to,
(a) the curies, (b) the centuries, (c) the tribes. How do the classes
compare now? What name will you give to this government? What
bonds of union are found in it? Which of these is the newest?
What part of the state is increasing in power ? Prove it. Comparing
the three constitutions, — of regal Rome, of 510, of 264; what pro-
gressive changes do you notice, (a) in regard to the diybiou of
power? (b) in regard to the classes holding power? (c) in regard
to justice and liberty ? What permanent relation between the political
and military organization?
d. Story from Livy to xUustraJte Change from h to c. — Hou)
the Tribunes arose (about 494 B.C.).
One day an old man, ragged, pale, emaciated, '^ threw him-
self into the forum ^ . . . and . . . exhibited scars on his breast,
witnesses of honorable battles." To those enquiring, he said
*^ that while serving in the Sabine war, because he had not only
been deprived of the produce of his land in consequence of the
. . . enemy, but also his residence had been burned down, all
his effects pillaged, his cattle driven off, a tax imposed on him,
... he had incurred debt ; . . . that he was taken by his creditor
. . . into ... a place of execution " : * he then showed his back,
disfigured with the marks of recent stripes. ^^At the hearing and
seeing of this . . . sedition came to such a height that the maj-
esty of the consuls could hardly restrain the violence of the
people. . . ." Amidst those debates ^^ the news came that a
hostile army was marching on Rome. The people exulted with
joy, and said . . . that the patricians should serve as soldiers . . .
so that the perils of war should remain with whom the advan-
tages were. But the senate . . . entreated the consul ... to
extricate the commonwealth." The consul then proceeding to
1 The public square of Borne, used for a market and meeting-place,
^ See laws of debt, p. 146.
STUDY ON REGAL AND PR^E-PUNIC ROME. 137
the as^mbly declaimed that nothing could take precedence of
defensive warfare ; that the enemy was almost at the gates ;
and then and there ordained that no Roman citizen should be
detained ^' in chains or in prison," that no one should ^^ seize or
sell his goods," '' arrest his children or grandchildren " while
he himself was enrolled for war. Thus allaying the present
difficulty, the consul led forth the citizens and defeated the
enemy. But on their return to Rome, new and severer laws
regarding debt were decreed; at the same time, the Sabines
threatened the city with war; but " when a levy was decreed,
nobody gave in his name . . . and the people crowdiug around
the consuls . . . said ' They should never enlist one soldier till
the public faith was made good ; that liberty should be restored
to each before arms were given.* '* The senate, however, ap-
pointed as dictator a man favored by the plebeians, and him they
followed i^ainst the Sabines ; the more so, as he promised to
gain them favorable laws. On his return, accordingly, he
renewed '' the question relative to debt, . . . but the senate
refused to consider it " ; whereupon the plebeians, still under
arms, marched out of Rome to the Sacred Mount, and quietly
encamped; nor were they induced to return till the senate
promised '^that the plebeians should have their own magis-
trates." Thus arose the tribunes of the plebs.
STUDY ON d.
What parties existed in Rome ? Corresponding to what in Greek
history? What seems to hare been the trouble between them ? What
parallel in Greek history? What spirit was shown by each party in
this story ? What united these parties ? What power had either to
compel the other to do as it wished ? What two things did the ple-
beians gain by means of their power ?
8. SwfMnary of Chief External Events and Belatians
of the reriod.
From very early times the towns of Latium seem to
have formed a league with Rome; the earliest form of
this league accepted as reliable dates from the first cen-
188 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
tury of the Republic (about 493 B.C.), and provides that
there shall be everlasting peace between Rome and Latium,
and that they shall help one another in war. This league
is confirmed and maintained by the common worship of
Jupiter^ on the Alban mount.
From 768 to about 400 B.C. a constant petty warfare
goes on all about the Latin frontier, with varying success,
but gradually strengthening the power of the Latin
League. The most memorable victory of this series of
wars seems to have been the siege and destruction of the
Etruscan town of Veii, apparently Rome's most formi-
dable neighbor.
The Gauls invade Latium from the north,
defeat the Roman army, capture Rome, plunder
800.
and burn it, but are at last persuaded, by a large pay-
ment of gold, to withdraw. Rome is hastily and irregu-
larly rebuilt.
Continued war of Latium against her neigh-
bors ; the whole of southern Etruria is subjected
to Roman dominion. — Rome and Carthage make
TO
340.
a treaty of commerce. — Rome pushes her dominion south-
ward to the Samnite border. — Samnite emigrants in
Campania ask Roman aid against the Samnites of the
mountains; the result of the war is that Rome gains
Capua.
The Latins demand equal rights with the
Romans in the government of Rome and Rome's
dominion ; denied, they wage war on Rome, the
840
TO
888.
end of which is that the Latin League is dissolved and
the superior power of Rome firmly fixed in Latium.
New war with the Samnites, caused by Roman
aggression ; Campania is thoroughly conquered ;
the whole of Etruria comes under the Roman
TO
* The chief Latin deity, corresponding to the Greek Zeua.
STUDY ON BEGAL AND PR.fi-PUNIC ROME. 189
power. Two fine military roads are built, the Flaminian
Way northward, the Appian Way southward to Capua,
and colonies of Roman soldiers are settled through the
conquered lands.
The Saninites lead in a third war against Rome, and
are joined by Etruscans, South Italians, and mountain
tribes; at its close the Romans gain dominion through
the lands of the Sabines and the Umbrians, and a name
which is feared throughout the yet unconquered parts of
Italy.
Roman ships of war, contrary to treaty, anchor in the
harbor of Tarentum ; the people attack them, capture five
and kill or sell their crews. A Roman embassy sent to
arrange matters is insulted, and war breaks out between
Rome and Tarentum. The Tarentines call Pyrrhus, king
of Epirus, to their aid, and are joined by the Samnites
and South Italians.
After nearly ten years of war Tarentum is subdued,
the lands of the Samnites, Apulians, Campanians, and all
other South Italian peoples come under the dominion of
Rome. The north is now thoroughly subjugated up to
the Rubicon and the Apennines.
In the earliest conquests the defeated peoples, together
with their gods, become a part of the Roman community
and share in the Roman worship. As soon as Rome
begins to conquer beyond the borders of Latium, however,
she sends forth bands of her own citizens to possess and
cultivate a part, and defend the whole, of her newly
acquired territories. These settled bands are the so-called
Roman colonies.
The only claims which Rome makes throughout her
Italian dominion are, — a tribute of armed men or ships,
the sole right of making war and peace, and the sole
power of coining money. She gives the inhabitants of
140 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
some cities and towns the name, with the duties and
privileges, of full Roman citizens ; others have the ^^ Latin
right," that is, the right of free trade with Rome, and the
power, under conditions, of becoming Roman citizens;
still others are subject directly to Roman officers and
Roman law; others, again, are under their own local
laws and government, bound to Rome by a simple treaty
of equal alliance.
Wherever Rome conquers, she claims at least a third of
the land ; this is divided among the citizens of Rome, and
its distribution causes great strife between the various
classes of her people. This struggle gives rise to a long
series of ^^ Agrarian Law%^'' intended to prevent any
monopoly or great inequality in the possession of subject
land.
STUDY ON 3.
In what order does Rome conquer Italy? What advantage for
conquest has Rome ? (See map, and pictures, pp. 141, 142.) Name all
the measures by which her conquests are secured. Name two or three
things which must become alike throughout Italy by these means.
Of what value is this to Rome? Contrast the Roman and Greek
colonies in regard to the purposes and occupations of their founders.
Contrast Roman dominion in Italy with the Athenian empire. Which
was the stronger, and why? Can you tell in one word in what the
strength of Rome consists ? What is the difference between the words
" growth " and " development " as used in the phrases, " the develop-
ment of the Roman constitution," " the growth of Rome's dominion"?
4. Notable Works and InnovtUiona of Beriodm
a. Under the KingSy 753(?)-510(?) B.C.
Walls of Rome ; defences of the Capitol ; prison and
treasury ; temple of Jupiter on the Capitol ; forum or
public square for markets and for great meetings of the
people, such as the Assemblies; bridges over the Tiber;
STUDY ON REGAL AND PR.a>PUNIC ROME.
141
the Great Circus, a measured level space for games and
spectacles ; the Great Drain (^Cloaca Maxima)^ for carrying
the sewerage of Borne into the Tiber.
PART OF THB BTRUSOAl? (OTRURIAN) WALL.
at Volterra, near Rome, built about 700 bjo,
b. Under Republic, 510(?)-264 b.c.
Great military roads, hard, firm, and smooth, going out
from Rome in various directions (see map, p. 128); the
meet famous is the Appian Way^ going south to Capua ;
142
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the Appian aqueduct ; ships of war ; bronze image of the
she-wolf and the twins, made and dedicated in honor of
PART 0? THB WALL 0? THB KINQS (SIRVIDBT).
on the Aventlne Hill in Rome. The arch is helieved to he the aeoond oldest In Buiope.
the wolf who was said to have nursed the deserted twins,
Romulus and Remus, the legendary founders of Rome;
STUDY ON BBQAL AND PR.fi-PUNlC HOME. 148
temple of Ceres, built and adorned with paintings by
Greeks ; temple of Apollo ; twelve tables of Roman law,
said to have been drawn up by Roman law-givers after a
journey to Greece for the purpose of studying the laws of
Solon; beginning of historical annals of Rome, written
by priests and laid up in the temples (destroyed at the
burning of Rome by the Gauls); statues erected in the
Forum in honor of generals, law-givers, famous citizens,
or public benefactors. Introduction of Greek military
tactics, much improved by Roman experience, and the
addition of Italian weapons ; military pay introduced ; the
draining of Lake Velinus, by which a large portion of
fertile land is gained for agriculture.
&• lAst of Meligiaus Feasts of Early Borne (Mommsen).
The first month of the Roman year was March. Then
came the great three-days' festival of Mars, the god of war,
and a feast for the deities who presided at the birth of
children. In April, sacrifices were offered to the nourish-
ing earth, to the goddesses who favored the germination
and growth of the crops, and the increase of herds ; to
Jupiter, as protector of vines and vats; and to Rust,
the enemy of grain. In May, came another day
for Mars, a day to propitiate the god hostile to the
vines, and three days sacred to the spirits of the dead.
Vesta, goddess of the hearth, the goddess of birth, and
the Penates, guardians of the store-chamber, were honored
in June. The summer-grove festival came in July, to-
gether with a day sacred to the gods of the sea. In
August, came a wine^east, sacrifices to the gods of the
harbor and river, twin festivals to the god and goddess
of harvest, and a day for Vulcan, god of fire and smith-
work. October saw the consecration of arms to Mars, a
thanksgiving to Jupiter, as the wine-god, and a festival for
144 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the fountain-deities. In December occurred thanksgivings
for the blessings of the granary, the festivals of seed-sowing
and of the shortest day. In January, feasts for the god-
dess of magic spells; February closed the list with the
feast of Lupercalia, sacred to the wolf of Mars; days for
Faunus, the shepherd-god; for departed spirits ; and for the
consecrated boundary-stones of the fields. All the days
of the full moon were dedicated to Jupiter, as god of the
sky. Meanwhile, in every house were household gods,
especially the LareB or the spirits of dead ancestors, to
whom it was always the first duty of the house-father, on
returning home, to pay his devotions, and to whom was
assigned some share of every meal.
STUDY ON 4, 5, AND THE PICTURES.
What sort of works are notably absent from this liat ? [Compare with
Greek lists.] With what sorts of life are all these works connected ?
What evident relation between Greece and Rome ? What new mode
of construction do you find in the Roman work ? What do you find
to admire in the specimen of Roman work given ? With what is art
connected, so far as there is any ? What do we know of the number
of the Roman gods from this list ? Of their rank ? Their relation to
human affairs? The way to gain their favor? With what sort of
affairs are they connected? Why did the Romans worship them?
Make a list of Roman occupations. Which lead in importance?
6. Note an Vocabulary.
In the earliest Latin the names of the following objects
are derived from the Greek, or from the East through
the Greek: linen, purple, ivory, the wine-jug and wine-
bowl, mortar, the measuring-rod, a balance, a lyre, a
stage. From the Greeks came many nautical terms,
names of coins and measures, and even the Latin alpha-
bet itself.
STUDY ON REGAL AND PBJE-PUNIC BOMB. 146
7. Remains of the Twelve TabieSf or the Eariie^t Written
Iamw ofMwnef dating frwn about 451 B.C.
** A foreigner can gain no property in a thing by long
possession. If a citizen confess a debt, or be adjudged to
pay it, he shall be allowed thirty lawful days to make pay-
ment ; after that time he may be arrested. ... If be then
do not pay or find somebody to pay for him, the creditor
may take him away and bind him with cords or with
fetters, which must not be more than fifteen pounds weight,
. . . the creditor may keep the debtor sixty days in chains,
and in the course of that time shall present him for three
successive fair days, . . . and publicly notify the debt. If
there be more creditors than one, after the three fair
days they may cut up the debtor or sell him beyond
the Tiber."
"A father may kill at its birth a child monstrously
deformed. He shall have a right of life and death over
all his lawful children, and also of selling them. If a
father sell his child thrice, the child shall afterwards be
free from him. . . . Howsoever a father of a family
directs by will, as to his property, or the guardianship of
his children, such shall be the law."
«««««««
"He who has by incantation blasted another's corn, or
who has privily by night fed down or cut up arable
produce, shall be put to death by hanging him as a victim
to Ceres.^ ... He who has wilfully and maliciously set
fire to a house, or to a stack of corn piled up against a
house, shall be bound, beaten with rods, and burnt alive ;
but if he has done so accidentally, he shall compensate
the loss; if unable to make compensation, let him be
slightly chastised. He who slightly insults another shall
be fined twenty-five pounds of copper. If any one publicly
1 The goddess of the harvest.
146 ' STUDIES IN GBNEBAL HISTORY.
defame another, or make verses^ to his disgrace or injury,
let him be beaten with a stick. If he break another's limb,
unless he can settle with him, he shall undergo retaliation.
If he break the jaw-bone of a free man, he shall pay three
hundred pounds of copper; if of a slave, one hundred and
fifty. . . .
^^Let there be no exceptional laws in favor of individuals.
. . . Let no capital punishment be pronounced against a
Roman citizen, except in the Great Assembly of the peo-
ple. ... If any one incite an enemy (against Rome), or
betray, or deliver up to the enemy, a citizen, let it be a
capital offense.
"Let not a dead man be buried or burnt within the city.
. . . Let not the funeral-pile be made of carved wood.
Let there be no more than three mourning-women and
ten flute-players. . . . Let the anointing of slaves and
the handing round of liquors be abolished. Let no per-
fumed liquids be sprinkled upon the deceased. Let no
long garlands nor altars covered with perfumes be carried
before the corpse. But, if the deceased has gained a
crown of honor by his bravery, let the praise of himself
and his ancestors be celebrated, and let it be lawful that
the crown be placed before the corpse, both within doors
and when it is carried forth. . . .
" Let that which the people has last ordained be settled
law. Let there be no right of marriage between the
patricians and the plebeians."
STUDY ON 6 AND 7.
What does the vocabulary tell us of the early relatious of Phoe-
nicia, Greece, and Latium? Make a list of the arts and sciences
brought from outside into Italy. Which of these came from Phoe-
nicia? Which from Greece ? Reasons.
^ " The trade of a poet/' says Cato, " in former times was not respected ;
if any one occupied himself with it, he was called an idler."
STUDY ON BE6AL AND PR^-PUNIC ROME. 147
What is the spirit of the Roman laws in regard to the foreigner?
The debtor? What form of family existed in early Rome? What
classes of people, and how was each regarded ? From what did these
laws protect people? What classes? Select those which you would
describe as "sumptuary." Where have you found such laws before?
In General. — What is the ideal of the early Romans? What is
their attitude to the fine arts ? How does their political constitution
discourage oratory? (See Constitutions.) Is the individual for the
state, or vice versa f Proofs. (See Constitutions, as well as other
work.) Give two proofs that the Romans were practical.
8. Stories from Livy.
a. Cindnnattis the Dictator^ fifth century b.g.
In time of ^eat danger from the Sabines, it was determined
to make Cincinnatus dictator. This man, ^'the sole hope of
the Roman people," cultivated a farm of four acres. '^ There,
eitiier leaning on a stake in a ditch which he was digging, or
. . . ploughing, . . . being requested by the ambassadors to
listen to the commands of the Senate," he was saluted Dictator
of Rome.
Going immediately thither, he led the citizens against their
foes, and soon returned victorious. '* The leaders of the
enemy were led before his car ; ... his army followed, laden
with spoil." Having finished his task, he resigned his dictator-
ship on the sixteenth day of holding it, and returned to his
farm.
6. ** Fublius Valerius^ allowed by universal consent to be the
ablest man in Rome, . . . died in the height of his glory, but so
poor that means to defray the expenses of his funeral were
wanting," and he was buried at the public charge.
c. Plntarch tells of Manius Curio ^ "who, though he was
the greatest man in Rome, had subdued the most warlike
nations, and driven Pyrrhus out of Italy, cultivated a little
spot of ground with his own hands, and after three triumphs
lived in a cottage. Here the ambassadors of the Samnites
found him in the chimney-comer, dressing turnips, and offered
him a large present of gold ; but he absolutely refused it, and
148 STUDIES IN 6ENBBAL HISTORY.
gave them this answer: A man who can be satisfied with
snch a supper hath no need of gold; and I think it were
more glorious to conquer the owners of it than to have it
myself."
d. The Gavls in Rome^ 390 B.C.
*' As there was not a hope that the city could be defended, so
small a number of troops now remained, it was determined that
the youth fit for military service and the abler part of the senate
. . . should retire within the citadel . . . and . . . thence . . . de-
fend the deities . . . and the Roman name." The mass of the peo-
ple were to be left undefended. ^' And in order that the plebeians
. . . might bear the thing with greater resignation, the aged
men, who had enjoyed triumphs and consulship? . . . declared
that they would die along with them and . . . not burden the
scanty stores of the armed men; . . . and having returned to
their houses, they awaited the enemy's coming with minds . . .
prepared for death. Such of them as had borne offices, . . .
arraying themselves in the most magnificent garments worn
by persons riding in triumph, seated themselves in their ivory
chairs, in the middle of their halls. . . . The Gauls . . . enter-
ing the city next day . . . beheld with a sort of veneration men
sitting in the porches of the palaces who . . . bore a striking
resemblance to gods in the majesty of their looks and the
gravity of their countenances. Whilst they stood gazing
on these as on statues . . . one of them roused the anger
of a Gaul by striking him . . . while the latter was strok-
ing his beard." This act broke the spell under which the
barbarians seemed to be, and they slew the senators where they
sat.
The Gauls then sacked and burned the city and at last
attacked the Capitol.^ Meanwhile, Camillus, who had been
exiled from Rome by the people, knowing their great peril,
calling many of the countrymen to arms, slaughtered numbers
of the Gauls as they roamed the fields for plunder; and
^ The hill fortress of Rome where the chief temple of Jupiter stood.
STUDY ON REGAL AND PEiB-PUNlC ROME. 149
presently, the Romans without the city, desiring a man to lead
them against the common enemy, '^resolved that Camillus
should be sent f or . . . but not until the Senate at Rome was
first consulted. . . . For this purpose a spirited youth . . .
offered his services, and . . . made his way into the Capitol over
a portion of the rock . . . neglected by the enemy's guard, and
. . . haying received a decree of the Senate that Camillus
should be . . . appointed Dictator . . . passed back the same
way.
Meanwhile, at Rome ^^the time had come when a sacrifice
from the Fabian family was due on the Quirinal Hill." To per-
form this, ^'Caius Fabius . . . descended from the Capitol . . .
passed out through the midst of the enemy . . . and after duly
performing . . . the sacred rites, came back with the same firm
countenance and gait, confident that the gods were propitious,
whose worship he had not neglected when prohibited by the
fear of death." The men of the citadel were now sufiering
from famine, but yet spared the geese '^ as being sacred to
Juno," a circumstance of importance, since by their cacklings
they aroused the sentinels upon a night when the Gauls were
ascending an unguarded part of the Capitol. At last the Gauls
and the men of the citadel, wearied out, were about to come to
terms, when Camillus appeared with fresh forces, and compelled
the Gauls to retire.
It was now necessary to rebuild Rome, but many of the
plebeians were desirous of removing to Veil, where many
dwellings still stood empty. But Camillus argued with them,
" 'Consider the events of these latter years. . . . You will
find that all things succeeded with us whUst we followed the
gods, and failed when we neglected them. . . . Though de-
serted by gods and men, still we intermitted not the worship of
the gods. Accordingly they have restored to us our country.
We possess a city founded under auspices and auguries ; not a
spot is there in it that is not full of religious rites and of the gods.
... Is it right that these sacred things, coeval with the city,
. . . should be abandoned to profanation? The assemblies of
160 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the Centuries . . . where can they be held under auspices,
unless where they are wont [to be held] ? . . . For my part
I can see nothing more impious.' . . . Camillus is said to have
moved them also by other parts of his speech, but chiefly by
that which related to religious matters. But an expression
seasonably uttered determined the matter while still undecided ;
for when some troops . . . passed through the Forum in their
march, a centurion . . . cried out; * Standard-bearer, fix your
standard ! It is best for us to remain here.' Which expres-
sion being heard, both the Senate came out from the senate-
house, and all cried out that they embraced the omen, and . . .
the building of the city commenced."
e. The Judgment of Mardius and the Devotion of Dedua.
During the Latin war of 340-338, ^^Manlius and Decius
being consuls, it is said that there appeared to both . . . during
sleep, the same form of a man larger and more majestic than
human, who said, ^ Of. the one side a general, of the other an
army, is due to the infernal deities and to mother-earth ; from
whichever army a general shall devote [to death] himself and
the legions of the enemy, to that army shall belong the
victory.'" In the morning, the consuls *' having brought
together the lieutenant-generals and tribunes and having openly
expounded to them the commands of the gods, settled . . . that
on whichsoever wing the Roman people should commence to
give way, the consul on that side should devote himself [to
death] for the Roman people." At the same time it was
ordered that no one should leave his appointed place in order to
fight the enemy. Now it happened that the son of Manlius,
being sent out to reconnoitre, was provoked into a contest, in
which however he was victorious. " When the consul heard
this, ... he ordered an assembly to be summoned. . . . When
these assembled in great numbers, he said : ^ Since yon,
Titus Manlius, revering neither the consular power nor a
father's majesty, have fought against the enemy out of your
post contrary to our orders, and . . . since either the authority
STUDY ON BEGAL AND PRiE-PUNlC ROME. 161
of consuls is to be established by 3'our death, or by your for-
giveness to be forever annulled ; . . . go, lictor, bind him to
the stake.' . . . The body of the youth, being covered with
spoils, was burned on a pile."* Soon afterwards the Romans
marched forth to battle, Decius commanding the left. The
Roman spearmen on this side were the first to give way, where-
upon the consul Decius called upon the Pontifex Maximus to
dictate to him the words in which he must devote himself.
" The pontiff directed him to take the gown called proetexta,
and with his head covered, . . . standing upon a spear placed
under his feet, to say these words : ^ Jupiter, father Mars . . .
ye divinities under whose power we and our enemies are, I pray
you . . . that 3'ou will prosperously grant strength and victory
to the Roman people . . . and that ye may afflict the enemies of
the Roman people . . . with terror, dismay, and death. In
such manner as I have expressed in words, so do I devote the
legions and auxiliaries of the enemy, together with myself, to
the infernal deities ... in behalf of the republic' . . . Having
uttered this prayer, ... he, girding himself, . . . and fully
armed, mounted his horse and rushed into the midst of the
enemy. . . . But when he fell, overwhelmed with darts, in-
stantly the Latins, thrown into manifest consternation, took to
flight ; " while the Romans, *' their minds being free from relig-
ious dread/' fought with new ardor and won the day.
STUDY ON 8.
What do the incidents, a, &, c, show us of the style of Roman life?
Of what they cared for? Throughout the story d, what seeras to be
regarded as of prime importance? Name three or four qualities of
character shown by the patricians. What characteristic appears in
the fact that Camillas will not lead the army until the Senate has
appointed hun ?
In story e, what qualities displayed by Manlius? By Decius?
What do we learn of religion and the importance of forms? Of
superstition ? Illustrate the same things from d,
1 A similar story was told of Brutus, one of the first consuls of Rome,
who condemned his own sons to death for treason to the state.
162
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
B. II. STUDT Olf KEPUBLIOAir EOME, PUinO PEBIOD,
264-146 B.O.
Contemporary authority : Polybius.
Other original authorities : Livy, Plutarch.
Chief modern authority : Mommsen, Duruy.
Note on Carthage and Carthaginian Dominion. — At 264 b.c.
the Carthi^inian dominion included a good portion of Sicily, Corsica,
and Sardinia, and parts of the Spanish coast. With these modificar
tions, the map below fairly represents the territories ruled or influ-
enced respectively by Rome and Carthage.
QARTHAGml^N
AT2I8B.C.
Carthage was herself originally a Tyrian colony; for the ground
she held she paid rent to the native Africans, even after she was
highly prosperous ; and, although protected by deserts, by seas, and
by distance, she occasionally paid tribute to the Persian and Egyptian
kings. Her government was an aristocracy of wealth, and her armies
were mercenaries obtained in the b^st market.
It was said in antiquity that every foreign mariner found sailing in
the western Mediterranean was seized and drowned by the Carihft
ginians.
J865
TO
STUDY ON KEPUBLIOAN BOME, PUNIC PERIOD. 153
STUDY ON MAP AND NOTE.
What great geographical contrast between the Roman and Garthar
ginian dominion at 264 b.c.? What occupation indicated by the
distribution of Carthaginian lands ? Explain how every fact men-
tioned in the note is connected with this occupation. What was the
Carthaginian ideal? How do you fancy the Carthaginian compared
with the Roman civilization? Why?
1. Chronological Sutnmar^ of the Greater Events of the
Funic JPeriod, 265-201.
The Mamertines, a band of Campanian mer-
cenaries, hold the Sicilian Messana and are hard
beset by the Syracusan Greeks. Among them,
one party is for asking Roman, the other, Carthaginian, aid.
The former party triumphs, sends an embassy to Rome,
whence aid is voted and troops are sent. Before they
reach Messana, however, the Carthaginian party brings
about a peace, and sends word to the Romans that their
presence is no longer necessary. The Romans, however,
[>ersist in their advance, expel the Carthaginian garrison,
and obtain possession of Messana for themselves. There-
upon, the First Punic War begins.
The Romans build a fleet. — Indecisive war in
Sicily, Africa, and the Sicilian waters. Four
fleets and four armies and at least a sixth of the
citizens of Rome perish.
Private Roman citizens equip a new fleet of
two hundred shijis manned by 60,000 men, and
260
TO
S41.
241.
beat the Carthaginians, who at once sue for peace. They
gain it on condition of surrendering Sicily and paying
nearly $4,000,000.
Interval between Fiij|^ and Second Punic
War. — Carthaginian mercenaries, denied their
full pay, mutiny, and ar*? joined by the Libyan
S41
TO
SIS.
subjects of Carthage. Thereupon, the mercenary garri-
154 STUDIES IN GENBBAL HISTORY.
sons in Sardinia offer to surrender tbat island to Rome.
Rome accepts it, and soon adds Corsica. Appealed to by
Greek and Italian marinei-s and merchants, she puts down
the Illyrian pirates. She thus gains dominion in lUyria,
becomes the ally of several Greek towns, and is admitted
to share in the Greek games and the Greek worship.
Attacked by the Kelts of northern Italy, she conquers
them, and extends her power to the Alps, planting
colonies and building roads throughout her new posses-
sions. She also accepts as allies several Spanish towns,
notably Saguntum.
Hamilcar, general-in-chief of the Carthaginians, retain-
ing his command by a free use of money at home, subdues
revolted Libya, and makes of Spain a Carthaginian prov-
ince, whose wealth maintains a well-trained Spanish army.
At his death this force passes under the command of
Hannibaly his son.
Hannibal besieges and takes Saguntum, and the Second
Punic War begins. (See map, p. 152.)
Hannibal leads his Spanish and Carthaginian
army over the Alps into Gaul, where he is joined
at once by the Kelts, who seize this chance to
918
TO
901.
revolt from Rome, and with whom he has already formed
'alliances. Thence he marches through Italy, which he
harries and plunders, and nearly subdues by four great
victories. The last of these is at CannsB, where one-
seventh of the Italian forces perish. Thereupon, Syracuse
and Macedon ally themselves with Carthage ; many of the
Italian towns, to which Hannibal promises liberty, accept
him as friend, though the colonies stand by Rome.
Rome now decrees that the (Jpys of mourning for the
dead of Cannse shall be shortened ; that new legions shall
be at once enrolled, including criminals and slaves ; that
new weapons shall at once be forged, and that, meanwhile,
STUDY ON REPUBLTCAN ROME, PUNIC PERIOD. 155
arms shall be taken from the temples, from the dedicated
spoils of former victories. Now follow the siege and fall
of Syracuse; Macedon is brought to terms; the Scipios,
who sailed for Spain when Hannibal crossed the Alps,
finally wrest it from Carthage; town by town Italy
returns to Rome ; the Carthaginians are niggardly of help
to Hannibal ; still the war holds on. Rome is pressed for
funds ; but her richer soldiers offer to fight without pay ;
the creditors of the state delay or decline to demand their
dues, and again a fleet is fitted forth by private effort.
Hasdrubal, Hannibal's brother, now appears in the north
of Italy, but is thoroughly defeated. The gi*eatest of the
Scipios now sails for Africa to threaten Carthage itself.
Hannibal is recalled, and the battle of Zama is fought,
resulting in complete and decisive victory for Scipio and
Rome.
Carthage accepts the following terms : inde
pendeuce within her own boundaries; the sur
901.
render of all her war-ships but ten ; an annual tribute of
$240,000 for fifty years; the formal cession of Spain,
Sardinia, and Corsica to Rome; the acknowledgment
of Massinissa as king of Numidia.
STUDY ON I.
What do we know of the comparative power and reputation of
Rome and Carthage at 264 B.C., and how do we know it? What
spirit was shown by the Romans in the First Punic War ? What in
the second, and on what occasion? Compare Carthage with Rome in
this respect. On what and on whom was Carthage dependent for suc-
cess in these two wars ? On what and whom, Rome ? Which had the
surer dependencfe? Why did Carthage fail? Where do we find
greatness on the Carthaginian side in the second war? Where on
the Roman?
2. Summary of Events, 201-146.
Rome degrades from their former rank and privilege all
who failed her in the war with Hannibal, and much of
156 STUDIES IN GENEBAIi HISTOBY.
Italy thus becomes purely subject territory, throughout
which the Romans build fortresses, extend roads, and settle
colonies of Punic veterans.
The Romans appealed to by the Greeks for aid against
Philip, king of Macedonia, enter into war with him, aided
by Numidians and Ill}rrians.
The Macedonian war ends with the following
treaty : — that Philip shall lose all his posses-
197.
sions in Asia Minor, Thrace, and Greece ; shall make no
alliance without the consent of Rome, nor make war
against civilized states; that his army shall not exceed
5000 men, and that all but five decked ships shall be
given to the Romans ; that he shall send troops to Rome
when requested, and pay $1,260,000. Greece is declared
free from Macedonian and all foreign dominion.
Antiochus the Great, of Asia, having harassed
or taken possession of various Asiatic Greek
cities, lands in Europe, and attacks the Helles-
196
TO
190.
pontine Greeks; Rome interferes in their behalf, and is
thus drawn into an Asiatic war with Antiochus.
Battle of Magnesia and treaty of peace between
Antiochus and Romans, by which Antiochus sur-
190.
renders Asia Minor west of the Halys and the Taurus,
all his European claims, all but ten vessels of his fleet, and
pays to Rome more than $19,000,000. The Asiatic Greeks
are for the most part declared independent.
Accumulating complaints against the Mace-
donian power. Greece divided into parties, of
which one looks to Rome, the other to Mace-
190
TO
17».
don, for aid.
War between Rome and Macedon, each aided
by a strong Greek party ; the battle of Pydna
and the fall of the Macedonian king close the
17«
TO
108.
war ; and the following terms of peace are agreed upon :
STUDY ON BEPUBLICAN ROME, PUNIC PERIOD. 157
•* The Macedonians are to live free . . . governed by their
own laws and . . . magistrates, and . . . pay to the Roman
people one-half of the taxes they have paid to their kings."
At first, they are not allowed to work their own mines of
gold and silver. Laws are given them by the Romans,
and they are divided into four districts, between which
there is to be no intermarriage, no free trade in land. As
for the Greeks, they come partly under the protection, and
in some cases under the subjection, of Rome.
In Spain, revolt, brigandage, and piracy; in
Greece and Macedonia, constant quarrels of par-
ties, of cities ; in Asia Minor, Syria, and Egypt,
168
TO
146.
endless wars, and difficulties among kings and princes over
the succession to various thrones, and the ownership of
various territories ; from all these places constant appeals
come to Rome for judgment or for aid. The result of
Roman interference is that Macedonia, Greece, Spain, and
most of Asia Minor are made into Roman provinces, pure
and simple ; that is, they are governed directly from Rome
by an officer called a Praetor or Proconsul, who keeps the
peace, governs, collects the provincial tribute for Rome ;
the Proconsuls are changed from year to year, and gain
their office by election and appointment from Rome. The
158 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Carthaginians, meanwhile, are plundered and robbed by
Massinissa, king of Numidia. Unable to obtain a fair
hearing at Rome, they at length attempt to defend them-
selves. Rome now declares war against Carthage, on the
ground that the latter has attacked Massinissa, her ally ;
the Carthaginians offer complete surrender; Rome de-
mands all their stores and munitions of war by land and
sea, the total destruction of their present city, and a
promise that they shall dwell in the future at least ten
miles from the coast. Thereupon, the Third Punic War
begins, closing in 146 with the utter destruction of
Carthage. The city is burned, its site is turned with the
plow, its territory becomes the Roman province of Africa.
STUDY ON 2.
What spirit shown by Rome in the Third Punic War ? In the set-
tlement of Italian affairs ? Of Greek ? AVhy could not the Greeks
remain independent? What indication have we that, on the whole,
Rome was a good ruler in Italy ?
Look oyer the causes of all the wars of this period ; what do they indi-
cate of the comparative greatness of Rome among the Mediterranean
lands, and how do they show this ? What kind of greatness had she the
reputation for? Name three things that Rome gains from these wars.
In what geographical order does Rome win her dominion ? How
does she confirm it ? Wliat new part enters into the Roman constitu-
tion ? What principle of government, new to Rome, introduced with
it? In the treaty with Philip, 197 b.c., what relation does Rome
assume toward civilized states? Of what use are her conquests to
the conquered? It is often said that Rome, at the opening of the
Punic period, was so great that ishe must become greater. Explain
what this means by reference to the events of this period. What lands
will now be naturally added to the Roman dominion ?
8. Extra4Sts from Livy Ulustra/tive of Second Funic War.
a. Hannibal in the Alps.
*'0n the ninth day they came to the smnmit of the Alps,
chiefly through places trackless, and after many mistakes in
STUDY ON REPUBLICAN ROME, PUNIC PERIOD. 159
their way, which were caused either by the treachery of the
guides, or ... by entering valleys at random. . . . For two
days they remained encamped on the summit; and rest was
given to the soldiers, exhausted with toil and fighting. ... On
the standards being moved forward at daybreak, when the
army proceeded slowly over places entirely blocked up with
snow, and languor and despair strongly appeared in the counte-
nances of all, Hannibal, having advanced before the standards,
and ordered the soldiers to halt on a certain eminence, whence
there was a prospect far and wide, points ont to them Italy and
the plains of the Po extending themselves beneath the Alpine
mountains; and said ^ that after the first, or, at most, the
second battle, they would have the citadel and capital of Italy in
their power and possession.' . . . They then came to a rock . . .
formed of such perpendicular ledges, that a light-armed soldier,
carefully making the attempt, and clinging with his hands to
the bushes and roots around, could with difl9culty lower him-
self. . . . When the cavalry had halted here, ... it was
announced to Hannibal . . . that the rock was impassable. . . .
The soldiers being then set to make a way down the cliff, . . .
having felled and lopped a number of large trees which grew
around, made a huge pile of timber ; and as soon as a strong
wind fit for exciting the flames arose, they set fire to it, and
pouring vinegar on the heated stones, they rendered them soft
and crumbling. The}' then opened a way with iron instruments
through the rock thus heated by the fire, and softened its decliv-
ities by gentle windings, so that not only the beasts of burden,
but also the elephants could be led down. Four days were
spent about this precipice, the beasts nearly perishing of
hunger."
5. Incidents connected with the Fight at Traaimene,
Before the battle, many prodigies were reported at Rome. It
was said that *^ an ox had of his own accord ascended to the
third story of a house ; . . . that the appearance of ships had
been brightly visible in the sky, and that the Temple of Hope in
160 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the herb-market had been struck b}' lightning : . . . that . . .
figures resembling men dressed in white raiment had been seen
in several places at a distance, but had not come close to any
one ; that in Picenum it had rained stones." On account of
these prodigies, unusual praters, sacrifices, and gifts to the
gods were decreed by the state, and ** greatly relieved the
public mind."
Flaminius was one of the consuls for that year, and he had
left Rome for his army without the customary auspices ; where-
upon the Senate '^unanimously resolved that he should be
recalled and brought back, and be constrained to perform in
person every duty to gods and men before he went to the
BTmy." He did not, however, return, but advanced to meet
Hannibal, and fell in the disastrous defeat of Lake Trasimene,
where he had thus exhorted the soldiers : " Stand and fight ;
for" you " cannot escape ... by vows and prayers to the gods,
but by exertion and valor." After this reverse it was deter-
mined to appoint a dictator; but since his nomination rested
with the consuls, one of whom was absent and the other dead,
the people gave Fabius Maximus the powers of dictator, with
the title of pro-dictator. He at once assembled the Senate,
and, " after he had distinctly proved to the fathers that Caius
Flaminius had erred more from neglect of the ceremonies and
auspices than from temerity and want of judgment," they
decreed new vows, festivals, and sacrifices to the gods. " Divine
things having been performed" with due attention and care,
Fabius turned his attention to the needs of the war.
c. The Battle of Cannce.
The consuls commanding on this occasion were Varro and
Paulus ; the desire of the former was to fight, the policy of the
latter to annoy the Carthaginian forces. They held command
on alternate days, both armies being in camp. Hannibal
" provoked the enemy by a skirmishing attack. . . . Upon this,
the Roman camp began again to be embroiled by a mutiny
among the soldiers and the disagreements of the consuls";
STUDY ON REPUBLICAN ROM£, PUNIC PERIOD. 16l
bat nothing was done, since Paulus was for that day general.
But " Varro, on the following day, . . . without consulting his
colleague, displayed the signal for battle, and forming his
troops, led them across the river. Paulus followed, because he
could better disapprove of the proceeding than withhold his
assistance." Thus, then, the Romans were led at the battle of
Cannae, where so many of them perished. When the news of
this defeat reached Rome, among other measures, '^Quintus
Fabius Pictor was . . . sent to Delphi to enquire of the oracle
by what prayers and offerings they might appease the gods. . . .
Meanwhile, certain extraordinai^ sacrifices were performed,
according to the directions of the books of the fates ; among
which a Gallic man and woman and a Greek man and woman
were [buried] alive in the cattle-market."
As for the captives, the Senate refused to ransom them,
partly because they preferred slaves to men who had allowed
themselves to be taken alive in the midst of ^^ so many examples
of courage," and partly because " they were neither willing to
drain the treasury . . . nor to enrich Hannibal."
d. TJve Close of the War.
The Second Punic War was over, and the Carthaginian ambas-
sadors came to Rome to treat of peace ; and while negotiations
were going on, the ** tribunes of the people put them the ques-
tion as to whether they willed and ordered that the Senate
should decree that peace should be made with the Cartha-
ginians? Whom they ordered to grant that peace, and whom
to conduct the army out of Africa ? All the tribes ordered . . .
that Publius Scipio should grant the peace, and . . . conduct
the army home. Agreeabl}* to this order, the Senate decreed
that P. Scipio . . . should make peace with the Carthaginian
people."
The Carthaginians, ^' finding difficulty in raising the first sum
of money to be paid, as their finances were exhausted by a
protracted war, and, in consequence, great lamentation and
grief arising in the Senate-liouse, it is said that Hannibal was
162
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
obBerved laughing/' and being rebuked for it, he answered,
'* When the spoils were torn down from vanquished Carthage,
when you beheld her left unarmed and defenceless amid so
many armed nations of Africa, none heaved a sigh. Now,
because a tribute is to be levied from private property, you
lament with one accord."
STUDY ON 3, a^b^Cfd.
What greatness did Hannibal display? What held his aripy
together ? What was their motive in fighting ? Compare in strength
with the Roman motive. Name all the difficulties met in this pas-
sage of the Alps.
Wliat do incidents of b show of religious life among the Romans in
general? What seems to have been the religious attitude of Fla-
minius, of Fabius, and the Senate ? What does the incident of the
election of Fabius show the Roman people careful for? Where have
you seen this same carefulness before? Name three qualities of
Roman character shown in the incidents of the captives.
What fault in Roman organization is very plainly shown at Cannse?
What Roman magistrate was needed at such a crisis? Why? What
characteristics of Rome appear when she receives news of the defeat?
(See also ''List of Events.") In whose hands was the political
power at Rome in reality? In name?
How did the Carthaginians, in this case, show themselves true to
their character and their ideal ?
In Oeneral. — Describe the ideal Roman of the period of the Sec-
ond Punic War.
4. List of the Most Noteworthy Men of the JPunic JPeriod.
Those marked * belong to the period after the close of
the Second Punic War.
M€M€.
Birth, CIreumatance.
Cause of Fame.
^milius
Lepidus,
».?5:niiliu8
Paulas,
Roman patrician.
Roman patrician.
Consul; maker of JEmilian road in
North Itoly.
Consul ; conqueror of Macedon.
STUDY ON REPUBLICAN ROME, PUNIC PERIOD. 163
*AndroDiciUy
Cecilius,
♦Cato the Elder,
*Cato the Tonng-
er(of Utica),
*£iiiiiii8j
Fabius Mazimus,
Flaminii,
Marcellus,
•NsBvius,
*Plautu8,
♦Poljrbius,
Regulus,
Scipio Af ricanus
the Elder,
*Scipio Africa-
nus the Younger,
•Terence,
Birth, Cireumatanc;
Tarentum; a
slave.
Milan; Keltic
slave.
Roman plebeian.
Roman plebeian.
Apulia; Italian
freeman.
Roman patrician.
Roman
plebeians.
Roman
plebeian.
Campania; Ro-
man citizen.
Umbria ; son of
a f reedman.
Greece; free
citizen.
Roman;
patrician(?).
Roman ;
patrician.
Roman;
patrician.
Carthage; slave.
CottM of Fam€.
Presented first dramas ever seen at
Rome ; subjects from Greek sources ;
translator of Homer into Latin.
Author of Latin comedies after Greek
models.
Censor ; famous orator in Senate ; at-
tempted to restore Roman manners
and morals, as before the Punic wars;
author of works on agriculture, law,
war, morals, politics, and history.
Senatorial orator; stoic; commander
in civil war in Africa for Pompey.
Translator of Greek dramas ; author
of poem in Greek measure on
Punic wars.
Consul and Dictator," shield of Rome,''
and " Delayer *' of Hannibal.
Consuls ; makers of Flaminian road.
Consul ; conqueror of Syracuse in
Second Punic War.
Translator of Greek dramas ; author
of political satires and a poem on
the First Punic War.
Author of Latin comedies after Greek
models.
Friend and teacher of younger Scipio ;
author of a Roman history.
Consul ; commander in First Punic
War.
Consul ; conqueror of Spain, and
victor of Zama.
Consul; conqueror of Carthage, and
later victorious in Spain.
Author of Latin comedies after Greek
models.
164 STUDIES IK GENEUAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON 4.
What kinds of greatness displayed by the native Romans? In what
class does this greatness mostly appear? What kind of greatness is
brought to Rome from outside ? Mostly from what source ?
5. Incidents 9 ExtrtictSj and Fticts Illustrative of Later
JPunic JPeriod. (Unref erred quotations from Livy.)
a. The Trial of Scipio and Others,
After the Second Punic War, Scipio was brought to trial on
the charges of bribery, and of living too luxuriously in winter-
quarters at Syracuse. Ordered to make his defense, he said,
^' . . . On the anniversary of this day I fought with Hannibal
and the Carthaginians with good success. . . . Therefore, . . .
I wQl immediately go to the Capitol, there to return my ac-
knowledgments ... to the deities . . . Such of you ... as it
suits come with me and beseech the gods that you may have
commanders like myself." So he went up to the Capitol ; and
'* the whole assembly turned about and followed " ; nor was he
afterward brought to trial, it being said '* that Publius Scipio
. . . had risen to such . . . dignity, that were he to stand as a
criminal ... it would reflect more disgrace on the Romans than
on him."
Michelet tells us that when a son-in-law of the great Fabius,
Hannibal's opponent, was accused of treason, his father-in-law
was able to clear him by simply stating that he was innocent.
When one of the Metelli was accused of extortion, and doc-
uments to prove it were placed before the judges, the whole
tribunal turned away their eyes, in order not to be convinced
of the guilt of one whose ancestor had won a Punic victory,
and many of whose family had held high office in the state.
6. Office-getting and holding/.
The consuls, censors, and other high officers of Rome were
unpaid ; for it was thought beneath the dignity of a citizen to
serVe the state for pay ; yet men were so eager to gain these
places, that they spent thousands of dollars in getting up games
STUDY ON REPUBLICAN BOMB, PUNIO PERiOD. 166
and shows to gain the votes of the populace. Often, too, they
bought up quantities of foreign (mostly Sicilian) grain, and
sold it to the Romans for almost nothing. Sometimes such
supplies were sent as gifts from the provincials to the magis-
trates whose favor they wished to gain.
One of the kings of Asia sometimes amused himself thus :
' *' Having assumed the Roman gown ... he used to go about
the market-place, as he had seen done bj' candidates for office
at Rome, saluting and embracing each of the plebeians . . .
until at last he obtained " mock office by their votes.
Says Cato, " He who steals from a burgess ends his days in
chains and fetters; he who steals from the community ends
them in gold and purple."
c- The Italian Allies.
Even in the Second Punic War the burden of service was
heavier for the Italian allies than for Rome ; in the Macedonian
war the legions took such additions as were desirable from the
allies, with no regard to a just proportion, so that the Italians
were sometimes twice as many as the Romans ; in the war with
Antiochus reinforcements were sent to the consuls, of which
the allies furnished two-thirds of the men ; but, in the partition
of booty, they sometimes received only half as much as the
Romans, while, in the grants of conquered land, they were
given less than a third of a Roman soldier's share.
In one of the allied Italian towns a Roman consul caused the
magistrates to be flogged because they had not supplied him
with provisions. In another, a prsetor who wished to use the
public baths expelled every one from them, and, for some neg-
ligence, caused one of the quoestors of the town to be whipped.
In another, the wife of a consul ordered the first magistrate of
the place to be treated in the same manner.
d, TJie Triumph of Paidus for the Macedonian War.
''AH the temples were open, and were wreathed with gar-
lands and smoking with incense. . . . Although the gorgeous
spectacle was destined to occupy three days, as we have
166 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
already mentioned, yet the first day scarcely sufficed for the
procession of the statues and paintings, which were placed on
250 chariots. The next day all the most beautiful and most
magnificent arms of the Macedonians were carried along on
many wagons ; and these arms were glittering with all the
brightness of steel or lately-polished brass. Then more than
750 vases, filled with coined silver, were borne along by 3000
men. Each vase contained three talents, and was borne by
four men. There were some who bore silver bowls, and gob-
lets, and cups, and vessels made of horn, remarkable b^ well
for the beauty of their arrangement as for their size and weight
and the surpassing workmanship of the raised carving. On the
third day, at the very dawn, the trumpeters began the march,
. . . sounding their war-notes as if they were advancing to
battle. A hundred and twenty fat oxen with gilded horns and
adorned with fillets and wreaths of flowers were led along. . . .
Then was seen the sacred goblet, ten talents in weight, adorned
with precious gems, which Paulus had ordered to be made, and
also the goblets of Antigonus and Seleucus, and the cups made
by Thericles and other distinguished artists. . . . After them
came the chariot of Perseus, laden with his arms, and a diadem
in addition. . . . Then 400 golden crowns were carried along,
which had been sent by almost all the states of Greece and
Asia, through their ambassadors, as gifts to Paulus, and an
expression of their joy for his victory."
STUDY ON 5, a-d.
To what does Scipio declare himself superior? Who agree with
him? Why is he allowed this superiority? What assembly has
the greatest political power at Rome? Name all the ways in which
its favor is gained. What change do you notice in the character of
the Roman people since the beginning of the Punic wars ? What do
you infer, from Cato's remark, was the common reason for desiring
office ? What class of men could not obtain or hold office on account
of their condition ? What constitutional measure might have opened
office to them ? (Compare with the Athenian democracy under Peri-
cles.)
STUDY ON REPUBLICAN KOMB, PUNIC PERIOD. 167
What class of people are oppressed by the Romans ? What dangez
may threaten Rome in consequence ?
What effect would such a triumph as here described have upon the
life of Rome? Its art? Its ideas? Its ambitions? Its civiliza-
tion?
e, Mannersy CustoniSy Life^ and Thought of the Period,
The soldiers who went against Antioehus "first brought to
Rome gilded couches, rich tapesti'ies, and . . . other works of
the loom. ... At entertainments . . . were introduced players
on the harp and timbrel, with buffoons for the diversion of the
guests ; . . . the cook . . . became highly valuable," and cook-
ing was regarded as an art. Poems on the art of good living,
with long lists of dainties, were in vogue. *' In Rome," Polybius
tells us, " nobody gives to an3* one unless he must do so, and no
one pays a penn}* before it falls due, even among near rela-
tives." The descendants of those who had once filled the
highest offices, such as those of consul, censor, and praetor, were
now allowed by law to place the wax images of these famous
ancestors in their family hall, and to have them carried in their
fnneral procession. They were also distinguished from other
citizens by purple-striped tunics and other ornaments. The
senators were now given separate and superior seats in the
theatre.
Farms were mostly worked by slaves, and the following were
some of the maxims concerning them. " A slave must either
work or sleep." " So many slaves, so many foes." " Let the
father of a family," counselled Cato, " sell his old carts, old
iron, the sick slave, the old slave, and all that he can sell."
"A good watch-dog must not be on too intimate terms with his
fellow-slaves," said another Roman. These slaves were mostly
foreigners captured in war.
It was during this period that the Romans began to amuse
themselves regularly with gladiatorial^ and wild-beast fights,
* The gladiators were slaves, mostly captives taken in war, who were
thoroughly trained for hand-to-hand combats of all sorts.
168 STUDIES IK GENERAL HISTORY.
which the senate vainly tried to suppress. On one occasion,
Greek flute-players were introduced, but theii' music failed to
please, whereupon they were directed to begin a boxing-match,
which gave most perfect satisfaction. It was said that the
audience would always leave a play, if rope-dancing or fighting
were to be seen.
Accounts of the expenses for auspices, sacrifices, and the
support of the national faith were kept as exactly as, and to-
gether with, the accounts for the cook, nurse, and the house-
hold in general.
Prom Cato. — "A man must augment his substance, and he
is deserving of praise and full of a divine spirit whose account-
books, at his death, show that he has gained more than he has
inherited." " Believe me, those statues from Syracuse were
brought into this city with hostile effect. I already hear too
many commending and admiring the decorations of Athens
and Coriuth, and ridiculing the earthen linages of our Roman
gods that stand on the fronts of their temples. For my part,
I prefer these gods, — propitious as they are."
There was circulated through Italy at this time a book, ex-
plaining the gods to be personified powers of nature, or, in
other words, to be merely allegorical. In one of the dramas of
Ennius occurs this passage : —
*' I shall always say, as I have said, that the gods are in heaven.
But careless, I think, of the actions of men ; for if gods were
our rulers,
Then the good should have good, and the evil have evil ; but
who ever saw it ? "
At the battle of Pydna, an eclipse of the moon occurred.
It was not, however, regarded as a bad omen, having l)een fore-
told by a Roman officer.
At a certain celebration of the Latin festival, ''religious
scruples were felt . . . because, on the offering of one of the
victims, the magistrates . . . had not prayed for the Roman
people. . . . When the matter was brought before the Senate,"
STUDY ON REPUBLICAN iiOM£, PUNIC PERIOD. 109
and they referred it to the . . . pontiffs ; these decreed that
the whole festival must be repeated.
STUDY ON c.
What proofs can you give that Cato's fear of luxury has good rea-
son ? (See also o.) What sort of a man is evidently admired among
the Romans at this period? What do they care for? Proofs.
Describe Cato's character. What relation between it and tlie Prae-
Punic type of Roman character?
Vi'hat gives a man entrance into the highest Roman "society"?
From your study of a and 6, what kind of men do you see will be
able to make this entrance ? This new Roman aristocracy, then, rests
on what three bases ? How is labor regarded at Rome ? Why ? (See
also b.)
What class of people may become dangerous to Rome? Why?
What effect will the distribution of grain at Rome have upon the
market of the small farmers of Italy? If they sell their lands, what
will stand in the way of their working in the large vineyards or cattle-
farms ? How can they live at Rome, even if entirely ignorant of any
other occupation than that of farming ? What sort of men will they
become at Rome ? What class of population will be most numerous
in the niral districts ? What evil will result from this state of affairs
in the city of Rome? What danger will threaten in the rural dis-
tricts of Italy? How can you describe the Roman tastes of this
period ? As shown in amusements ? In the list of great men ? What
cause can be found in the previous history in Rome for this ?
What new way of regarding the old religious faith begins now?
What danger is there for the state in these new views? What do
the Romans seem to regard as the matter chiefly important in religion ?
Name all the ways in which Greece and the East are influencing
Home at this time. Name two ways in which this influence comes to
Rome.
Make a list of all the tendencies you have noticed in this period.
How many of these tendencies are dangerous, and why ? Name those
politically dangerous ; socially ; religiously.
170 STUDIES IN GENEllAL HISTORY.
B. m. STtJDT ON REPTIBLIOAN HOME, POST-PXmiO
PEEIOD.
Contemporary authorities : Julius Caesar, Cicero, Sal-
lust.
Other original sources : Suetonius, Plutarch.
Chief modern authority : Mommsen, Duruy.
1. a. Summary of More Im,portant Events 9 146-78 B.C.
The Sicilian slaves arm themselves against
their masters; their revolt is suppressed by
Roman troops.
146
TO
115.
Tiberius and Gaius Gracchus, tribunes of the people,
propose (a) that no citizen shall hold more than 820 acres
of public land ; ^ (6) that all land in excess of this shall be
divided among the poor of Italy and of Rome ; (e) that
Roman citizenship shall be extended to the Italians ; (d)
that corn shall be sold at a low price to all Roman citizens ;
(e) that the Senate shall share its judicial power with the
rich merchants and proprietors [knighti\ of Rome; (/)
that colonies of the poorer Roman citizens shall not only
be planted in Italy, but also in the Provinces. Tiberius
carries his measures against the Senate by means of the
Assembly of the Tribes, and presents himself for reelection
in spite of the Roman law ; hearing that violence is to be
used against him on the election-day, his friends arm
themselves with staves ; on that day a rumor runs through
the Senate that Tiberius aims at kingly power; arming
themselves with bludgeons, and clubs, and the legs of the
benches, the senators enter the Forum, and disperse the
adherents of Gracchus, who is this day killed.
Gaius Gracchus earnestly carries on the work of his
brother ; the Senate decree him a public enemy, and arm
1 Land gained and divided by the state among its citizens.
KEPUBLICAN ROME, POST-PUNIC PERIOD. 171
themselves against him. His followers fight in his defence
but are defeated, and Gains slain. Thus end the " Dissen-
sions of the Gracchi."
South Gaul (^Proveiice) becomes a Roman province; a
road is built from the Rhone to the Pyrenees, and strong
colonies founded (Aix).
The heirs to the throne of Numidia quarrel, i — jjj —
and appeal to Rome to decide between them.
The senators, bribed by Jugurtha, one of these
TO
100.
claimants, declare unjustly in his favor. Nevertheless,
he flagrantly disobeys the positive commands of the Senate,
and massacres so many Italians within his dominion, that
the Senate is forced to declare against him. They send
an army into Africa under the command, first of Metellus,
then of 3fariu8j who is assisted by Sulla. By these gene-
rals Jugurtha is conquered and brought captive to Rome,
and Numidia rendered practically subject.
Various Teutonic tribes threaten both Hither and Farther
Gaul, and Marius, elected consul^ in spite of the law for five
successive years, at length repulses them in two famous
battles, in one of which Sulla also is prominent. A second
armed revolt of Sicilian slaves is repressed by the Roman
armies with some diflBculty.
Drusus, tribune of the people, again brings
forward the Gracchan proposals as to the division
of lands and the enfranchisement of Italians ; he
100
TO
88.
is assassinated, and a law passed that all who favor the
Italian claims are guilty of high treason to Rome. The
"Social War'' breaks out, — a war of the Italian allies
(^Socit) against Rome in order to gain the rights of Roman
citizens; both Sulla and Marius are prominent and suc-
1 It is important to remember that, in order to be a Roman general, one
must be elected either consul or dictator.
172 STUDIES IN GENERAL HrSTOUY.
cessful in this war, which, nevertheless, results in giving
the Roman franchise to the whole peninsula.
Mithridates, king of Pontus, aided by discon-
tented states and cities in Asia and Greece,
makes war on Rome, who makes Sulla her com-
TO
78.
mander-in-chief ; thereupon the followers of Marius arm
themselves, and drive the supporters of Sulla from the
Forum. They next vote that Marius shall be general for
the East. Sulla now leads his own troops to Rome, and
defeats the soldiers of Marius ; the latter flees to Africa,
while Sulla leaves for Asia.
Marius returns, lays siege to Rome, and takes it; his
soldiers slay his enemies and plunder the city; Marius,
without regular election, assumes the powers of a consul,
but soon dies. His successor stands illegally as consul for
three successive years, without being regularly elected.
Both Marius and his followers support the measures of the
Gracchi.
Sulla, victorious over Mithridates, dictates terms of
peace, and returns to Italy 83 B.C. He there reconquers
the Marian party, enters Rome with his troops, and has
more than 4000 of his enemies put to death by his sole
order. At his own suggestion, he is made dictator for so
long time as he shall think fit ; he gives thousands of his
soldiers grants of land in Italy. After two years, in which
he seeks to strengthen the power of the Senate, he resigns
the Dictatorship, and soon after dies (78 B.C.).
STUDY ON I a.
Look over the wars and disturbances of the period, and tell how
many and of what kinds they were. Judging from these wars and
disturbances, what classes of people find themselves injured or
oppressed by Roman rule? What causes for these disturbances are
to be found in the Punic period ? What class or classes of people are
REPUBLICAN ROME, POST-PUNIC PERIOD. 173
to be benefited by each measure of the Gracchi? What class or
classes would oppose each, and why ? Which measure seems to you
bad, and why ? Into what parties are the people divided by the ** Dis-
sensions of the Gracchi"? What constitutional organization repre-
sents each ? Which is the radical party ? Which the conservative ?
In this case, which was the party of reform? Why should the
Romans so violently oppose the Italian enfranchisement? What
would the Italians gain by it? What faults of moral character dis-
played by the Romans in this period ? What great differences do you
see between the political life of Rome in the time of the Gracchi and
that life before and during the Punic period ?
How do the followers of Marius and Sulla break the laws of Rome ?
In whose hands is the actual power during the civil wars of these two
generals? What necessities of Rome force power into their hands ?
1. bm Summary of Leading Events, 78-27 B.C.
Marian revolts against the government of Sulla
in Italy and Spain are put down by Pompey. A
revolt of the gladiator-slaves of Italy is suppressed
78
TO
60.
by Crassus and Pompey. Pompey and Crassus both de-
sire to stand for the consulship ; the Senate cannot legally
grant this; but both are at the gates of Rome with their
armies, and both are chosen to the desired office, each
keeping an army near at hand.
Cilician pirates render the Mediterranean and its coasts
very dangerous for commerce and travel ; Pompey is
chosen to subdue them, and given for the purpose abso-
lute dictatorial power. In three months he renders the
sea perfectly safe.
A second war with Mithridates breaks out, and Pompey,
cbosen to end it, is appointed dictator for the East ; vic-
torious, he turns Pontus, Syria, and Cilicia into Roman
provinces (66-61).
A conspiracy to burn and plunder Rome, headed by
Catiline, is discovered and defeated by the eloquence
and detective skill of Cicero.
174 STUDIBS IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
eo
TO
•7.
Julius Csssar, Pompey, and Crassus agree to
help each other to gain the office which each
wishes from Rome (First Triumvirate). Caesar
is made consul, and introduces new laws for the dis-
tribution of land among the poor, especially among
the families of soldiers (60-59 B.C.). He conquers
Gaul and makes of it a Roman province. CaBsar and
Pompey, supported by their respective armies, contend
for the chief power at Rome; the contest ends by the
victory of Caesar at Pharsalus (48). (War9 of the First
Triumvirate.)
After Cbnquering the Pompeians in the provinces, Caesar
returns to Rome, is appointed dictator for ten years, and
soon after, for life. In this office he accomplishes, or
urges on, the following measures: (a) the giving of
Roman citizenship to Hither Gaul, and to some of the
communities of Farther Gaul and Spain; (6) the intro-
duction of provincials (Gauls) into the Senate; (c) a
reform of the calendar, which has sufficed ever since ; ((2)
the survey of the whole empire; (e) the planting of
Roman colonies in the provinces; (/) various public
works for the improvement of Rome and Italy.
Caesar is accused of aiming at kingly power, and a con-
spiracy is formed against him. He is slain by its leaders,
Brutus and Cassius. His friend, Mark Antony, and his
adopted heir and nephew, Octavian Caesar, together with
a certain Lepidus, agree to divide his power among them.
Both parties gather troops; but those of Brutus and
Cassius are utterly defeated at Philippi (42). Civil
war between the Triumvirs themselves ensues, but
is ended by the victory of Octavian Caesar at Actium
(31 B.C.).
Octavian becomes Augustus Caesar, the first Emperor of
Rome (27 B.C.).
REPUBLICAN ROME, POST-PUNIC PERIOD.
175
STUDY ON I, a AND 6.
What wrongs and weaknesses of Roman rule are indicated by 6 ?
Name in order the successive leaders oi the party of the Gracchi up
to 27 B.C. By what means do these men and their opponents gain
their power in the state? What necessity forces the state to allow
them this power ; illustrate from Marius, Sulla, Pompey. What other
means are employed to gain power during the whole period 146-27 ?
[Gracchi and Cicero.] What sort of force does the emperor repre-
sent? On what class of people is he dependent for his power?
Which of the two parties of the period does he represent ? Name in order
the men who hold imperial power from 146-27. Name in order the
affairs which show the weakness of the Roman government. [Note
the length of time of the disturbances at home compared with the
foreign wars under Marius, Sulla, Ponapey.] In what direction is it
strongest?
2. List of Noteworthy Men and Works of Post^FUnic
Period.
Contemporaries of Cicero (106-48 B.C.) marked *.
Ntan;
Birth, ClreumMtanc€.
CaifM of FaiM,
♦Antony, Mark,
Roman of consu-
lar rank, but
poor.
See 1. 6.
*Bnitu8 and
Roman
patrician.
Seel. 6.
♦Cassias,
Roman plebeian.
See 1.6.
•Caeaar. Julius,
Roman
Author of military and historical com-
patrician.
mentaries on the Gallic wars ; Bee 1 6.
♦Catullus,
Verona; of a
Lyric poet, at first following Greek
wealthy and
models.
notable family.
•Cicero,
Latium; knight.
Senatorial orator ; forensic pleader ;
author of essays on friendship, old
age, the gods, and other abstract sub-
jects ; his written orations are mas-
terpieces of elegant and effective
eloquence.
176
STUDIES IN GEKEBAL HISTORY.
Name,
Cause of Fame.
Gracchus, Gaias,
Roman
patrician.
See 1. a.
Gracchus,
Roman
See 1. a.
Tiberius,
patrician.
Lucrt^tius,
Rome; of an-
Philosophical poet; his philosophy
cient family ;
founded on the atheistic teaching of
knight(?).
Epicurus.
Marius,
Latium ;
plebeian.
Seel. a.
•Nepos,
Cisalpine Gaul. .^
Historian and biographer.
Cornelius,
♦Pompey,
Patrician.
See 1. b.
•Sallust,
Land of the
Historian of Catiline's conspiracy
Sabines ;
and the Jugurthine wars ; imitated
plebeian.
Greek models.
Sulla,
Roman patrician.
Seel. a.
♦Varro,
Land of the Sa-
Author of works on agriculture and
bines; plebe-
history; the "most learned of the
ian ; family of
Romans."
senatorial
rank.
During this time new and important roads were built
in Italy itself, and extended to Gaul, Spain, and Mace-
donia; the draining of the great Italian marshes was
undertaken ; the old aqueducts were repaired, and new
ones built; new bridges were constructed; a new fish-
market and forum were made at Rome; and the Great
Circus was enlarged. All these works were inaugurated
and executed by the Roman magistrates.
STUDY ON 2.
Of the works of this period, which do you consider as peculiarly
Roman ? (Conjpare with the lists on pp. 96, 162.) What element
nEPUBUCAN ROME, POST-l»UNlC PERIOD. 177
of character causes tbe Romans to produce and care for such works ?
In what sorts of activity do the greatest Romans earn Iheir fame ?
What class produces, on the whole, the greatest men of this period ?
Whence comes the literary greatness of Rome, and how is it in-
fluenced ? What literary works are original to Rome ?
S. lUusinUive Extrtucta frmn Contemporary and Origin
nal Sources.
a. The Jugurthine War, (Abridged from Sallust.)
Now Jugurtha ^^ despatched ambassadors to Rome, with a
profusion of gold and silver. . . . When these deputies had
arrived at Rome, and had sent large presents, according to the
prince's direction, ... so remarkable a change ensued, that
Jugurtha, from being an object of the greatest odium, grew
into great regard and favor with the nobility. . . . When the
ambassadors, accordingly, felt sure of success, the senate, on
a fixed day, gave audience to both parties. On that occasion,
Adhcrbal . . . spoke to the following effect : —
" ' My father, Micipsa, Conscript Fathers, enjoined me ... to
consider the right and authority- as belonging to you ; . . . and
to regard you as m}' kindred and relatives, saying, that ... I
should find, in 30ur friendship, armies, riches, and all necessary
defenses of my realm. By these precepts I was proceeding to
regulate m}^ conduct, when Jugurtha . . . expelled me, . . . the
hereditary friend and ally of the Roman people, from my king-
dom and all my possessions. ... It is what you bestowed that
has been wrested from me ; in my wrongs you are insulted. . . .
I implore you, therefore. Conscript Fathers ... by the majesty
of the Roman people, ... to aiTest the progress of injustice,
and not to suffer the kingdom of Numidia ... to sink into
ruin . . .* " The ambassadors of Jugurtha were then heard,
and the senate proceeded to deliberate. " Yet that party gained
the superiorit}' . . . which preferred money and interest to jus-
tice," and the kingdom was divided in the interests of Jugurtha.
When, at last, the outrages of Jugurtha in Africa were
reported at Rome, . . . ^' the senate . . . from consciousness of
178 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
misconduct, became afraid of the people . . . An army was
then raised to be sent into Africa." On its arrival, both ite
commanders were tempted by Jugurtha with bribes, and were
"seduced, by a vast sum of money, from integrity and honor
to injustice and perfidy, . . . and the next day Jugurtha was
formally allowed to surrender [on terms very favorable to him-
self] .... When rumor had made known the affairs transacted
in Africa, and the mode in which they had been brought to pass,
. . . among the people, there was violent indignation ; as to the
senators, whether they would ratify so flagitious a proceeding,
or annul the act of the consul, was a matter of doubt. At
this juncture a tribune of the people entreated them to bring
the senators to judgment and to fetch Jugurtha to Rome as a
witness." Jugurtha was accordingly brought, but " purchased,
by a vast bribe, the aid of ... a tribune of the people, by whose
audacity he hoped to be protected against the law." When
Jugurtha was called upon to give his testimony, this tribune
" enjoined the prince to hold his peace ; and though the multi-
tude . . . were desperately enraged, ... bis audacity was at
last triumphant. The people, mocked and set at naught, with-
drew from the place of assembly; and the confidence of
Jugurtha . . . was greatly augmented." Soon after, Jugurtha
was ordered by the senate to quit Italy, and the war was con-
tinued under new commanders, of whom the best was Metellus.
"When he arrived in Africa, the command of the army was
resigned to him. . . . But neither had the camp been fortified,
nor the watches kept ; . . . every one had been allowed to leave
his post when he pleased. The camp-followers, mingled with
the soldiers, wandered about day and night, ravaging tlie
countrj', robbing the houses, . . . carrying off cattle and slaves,
which they exchanged with traders for foreign wine and other
luxuries." Metellus at once gave " a general order that no one
should sell bread, or any other dressed provisions, in the camp ;
. . . and that no common soldier should have a servant, or
beast of burden. ... He moved his camp daily, exercising the
soldiers by marches across the country ; he fortified it with a
KEPUBLICAN ROME, POST-PUNIC PERIOD. 179
rampart and a trench, exactly as if the enemy had been at
hand. . . . Thus, by preventing rather than punishing irregu-
larities, he in a short time rendered his army effective," and
prosecuted the war with vigor.
But now as his lieutenant Caius Marius was one day '' sacri-
ficing to the gods, an augur told him that great and wonderful
things were presaged to him," and having ardently desired the
consulship, he asked for leave of absence to offer himself a
candidate at Home. This Metellus refused to give. From
that time Marius ^^ allowed the soldiers . . . more relaxation
of discipline than he had ever granted them before. He talked
of the war among merchants ; . . . saying ' that if but half of
the army were granted him, he would, in a few days, have
Jugurtha in chains ; but that the war was purposely protracted
by the consul.' " He then induced ' ' both soldiers and merchants
to write to their friends at Rome, ... to intimate that Marius
sbonld be appointed general. The common people at Rome,
having learned the contents of these letters," voted that Marius
should be general in the African War, and thus rendered use-
less the previous decree of the senate, which had given it to
Metellus. "Nor did the senate . . . dare to refuse him any
thing," while the people themselves felt an ardent desire to
serve under Marias. "Every one cherished the fancy that he
should return home laden with spoil ... or attended with some
similar good fortune. Marius himself, too, had excited them
in no small degree" by speaking as follows: "They reproach
me as being mean, and of unpolished manners, because, for-
sooth, I have but little skill in arranging an entertainment, and
keep no actor, nor give my cook higher wages than my steward ;
all which charges I must, indeed, acknowledge to be just. . . .
But let the nobility, if they please, pursue what is delightful
and dear to them ; let them devote themselves to . . . revelry
and feasting, the slaves of gluttony and debauchery ; but let
them leave the toil and dust of the field ... to us, to whom
they are more grateful than banquets." Setting out for Africa,
he continued the war with success; "his soldiers, kept under
180 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
mild discipline and enriched with spoil, extolled him to the
skies." Among his officers, the most famous was Sulla, who
became, in a short time, " the most expert of the whole army.
He was, besides, affable to the soldiers, and . . . conversed
jocosely as well as seriously with the humblest; ... he was
their frequent companion at their works, on the march and on
guard." By the aid of Sulla, Jugurtha was captured, and
Marins returned to Rome, having ended the war.
STUDY ON 3, a.
What was the real relation of Numidia to Rome? Why was not
Rome able to defend Adherbal ? What other source of Roman weak-
ness appeared on the arrival of Metellus in Africa? What did the
Romans seem to be caring for at this time ? What proofs that this
was general in all classes ? Compare this with the state of afEairs in
the Punic period. What two parties were there now in Rome? What
seemed to distinguish each according to Marias? What assembly
represented each? -Which was the stronger, and why? What proof
have we of its superior strength ? In what did the strength of the
other consist ? What feeling seemed to be the cause of the displace-
ment of Metellus by Mai-ius? By what means did Marius gain power
and influence? By what, Sulla? Name all the ways in which the
Roman power is seen to be weakened and endangered in the events
of the Jugurthine War. By whom was she thus weakened and
endangered ?
h. Extracts from Cicero's Orations in Behalf of the Sicilians
against Verres, who had been sent to SicUy as Praetor,
" While this man was praetor ... no legal decision for three
years was given on any other ground but his will ; no property
was so secure to any man, even if it had descended to him
from his father and grandfather, but he was deprived of it at
his command. . . . Roman citizens were tortured and put to
death like slaves ; the greatest criminals were acquitted in the
courts of justice through bribery ; . . . the most fortified har-
bors, the greatest and strongest cities, were laid open to pirates
and robbers ; the sailors and soldiers of the Sicilians, our own
REPUBLICAN ROME, POST-PUNIC PERIOD. 181
allies and friends, died of hunger ; the best built fleets on the
most important stations were lost and destroyed, to the great
disgrace of the Roman people. This same man, ... in Acbaea
demanded money from a Sicyouian magistrate. Do not let this
be considered a crime in Verres ; others have done the same.
When he could not give it, he punished him ; a scandalous, but
not an unheard of act. Listen to the sort of punishment. . . .
He ordered a fire to be made of green and damp wood in a nar-
row place. There he left a free man, a noble in his own coun-
try, an ally and friend of the Roman people, tortured with
smoke, half dead. . . . But the storming of that most ancient
and most noble temple of the Samian Juno, how grievous was
it to the Samians ! how bitter to all Asia ! . . . And when am-
bassadors had come from Samos into Asia ... to complain of
this attack on that temple, tliey received for answer, that com-
plaints of that sort . . . must be carried to Rome. ..."
'^ Heraclius is ... a Syracusan ; a man among the very first
for nobility of family, and, before Verres came, . . . one of the
most wealthy of the Syracusans. . . . An Inheritance of at
least three millions of sesterces came to him, ... the house
was full of silver plate exquisitely carved, of abundance of
embroidered robes, and of most valuable slaves. . . . An action
is brought in due form against Heraclius. . . . Judges are ap-
pointed, whomsoever Verres chooses. ... He commands them
to condemn Heraclius. ... So they condemn him. What is
the meaning of this madness? . . . The first measures which
are taken are to carry whatever chased plate there was among
that property to Verres: as for all Corinthian vessels, all
embroidered robes, no one doubted that they would be taken
and seized, and earned inevitably to his house. The land
of the province of Sicily liable to the payment of taxes is
deserted through the avarice of that man. . . . Wherefore . . .
O judges, you can easily see that Sicily, that most productive
and most desirable province, has been lost to the Roman people,
unless you recover it by your condemnation of that man.
182 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
For what is Sicily if you take awa}' the cultivation of its land,
and if you extinguish the multitude and the very name of the
cultivators of the soil ? . . . All the provinces are mourning ; all
the nations that are free are complaining; every kingdom is
expostulating with us about our covetousness and our injustice ;
. . . the Roman people is now no longer able to bear . . . the
mourning, the tears, and the complaints of all foreign nations."
STUDY ON 3, b.
What injury did Verres inflict upon the treasury of Rome? Upon
her power ? Upon her reputation ? Upon her territory ? Upon
religious faith of men? How did he inflict each of these injuries?
What proof from Cicero's speech that Verres was not the only case
of such a provincial governor ? What reason do we find in Verres'
conduct for the eagerness for foreign office among the Romans?
What do these extracts show to have been a ruling passion with many
Romans? In what other case have you seen the same thing?
What do the cases of the Jugurthine War and the management of
Sicily indicate as to the rule of Rome in her provinces ? What faults
had it?
c. The Rise of Julius Ccesar. (Abridged from Suetonius.)
^^ Julius Caesar, the Divine, . . . lost his father when he was
but sixteen ; shortly after, he married Cornelia, the daugh-
ter of a famous Marian leader; Sulla, being then dictator,
desired him to divorce her ; but Caesar, resolutely resisting, lost
his ofl3ce, his estates, his wife's dowry, and was forced to with-
draw from Rome." After changing his place of concealment
nearly every night, although he was suffering from ague, and
having effected his release by bribing the oflScers who had
tracked his footsteps, he at length obtained a pardon through
the intercession of the vestal virgins, and of . . . his near rela-
tives. After Sulla's death he returned to Rome, where he
obtained several successive minor ofl3ces from the people. Dur-
ing this time "he not only embellished the Fonim, with the
adjoining halls, but adorned the Capitol also, with temporary
piazzas, constructed for the pui*pose of displaying some part of
REPUBLICAN ROME, POST-PUNIC PERIOD. 183
the superabundant collections he had made for the amusement
of the people. He entertained them [also] with the hunting of
wild beasts, and with games. . . . Having thus conciliated
popular favor, he endeavored ... to get Egypt assigned to him
as a province, by an act of the people. . . . But . . . there
was so much opposition from the faction of the nobles, that he
could not caiTy his point. In order, therefore, to diminish
their influence ... he restored the trophies erected in honour of
Gains Marius, which had been demolished by Sulla. . . . Hav-
ing renounced all hope of obtaining Egypt for his province, he
stood candidate for the ofl3ce of chief pontiff, to secure which
he had recourse to the most profuse briberj*. . . . After he
was chosen praBtor, the conspiracy of Catiline was discovered ;
and while every other member of the Senate voted for inflicting
capital punishment on the accomplices in that crime he alone
proposed that the delinquents should be distributed for safe
custody among the towns of Itah*, their propertj' being confis-
cated. He stood for this, until some knights standing near
threatened him with instant death and even thrust at him with
swords; whereupon he withdrew, and absented himself from
the Senate " during the remainder of that year." Afterward,
finding that *' preparations were made to obstruct him by force
of arms" in the discharge of his duties, "he betook himself
privately to his own house, with the resolution of being quiet
in a time so unfavorable. ... He likewise pacified the mob,
which ... in a riotous manner made a voluntary tender of
their assistance. . . . This happening contrary to expectation,
the Senate . . . gave him their thanks."
On becoming consul " he introduced a new regulation : that
the daily acts botli of the Senate and people should be com-
mitted to writing and published." He also divided certain
Campanian land " among upwards of 20,000 freemen, who had
each of them three or more children." During the nine years
in which he held the government of Gaul, he reduced it all to
the form of a province. " He was the first of the Romans who,
dossing the Rhine by a bridge, attacked the Germanic tribes.
184 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
... He also invaded the Britons, a people formerly unknown.
. . . With money raised from the spoils of the war, he began
to construct a new forum . . . and promised the people a public
entertainment of gladiators and a feast . . . such as no one
before him had ever given. The more to raise their expecta-
tions on this occasion, although he had agreed with victuallers
of all denominations for his feast, he made yet farther prepara-
tions in private houses. . . . Young gladiators he trained up,
not in the school and by the masters of defense, but in the
houses of Roman knights, and even senators, skilled in the use
of arms, ... He doubled the pay of the legions in perpetuity,
allowing them, likewise, grain, when it was in plenty, without
any restriction, and sometimes distributing to every soldier in
his arm}' a slave and a portion of land. . . . Every person
about him, and a great portion, likewise, of the Senate, he
secured 1)}' loans of money at low interest or none at all ; and
to. all others who came to wait upon him, either by invitation or
of their own accord, he made liberal presents, not neglecting
even the freedmen and slaves. ... He endeavored with equal
assiduity to engage in his interest princes and provinces in
every part of the world, presenting some with thousands of
captives, and sending to others the assistance of troops . . .
without any authority from either the Senate or people of Rome.
He . . . embellished with magnificent public buildings the most
powerful cities, not only of Italy, Gaul, and Spain, but of
Greece and Asia; until, all people being now astonished, and
speculating on the obvious tendency of these proceedings, . . .
the consul . . . made a motion in the Senate that some person
should be appointed to succeed Csesar in his province, before
the term of his command was expired." Csesar, underetanding
that this measure proceeded from Pompey, " wrote a letter to
the Senate, requesting that they would not deprive him of the
privilege kindly granted him b}- the people," or else that Pom-
pey should resign the command of his army, as well as himself.
But the Senate declined to interpose, and his enemies consented
to no compromise. Csesar advanced into Hither Gaul with his
liEPUBLlCAN HOME, POST-PUNIC PElilOD. 186
troops, aud, after once more failing to arrange matters at Bome«
crossed the Rubicon, — the southern boundary of Ids own prov-
ince, — and *' with tears in his eyes, and his garment rent from
his bosom, called upon the troops to pledge him their fidelitj'."
After becoming perpetual dictator, he gave money and land
to all the veterans of his infantry ; and to the Roman populace,
wheat and oil and money. To all this he added a public enter-
tainment and a distribution of meat, and, after his Spanish
victory, two public dinners.
"... His thoughts were now fully employed from day to day
on a variety of great projects for the embellishment and im-
provement of the city, as well as for guarding and extending
the bounds of the empire. In the first place, he meditated the
construction of a temple to Mars, which should exceed in
grandeur everything of that kind in the world. ... He also
projected a most spacious theatre . . . ; and also proposed to
reduce the civil law to a reasonable compass, and out of that
immense and undigested mass of statutes to extract the best
and most necessar}^ parts into a few books, to make as large a
collection as possible of works in the Greek and Latin lan-
guages, for the public use. ... He intended, likewise, to
drain the Pontine marshes, to cut a channel for the discharge
of the waters of the Lake Fucinus, to form a road from the
upper sea through the ridge of the Apenniue to the Tiber, and
to make a cut through the isthmus of Corinth. . . . But in the
midst of all his undertakings and projects, he was earned off by
death."
• ««*«*•
'* He was so nice in the care of his person, that he . . . kept
the hair of his head closely cut, and had his face smoothly
shaved. . . . His baldness gave him much uneasiness. . . .
He therefore used to bring forward the hair from the crown of
his head ; and of all the honors confeired u[X)n him by the
Senate and the people, there was none which he either accepted
or used with greater pleasure, than the right of wearing con-
stantly a laurel crown. ... In regard to wine, he was abste-
186 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOUY.
mions. ... In the matter of diet, ... he was 8o indifferent
that, when a person in whose house he was entei-tained had
served him with stale instead of fresh oil, and the rest of the
company would not touch it, he alone ate very heartily of it,
that he might not seem to tax the master of the house with rus-
ticity or want of attention. . . . Cicero, in recounting to Brutus
the famous orators, declares, ' that he does not see that Caesar
was inferior to any one of them,' and says ' that he had an
elegant, noble, and magnificent vein of eloquence.' . . . On a
march, he used to go at the head of his troops, sometimes on
horseback, but oftener on foot, with his head bare in all kinds of
weather. He would travel post ... at the rate of a hundred miles
a day ; and if he were stopped by floods in the rivers, he swam
across, or floated on skins inflated with wind. . . . He never
marched his army by roads which were exposed to ambuscades,
without having previously examined the nature of the ground by
his scouts. Nor did he cross over to Britain before he had
carefully examined in person the navigation, the harbors, and
the most convenient point of landing in the island. . . . He was
never deterred from any enterprise, nor retarded in the prosecu-
tion of it, by superstition. When a victim which he was
about to offer in sacrifice made its escape, he did not therefore
defer his expedition." In his speeches he always addressed his
men as ''fellow-soldiers," and loved them **to such a degree
that, when he heard of the defeat of those under Titurius, he
neither cut his hair nor shaved his beard until he had revenged
it. . . . Upon his entering on the civil war, . . . the whole
army agreed to serve gratis, without either corn or pay, those
amongst them who were rich charging themselves with the
maintenance of the poor. No one of them, during the whole
course of the war, deserted to the enemy ; and many of those
who were made prisoners, though they were offered their lives
upon condition of bearing arms against him, refused to accept
the terms." Pompey, when besieged by the Csesarians, *' upon
seeing a sort of bread made of an herb which they lived upon,
said, ' I have to do with wild beasts,' and ordered it immediately
REPUBLICAN ROME, POST-PUNIC PERIOD. 187
to be taken away, because, if his troops should see it, their
spirit might be broken by perceiving the endurance and the
determined resolution of the enemy. . . . When he had placed
himself at the head of affairs, he advanced some of his faithful
adherents, though of mean extraction, to the highest offices. . . .
" On the' field of Pharsalia he called out to the soldiers ' to
spare their fellow-citizens,' and afterwards gave permission to
every man in his army to save an enemy. . . . And, finall}^ a
little before his death, he permitted all whom he had not before
pardoned, to return into Italy, and to bear offices both civil and
military. He even replaced the statues of Sulla and Pompey,
which had l3een thrown down by the populace. ... He not only
obtained excessive honors, such as the consulship every year,
the dictatorship for life, and the censorship, but also the title
of Emperor, and the surname of Father of his Country. . . .
He even suffered some honors to be decreed to him which were
unbefitting the most exalted of mankind ; such as . . . temples,
altars, statues among the gods, ... a priest, and a college
of priests dedicated to himself. ... He admitted into the
Senate . . . even natives of Gaul, who were barbarians. . . .
Upon the admission of foreigners into the Senate, a handbill
was posted up, in these words: 'A good deed! let no man
show a new senator the way to the house.' "
The magistrates, the soldiers, the citizens, and the matrons
united in paying the honors of his funeral, and " in this public
mourning there joined a multitude of foreigners, expressing
their sorrow according to the fashion of their respective
countries." The people erected in his honor a column of
Numidian marble, placing it in the Forum. At this column
they continued for a long time to offer sacrifices, make vows,
and decide controversies, in which the}- swore by Caesar. The
Senate also ranked him among the gods by a formal decree.
STUDY ON 3, c.
Make a list of all the qualities of character displayed by Csesar.
Of these, which gave Caesar power? Which were unfavorable to him?
What material means did he employ to gain power ? What was the
188 STUDIES IN GBNfiRAI^ HISTOBY.
final and decisive means by which he won it ? What does the fact
that he could gain power by such means show of the people of Rome ?
What difference between him and the other party-leaders we have
seen? In what was he their sujierior? What party did he represent?.
What classes of people did he favor? What was his attitude towards
Provincials? Proofs. What classes of people would you expect to
favor and support Caesar? Why? What was his object in life?
In how many ways was Csesar great ? What opinion have you of the
way he gained his power? Of the way he used it? Give reasons for
each opinion from the facts before you. What was the reason for the
opposition to Caesar? Why was he killed? What men may be
regarded as the predecessors of Caesar in Rome? Was his death
a fortune or misfortune to Rome? Why? What do we learn of
religion at Rome from the life of Julius Caesar ? Compare his career
with that of Pisistratus.
d, . Extracts Illustrative of Thought of the Time,
' ' The custom of reverence for, and discipline and rights of,
the augnrs, and the autliority of the college, are still retained
for the sake of their influence on the minds of the common
people." Bnt *' how pitiful is the nature of a science, which
pretends that the eccentric motions of birds are full of ominous
import, and that all manner of things must be done, or left
undone, as their flights and songs maj' indicate ! . . . How,
when, and by whom were such absurd regulations as these
invented? . . . Such signs may be easily explained by refer-
ence to the laws of nature." — Cicero,
" We may be assured . . . that it makes not the least diflFer-
ence to a man, when immortal death has ended his moital life,
that he was ever bom at all." — Lucretius,
" Alas ! I am ashamed of our scars and our wickedness. . . .
What have we, a hardened age, avoided? What have we in
our impiety left unviolated? From what have our youth re-
strained their hands, out of reverence to the gods? What
altars have they spared ? "
« • « « • « «
'^ The palace-like edifices will in a short time leave bat a few
acres for the plough ; . . . then banks of violets, and myrtle-
REPtTBLlCAN KOMBl, tOST-PUNiC PERIOD. 189
groves, and all the tribe of nosegays shall difilise their odors in
the olive plantations, which were fruitful to their preceding
master. ... It was not so prescribed by the institutes of
Romulus, and the unshaven Cato, and ancient custom. Then
private income was contracted, while that of the community
was great."
"Who can fear the Parthian? Who, the frozen Scythian?
Who, the progeny that i*ough Germany produces, while Caesar
is in safety ? . . . Every man puts a period to the day amidst
his own hills, and weds the vine to the widowed elm-trees;
hence he returns joyful to his wine, and invites thee [Csesar],
as a deity, to his second course ; thee with many a prayer, thee
he pursues with wine poured out [in libation] from the cups ;
and joins thy divinity to that of his household gods." — Horace.
STUDY ON d.
Considering Cioero a typical cultured Roman of his age, how did
men of culture regard the popular faith ? What was apparently the
attitude of the common people towards it? What does the extract
from Lucretius indicate ? Each of the extracts from Horace ? What
relation between each of the extracts given under cf, and the facts
or characteristics noticed in the later Punic period ?
GENERAL STUDY ON ROMAN REPUBLIC.
What single ideal had the Romans during the whole Republican
period? Give instances from each period. What new ideals were
added? When? How did the ideal of manners change during this
time? Of morals? Of culture? What will you select as the most
typically Roman age of the Republic ? Why ? What as the time of
its greatest glory ? Why ? What causes can you give for the fall
of the Republic ? When did these causes begin to act ? What part
of the civilization of Rome was Roman? Whence came the rest?
What general statement can you make as to the way in which Rome
secured her dominion? In what order did she win it? In what
period was religion least prominent ?
fhesUr
BauLngriC
den . ,
ptrtcbt
ologne
£oblenx
•1
iOH^r
11
'■■/;
>tr a abo urcf^^Ae (ftn sBof^
'*Turin
»MJt
-^^
u^
Rome
CApuB
I
n
nil
Bri+tania
is: Vindelica
IZI NorJcum
inr Ihl.a
liflll Pannonla.
I£ lll^ricum
X Da cm
Xt Motsia
XIL Eptru^
t^T'ca&c
3nr Macedonia
XETAchflia
XS: Thracia
l[YTTLyd:d
xynrcaria
3JS: Lycia
3X Biihynia
~XXl Phrygia
"KXyiGslalia
jyCYT Pamphylia
:XXVIlLycaQo1a
^xvinc;i;cia
XXTX Armema JtASIlL Arabia
XXX. M e^o pola F»i aJUULBL Cy r&na Tea
'XXXr Syria XJUJ Atrka
ZKXnrCappaJociaXSXIIEgypt tXXSSLNumJdU
N. B.— The]
I of towns appcor I
Roman Empire underTRAjAN - aboui iit a.d.
^^y^y:^:<>X>: ™ Western Empire of later Vim es,
JSSSSSSi^saS^ ^ E^sferri Empire , ..
# t= Towns of Oriertfnl foundation,
* '^ 11 *► Greek m
, iwt tlielr Bomaii, forms.
192 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOKY.
C. L 8TDDT OH THE PAOAH EMPIEE— AUaUSTUS TO
OOHSTAHTIHE, 27 B.C. -328 A.D.
Chief contemporary authorities : Seneca, Suetonius,
Tacitus, the two Plinys, the New Testament, Dion Cassius,
Justin Martyr, Tertullian, Lactantius, the contemporary
poets (see lists), the monuments and inscriptions of the
empire found throughout its extent.
Chief modern historians accessible in English : Gibbon,
Merivale, Duruy.
QUESTIONS ON MAP.
What parts of the empire are most strongly under Roman influ-
ence? Greek and Oriental? In what countries are vhese three
influences 4nixed ? By what fact do you judge of influence ? What
countries of modern Europe formed parts of the Roman Empire?
Compare the location of the cities of modern Europe with the foun-
dations of the empire. What great cities of Europe do not owe
their foundation to the empire or to Greeks and Orientals ? Name
the four cities of the empire which are greatest to-day. What re-
lation does the Mediterranean hold to the lands of the empire?
What two facts in i regard to the foundation of cities indicate that
there was much commerce between the various parts of the empire ?
What provinces of Rome were uncivilized before their conquest?
What provinces were civilized? How far are the boundaries of the
empire natural ?
STITDY ON THE PAGAK BMPIBE.
193
42
I
<2)
Ok
s
1
Is Pontifex
Maximus
(chief high
priest). After
death becomes
a deity to be
adored
throughout the
empire.
•
^
Holds the powers of
Censor, Consul, Tri-
bune; is chief (Prince)
of the Senate; ap-
points provincial gov-
ernors, and, shortly
after Augustus, recom-
mends candidates for
all magistracies ; de-
crees public works,
and furnishes the free
3
t
1
1
ii
!
Arranges and
decrees the
taxes, controls
the treasury,
which also
supports him.
S
a
1
Proposes all
measures to
the Senate.
i
u
1
Declares peace and
war; commands
the armies ; Im-
perator (emperor).
1
s
ft
1
Emperor, any Ro-
man citizen, cho-
sen by consent of
Senate, citizens,
and soldiers.
Council of State,!
private advisors
or friends of the
emperor, chosen
by himseli from
any class.
s
o
I
a
08
s
at
08
00
194
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
"I i :^
-^1
♦^ 6« ^ a*
."S o g^ o
2 § -g e
*r? ^^ A. O
a> oj P
'55 « 4> 2 ^
P-I
o
Ji
c
§
So 2 §
O 08
O O
K
° • s
.2 a> »
o « o c
♦- o ca o
a> o 7?
•2 j= c g
g.
S a> o c
w o o s
o € C 5
C o o Ph
2 S S '2 ^
t5 5 ** o a
S s S & T
III
°: a
? ° §
* •» (:
» .2 * •
rS ■« "2 C
-i^ oj O SI
§ S
^ g s a
s
<5
i o^" &-S ^i
jr a> g g S M o
o ••» a
s a> 0) ^
^ o 6
4/ 2! ^ .3
■*-• cj C 2
1-^
I
i ^ t
^ ^ ♦^
-fl * o S
5
•
II
i> S O
ens,
of the
ts of
ndof
have
e citi-
r ob-
hrough
avor.
6
1.
NU)Cao^o«-'«M
bo
•■SPiSoT-^^ .♦'^
•S '5 ^ C ^ ♦* c^ '^ *
08
ii iitui
1
c
1 8 ^ « 5 i 1 3 .1
>
P
o
K
i^
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE.
IftS
I
88 ■*^ *J J3 *o ♦*
-- ^ ^ -s o g g
1 i ° '^ s g §
^ -5 g 0) S S p.
^ -3 o §j I o a
--; «M 'O d cj W «
'I *
^1
Pi ^
ft
o
Pi
e tt C ifc w o s
3 O o8 > P* TS 2
'2 -2
O Of
is i I
•c
•A
*a
d
I
u
O
a
08
i
o
I
o
P4
S
o
I
I
p
I
I
g
ft
♦* _» * BB
Is 1 1
8.2 .
-» »' a>
<1
S 2 i * ^
4> «»H «M ^
bo o o "T: ^
I
o P
S 'a %
n:; p &A fl
M «8 *:: o
e § § «
2 ^
>jC CO o
- a - .§
•2 __ CO Cl
•sill
lis""
I? I
I ° o
i a §
196
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON I.
Note two things which are the same throughout the empire, by its
organization. Into whose hands has the power of the republican mag-
istrates passed? Of the republican assemblies? Name two things
which sustain this power. What name will you give to this form of
government ? What is the apparent object of holding the provinces ?
What differences between the imperial and the republican armies of
Rome ? What name is given to such a sort of army as that of the
empire? With such a constitution on what does Rome depend for
good or bad government? The inhabitants of the empire gain the
rights of Romans by entering what class? What people conquered by
Rome had a religion which would not admit of the adoration of Rome
and the emperor ?
2. Imperial List*
Less important emperors omitted, but indicated by a *.
Name and
Date.
Birth and
Circumstance,
Source of
Imperial Power.
Famous Works.
Eoenta and Changes.
Augustus,
Of wealthy
Relationship
Survey of
Conquest of Vende-
27 B.C. -
plebeian
to and
the whole
lica, Rhaetia, and
14 A.l).
family of
adoption by
empire;
Pannonia; Romans
equestrian
Julius
building of
defeated in Germany
rank
Caesar; vic-
roads, ca-
by Arminius (Her-
(knight),
tory in the
nals, aque-
mann); birth of
and Italian
civil war
ducts, and
Christ (4 or 6 ii.c.).'
origin ;
against
baths (see
soldier and
Mark
Agrippa,
general.
Antony.
under 3).
Tiberius,
Of old patri-
Adoption by
Securing and
Election of city
14-37.
cian Roman
and relation
strengthen-
magistrates trans-
family; gen-
to Augus-
ing of the
ferred from the
eral, promi-
tus ; accept-
frontier
popular assemblies
nent in the
ed by the
lines of the
to the Senate; Christ
conquests of
Senate and
empire.
crucified.
Augustus.
the Prae-
*
torians.
* Modern criticism has discovered an error in the original date of the
^ear of our Lord; hence this apparent contradiction.
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMflBE.
m
Mame and
DaU,
Birth and
Circumstance.
Source of
Imperial Power.
FamouB Works.
Eoente and Clianges.
Claudius,
Grand-
Relationship
The Claudi-
Conquest of Southern
41-64.
nephew of
to Augus-
an aqueduct
Britain; admission
Augustus,
tus; choice
of Rome;
of Transalpine Gauls
bom at
of soldiers.
a new har-
to the Senate.
Lyons.
bor at Ostia.
Nero,
Latin;
Bribery of
A palace for
Visit of Paul to
64-68.
adopted
the soldiers
himself.
Rome ; the burning
grandson of
to proclaim
called the
of RomebyNero(?);
Tiberius.
him empe-
" Golden
the accusation and
ror; in-
House of
persecution of the
trigues of
Nero."
Christians for this
his mother.
crime.
• • •
• « •
« • «
« • «
Civil wars for impe-
rial office.
Vespasian^
Sabine, of
Proclamar
Baths of
Conquest of Judsa
70-79.
ordinary
tion by the
Titus, and
and the destruction
family;
eastern le-
the Colis-
of Jerusalem.
prominent
gions at
eum; tri-
in conquest
Alexandria ;
umphal arch
of Britain ;
victory over
of Titus for
commander
the armies
Jewish
in conquest
of his rival,
victory.
of Judaea.
and accep-
tance by
the Senate.
Titu»,
Son of Ves-
Birth; part-
Finished
Eruption of Vesu-
79-81
pasian; gen-
nership in'
Coliseum ;
vius; destruction of
eral in the
empire with
rebuilt at
Pompeii and Hercu-
East.
father; pro-
own expense
laneum; persecu-
clamation
the build-
tion of the Chris-
by legions
ings de-
tians.
and accep-
stroyed at
tance by
Rome by a
Senate.
three days'
fire.
198
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
PART OF THB OLAUDIAN AQUBOUOT.
Built under the Emperor Claudius, in order to bring tbe pure water of the Latin hiUi
to Rome. Tbe water ran tbrougb a stone channel supported on top of the arcbes; ItM
size and sbape may be seen at tbe broken end of the aqueduct in the foreground.
Name and
Date,
BirUi and
CIrcumBtanee.
Sourotof
Imperial Power.
Famous Works.
Eoents and Changes.
Domitian,
81-96.
Son of
Vespasian.
Birth; pro-
clamation
of soldiers
and accep-
tance of
Senate.
« « «
Final conquest of
Britain by his gen-
eral, Agricola.
Nerva,
Of Cretan
Election of
Author of
• • •
96-98.
extraction ;
the Senate ;
Agrarian
a senator.
consent of
the armies.
law, by
which large
tracts of
land were
boifght up,
and allotted
to poor citi-
zens; pro-
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE.
199
Erected for the accommodation of the Roman i)ooplo when they wished to see the
combats of gladiators, wild beasts, pugilists, and other entertainments furnished by the
emperors. The seats surrounded and looked down upon the arena from different heights.
The bnilding was planned to hold 80,000 spectators.
Name and
Date,
Birth and
CIreumatance.
Source of
Imperial Power.
FamouB Works.
Eoenta and Changes.
vided for
regular
mainten-
ance at pub-
lic cost of
the poor
children of
Italian
•
towns.
Trajan,
Spaniard; a
Adoption by
Line of de-
Conquered Dacia for
©8-117.
prominent
Nerva ;
fences from
the empire x>erma-
general in
popularity
the Rhine
nently; persecuted
the East
in the ar-
to the Dan-
the Christians in
200
STUDIES IK GEKKRAL HlSfOHY.
.Vame and
Datg.
Birth and
Source of
Imperial Power.
Famous Works.
EuenU and Changes.
and on the
mies, and
ube; aque-
the East.
Rhine.
acceptance
by the
Senate.
ducts in
provinces ;
bridges over
Danube and
other great
rivers; a
triumphal
column in
Rome;
roads and
fortresses
in Dacia ;
triumphal
arches to
celebrate
repair of
harbors and
roads.
Hadrian,
Of Italian
Related to
Built a for-
Reformed the disci-
117-138.
family long
his guard-
tified ram-
pline of the army ;
settled in
ian, Trajan,
part (Picts'
reduced the law of
Spain;
by birth
wall) across
Rome and Italy to a
general.
and mar-
Britain;
uniform and perma-
riage; com-
built a mau-
nent standard; made
mander of
soleum for
the Council of State
Syrian
himself
a high court of
army.
(now Castle
of San
Angelo),
and a fa-
justice.
•
mous villa ;
built bridges
and tem-
ples ; re-
stored
drainage
of Rome.
STUDY ON THR PAGAN EMPIRE.
201
TRAJAN AND THI LIOTORa
(Marble relief from Trajan's Fomin.)
Name ami
Date,
Birth and
Source of
Imperial Power.
Famous Works.
Antoninus
Of Gallic
Adoption by
Wall built
None ; i>eace and
Pius,
origin; of
Hadrian ;
from Forth
toleration.
13^161.
high rank
acceptance
to Clyde;
and office.
by Senate.
founded a
charity for
orphan
girls.
202
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
liOBAE) FBOM TBI BATHS OF OARAGALLA. RBPRBSSNTINO FAMOUS OLADIATOSa
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EHPIBE.
203
Name and
Date,
BiHh and
Circumstance.
Source of
Imperlat Pouter.
Famous Works.
Eoents and Changes.
Marcus
Nephew of
Adoption by
Triumphal
Reduction of Parthia,
AURK-
Antoninus ;
Antoninus
column to
and defeat of Ger-
LIDS, IGl
of Spanish
and accep-
celebrate
manio barbarians on
-180.
origin; Ro-
tance by
his German
northern frontier.
man birth.
the Senate.
victories ;
author of
philosophi-
cal (Stoic)
meditations.
« • *
« « »
• « «
» • «
« • « «
Septimius
African,
Proclama-
A triumphal
Replaced the Prae-
Severus,
from near
tion by le-
arch at
torian guards by
193-211.
Carthage ;
gions of
Rome.
soldiers from the
prominent
Pannonia,
frontiers; persecu-
and excel-
who con-
tion of the Chris-
lent com-
quered the
tians.
mander.
armies of
his rival
candidates ;
acceptance
by Senate.
Caracalla,
Son of
Appoint-
Baths of
Made every free
211-217.
Septimius
ment of his
Caracalla.
inhabitant of the
Severus,
father and
empire a Roman
bom in
murder of
citizen; massacre of
Gaul.
his brother,
also ap-
pointed by
the father;
declaration
by Praetor-
ians; ac-
ceptance by
the Senate.
Alexandrians on
account of their
allusions to his
fratricide.
« « «
« « «
« • «
Constant civil war
between rival im-
perial candidates
and their supporting
armies.
204
STUDIES IN G£NEBAIi HISTORY.
Name and
Date.
Birth and
Cireumstanoe.
Source of
Famous Works.
Eosnts and Changes.
Decius,
Roman sen-
Declared by
Great defeat by the
249-251.
ator and
the Mcesian
Goths, who retreated
general ;
army in re-
on being promised
Pannonian.
volt against
reigning
emperor.
au annual sum of
money ; general per-
secution of
Christians.
« « «
« « «
« « «
« * «
Wars with Persians
and with Goths ;
civil wars between
various (at one time
thirty) imperial can-
didates and their
armies; persecution
of Christians;
empire ravaged by
plague.i
Claudius
From Ulyri-
Choice of
* » «
Great victories over
II., 208-
cum; low
predecessor;
the Goths ; a picked
270.
birth; sol-
acceptance
body of Goths placed
dier; gene-
of army.
in the Roman army.
ral.
Aurellan,
Peasant of
Proclama-
New defen-
Ended the Gothic
270-276.
Illyria; vic-
tion by the
sive wall for
war; drove back the
torious
legions and
Rome.
Germans from Italy ;
general of
acceptance
conquered Zenobia,
Claudius.
by the
Senate.
empress of Syria ;
gave Goths a per-
manent settlement
in Dacia beyond the
Danube; admitted
Goths to imperial
body-guard; perse-
cution of Christians.
1 Gibbon calculates that nearly half the inhabitants of the empire per-
ished at this time by war, famine, and pestilence.
STUDY ON THE PAGAN KMIUIIE.
205
Home and
DatB,
BfrtM anit
Circumstanoe.
Source of
Imperial Power.
Famous Works.
Eoenta and Changes.
• « «
« « «
• « •
« « «
« « « •
Diocle-
Son of Dal-
Proclama-
Baths in
Divided the empire ^
tian,
matian
tion by the
Rome; a
between two rulers
284-306,
freedman or
legions of
splendid
and two capitals
serf; com-
the East;
and exten-
(Nicsea and
mander of
victory over
sive palace
Milan). Each ruler
and
the former
the army of
. for himself
(Augustus) had an
emperor's
his rival.
at Spalatro
assistant (Caesar),
bod^-guard.
inDalmatia.
wore a diadem, and
required his subjects
to approach him
prostrate, adoring
his divinity; ap-
pointed consuls with-
out consent of Sen-
ate; general perse-
cution of Christians ;
subdued rebellion in
Egypt.
Mazimian,
niyrian
Choice of
Circus, thea-
Subdued, by his
286-305.
peasant;
Diocletian
tre, baths,
assistant Caesar, the
soldier;
and the
etc., at
revolting provinces
general.
army.
Milan.
of the west.
• • •
« • «'
« « «
« « •
• • « «
STUDY ON 2.
Among the events and changes given in the imperial list, select
those which were constitutional. What was the tendency of these
changes? In which century were these changes most radical? In
whom did they culminate ? What effect had they upon the equality
of the inhabitants of the empire ? What classes gained in equality ?
Under what^rww did the empire exist up to the time of Diocletian?
How will you describe the form of government established by him ?
What was the final basis of the imperial power ? How proved to be
so from these lists ? What remark can you make of the hereditary
1 The Western division comprised Italy, Gaul, Britain, Spain, Africa ;
the Eastern, Greece, Macedonia, Egypt, Asia Minor. (See map.)
206
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
nature of the imperial office ? Illustrate. Was such a change for the
worse or better ? Why ? What part of the empire was represented
by the emperors as a whole? Prove it. How were the provinces
better off under the emperors than under the republic ? What strikes
you as the great fault of the constitution? What light does the
origin of the emperors throw on the equality of men in the empire? of
equality in the earlier as compared with the later years of the period ?
8. List of Oreat Men of the Pagan Empirey eocclusive
of Emperors.
a. Men of the Augustan Age and the First Century. (Men of
the Augustan Age marked *.)
Nomt.
Birth and Ctrcumstancea.
Cause of Fame.
used.
•Agrippa.
Of obscure birth ; Ro-
Projected the Panthe-
I-Atin.
man general, and
on ; made a smrey
associated with Au-
and map of whole
gustus in magistracy
empire for Augustus ;
of Rome.
made fine military
roads in Gaul and
aqueduct of Nimes.
•Diodorus.
Sicilian Greek ;
Author of general his-
Greek.
travelled in all parts
tory of the civilized
of the empire to get
world up to his own
material for his his-
time.
tory ; lived at Rome.
♦Dionysius.
Asiatic Greek ; lived at
Author of History of
Greek.
Rome.
Rome ; literary critic
and rhetorician.
Epictetus.
A Phrygian slave.
Teacher of the Stoic
Greek,
owned by a freed man
philosophy.
of Nero in Rome.
♦Horace.
Son of an Apulian
Author of poems, satir-
Latin.
freedman.
izing human nature
and contemporary
manners.
Josephus.
Jew of most illustrious
lineage.
Historian of Judiea.
Greek.
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE.
207
THE PAITTHBON OF AORIFPA.
The two little beU<topped towen are an addition of modern times. The reet is according
to the Roman plan.
/fame.
Birth and Ctrcumstancea.
0€Ui8€ of Fam€.
Language
used.
♦Livy.
Paduan hy birth and
Author of a History of
Latin.
education; of consu-
Rome from its foun-
lar rank.
dation.
Lucan.
Spaniard of Italian
Author of poem on
Latin.
origin and equestrian
civil wars of Porapey
rank.
and Caesar.
Martial.
Native Spaniard.
Writer of epigrams, or
short and pithy poems,
generally satirical,
upon contemporary
life and manners.
Latin.
208
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
N€un€,
Birth and CIrcumstancea.
Covatf of Fame.
uaett.
^Maecenas.
Roman knight.
Friend and first adviser
or minister of Augus-
tus; patron of literary
men, notably Horace
and Virgil.
Latin.
•Ovid.
Italian of equestrian
Poet, using Greek ma-
Latin.
rank.
terials and forms.
Quintilian.
Spaniard of official
Writer on rhetoric and
Latin.
rank.
oratory; lawyer.
Pliny the Elder.
From Cisalpine Gaul,
Writer on natural sci-
Latin.
and of noble family ;
ence, and student.
magistrate and inspec-
tor of finances.
Seneca.
Spaniard by birth and
Philosophical writer of
Latin.
education ; knight and
Stoic school.
senator.
•Virgil.
Mantuan freeholder,
Author of the "^neid,»'
Latin.
educated at Cremona
an epic modelled after
and Milan.
Homer, descriptive of
the founding of Rome.
•Vitniviug.
Of Verona; inspector
Architect, and author
Latin.
of public buildings for
of work on architec-
Augustus.
ture.
6. Men of Second Century,
Apuleius.
African of magisterial
Author of "Golden
Latin.
rank.
Ass," a story founded
on Greek originals,
but satirizing contem-
porary manners.
Arrian.
Asiatic Greek of poor
Biographies of Alexan-
Greek.
but honorable birth ;
der and his succes-
high Roman magis-
sors ; wrote on geo-
trate.
graphy and the mili-
tary art.
STUDY ON THE PAOAK EMPIRE.
209
Name.
Birth and Ctreumstancn,
Cau§€ of AuM.
iMiguage
tued.
Galen.
Son of a wealthy archi-
Author of medical
Greek.
tect at PergamoB ;
works; physician of
studied at Alexandria ;
Marcus Aurelius.
lived at Rome.
Justin Martyr.
Greek of Samaria.
Apologist 1 and Chris-
tian philosopher and
martyr, under Marcus
Aurelius.
Greek.
Juvenal.
Son of ItaUan f reed-
Author of poems satiri-
Latin.
man ; Roman magis-
zing contemporary
trate.
life.
Lucian.
Of a poor Syrian
Author of satirical dia-
Greek.
logue dealing with
contemporary thought,
life, knowledge, and
faith.
Plutarch.
Boeotian Greek of hon-
Biographer of famous
Greek.
orable family.
Greeks and Romans.
Ptolemy.
Egyptian, studying and
Astronomer, mathema-
Greek.
observing at Alexan-
tician, and geo-
dria.
grapher ; taught that
the earth is round and
the centre about
which the heavens
turn ; author of the
" Almagest," a wo^
on astronomy, con-
•
taining Important lists
of stars.
Pansaniaa.
Lydian.
Traveller; geographi-
cal writer.
Greek.
Pliny the
Of Cisalpme Gaul ;
Lawyer ; writer of
Latin.
Younger.
Roman magistrate.
letters descriptive of
contemporary
manners.
^ Apologist : one who made a literary defence of Christianity, addressed
to the pagan world.
210
STUDIES IN OBNERAIi HISTORY.
Name.
Birth and CIrcumatanoea,
Causa of Fame.
Language
used.
Suetonius.
Son of a soldier.
Biographer of the
twelve Ctesars (Julius
to Domltian).
Latin.
Tacitus.
Italian; Roman magis-
Historian of nearly
Latin.
trate and patrician.
contemporary Roman
events ; author of the
"Germania," a de-
scription of the
Germans.
During this century the books of the New Testament received their
canonical form in Greek.
c. Men of Third Century.
Cassius, Dion.
Of Asia Minor; Roman
Author of a history of
Greek.
magistrate; senator
Rome.
and governor.
Clement, St.
Of Alexandria; head
Author of works on
Greek.
of the Christian
Christian doctrine and
school there.
practice.
Cyprian, St.
Born at Carthage ; of a
Sold his goods for the
Latin.
distinguished family ;
sake of the poor;
•
well educated in phil-
lived austerely and
osophy and literature ;
alone ; regarded as
Bishop of Carthage.
father of the poor;
wrote moral, religious,
and theological works
and letters.
Lactantius.
African(?); studied
Famous orator and
Latia
near Carthage.
apologist for the
Christians; poet;
author of philosophic
and religious writings
and letters.
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE.
2tt
Neane.
Birth and CIrcumstaneea,
CotfM of Fame*
Language
ueed.
Origen.
Of Alexandria; finely
Teacher and preacher
Greek.
educated in literature,
at Alexandria; of
philosophy, theology.
ascetic life ; had but
one cloak, slept on
the ground, ate as
little as possible,
wrote commentaries
and theological
works of philosophi-
cal character.
Porphyry.
Syrio-Phoenician ;
Author of philosophi-
Greek.
studied at Alexandria
cal and critical works ;
and Rome.
opposed Christian
doctrine; Platonist.
TertuUian.
Carthage ; son of a
Author of arguments
Latin.
soldier.
against pagan belief
and practice ; of
moral and theological
writings; Montanist;
taught severest
asceticism.
Ulpian.
Of Tyre; Roman
Author of works on
Latin.
magistrate.
law.
STUDY ON 3.
What general remark can you make in regard to the origin and
eircumstances of the great men of the pagan empire ? Compare with
republican Rome. What is indicated by this difference ? What does
this list indicate in regard to the civilization of the provinces ? From
whom did the western provinces (Gaul, Spain, Africa) take their civili-
zation ? From whom the eastern ? Prove it. What unity does this
same fact prove existed in the empire? With what division? What
province came first into prominence ? What reason can you think of
for this ? What kind of work seems to have been the most popular at
Rome ? What was original to the Romans ? What was the strongest
intellectual influence felt by the Romans? Instances. — (Take one
212 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
from the pictui'e of the Pantheon.) Compare the three centuries in
point of intellectual activity. To what class of Romans is this sort
of activity almost entirely confined in the third century? What
inference can you draw from this as to the influence and culture of
this class ?
GENERAL STUDY ON 2 AND 3.
Which was the most excellent century of imperial rule? Which the
worst? Illustrate by number of emperors, by literature, by events and
changes, by imperial works, by comparison of pictures on p. 201 and
p. 202. What kind of things do the imperial works show the Romans
to have cared for ? What sort of ability is indicated by these works ?
What new construction do you find employed in the Pantheon which
you have not seen used by any other people? If Trajan and the
Lictors (p. 201) and the Gladiators (p. 202) be typical Roman work,
what difference do you note between Greek and Roman material in art?
What outside danger threatened Rome more and more? What
indication of this danger in the works of the emperors ? What great
change in the population and the army began to take place in the
third centuiy ? What facts show this change ? Give two proofs of
the extensive spread of Christianity.
4. Extracts Illustrative of Life and Thought of the
Pa^gan Empire.
a. The Vision and Prophecy of Augtisttis. (From Virgil'**
-fflneid).^
'^ This, this is the man whom you have often heard promised
to you, Augustus Caesar, the ofl&pring of a god; who once
more shall establish the golden age . . . and shall extend his
empire . . . beyond the sun's annual course, where AUas, bui>-
porting heaven on his shoulders, turns the axle studded with
flaming stars." Thus Virgil elsewhere speaks of Augustus:
" A god hath vouchsafed us this tranquillity ; for to me he shall
always be a god ; a tender lamb fix>m our folds shall often stain
his altar [with his blood]."
1 According to favorite Roman legend, Rome was founded by jEneas,
one of the Trojan heroes who fled from the ruin of Troy. His adventures
form the subject of the "^neid." In t!ie course of them he is foretold th«
future greatness of Rome, and sees a vision of its heroes.
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE, 218
h. From Epictetua,
^^ Csesar has procured us a profound peace ; there are neither
wars, nor battles, nor great robberies, nor piracies ; but we may
travel at all hours, and sail from east to west." {Under Nero.)
c. From Tacitus. A Letter of Tiberius to the Senate in Answer
to a Bequest for Sumptuary Laws*
^' But what is it that I am first to prohibit? what excess re-
trench to the ancient standard ? Am I to begin with that of
our country seats, spacious without bounds ; and with the num-
ber of domestics, from various countries? or with the quantity
of silver and gold? or with the pictures, and statues of brass,
the wonders of art? or with vestments, promiscuously worn by
men and women ? . . . It is wonderful that nobody lays before
the Senate . . . that the lives of the Roman people are daily
exposed to the mercy of uncertain seas and tempests ; were it
not for our supplies from the provinces — supplies by which the
masters, and their slaves, and their estates are maintained —
would our groves, forsooth, and villas maintain us?'*
The First Persecution of the Christians,
The name of Nero has become the synonym for all that is
vile and cruel. He poisoned his rival, the son of the former
emperor ; he caused his mother and his first wife to be assassi-
nated; his second wife died from the effects of a kick; his
companions were the vilest men of Rome, in whose company he
played the gladiator and the robber ; it was the current belief of
antiquity that he himself set fire to Rome. ^' To suppress this
rumor," says Tacitus, " he falsely charged with the guilt, and
punished with the most exquisite tortures, the persons com-
monly called Christians. . . . And in their deaths they were
also made the subjects of sport, for they were covered with the
hides of wild beasts and worried to death by dogs, or nailed to
crosses, or set fire to, and when day declined, burned to serve
for nocturnal lights. Nero offered his own gardens for that
spectacle, and exhibited a Circensinn game, indiscriminately
214 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
mingling with the common people in the habit of a charioteer,
or else standing in his chariot."
How Otho became Emperor.
The last of the Caesar family died in Nero, and the legions
of Spain proclaimed their general, Galba, emperor ; on arriving
at Rome he addressed the praetorian guards, but ^^ added no
flattery nor hopes of a donation." Meanwhile Otho, a boon
companion of Nero, " had been in the habit of courting the
affections of the army. ... On their march, in the lines, at
their quarters, he made it his business to converse freely with
all, . . . and with his interest and his purse was ready to be
their friend. . . . With malignant insinuation glancing at
Galba, he omitted nothing that could fill the vulgar mind with
discontent. . . . The loss of the donative, so often promised
and still withheld, was the topic enforced to inflame the minds
of the common men. . . . The vile and profligate were so
ready for mutiny and the upright to connive, that, on the
day after the Ides of January, they formed a resolution to take
Otho under their care . . . and . . . proclaim him emperor. . . .
The whole populace, in the meantime, with a crowd of slaves
intermixed, crowded the palace, demanding, with discordant
cries, vengeance on the head of Otho and his partisans, as
though they were clamoring in the circus or amphitheater for
some spectacle. . . . Meanwhile, the praetorian guards with
one voice declared for Otho. They ranged themselves in a
body round his person, and . . . the whole camp resounded with
shouts and tumults and mutual exhortations. . . . They rec-
ommended the prince of their own choice to the affections of
the men, and the men, in their turn, to the favor of the prince.
Otho, on his part, omitted nothing ; he paid his court to the
rabble with his hands outstretched, scattering kisses in pro-
fusion, and, in order to be emperor, crouching like a slave. . . .
" Galba, meanwhile, was borne in various directions according
as the waving multitude impelled him. The temples, and great
halls around the forum, were filled with crowds of sorrowing
spectators. A deep and sullen silence prevailed; the very
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE. 216
rabble was hushed ; amazement sat on every face. . . . Otho,
however, received intelligence that the populace had recourse to
arms, and thereupon ordered his troops to push forward with
rapidity. . . . They entered the city, they dispersed the
common people, trampled the Senate under foot ; with swords
drawn, and horses at full speed, they burst into the forum. . . .
The people fled in consternation ; such as hesitated were
attacked sword in hand." Galba was slain, and "another
Senate and another people seemed now to be in possession of
Rome. All pressed forward to the camp. Eveiy man en-
deavored to distance those near him, and strive with tliose
before him. They reviled Galba, and applauded the jlidgment
of the soldiers. They kissed the hands of Otho, and in propor-
tion to their want of sincerit}*, . . . multiplied their compli-
ments. . . . The fathers assembled without delay. The tribu-
nitian power, the name of Augustus, and all imperial honors
enjoyed by former princes, were by their decree granted to
Otho."
From the Dialogue on Oratory.
"What is our present practice? the infant is committed to
some wretched creature in the shape of a Greek chambermaid,
assisted in her task by a slave or two, generally the very worst
in the whole household, and unfit for the discharge of any
office of trust. From the fables, and worse than idle tales of
these people, the mind of the child receives its first coloring.
There is not a single person in the whole household who troubles
himself in the slightest degree about what he says or does
before his youthful master. ... In these days the patronage
of actors, the passion for horses and gladiators . . . seems im-
pressed, if I may say so, upon the very infants ; and when once
the mind has been beset ... by things like these, what room is
left for honorable pursuits ; what else is the subject of conver-
sation in the domestic circle? If we enter our schools, what
else do we hear our boys talking about? Nay, this is the most
usual topic with which even the teachers amuse their pupils."
Says Quintilian on this same subject: "Before the child can
216 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
talk, he understands all about the merits of the cook ; he calls
for delicacies. We educate their palates before we teach them
how to speak."
d. From the Letters of the Younger Pliny.
'<I had the great pleasure of hearing from our conmion
friends that you take your leisure and lay it out as a man of
your good sense ought ; living down in a charming part of the
country, and varying your amusements, — sometimes driving,
sometimes going out for a sail, holding frequent learned discus-
sions and conferences, reading a good deal, and, in a word,
daily increasing that fund of knowledge you already possess.
This is to grow old in a way worthy of one who has discharged
the highest offices both civil and military, and who gave himself
up entirely to the service of the state while it became him to
do so."
'* I had taken refuge in my villa at Tuscum, in hopes of passing
my time here, at least, in my own way ; but that is a privilege,
I find, I am not to enjoy even here ; so greatly am I interrupted
with the troublesome complaints and petitions of my tenants,
whose accounts I look over with more reluctance than I do my
own ; for really it is with great unwillingness I examine even
these. . . . Meanwhile, my domestic afiTairs are neglected as
much as if I were away."
''The getting in of my vintage . . . particularlj^ employs me at
present, if getting it in means gathering a grai)e now and then,
visiting the winepress, tasting the must in the vat, and saunter-
ing up to my servants, who, being all engaged out of doors,
have wholly abandoned me to my readers and my secretaries."
Under Trajan, Pliny was made governor of the province of
Bithynia; and the following extracts are from Pliny's corre-
spondence with the emperor : —
" The Prusenses, Sir, having an ancient bath, which lies in a
ruinous state, desire 3'our leave to repair it ; but, upon exami-
nation, I am of opinion it ought to be rebuilt."
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE. 217
Trajan to Pliny,
" If the erecting a public bath will not be too great a charge
upon the Pnisenses, we may corapl}' with their request."
Pliny to Trajan.
^^ Having been petitioned by some persons to grant them the
liberty ... of removing the relics of their deceased relations,
upon the suggestion that either their monuments were decayed
by age, or ruined by the inundations of the river, ... I thought
proper, Sir, ... to consult you."
Trajan to Pliny,
" It will be a hardship upon the provincials to oblige them to
address themselves to ' Rome,' whenever they may have just
reasons for removing the ashes of their ancestors. In this case,
therefore, it will be better you should . . . grant or deny them
this liberty as you shall see reasonable."
While governor, certain persons were brought to trial before
him on the charge of being Christians, of whom he writes as
follows : " They repeated after me an invocation to the gods,
and offered religious rites with wine and incense before your
statue . . . and even reviled the name of Christ ; whereas there
is no forcing, it is said, those who are really Christians into
any of these compliances; I thought it proper, therefore, to
discharge them."
" . . .It appears to be a matter highly deserving your con-
sideration, more especially as great numbers must be involved
in the danger of these prosecutions, which have already ex-
tended, and are still likely to extend, to persons of all ranks
and ages, and even of both sexes. In fact, this contagious
superstition is not confined to the cities only, but has spread its
infection among the neighboring villages and country."
e. From the Meditations of Marcus Aurelitis,
^' . . . Suppose that men kill thee, curse thee. ... If a man
should stand bj* a pure spring and curse it, the spring never
ceases sending up wholesome water ; and if he should cast clay
218 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
into it, or filth, it will speedily disperse them, and wash them
out, and will not be at all polluted. . . . What, then, is that
about which we ought to employ our serious pains ? This one
thing : just thoughts and social acts ; and words which never
lie ; and a temper which accepts gladly all that happens. . . -
Everything harmonizes with me which is harmonious to thee,
O Universe. Nothing is too early nor too late for me, which
is in due time for thee. Everything is fruit to me, which thy
seasons bring, O Nature ; from thee are all things ; in thee are
all things ; to thee all things return. . . ."
STUDY ON 4.
Be ready to prove by quotations your answers to the following ques-
tions:— In what way were the emperors regarded? What was con-
sidered the glory and value of the empire? Of the Romans? — Why
did Tiberius speak of " uncertain seas and tempests " as a source of
danger to Rome ? Sor/ie one has said, " I hold aU Rome guilty of this
Nero"; explain it. What qualities displayed by the Romans —
citizens, senators and soldiers — in the elevation of Otho? What
class ruled the empire? What relation between the education and the
life of Romans? How was labor regarded? What reason was there
for this in the constitution of society? What proof in Pliny's letters
of the great centralization of power in the imperial hands ? How did
the imperial compare with the republican regard for the provinces ?
What reason for this diiference ? What testimony in these letters as
to the spread of Christianity? The character of Christians? What
resemblances between the reflections given from Marcus Aurelius and
Christian teaching ?
Make a list of all the good things about the Roman Empire. Make
a list of all the evils that you have found in it. What ideals exist in
the Pagan Empire?
/. From the Reported Words of Christ.
'* But I say unto you, love your enemies, bless them that
curse you, do good to them that hate you, and pray for them
which despitefuUy use you, and persecute you ; that ye may be
the children of your Father which is in heaven : for he maketh
his sun to rise on the evil and on the good, and sendeth rain on
the just and on the unjust."
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE. 219
» » » « » • »
^^Take no thought, saying, What shall we eat? or, what
shall we drink ? or, wherewithal shall we be clothed ? . . . But
seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his righteousness, and all
these things shall be added unto you. . . . Come unto me, all
ye that labor and are henv}' laden, and I will give you rest.
Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me : for I am meek and
lowly in heart ; and ye shall find rest unto jour souls. For my
yoke is easy, and my burden is light."
• »««•«•
''Then said Jesus unto his disciples, If any man will come
after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross, and
follow me. For what is a man profited, if he gain the whole
world, and lose his own soul ? . . . Suffer little children, and
forbid them not, to come unto me ; for of such is the kingdom
of heaven. . . . But be not ye called Rabbi : for one is 3*our
Master, even Christ; and all ye arc brethren. And call no
man your father upon the earth : for one is your Father which
is in heaven. Neither be ye called masters : for one is your
Master, even Christ."
• •««•••
*' Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites ! for ye
pay tithe of mint, and anise, and cumin, and have omitted the
weightier matters of the law, judgment, mercy, and faith : these
ought ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. . . .
Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with
all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind ;
and thy neighbor as thyself. . . . When thou makest a feast,
call the poor, the maimed, the lame, the blind ; and thou shalt
be blessed."
• •»••••
'' God is a spirit : and they that worship him, must worship
him in spirit and in truth."
g. JFYom the Epistles of the Early Christians.
" To us there is but one God, the Father, of whom are all
things, and we in him. . . . There is neither Jew nor Greek,
220 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
there is neither bond nor free, there is neither male nor female ;
for ye are all one in Christ Jesus. . . . We beseech yon, breth-
ren, . . . that ye study to be quiet, and to do your own lousiness,
and to work with your hands, as we commanded you ; that ye
may walk honestly. . . . This we commanded you, that if any
would not work, neither should he eat. ... In like manner
also, that women adorn themselves in modest apparel, with
shame-facedness and sobriety ; not with broidered hair, or gold,
or pearls, or costly arra}'. . . . They that will be rich, fall into
temptation ... for the love of money is the root of all evil:
charge them that are rich in this world . . . that they do good,
that they be rich in good works, ready to distribute."
^^But speak thou the things which become sound doctrine:
that the aged men be sober, grave, temperate, sound in faith,
in charity, in patience ; the aged women likewise, that they be
in behaviour as becometh holiness ; not false accusers, not
given to much wine, teachers of good things ; that they may
teach the young women to be sober, to love their husbands, to
love their children ; to be discreet, chaste, keepers at home . . •
that the word of God be not blasphemed. Young men likewise
exhort to be sober-minded, in all things shewing thyself a
pattern of good works. . . . Exhort servants to be obedient
unto their own masters, and to please them well in all things ;
not answering again; not purloining, but shewing all good
fidelity ; that they may adorn the doctrine of God, our Saviour,
in all things. . . . Put them in mind to be subject to princi-
palities and powers, to obey magistrates, to be ready to every
good work."
Note on Heresies. — From Phrygia, in the second century, came
the doctrine of Montanus, who thought himself the dwelling of the
Holy Ghost, and who taught that the end of the world was near, and
that bodily suffering would purify the soul [^asceticism]. In Alexan-
dria and Egypt were many Gnostics who denied the humanity of
Christ. In the third century some denied his divinity. Then, too,
came the Manichceans from Persia, teaching the existence of two gods,
one good, one evil. They condemned marriage, and considered that
STUDY ON THE PAGAN EMPIRE. 221
the body was so evil that to continue the human species was but to
prolong the reign of evil. There was much discussion in this century
about baptism, about the marriage of the clergy, their duties and
accountability. Just at the close of the period arose the famous Arian
controversy between Arius, deacon of Alexandria, who maintained
that Christ was like Grod and had been created by him, and Atha-
nasius, bishop of Alexandria, who taught that Christ was himself very
God.
STUDY ON /, fif, AND NOTE.
What in Roman life was attacked by the Christian teachings?
What in Roman ideas? What in organization? What virtues did
they insist upon? Why was Christianity dangerous to Rome? In
what part of the empire did all the heresies arise ? Why in that part
rather than another? What sort of activity do they indicate in the
early church ? What danger did they threaten her with ? What was
the bond of union among Christians ? What previous bonds of union
did the Christians abolish or ignore by their teachings? What was
their ideal?
GENERAL QUESTIONS ON ROMAN HISTORY.
Of what value was the Roman dominion to the countries governed ?
What real differences existed between the divisions of the empire
made by Diocletian? To what old empire did the eastern division
roughly correspond? Of what advantage was the empire to the spread
of Christianity ? What is the application of the motto prefixed to the
studies in Roman history? To what part of the history does it most
thoroughly apply ? What countries could Rome make after her own
pattern, Roman ? What countries were uninfluenced, though con-
quered by her? What proof can you give of this? What seems to
you the best period of Roman history ? What its worst ? What was
the most characteristic period? What was the genius of Rome? How
shown? When and how did this genius first appear? When and how
did her faults first appear?
222 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
THE TEUTONIC BARBARIANS BEFORE 476.
" We Iiewed with our swords." — Lodbrokar.
Original and contemporary authorities : Tacitus, Caesar,
Jornandes, and Ammianus ; Teutonic songs and legends
embodied in later forms, notably, the Eddaa, the Saga of the
Burnt Njal, the Nibelungen Lied, Beowulf; actual village-
communities, like those of Russia and the East, and traces
of these all through modern Europe throw much side-light
on this history.
Modern authorities in English: Stubbs' Constitutional
History of England, true for all the West ; Grant Allen's
Early Britain, and Green's History of the English People.
1. Note on Teutonio Land-Tenure. — The German territory
belonging to any tribe was divided into cantons ; in each canton was
a certain number of marks ; a mark was a district of country held by
"kindred freemen," who grouped their dwellings in a village sur-
rounded by wood and waste land. Within the village, each man
owned his own homestead and a bit of vacant land around it. Once
a year the land to be cultivated was divided among the villagers by
common consent in a general meeting of the mark-men ["Mark-
moot "] or by the decision of a chief or magistrate. Each householder
raised from the lot assigned him the crops decided upon by the com-
munity. One man had as good a right as another to cut wood and let
his pigs run in the forest, or send his cattle into the meadow-lands.
The Mark-moot also decided if a new man might come among them to
own land, or if an old settler might build apart from the village, and
in general, on purely local affairs. Within the family the rule was
patriarchal.
2. Ex^ntcts frmn the ^* Oermany^^ of TiMcUus*
" The people of Germany appear to me indigenous, and free
from intermixture with foreigners. ... In their ancient songs,
which are the only records or annals, they celebrate the god
STUDY ON THE TEUTONIC BARBARIANS. 223
Tuisto, sprung from the earth, and his son Mannns, as the
fathers and founders of their race. ... A peculiar kind of
verees is also current among them, by the recital of which,
termed ^ barding,' the}' stimulate their courage. . . . The land
... is productive of grain, but unkindly to fruit-trees. It
abounds in flocks and herds, . . . [which] form' the most
esteemed, and, indeed, the only species of wealth. . . . The
greatest disgrace that can befall them is to have abandoned
their shields. A person branded with this ignominy is not
permitted to join in their religious rites or enter their assem-
blies. ... In the election of kings, they have regard to birth ;
in that of generals, to valor. Their kings have not an absolute
or unlimited power ; and their generals command less through
the force of authority than of example. If they are daring,
adventurous, and conspicuous in action, they procure obedience
from the admiration they inspire. None, however, but the
priests are permitted to judge offenders ... so that the chas-
tisement appears ... the instigation of the god whom they
suppose present with warriors. They also carry with them to
battle certain images and standards taken from the sacred
groves. It is a principal incentive to their courage, that theur
squadrons and battalions are . . . formed ... by the assemblage
of families and clans. ... To their mothers and their wives,
they bring their wounds for relief, nor do these dread to count
or to search out the gashes. The women also administer food
and encouragement to those who are fighting."
«««««««
'^ When the affaira of the state are of lesser importance, the
chiefs decide ; when of greater, the whole community of can-
tons ; bnt whatever is referred to, the decision of the people is
first maturely discussed by the chiefs. ... In assembly, all sit
in arms. Silence is proclaimed by the priests. . . . The king
or chief and snch others as are renowned for age, for glory in
arms, or eloqnence, are heard, and gain attention rather by their
ability to persuade than their authority to command. ... If a
proposal displease, the assembly reject it by an inarticulate
224 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
murmur; if it prove agreeable, they clash their javelins; for
the most honorable expression of assent among them is the
sound of arms. Before this council it is . . . allowed to exhibit
accusations and to prosecute capital offenses. Punishments are
varied according to the nature of the crime. ... In the same
assemblies' chiefs are also elected to administer justice through the
cantons and districts. . . . The Germans transact no business,
public or private, without being armed ; but it is not customary
for any person to assume arms till the state has approved his
ability to use them. Then, in the midst of the assembly, either
one of the chiefs, or the father . . . equips the youth with a shield
and javelin. . . . Before this . . . [he] is considered as part of
the household ; afterwards, of the state. . . .
'^ He who would gain dignity and rank among the chieftains
must have many and brave companions ;^ . . . and among these,
each wishes to stand highest in the regard of his chief. . . .
The companion requires from the liberality of his chief the
war-like steed, the bloody and conquering spear ; and in place
of pay, food, homely but plentiful. The funds for these gifts
must be found in war and rapine. ... It is customary for the
several states to present, by voluntary and individual contribu-
tions, cattle or grain to their chiefs
^^ Almost singly among the barbarians, they content them-
selves with one wife, whose bridal gifts are oxen, a caparisoned
steed, a shield, spear, and sword. By virtue of these the wife
is espoused ; and she in her turn makes a present of some arms
to her husband . . . The woman ... is admonished by the
very ceremonial of her marriage, that she comes to her hus-
band as a partner in toils and dangers ; to suffer and to dare
equally with him, in peace and in war ; this is indicated by the
yoked oxen, the harnessed steed, the offered arms. . • •
^' It is an indispensable duty to adopt the enmities of a father
1 Caesar Bays, " Whenever any of their chiefs has said in an assembly
that he will be a leader in some midertaking, they who approve of the
man and the enterprise arise, and promise him their aid." These are
called companions.
STtJDY OK THE TEtTToKiC BARBARIAKS. 225
or relation, as well as their friendships : these, however, are
not irreconcilable or perpetual. Even homicide is atoned by
a certain fine in cattle and sheep ; and the whole family accepts
the satisfaction. . . . Every one, according to his ability, feasts
his guest ; when his provisions are exhausted, he who was late
the host is now the guide and companion to another hospitable
board. They enter the next house uninvited, and are received
with equal cordiality. . . . Their drink is a liquor prepared from
barley or wheat brought by fermentation to a certain resem-
blance of wine. . . . Their food is simple : wild fruits, fresh
venison, or coagulated milk. Of their slaves, each is the
master of a habitation and household of his own. The lord
requires from him a certain quantity of grain, cattle, or cloth,
as from a tenant ; and so far only the subjection of the slave
extends. His domestic offices are performed by his own wife
and children,"
STUDY ON I AND 2.
What is the political unit here? What are its bonds of union?
How is property held? How is it ruled ? What is meant by a patri-
archal family ?
What sort of literature exists among the Teutons ? What makes
a man a Teuton ? What bond of union, then, among them ? What
does Tacitus think of the reality of this bond ? What proof does he
give of its existence? What are their occupations? What is their
ideal? In how many ways and how is this shown? Make a list of
their magistrates. What is done by each ? How do their magistrates
obtain power? Who gives them power? What assemblies have they?
What is done by each ? Compare with Homeric Greece and Regal
Rome. What name will you give to this sort of political organization ?
What adjective describes the political position of the individual?
What is the position of women among them ? What sort of women
are evidently found among the Teutons ? How is the king or ruler
supported? When and how is a man recognized as a full-grown
Teuton ? What organization is there among the Teutons which we
have not met before? What is the bond which holds it together?
How is it supported ? What characterizes their mode of living when
at home? What new units and new bonds of union have you dis-
covered among the Germans? What old ones?
226 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
8. Extracts and Stariea from Teutonic Sources.
From the Edda of Scemund.
^* It was God himself who made three castes of men eter-
nally unequal ; he has created first tlie serf, with a dark skin,
hard hands, and a bent back ; his task is to till the land, dig
tlie peat, watch the goats and pigs. Then he made the man of
bright eyes and loiddy skin, who knows how to tame cattle, to
make the plow, to build houses and barns. And last of all, God
made the noble, with yellow hair, and bright cheeks, and a
glance as piercing as that of a dragon ; it is he who can shake
the lance, and draw the bow and fight valiantly."
From the " BurrU Njai:*
In this saga we are told of the old man Njal, whose sons
have been slain, and whose house is burning over his head.
When entreated to save himself, he replies : ^^ I am an old man,
little fitted to avenge my murdered sons, so I will not go out
to live in shame."
The same saga tells us of niugi, the brother of a great out-
law who had been killed. When lUugi, however, falls into the
hands of the men who had slain his brother, he chooses to die
rather than promise not to take vengeance on them.
In the same story, one man will not let his own father give
land, but prefers to go to another part of country and seize it
for himself ; while another chooses to get land by turning out
an earlier settler to taking it as a gift from his brother ; and
the woman Steinura will buy a farm rather than accept it from
her kinsmen.
The Lay of Sigfurde says : " Never trust the promises thy
foe's kinsman makes thee." Says the Elder Edda: ''Let no
man go a step without his arms, for it is hard to know when
a man may need a weapon." '^ At home every one is his own
master." " One's own home is best, small though it be."
STUDY ON 3.
What classes of men existed among the Teutons, and how is each
regarded? How do they regard this division into classes? What is
STUDY ON THE TEUTONIC BABBAKIANS. 227
the occupation of each ? How would manual labor be regarded among
them? What is theii ideal? If any one is wronged, who is responsi-
ble for righting that wrong? In this case what appears as the unit,
and what bond makes of it a unit? What is the state of security
among the Teutons? How do you know? What reason for this
condition of affairs? What qualities of character appear in these
extracts?
Note on Vooabnlary. — In general^ we find the same roots used in
the Latin, Greek, Keltic, Slavic,^ and Teutonic tongues for the follow-
ing words : — (1) Father, mother, brother, sister, daughter, father- and
mother-in-law, daughter- and son-, brother- and sister-in-law; (2) ox,
cow, sheep, horse, hog, donkey, goose, mouse, and fly ; (3) plow, yoke,
grind, weave, sing, milk, sow, and reap ; (4) house, field, clothes, wool,
hides, cart, axe, knife, oar, rudder, boat, hammer. These are but a
few out of the many examples that might be given of the similarity
of words in these languages. Among all these people the children
are told the story of "Cinderella" and of "Prince Hatt under the
Earth," and stories of invisible caps and rings and of braye dragon-
killers.
GENERAL STUDY.
What have we found in common between the Greeks, Romans,
and Teutons? It is generally held that these common possessions
indicate a common origin for all these peoples ; what must have been
true in general of the time of that origin compared with the opening
of European history at 1000 B.C.? If all these people, Kelts,^ Teutons,
Slavs, Greeks, and Romans came from Asia, which entered Europe
first, judging by geographical distribution? [See map, pp. 252, 253.]
Why do you think so? Which last? How did the Greeks and
Romans happen to be most quickly civilized ? Look over the above
list of words and determine what occupations the Aryans' must have
known before they separated. By what occupations must they have
been supported? What do you think they ate and wore at that
time? How did they amuse themselves?
1 The Caucasians of Eastern Europe are mostly Slavs; the purest Slavic
blood is found in Russia.
2 The purest Kelts of Europe are the Irish, Welsh, and Scotch.
• Aryan is the general name given to Greek, Roman, Keltic, Teutonic,
and Slavic stocks.
228 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
C. II. THE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE. — CONSTAN-
TINE TO CHARLEMAGNE.
A. Under Roman control. 323-476 A.D.
B. The West under Barbarian Control, 476-800.
0. Empire of Charlemagne, 800-814 A.D. .
"And, behold, the Lord passed bj, and a great and strong wind rent the
mountains, and brake in pieces the rocks before the Lord ; but the Lord
was not in the wind : and after the wind an earthquake ; but the Lord was
not in the earthquake : and after the earthquake a fire ; but the Lord
was not in the fire : and after the fire a still small Yoice." — I Kings,
XIX. 11, 12.
Chief original and contemporary sources, 323-476:
Ammianus, St. Augustine, St. Jerome, and St. Ambrose,
Claudian, Salvian, Zosimus, the Theodosian Code, the
Canon-law.
476-814. For the Empire, the Justinian Code and Pro-
copius ; for Italy, Cassiodorus ; for the Goths, Jornandes ;
for France, Gregory of Tours, Eginhard, and the Capi-
tularies ^ of Charlemagne ; for England, Gildas, Bede, and
the contemporary laws; for the Church, all the above
sources, and canons of the Councils ; for Islam, the
Koran.
Chief modern authorities accessible in English : for the
Church and the Empire, Gibbon, Milman, Finlay, and
Bryce ; for France, Guizot ; for England, Stubbs and
Green ; for Islam, Gibbon, Muir, Ockley, Freeman.
^ Capitularies (little headings) y summaries of law and custom.
THE CHRISTIAN EMPIBE. 22d
n. A. TEE OHRISTIAK EHFIBE UlTOEB BOMAH OOHTBOL,
1. Facts of Imperial Organization.
a. List of Chief Officials of the Roman Empire in the Fifth
Century. (Guizot.)
First Chamberlain^ the chief of those who served the
emperor in his apartments ; Count of the Palace^ the chief
of those who served him at table ; Count of the Sacred
Wardrobe^ the chief of those who cared for the imperial
wardrobe ; three Secretaries of the Chamber^ private sec-
retaries of the emperor, who transacted much public busi-
ness for him ; three Gruardians of Silence^ whose business
it was to keep the palace of the emperor quiet ; Steward
of the Cappadocian Estates; Counts of the Cavalry and
Infantry of the Palace^ two select bands of soldiery for
guarding the imperial person.
Each of these officers had under him many subordinates
and this whole body constituted the Imperial Court;
each emperor and empress and each Csesar had a similar
court chosen by himself or herself.
Master of the Offices^ administered justice to the people
of the palace ; received appeals of private citizens and the
petitions of cities ; had charge of the imperial messengers
and spies throughout the provinces, and the armorers of
the empire. Qucestor^ judged affairs referred to the prince;
composed the laws and edicts of the emperor, kept a
register of military officials. Count of the Sacred Largesses^
treasurer of the empire, receiving and disbursing its
funds. Crown Treasurer^ who managed the revenues more
particularly belonging to the emperor, such as gifts and
bequests. Secretary of State^ kept the register of public
officials, with their duties and salaries.
Each of these officers had under him a great number of
280 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
officials who managed the affairs of his department in all
parts of the empire ; it must also be remembered that each
emperor had these oflScers under him. Under Constantine
nearly 600 permanent garrisons were kept up, consisting of
more than 600,000 men; the imperial body-guard alone
consisted of 3500.
h. The Classes of the Empire (fifth century).
The privileged classes, including senators and high im-
perial officials; oflBcers of the palace; all the clergy; all
the soldiers.
The Curials, including all citizens possessing a certain
amount of landed property.
The common people, including the mass, having little or
no landed property to speak of.
The privilege of the first class was exemption from
municipal functions and offices; this exemption was
hereditary.
The Curials (Decurions) were so by hereditary right or
by acquirement of property ; they could not change their
status by a voluntary act. Their duties were, (1) the ad-
ministration of municipal affairs; (2) the collection and
payment of imperial taxes. They could enter neither the
army nor the Church until they had passed through the
highest municipal offices. They could neither sell their
property nor leave their provinces without permission from
the governor or judge of the province.
c. The Church.
Every little parish with the surrounding country was
under a priest, appointed by the bishop ; the union of these
parishes formed the bishop's diocese, with a city for its
centre. The bishop was generally elected by the clergy
and the people, and confirmed by the civil authority ; he
THE CHRISTIAK EMPIRE. 231
was generally the DefenBor of his city, that is, the man
through whom appeals for justice passed to the emperor ;
often, too, he was an imperial judge. He ruled in accord-
ance with the custom of Rome and with the decrees of
Church councils, convened from time to time at various
places, and consisting almost entirely of bishops. '' Let
the domains, estates, vineyards, slaves, and chattels, . . .
which are given to parishes," says the council of Orleans,
" remain in the power of the bishop."
STUDY ON I.
For whose benefit is the imperial govemmeDt primarily organized?
Compare with republican Rome or with Age of Pericles. In what
countries have we before found such governments ? What name wiU
you give to such a government? What is true of its cost? What
makes its cost? How far is this cost unjustifiable ? On which class
of the people does the burden of its support come? Who manages
the imperial business? On what does its good or bad government
depend? What classes will like and uphold it? Of what value to
the government is each of these classes? Where and in whom is power
centered? In its form, what ia the organization of the Church ? Who
hold its temporal power, and in what forms ?
2. Li8t of Imptyrtani Events and Changes, 82^-476 A.D.
CoNSTANTlNE, first Christian emperor. . . .
By his edicts every man is allowed to follow
the religion he prefers. The property and civil
893
TO
837.
rights of Christians are restored, while in the imperial
service Christians are preferred to pagans. Byzantium is
rebuilt, enlarged, encircled with walls, enriched with
baths, palaces, and churches, and made the capital of the
empire, under the name of Constantinople or New Rome.
The Senate is no longer consulted by the emperors in
regard to their colleagues, and barbarians^ are enrolled in
1 Barbarians, in the Roman sense, are the unciyilized Europeans, mostly
Teutonic, who dweU beyond the Rhine.
282 STUDIES IK GEKERAL HISTORY.
the imperial body-guard. In 825 the Arian controversy
(see p. 221) culminates in the Council of Nice,^ an
assembly of bishops called together by Constantine to
decide upon the points of the orthodox creed. This coun-
cil condemns Arius as a heretic ; and the emperor declares
that those who resist its decisions shall be exiled. The
Nicene Creed becomes, henceforth, the standard of faith
throughout the empire. A long ecclesiastical quarrel in
Africa is settled by imperial authority, in a synod of
Italian prelates, the bishop of Rome presiding.
Meanwhile, war goes on with the Persians and with
various Teutonic tribes.
Emperor %: . . . Julian . . . Theodosius. . . .
Famous bishops : . . . St. Ambrose of Milan. . . .
Civil wars between imperial candidates ; frontier
8S7
TO
410.
wars with Persians and Goths. Julian attempts to revive
paganism. The Huns^ come from the East and attack
the Goths. The Christianized (Arian) half of these ask
the shelter of the empire ; large numbers are thus settled
in the lands south of the Danube. Grossly deceived by
the Romans, they begin to ravage the provinces, and a
Gothic war arises, in the midst of which all the Goths in
the eastern cities are massacred by a secret imperial order
of Theodosius, who brings the war to an end, enrolls the
conquered barbarians in the legions, and gives them per-
manent settlements in the provinces. Suspicions and
quarrels are rife between Romans and Goths.
Theodosius suppresses and persecutes paganism ; Chris-
tianity becomes the state faith of the empire; Rome is
decreed to have the first, Constantinople, the second,
ecclesiastical rank.
After Theodosius, the empire is divided into Western
1 Kicsea, in Bithynia.
3 A people allied to the Tartars, Finns, and modem Hungarians.
THE CHRISTIAN EMPIBE. 233
and Eastern Empires, Ravenna becoming the capital of the
West. The Germans, invading Italy, are repulsed by Stili-
cho, the Vandal general of the West, who has already
saved Italy from the first invasion of Alaric^ the master-
general of the Imperial forces in Illyricum, and king of
the Visigoths, who comprise his legions. — The Roman
troops being withdrawn to defend the continental fron-
tiers of the empire, Britain becomes independent under
native rulers.
JEmperors unimportant, ruling in east and west
separately.
Bishops unimportant, save Leo the Great^ pope
410
TO
476.
of Rome, and St, Chrysostom^ bishop of Constantinople.
Alaric again invades Italy, complaining of delay in the
pay of his legions, and of an unprovoked Italian massacre
of Goths. Ravaging the country, he advances on Rome
and sacks it, sparing, however, the Christians and the
Christian churches. After his death, his brother-in-law
Athaulf, chosen king by the Gothic troops, is appointed
Roman general over his own subjects, and sent with them
to fight barbarians beyond the Alps; they defeat the
Vandals in Spain, and finally settle in Aquitaine, taking
one-third of the land as their own in return for their
services. About the same time the emperors grant per-
manent settlement in Gaul to Burgundians and the
Franks.^ Throughout the provinces, revolts ; in Africa a
Roman general, revolting, calls to his aid Q-enseric^ king
of the Arian Vandals, who crosses into Africa, persecutes
and attacks the orthodox ^ provincials, and ultimately con-
quers and settles Africa for himself and his people.
Attila, king of the Huns, the "Scourge of God,"
1 The name given to a confederation (warrior band?) of freemen
(Franks) from various Germanic tribes.
' Those following the Nicene creed, in opposition to Arianlsm.
284 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
advancing from the north, ravages first the Eastern, then
the Western, Empire ; -^tius, the Scythian master-general
of the western legions, now mostly composed of barbari-
ans, drives him from Gaul by the battle of Chalons
(Strasbourg). He now enters Italy; ruins Aquileia,
whose fugitives found Venice; is persuaded to leave by
the entreaties of Pope Leo I. Hungary becomes the only
permanent European settlement of the Huns.
Britain, still Roman in its civilization, is invaded by the
Anglo-Saxons (449). Nearly at the same time the Irish
are converted to Christianity by St. Patrick. In the east,
important heresies cause wide-spread revolt and difficulty.
The widow of one emperor, insulted by his successor,
asks Genseric the Vandal to avenge her ; hence, Genseric
and his Vandals sail for Rome and sack it. At the interces-
sion of Pope Leo, they forbear to use torture or tire.
The Arian and barbarian legions of Italy ask
one-third of the land of Italy from the Western
476.
Empire ; refused, they mutiny, and declare Odovaker their
king. Augustulus, emperor of the West, resigns, and the
Senate sends an embassy to Zeno, emperor of the East, to
say that they " disclaim the necessity, or even the wish, of
continuing any longer the imperial succession in Italy;
-since, in their opinion, the majesty of a sole monarch is
sufficient to pervade and protect at the same time both
the East and the West. In their own name, and in the
name of the people, they consent that the seat of universal
empire shall be transferred from Rome to Constantinople.
. . . The republic . . . may safely confide in the civil and
military virtues of Odovaker; and they humbly request
that the emperor will invest him with the title of patri-
cian,^ and with the administration of . , . Italy." This
^ A title used in the late empire, conferring high honor, generally
accompanied with substantial power.
THE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE, 235
request granted, Odovaker becomes ruler of Italy, and
grants, with the consent of the Senate, the rule of Gaul
and Spain to the king of the Arian Visigoths. This event
of 476 is popularly known as the "Fall of the Western
Empire."
STUDY ON 2.
What great change has passed oyer the population of the empire?
(Compare maps on pp. 190 and 252, 253.) Through y^hat part of the
Roman organization has this been accomplished? Through what
faults of Roman character ? What in organization on the barbarijtfi
side has favored this change? In character? In what did the so-
called " Fall of the Roman Empire " consist ? What proofs did that
event give of her weakness ? What events prepared the way for this ?
What tendencies caused the foundation of Constantinople and the
establishment of Christianity as the religion of the empire ? What
facts can you give to illustrate or prove the absolutism of the empe-
rors during this period ? In what matter do they show themselves
especially interested? By virtue of what imperial office may they con-
sider this matter their business? What tendency culminates in the
Council of Nice, and what danger does that council enable the Church
to avoid ? What relation do the barbarians hold to Christianity? To
its orthodox form? What relation between these facts and their
peaceful or hostile relations with the provincials? Illustrate. Do you
know of any similar facts in modern times ?
What are the centres of ecclesiastical power ? Why do they become
so ? Of the two, which centre has the fewer rivals in its own part of
the empire? (See map.) Which of the two will be comparatively
greater?
Name two or three things which the barbarians learned or adopted
from the Romans before 476 a.d. What characterizes this period?
Had you been a Roman living at 476 a.d., how would you have
described the event known as the *< Fall of Rome" ?
236 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
8« lAst of Oreat Names of the Period*
a. Men of the Fourth Century,
Nam;
D99dB and Woriw.
VMtf.
Ambrose, St.
Born in Gaul, of Roman
Author of letters, com-
Latin.
family of high official
mentaries, sermons,
rank ; educated at
and hymns ; intro-
Rome; lawyer and
duced responsive
consular magistrate ;
singing into church
bishop of Milan.
service ; founded a
monastery in Milan;
ransomed from the
barbarians, with the
wealth of the Church,
an enormous number
of captives.
Ammianus.
Greek soldier of Anti-
Author of a continua-
Latin.
och, of good family.
tion of the history of
Tacitus.
Anthony, St.
Of a wealthy Christian
Lived alone in a moun-
Egyp-
Egjrptian family ;
tain desert on bread
tian
supported himself by
and water, fasting.
trans-
cultivating a small
praying, laboring ;
lated
field of wheat, and by
believed by himself
into
making mats.
and others to work
miracles ; father of
monasticism ; wrote a
few letters to Eastern
churches.
Greek.
AriuB.
Egyptian; deacon.
Author of the Arian
Greek.
presbyter of Alexan-
heresy.
dria; educated at
Antioch.
Athanasius.
Egyptian; educated at
Defender of orthodoxy
Graek.
Alexandria, where he
against Arius ; con-
became archbishop.
troversial and theo-
logical writings.
THE CHRISTIAN KMPIBB.
287
Mame,
BirUi ount Cinuitt9tMiC9m
Duda and Works.
Language
U90d.
Augustine, St.
Numidian, of humble
Professor of rhetoric
Latin.
parentage ; bishop of
and writer on Chris-
Hippo.
tian theology ; de-
fender of orthodox
Christianity against
various heresies;
founded a convent
and monastery; au-
thor of letters, com-
mentaries, personal
confessions, sermons,
and of the "City of
God," a comparison
of Rome and the
Church.
CoDBtantine.
MoB8ian(?); son of
Founder of Constanti-
. • •
preyious emperor;
nople. (See Summary
soldier and general.
of Events.)
BasU,St.
Cappadocian ; of noble
Teacher of rhetoric ;
Greek.
and wealthy Christian
used his wealth for
family ; educated at
the poor; founded in
Caesarea, Constanti-
Asia Minor self-
nople, and Athens ;
supporting monastic
bishop of Csesarea.
communities devoted
to prayer and labor;
founded hospitals,
houses of refuge.
orphanages; author
of moral and theo-
logical works.
Chrysostom, St.
Bom at Antioch, of
Famous orator and
Greek
high, official, and
preacher ; author of
wealthy family ; edu-
letters, commentaries,
cated as a lawyer ;
sermons, orations ;
preacher; ascetic
popularized the use
and monk ; bishop of
of hymns in Con-
Constantinople.
stantinople.
2S8
STUDIES IN GBNBBAL HISTORY.
Mame.
BtrUi and Circumstano:
Dwda and Works.
LanguGQB
used.
Eusebius.
Native and bishop of
Author of an ecclesi-
Greek.
Caesarea.
astical history.
Eutropius.
Soldier, and secretary
Author of a summary
Latin.
for Constautine ; a
of Roman history.
tolerant pagan.
Gregory,
Cappadocian; studied
Poet and orator, speak-
Greek.
Nazianzen.
at Caesarea, Alexan-
ing and writing on
dria, and Athens ;
religious themes ;
monk with St. Basil ;
gave his property to
bishop of Constanti-
the poor.
nople.
Helena, St.
Mother of Constantine ;
Ransomed captives ;
• • •
British(l) Christian.
gave largely to the
needy ; pilgrim to
Palestine, where it is
said she discovered
the Holy Sepulchre
and the true cross.
Jerome, St
Pannonian; of family
Translator of the Bible
Latin.
in good circumstances
into Latin ( Vulgate) ;
and position ; studied
used his own wealth
rhetoric at Rome and
to support religious
Treves ; hermit in
and charitable work;
Syrian desert.
promoted the found-
ing of convents and
monasteries; author
of letters, commenta-
ries, historical and
controversial writings
connected with the
Church.
Julian.
Nephew of Constan-
Attempts to restore
Greek.
tine ; emperor of
paganism; author of
Rome.
refutation of Christi-
anity and of memoirs
of his German
campaigns.
THE CHBISTIAir EMPIBE.
289
Mame.
D9ed9 and Worka.
U90d.
Martin, St
Pannonian ; of respect-
Estoblished first French
Latin.
able family; soldier;
monastery, where
monk ; bishop of
beautiful manuscripts
Tours.
were produced ; bril-
liant orator and
"model of charity."
Theodosins.
Son of preceding em-
Author of " Theodosian
Latin.
peror; military
Code/* a collection of
training.
Roman laws. (See 2.)
Ulfllas.
Goth; hostage at Con-
Arranged and complet-
Gothic
stantinople; bishop
ed a Gothic alphabet
and
and missionary among
and translated the
Latin.
his own people.
Bible into Gothic.
b. Men of the Fifth Century^ 400-476.
^tius.
Scythian; mastei^
general for Romans.
Alaric.
Visigoth, i.e. king, and
general of Gothic
legions in the pay of
Rome.
Attila.
Hun; war-chief and
king of Hunnic bands.
Claudian.
Alexandrian; patron-
ized by Stilicho;
pagan.
Genseric.
Vandal king and war-
chief.
Leo I., the
Great, St.
Roman; religious edu-
cation; deacon;
ambassador of the
empire; pope.
See 2.
See 2.
. . .
See 2.
. . .
Wrote poems on con-
Latin.
temporary life and
events.
See 2.
. . .
Wrote sermons and
Latin.
letters. (See 2.)
240
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBT.
Nam9.
De9d8 and Works,
language
U99d,
Marcella, St
Roman lady of high
Founded a '* Convent
birth and wealth;
of relieving yirgins";
friend of St. Jerome.
instructed by St. Je-
rome ; used her wealth
and time for religion
and charity.
Odovaker.
Teuton; declared
king of barbarian
legions of Rome.
See 2.
• • m
Patrick, St.
Scotch; son of a Ro-
Converted the Irish
Latin.
man decorion; bishop.
and arranged their
laws ; is thought to
have introduced Ro-
man alphabet into
Ireland; established
monasteries, schools,
and churches.
Salrian.
Gaul ; bom at Cologne
Author of works on
Latin.
or Trfives.
morals and theology,
homilies, letters.
Sozomen.
Palestine ; studied law
Author of history of
Greek.
at Berytus ; lawyer.
the Church.
Sidoiiiu8,Apol-
Of a noble family of
Author of poems and
Latin.
linaris, St.
Lyons ; bishop of
Clermont.
letters.
Simeon
Syrian shepherd ; after-
Lived for 30 years on a
. . •
Stylites, St.
ward monk-hermit.
pillar 60 ft. high;
believed to
possess miraculous
power ; councillor of
Eastern emperor ; ob-
ject of pilgrimages.
Stllicho.
Vandal(l); general of
Roman legions of
west.
See 2.
...
ZosimuB.
Greek; lawyer and
Historian of Roman
Greek.
magistrate.
Empire.
THE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE.
241
2
^ fc
I
242 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON 3.
To what official classes do the great men of this period mostly
belong? What two kinds of greatness are prominent? From what
parts of the empire, or from what nationalities, does each kind come?
What reason can you give for this? Of what use is each kind?
Which is of use to Rome in particular? Which to the world in
general? What are the centres of intellectual activity in the
empire ? What class largely furnish the bishops ? Wh at historic reason
for these facts? What are the intellectual tastes of the period? What
part of the empire is under predominant Roman influence? Greek?
What fact indicates this? What new ideal appears in this period?
From what part of the empire comes the impulse towards this ideal ?
What new countries or peoples receive an impulse toward civilization,
and how does the impulse come ? Judging from the picture on p. 241,
what remark have you to make of the excellence of art in this period?
What new material appears in literature and in art?
4. Significant Laws and Customs of the Period.
a. Under Constantiiie. — Bishops were made judges of
all the officers of the Church, and of all who sinned against
her. — The churches in each city were allowed to own
land, and were given a regular allowance of grain for
distribution among the poor. — Criminals were no longer
to be branded on the forehead, since man was made in the
" image of God," nor were men to be condemned to fight
as gladiators. — Parents were forbidden to expose or sell
their children because of poverty,^ and prison regulations
became milder. — Two laws were issued in the same year:
one, that Sunday should be strictly observed ; the other,
that the auguries should be regularly consulted. — From
this time on, it was legal to use torture with every class
of citizens, when the charge was treason against "the
prince or republic." — The chief officers of the empire
were saluted as "Your Sincerity, Your Gravity, Your
1 The burden of taxation was such that these practices were common.
tHE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE. 243
Excellency, Your Eminence, Your Sublime and Won-
derful Magnitude, Your Illustrious and Magnificent
Highness."
In the reign of Constantine, and even before, many
Christians went to the wildest and most solitary places,
and there lived, clothed in rags or skins, suffering heat and
cold, hunger and thirst, and spending their time in prayer
and the various exercises of religion. Such were said to
be ascetics; in many parts of the empire these ascetics
were gathered into communities, and lived together under
vows of poverty, celibacy, and holiness. Such a com-
munity of men (monks) made the monastery ; of women
(nuns') ^ the nunnery.
I. Julian orders one of his pagan priests to ^^ build nume-
rous places of refuge and entertainment of strangers in
every city. For it is a disgrace that these impious
Christians, besides their own people, should support ours
also, while ours are seen of all men to perish without any
assistance from us."
e. Under Theodosins. — The Theodosian code consisted
of 16 books written in Latin, the last being wholly de-
voted to ecclesiastical law. In it occurred the following
decrees : —
" It is our pleasure that all the nations . . . should stead-
fastly adhere to the religion which was taught by St. Peter
to the Romans ; . . . and as we judge all others are extrav-
agant madmen, we brand them with the infamous name
of heretics." — Curials, who had cheated about the taxes
or owed anything upon them, were to be scourged with a
whip knotted with lead.
^^ In the churches situated in the domains of any private
person, or in a village, or in any other place, let them only
ordain as priests the men of the place itself, and not of
any other domain, in order that they may continue to bear
244 STUDIES IK GENERAL HISTORY.
«
the burden of the poll-tax. . . . With respect to slaves or
laborers, the admonition of their masters, and repeated
floggings, will deter them from this perverse faith"
of paganism.
In the time of Theodosius, the flight of birds was still
consulted by the augurs; and, at his death, the same
heathen honors were paid him as to the pagan emperors.
5. lUustrcUive Ea^ncts and Stories from CorUefnpo^
rary Sources.
a. From Ammianus. (Of the life at Rome.)
" In the first place, we will speak of the faults of the nobles.
. . . Some men . . . are magnificent in silken robes . . . and are
followed by a vast troop of servants, with a din like that of a
company of soldiers. , . . Some of these, when any one meets
and begins to salute them, toss their heads, . . . offering their
flatterers their knees or hands to kiss. A number of idle
chatterers frequent their houses, and . . . admire the construc-
tion of the lofty pillars, and the walls inlaid with stones of
carefully chosen colors, and extol these grandees with super-
human praises. Sometimes scales ai*6 sent for at their enter-
tainments to weigh the fish, or the birds, or the dormice which
are set on the table ; and then the size of them is dwelt on over
and over again, to the great weariness of those present . . .
especially when near thirtj' secretaries stand by, with . . .
memorandum books, to record all these circumstances. . . . And
there are among them some who are such severe judges of
offenses, that if a slave is too long in bringing them hot water,
they will order him to be scourged with three hundred stripes.
. . . Many among them deny the existence of a superior
Power in heaven, and yet neither appear in public, nor dine,
nor think that they can bathe . . . before they have consulted
an almanac, and learnt where [for example] the planet Mercury
is, or iu what portion of Cancer the moon is as she passes
through the heavens. . . . And let us come to the idle and lazy
THE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE. 245
common people . . . These men spend their whole lives in
drinking, and gambling . . . and pleasures, and public specta-
cles ; . • . the Circus Maximus is their temple, their home, their
public assembly ; in fact, their whole hope and desire. . . .
When the wished-for day of the equestrian games dawns . . .
they all rush out with headlong haste, as if with their speed
they would outstrip the very chariots which are going to race ;
while, as to the event of the contest, they are all torn asunder
by opposite wishes, and the greater part of them, through their
anxiety, pass sleepless nights. . . . Among these men are
many chiefly addicted to fattening themselves up by gluttony,
who, following the scent of any delicate food, . . . get an en-
trance into the halls, biting their nails while the dishes are
getting cool."
Ammianus, writing for the East, tells us that in the Gothic
war the Goths were aided by "no inconsiderable number of
men . . . who were unable to endure the heavy burden of their
taxes." And Orosius, in Spain, says: These same Van-
dals " treat the Romans so kindly that there are found
those who prefer freedom with poverty among the barbari-
ans to a life rendered miserable by taxation among their own
countrymen."
6. From a Letter of St. Jerome.
"I sat alone; I was flUed with bitterness; my limbs were
uncomely and rough with sackcloth, and my squalid skin became
as black as an Ethiopian's. Every day I was in tears and
groans ; and if ever the sleep which hung upon my eyelids
overcame my resistance, I knocked against the ground my bare
bones, which scarce clung together. I say nothing of my meat
and drink, since the monks even when sick use cold water, and
it is thought a luxury if they ever partake of cooked food.
Through fear of hell, I had condemned myself to prison ; I had
scorpions and wild beasts for my only companions. . . . My
face was white with fasting, my body was cold; the man,
within his own flesh, was dead before his time."
246 STUDIES IK GENEltAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON 4, AND 5 a AND b.
Name all the evidences displayed by these extracts of the power of
Christianity. What kinds of power are shown ? In what way is this
power exercised? Proofs. What does 4 tell us of the form of gov-
ernment? Of its spirit? What relation seems to exist between pa-
ganism and Christianity? What new persecution arises? What new
organization springs from the new ideal which you have noted in
such men as St. Jerome ? What evils and vices exist in the Roman
Empire of this period ? What relation between these evils and vices
and her previous history ? What relation between them and the so-
called "Fall of the Western Empire " ? Against what manner of life
and what Roman ideal does 5 b show a reaction ?
c From St. Augustine's ^^City of God.*' (Of the pagan gods.)
^' Why did those gods . . . issue do laws which might have
guided their devotees to a virtuous life ? . . . Let them show or
name to us the places which were at any time consecrated to
assemblages, in which . . . the people were commanded in the
name of the gods to restrain avarice, bridle impurity, and con-
quer ambition, ... as we can poiut to oiu: churches built for
this purpose in every land where the Christian religion is
received.*' '^ Know then, that the scenic games, exhibitions of
shameless folly and license, were established at Rome, not by
men's vicious cravings, but by the appointment of your gods. . . •
These astute and wicked spints . . . took occasion to infect, not
the bodies, but the morals of their worshippers."
(Of Rome.)
*' To be brief, the city of Rome was founded ... by which
God was pleased to conquer the whole world, and subdue it far
and wide by bringing it into one fellowship of government and
laws."
d. TheodositLS and Ambrose.
In a fit of rage the Emperor Theodosius had ordered a gen-
eral massacre of the people in one of the cities of the empire.
Soon after, he entered the great church of Milau to worship
THE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE. 247
there as usaal. Id the doorwa}*, Ambroee, the archbishop, met
him with the words : " Robed as you are in the imperial pur-
ple, yoQ are still but a man whose body will crumble to dust,
whose spirit will return to the God who gave it. What account
will you then be able to give of this dreadful massacre of your
subjects? Your subjects indeed, but also your fellow-servants,
with souls as precious in the sight of God as yours." The
emperor, full of remorse and repentance, humbled himself
before the archbishop, who proposed to him the following plan :
that he should prepare a law that no man should be put to
death until thirty days after his condemnation. To this the
emperor agreed. Soon after, he tried to partake of the com-
munion within the altar railings ; but Ambrose sent this mes-
sage to him: ^^The emperor must worship outside the rails
with the rest of the laity." Theodosius obeyed, excusing him-
self, because in Constantinople he had always come within the
altar space.
6. From Claudian. (On the prime minister of the Eastern
emperor.)
'^He who was wont to satisfy his greed
With pantry pickings, and on crusts to feed.
Who from its hinges wrenched the cupboard door
And stuck sly fingers in the housewife's store.
Now wastes the world! All lands that intervene
Twixt Persia's sands and Balkan's forests green
Are set for sale by this base huckstering slave.
One governs Asia, for a farm 'twas sold ;
Another Syria [sapphires set in gold]
His wife's adornment, were the price he paid ;
« « « « «
A tariff rules the various nations' fates —
Galatia, Pontus, Lydia sold like sheep ;
Lycia's a bargain, you shall have it cheap ;
For Phr^'gia we must charge a little more."
248 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
From Zosimua. (Of the prime ministers of the sons of
Theodosius.)
'^ By these men, all lawsuits were divided according to their
own pleasure, and that litigant departed victorious who had
purchased their vote with money, or had in some other way . . .
influenced the good-will of the judge ; . . . wealth poured from
all quarters into the mansions of Rufinus and Stilicho (the
ministers) , while poverty was everywhere overspreading houses
once accounted wealthy."
/. From Salvian. (On taxation.)
^^ Messengers arrive express, bringing letters from the High-
est Sublimities [emperor] which are addressed to a few illus-
trious persons to work the ruin of the multitude. These meet ;
they decree certain additions to the taxes, but they do not pay
these taxes themselves ; they leave that to be done by the poor.
. . . Does it seem unreasonable to complain that one class
orders the taxes which have to be paid by another? . . . and
if it should happen . . . that the emperor should . . . decree a
return of some part of the contributions to the poor province,
at once these rich men divide among themselves the gift which
was meant to help all. ... So far are the barbarian Goths from
tolerating frauds like these, that not even the Romans who live
under Gothic rule are called upon to endure them. And hence
the one wish of all the Romans in those parts is, that it may
never be necessary for them to pass under the Roman jurisdic-
tion. . . . And thus the name of Roman citizen is now volun-
tarily abandoned ; nay, it is shunned."
(The vow.)
^^ A powerful [man] . . . wished to take away the last
remnant of a poor man's substance. Salvian " remonstrated,
but '^ the man replied that the deed was ' now a religious duty
which he dared not neglect,' because he ^ had sworn by Christ
to take that man's property.' "
g. From a Letter of Syiiesivs,
In the first years of the fifth century, the bishop Synesius,
addressing the Eastern emperor, writes, ^< There is scarcely one
THE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE. 249
of our families who has not some Goth as a servant ; in our
cities, the masons, the water-carriers, the porters, are Goth%."
h, From Orosius, (The. speech of Athaulf, brother of
Alaric [see 2]).
'^ It was at first my wish to destroy the Roman name, and
erect in its place a Gothic empire, taking to myself the place and
the powers of Csesar Augustus. But when experience taught
me that the untameable barbarism of the Goths would not
suffer them to live beneath the sway of law . . ., I chose the
glory of renewing and maintaining by Gothic strength the fame
of Rome, desiring to go down to posterity as the restorer of
that Roman power which it was beyond my power to replace."
Compare with this the following letter from the Burgundian
king to the Eastern emperor. He writes to thank the emperor
for the titles of Count and Patrician, which were conferred upon
him. '^My people is yours," he writes, ^^and to rule them
delights me less than to serve you. . . . Our ancestors have
always preferred what an emperor gave to all their fathers
could bequeath. In ruling our nation, we hold ourselves but
your lieutenants: you, whose divinely-appointed sway no
barrier bounds, whose beams shine from the Bosphorus into
distant Gaul, employ us to administer the remoter regions of
your empire ; your world is our Fatherland."
STUDIES ON 5, c-h.
What great contrast between the faith of paganism and of Chris-
tianity? What were the devils and demons of the early Church?
What did Rome seem to the Church and the empire of the fourth and
fifth centuries? To the barbarians? What was the comparative
power of the Church in Rome and Constantinople ? What reason can
you think of for this ? What power had Ambrose over Theodosius ?
What influence did he exert? What principle did he announce ? In
what way was the government carried on, judging from the extracts ?
What evils do these extracts prove to exist in the empire? What
light does / throw on the easy change of power from Roman to bar-
barian hands ? How was Christianity very often understood ? What
seems to have been the ambition of the barbarians ?
250 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
General Questions. — In what capacities did the barbarians enter
and l>ecome a part of the empire ? What did the empire give them ?
Prove it. Make a list of all the powers of the Church. What justifi-
cation was there for the persecution of heresy by emperors? Wbo
was the head of the Church in the earlier part of the period ? What
classes of people did Christianity favor, and by whom would it be
supported?
U. BandC. THE WEST TTITDEB BABBABIAH OOHTKOL;
EMFIBE OF OHAfiLEMAGNR
1 . Summary of Events from 47^-800 A.D.
Age of Clovis and Theodoric the Cheat, knovm in
the North as Dietrich of Berne ( Verona) ,
In the East, important heresies arise, causing
476
TO
527.
revolt and war, especially in Syria and Egypt.
In Italy, Theodoric the Goth asks Zeno, for whom
he commands the Ostrogoths, to permit him to drive
Odovaker from Italy and become patrician in his stead
(see p. 234), Zeno consents, and the Arian Ostrogoths
enter Italy, where they are granted one-third of the land ;
constant difficulties arise between them and the orthodox
Italians.
In Gaul, Clovis, king of the Franks, is converted to
orthodox Christianity; he and his warriora are at once
baptized, and Clovis is henceforth regarded by the Gallo-
Romans as their protector. He conquers the Arian Visi-
goths and Burgundians (see map), receives from Constan-
tine the titles of patrician and consul, and becomes the
founder of the Merovingian dynasty in France. At his
death his dominion is divided among his sons.
In Britain, the constant struggle of the native Kelts
against the invading Saxons still goes on.
THE WEST UNDER BABBABIAN CONTROL. 261
527
TO
565.
Age of Justinian^ Emperor of the East.
In the East^ Justinian makes, through his lawyer,
Trebonian, final and authoritative collections of
Roman law, known as " The Code, the Pandects, and the
Institutes of Justinian." Through his general, Belisa-
rius, he recovers Italy, Africa, and Southern Spain from
the rule of the Goths and Vandals, and places them
directly under Byzantine officials, the most important of
whom is the Exarch of Ravenna, who rules Italy in the
name of the East. Meanwhile, the empire is attacked
by Persians, Slavs, and Avars,^ while it nearly loses Egypt
and Syria by wide-spread heresies, which cause great dis-
affection towards Constantinople.
In, France^ constant strife between kingdoms.
In Britain^ continual war between Saxon and Kelt.
565
TO
639.
Age of Pope Gregory the OrecU and Mohammed.
In the East^ constant wars with Persians and
Avars, and constant difficulties with Syrian and
Egyptian heretics. In Mecca, in Arabia, Mohammed
is born; claiming divine inspiration, he preaches that
there is no God but one, and that Mohammed is his
prophet. This doctrine spreads rapidly through the East,
but Mohammed is so persecuted at Mecca, that, in 622,
he flees to Medina (Hegira^ ; from that time, he preaches
to his disciples the duty of fighting for their faith.
In Italy ^ the Lombards seize the valley of the Po ; Italy
implores armed assistance from the East, which the East
is unable to give. In this crisis Gregory the Great himself
directs the movements of troops, urges the Italians to
their own defence, and finally makes a truce with the
Lombards without appealing to the emperor; soon after,
^The Aran were of the same race as the modem Turks, namely,
Turanian.
EUROPE
m THE REION OF
THEODORIC
O A. D. BOO.
I I Roman Umpire
CU T^tonioSettl
CU CeUB
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL. 255
the Exarchate ^ from the Lombards and gives it to the
pope, who, in return, crowns him the king of the Franks ;
next, in the person of Charlemagne, who conquers the
Lombards for good, confirms the Exarchate to the pope,
and is crowned emperor of the West by Pope Leo in
St. Peter's in Rome (800). Thus begins the Holy Roman
Empire, which includes, at Charlemagne's death, the
countries marked red on the map, pp. 256, 267. The con-
quest of the Saxons is accompanied by their conversion
from paganism to Christianity, Charlemagne giving them
a choice between conversion, and death by the sword.
Their territory is made into eight bishoprics, and " these
episcopal seats became the first schools and cities of that
savage land."
In Britain^ continued strife of Saxon kingdoms, with
tendency toward consolidation.
The Mohammedan Caliphate is divided, the eastern lands
of Islam having as centre, first, Damascus, then, Bagdad ;
the western owning allegiance to the caliph of Cordova.
STUDY ON I AND MAP.
What appears the most powerful influence of this period ? Name
all the proofs of its power. Under what titles do the barbarians rule
the West ? By virtue of what force ? What characterizes this period ?
What must have been true of the Roman provincial life during this
time? What kind of duties and powers does the pope exercise?
What historic reason is there for the supremacy of the bishop of
Rome? What parts of the empire pass under Mohammedan rule?
What old seats of Oriental influence or powder does that rule include in
Asia, Africa, and Europe? What prepared the way for this conquest
in Syria and Egypt? What parallel between the history of the
Mohammedan and Roman empires ? What tendencies culminated in
the crowning of Charlemagne? Does that crowning represent a
revolt from, or a continuation of the Roman Empire ? Compare the
* The city and surrounding territory of Ravenna.
/
IS
S a X o ,
^
j± u
'04e,
i
/
r
— 2^^
r\k)J ''N
~~^3f^
'^ O ^f^^^ i
. * V
i/
' /
— h
^
tx^
J
" ^^
1
^^^^^-^-Z^^^/
♦ S^
EUROPE j
"■
~i~
--^->
..,..,^^^^
IN THE TIME OF /
CHARLES THE GREAT
814. /
BomoMJ^pir^cfAt
/
. r
"^ — -
~i~
andiUtUptnd^Sta
tB aO 88
40 « (0
55
60 ^
^J^r^
— ^ \ \
\^
\ lA
^\
-.Jj__J
'-"xx'^
\ v ^
4^1
\ V \
\^
"^"i^
x.3-=^
^^<^\ .^**
I r 6
^y=
$^r\
\ \
£\
^^-pJ'Tthtfi
iooi./\ ^^^^
\ ^
■\\ ?^. ^'^
^^\^,,^J \
\ \\ V"
\
^--''''^x
^">^ L.*^-^ i^^
J%\ \
— -"^^^^^P^^'*^'^
>-^ i:=^^--'^f^»v»>';^
' 1 \ ^
"^*"JF5[*^"^^^-^ — rT/^ (f^
•r^^Vi^
M^/^>L^
1- \ v
t'^^M^* ^*S!X^
"xV
Lj?^
^^ \r ■Dtf»^'* \
^
^*>^ \^\
a
yv^j^v^^
v-*^"***.
J^ /oW^*"" \
AvV
^^V
4l— !^
rt^^^'L--'-^
^
\ '^
]-=.-,=--
tt'^C'^ ^
^ '^ 0 F
li vVv
\ ^-^'*
1 rn yjtftm c«ij>to.
lV~^\lj\_
"^^
[ I □-&*€« <Wi/*rt.
l\\^
\\
\ .
ss
80 85
40
45
aimkMih 8«TM * a*., ■•r'*. k.y.
258
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
empire of Charlemagne with Roman Empire of second century;
with modem Europe. What great difference between this and the
old empire in the composition of its population? In the source of
imperial power? What unity does this new empire possess? Why
is it called « Holy " ? Why " Roman " ? Name all the conquests of the
Christian empire from Constantine to Charlemagne. What form
do they assume with reference to the Church ? To become a Roman
involved becoming what else ?
8. jLM of Famous Names of Period.
a. Men of Sixth Century (476-600).
Name.
Augustine, St.
Belisarius.
Benedict, St.
Boethius.
Birth and CIrcumgtane;
Roman monk ; first
archbishop of Can-
terbury.
Thracian; of obscure
birth ; general of
Justinian.
Italian; of wealthy
and noble family ;
hermit.
Roman patrician, con-
sul, and senator; high
official under
Theodoric.
Iheda and Works,
Missionary to Britain,
which he enters with
a band of monks, sent
by Pope Gregory the
Great ; converts the
king of Kent and his
people.
See 1.
Eloquent preacher ;
founder of the sect
of Benedictine
monks, and of many
monasteries, notably
that of Monte Cassi-
no, near Rome.
Translator of Aristotle,
Ptolemy, and other
Greek writers ;
author of " Consola-
tion of Philosophy,"
a work dealing with
theology and phi-
losophy.
Language
Latin.
Latin.
Latin.
THE "WEST UNDER BAEBAEIAN CONTROL.
269
Nam:
Delia and Work;
U89d.
CassiodoruB.
South Italian ; of
Author of philosophic
Latin.
wealthy and noble
and historic works
family; minister of
and letters; founds a
Odoraker and Theo-
monastery, for which
doric; afterwards,
he collects a fine
Benedictine monk.
library of manuscripts.
Cesaire, 8t
Gaul; of wealthy
Eloquent preacher ; re-
Latin.
family; bishop of
stores the church of
Aries.
St. Martin, with col-
ored glass windows ;
theological writer.
Clovis.
War-chief and king of a
great band of Franks.
Seel.
. . .
Columba, St.
Irish ; of noble birth ;
Founder of monastery
Irish.
educated in Ireland ;
of lona, and of other
monk at lona.
monasteries and
churches; preacher,
poet, and missionary
in Scotland.
Columbanus,
Bom and educated in
Missionary to wilder
Latin.
St.
Ireland; abbot.
parts of France and
Italy, where he founds
famous monasteries.
Gall, St.
Irish monk ; of high
Missionary to Switzer-
Latin.
birth ; educated in
land, where he founds
Ireland.
monastery of St.
Gall, afterward the
centre of a town ;
preacher and orator.
Gildas.
Son of a British prince ;
Historian of the Saxon
Latin.
studies in Ireland;
conquest of Britain.
monk.
•
Gregory of
Gaul of a patrician
Author of "Ecclesiasti-
Latin.
TOUTB.
family ; bishop of
cal History of
Tours.
Franks " ; student of
classics; ambassador
between the various
rulers of Gaul.
260
STUDIES IN GENERAL HI8TOBY.
Nam;
BfrtM an4 OtreumHanee.
Dee^a etnd Works,
Leutffuagi.
used.
Gregory I., the
Of wealthy and noble
Uses his fortune in
Latin.
Great.
Roman family ; high-
founding monasteries,
ly educated in rhetoric
and in charity ; writer
and law; Benedictine
of commentaries.
monk; pope.
hymns, letters; sup-
presses heresies ;
disciplines and organ-
izes the Church ; adds
the Gregorian Chant
to church music, and
founds a school for
choristers ; fixes the
order of processions,
and of changes of
garments during
church service ; sends
missionaries to Gaul
and Britain. (See 1.)
Jordanis.
Goth; of high birth;
Author of a Gothic
Latin.
biBhop.
history, based on that
of Cassiodorus.
Justiniaii.
Son of Illyrian peasant ;
Seel.
Latin
nephew of preceding
and
emperor ; civil and
Greek.
military official.
Procopius.
Lawyer of Palestine ;
Geographer and histo-
Greek.
official under Justinian .
rian of his own time.
Theodoric.
Ostrogoth; of royal
See 1.
Latin,
line ; educated as a
Gothic
hostage at Constanti-
nople ; general of the
Eastern legions (Os-
trogothic), who pro-
claim him king.
Trebonian.
Of Asia Minor ; lawyer
Compiler of Justinian
Taitin.
and government
Code, etc. (See 1.)
official.
THE WEST UNDER BABBABIAN CONTROL. 261
6. Men of Seventh Century.
Mame.
Deeds and Works.
used.
Abu-bekr.
Father-in-law of Mo-
Begins conquests of
Arabic.
hammed; elected the
Syria and Persia ; col-
first caliph or succes-
lects the Koran into
sor of Mohammed,
one volume ; adminis-
and " Commander of
ters provinces mostly
the Faithful."
by native and Greek-
speaking officials.
Aidan.
Irish ; monk from
Missionary to Northum-
English.
lona ; bishop of
bria ; founds monas-
Lindisfarne.
teries and schools,
notably that at Lindis-
fame, near the
Northumbrian coast.
Cedmon.
Northumbrian cow-
First Christian English
English.
herd.
poet ; sings or para-
phrases Biblical
subjects.
Cuthbert, St.
Northumbrian ; peasant
" Apostle of the low-
English.
and shepherd ; monk ;
lands "of England;
prior of Lindisfarne.
ascetic and hermit.
Eloi, St.
Gaul ; bishop ; gold-
Founds schools of gold-
Latin;
smith ; treasurer and
smiths in connection
native
minister of Frankish
with some of the mon-
dialects.
kings.
asteries; missionary
among the Frisians
(in northern part of
Holland).
Isidorus.
Of magisterial family ;
Writer on historical,
Latin.
bishop of Seville.
theological, gramma-
tical, and scientific
subjects.
Mohammed.
Mecca; of noblest
Founder of Moham-
Arabia
Arabian blood, but
medanism ; preacher
poor.
and teacher ; believed
by his followers to be
262
STUDIES IN GBKEBAL HISTORY.
Mam:
Birth and CIrcumatanee.
Deeds and Works.
used.
the inspired author of
the Koran and the
greatest prophet of
God.
Omar.
Father-in-law of Mo-
Preacher and ruler ;
Arabic.
hammed; receives the
divides his time be-
caliphate by will
tween preaching to
from Abu-bekr.
the people and ad-
ministering justice
to them ; Egypt and
Palestine added to
the Saracenic empire ;
provinces adminis-
tered as under Abu-
bekr ; conquest of
Syria, and continua-
tion of that of Persia.
Othman.
Son-in-law of Moham-
Completes conquest of
Arabic.
med ; elected to
Persia; begins that
caliphate by commit-
of Africa; province^
tee of six, chosen by
administered as under
Omar.
Abu-bekr.
Theodore.
Of Tarsus; Greek
Organizes the English
Greek,
monk sent by Pope
Catholic Church nmch
Latin,
to be archbishop of
in its present form ;
English.
Canterbury.
founds a school at
Canterbury; teaches
medicine, astronomy,
Greek, Latin, arithme-
tic, divinity.
c. Men of Eighth Century.
Contemporaries of Chariemagne marked *.
*Alcuin.
English monk of York ;
abbot of St. Martin.
Writes on philosophy,
theology ; invited to
Charlemagne's court
to be chief of the
school of the palace.
Latin.
THE WEST trUDBB BARBARIAK CONTEOL.
263
Name.
Dwda and Works.
Language
ysed.
Bede.
Northumbrian monk;
Author of "Ecclesiasti-
Latin
student and teacher
cal History of Eng-
and
in the school of
land"; translates Gos-
English.
Jarrow.
pel of St. John into
EngUsh ; Greek and
Latin scholar ; writer
of hymns.
Benedict.
English ; noble birth ;
Founds school and
Latin
monk.
monastery of Jarrow,
and
causing the church to
English.
be built by French
workmen in the
Roman style, and
adorned with glass
windows, inserted by
French glaziers ;
brings many books
into England from
Rome.
Boniface, or
Anglo-Saxon monk ;
" The Apostle of Ger-
Latin.
Winifried.
afterward bishop of
many," sent by the
Mayence.
Pope; founds many
bishoprics and monas-
teries, which often
become towns ; mas-
sacred by the pagan
Frisians ; author of
sermons, letters, and
theological writings.
Charlemagne.
King of the Franks ;
Collects and arranges
Latin
son of "Pepin the
the ** Capitularies,"
and
Short."
or the body of preced-
ing French law.
French.
Cliarles Martel.
Frank ; mayor of the
palace of the French
Seel.
king.
264
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Mam:
Birth an4 Olroumstane^.
D€Wl8 and Works.
used.
*Dungal.
Bom and educated in
Helps Charlemagne
Latin.
Ireland.
reform the calendar ;
makes astronomical
annals ; chief teacher
in school at Paris.
Cynewulf.
Northumbrian bard.
Composes riddle-songs ;
writes poems on sub-
jects connected with
the life of Christ and
the saints ; their
forms show Latin
influence.
English.
•Eginhard.
Frank ; of good birth ;
Author of Life of
Latin.
archchaplain ; super-
Charlemagne; annals
intendent of public
and letters.
works, and secretary .
for Charlemagne ;
abbot in Germany.
*Haroun-al-
Most famous of the
Head of a brilliant
Arabic.
Raschid.
caliphs of Bagdad ;
Oriental court; sends
son of former caliph.
a clock to Charle-
magne, which is a
wonder to the court
by reason of its fine
mechanism and its
metal work of brass
and gold.
Geber, or Jeber.
Mesopotamian Arab ;
Discovered and ana-
Arabic, -
physician.
lyzed various chemical
translat-
combinations; called
ed into
master of masters by
English.
Roger Bacon; was
thought to have dis-
covered the art of
creating gold.
THE WEST UKDER BARBARIAN CONTROL.
265
^^m
^^9
l^^^K^
--..f-^r^B
|B4g^^M
'J^H
~'\ ' ^^H
s
l^m
itiiai
' Ml
-7^^^.^
"--
■^' '! i|
4SS9^^^<nfllu
■■ ,;i
^^^ '^^mi mi :il
s
I °
•si
O JO
e «
6 a
o 5
B 5-
il
266 STUDIES IN OENEBAL HISTORY.
Note. — During the seventh, or early in the eighth, century appears
the first manuscript of the Anglo-Saxon epic of Beowulf, — a poem
recounting the adventures of warriors and sea-farers. The monks in
France and England now begin to keep Latin chronicles of contempo-
rary events.
About the sixth century schools of Greek philosophy are founded
in Edessa and other Asiatic cities by Syrian Christians. The philoso-
phy taught is that of Aristotle.
Damascus, Cordova, Cairo, and Bagdad are made the capitals and
centres of Mohammedanism. The two latter cities are pure Moorish
foundations. Splendid domed mosques and palaces built in all these
cities.
Schools are founded at Bagdad in reign of Al-Mansour in the eighth
century, where Aristotle and Galen are translated into Syriac; the
same authors are translated for the use of the schools of Granada and
Cordova.
STUDY ON 2 AND 3.
What is the literary language of Europe ? What is the subject of
intellectual interest? Who make the books and direct the thought of
Europe? What special art does the Church cultivate? What special
sort of literature? What division of the empire is most fertile in
great men ? What still marks this division ? What kinds of great-
ness are lacking in this period ? What reason can you find for this ?
Make a Hst of all the things which prove that the Church is the
civilizing power of Europe during this period. What is the source of
the civilization which she gives? What organization is most active in
this work? What people possess the military and governmental
genius of Europe during this period ? What historic reason for this ?
In whom does this genius culminate ? What new languages appear
in literature? What does that indicate of the peoples speaking
them? What marks the religious spirit of the period? IIow does
the Church tend to bring the various parts of Europe into imity and
sympathy ?
What proofs that the Mohanmiedans obtained their civilization
from the Eastern, or Greek Empire ? What architectural construction
did they take ? (See St. Sophia.) Of what great cities were Cairo
and Bagdad successors ?
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL. 267
4. Significant Laws and Customs,
a. Under Justinian and other Eastern Emperors.
The Justinian Code was composed of twelve books
written in Greek and Latin, the first one being devoted to
ecclesiastical matters and opening with the imperial creed
of the Trinity; the rest consisted of a collection of previous
Roman law. In its newer portions we find: . . . "What-
ever the prince wills has the force of law, because the peo-
ple have yielded to him their own sovereignty." — Church
lands were still further freed from taxes, and the bishop of
each city was made the inspector of its accounts and of the
moneys used for the public good in baths, markets, bridges,
aqueducts. — In all quarrels in the East, Constantinople
was declared arbiter.
After the Council of Chalcedon (near Constantinople)
the Emperor Marcian issued two laws : one forbade the
future agitation of all questions concerning the nature of
Christ, and affixed severe penalties to their discussion;
the other confirmed the conclusions of the Council, and
declared that no private man could hope to reach so sound
a conclusion as the Council. This Council also made Rome
and Constantinople equal seats of episcopal authority and
the highest of appeal.
b. Under the Barbarians.
In Italy. — Theodoric wore the official dress and bore
and gave the official titles of Rome. He swore in the
Senate to maintain the imperial laws, which Latin coun-
cillors helped him to interpret and apply. He it was who
charged the prefect of the city to keep up the " forests of
stately buildings, the statues which peopled the city, the
herds of equestrian images."
In France. — During this period, Romans were judged
268 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
by Roman, Franks by Prankish, Burgundians by Burgun-
dian law, though they might be living on the same territory
and under the same ruler. Church law, however, was the
same for all, as were many of the laws of Charlemagne.
The first considerable collection of Prankish law was the
Capitularies^ of Charlemagne. Of these, 621 were acts of
civil, and 416 of religious, legislation. These laws imposed
the death penalty on any Saxon who should refuse baptism,
return to idolatry, murder a priest or bishop, offer human
sacrifice, eat meat in Lent. — Baptism or repentance could
atone for every crime. — " Not too many slaves were
allowed to flee to the monasteries, lest the country estates
become desolate." — " The king must walk uprightly. . . .
If he act with piety, justice, clemency, he deserves the name
of king ; otherwise, he is not a king, but a tyrant. . . . [He
is] the defender of the churches, of the servants of God, of
the widows, of the other poor, of all who are in distress."
One of the earliest collections of Visigothic law opened
as follows : — ^
" In this volume are contained the laws or decisions of
equity, selected from the Theodosian Code and other
books. . . . With the aid of God, occupied with the inter-
ests of our people, we have corrected, after mature delib-
eration, all that seemed iniquitous in the laws, in such
manner that, by the labor of the priests and other noble-
men, all obscurity in the Roman and in our own ancient
laws is dissipated."
In England. — Ethelbert, that king of Kent who was
converted to Christianity by Augustine, issued the first
English laws extant; among them were the following:
"Property stolen from the Church [shall] be restored
twelve-fold, that taken from the king but nine-fold." —
^ Capitularies, " little headings," the written summaries of law and
custom made by eariy French rulers.
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL. 269
Withred, king of Kent, thus decreed : " For I, Withred,
an earthly king, stimulated by the heavenly king, and
kindled with the zeal of righteousness, have learned from
the institutes of our forefathers that no layman ought to
appropriate to himself a church or any of the things which
to a church belong. And therefore ... we decree, and
in the name of Almighty God and of all saints, we forbid
to all kings our successors, and to aldermen, and to all
laymen, any lordship over churches and over any of their
possessions."
c. In the Church. (Extracts from the "Rule of St. Bene-
dict," generally followed in the monasteries of the West.)
" Laziness is the enemy of the soul, and consequently the
brothers should, at certain times, occupy themselves in manual
labor ; at others, in holy reading. ... If the poverty of the
place, necessity, or the harvest keep them constantly employed,
let them not mind that, for they are truly monks if they live by
manual labor, as our brothers the apostles did ; but let every
thing be done with moderation, for the sake of the weak. . . .
During Lent all shall receive books from the library, which
they shall read one after another, all through. ... On Sunday
let all be occupied in reading, except those who are selected for
various functions. If any one be negligent or lazy, so that he
wishes neither to meditate nor read, let some labor be enjoined
upon him, so that he may not remaiu doing nothing. ... If,
by chance, anything difficult or impossible be imposed upon a
brother, ... let him explain fitly and patiently to his superior
the reason of the impossibility, not inflamed with pride, not
resisting, not contradicting. If, after his observation, the prior
pereists in his opinion and his command, let the disciple know
that it ought to be so, and confiding in the aid of God, let him
obey. . . . Let no person dare to give or receive without the
order of the abbot, nor have anything of his own peculiar prop-
erty, not a book, nor tablets, nor a pen, nor anything whatso-
ever." " Love the Lord thy God with the whole heart, whole
270 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
soul, whole strength, and thy neighbor as thyself. Renounce
luxuries. Relieve the poor. Clothe the naked. Do no injuries,
and bear them patiently. When you see anything good in j'our-
self , attribute it to God and not to yourself."
Among the ordinances of Gregory the Great are the fol-
lowing: ''We understand that the price paid for corn to the
peasant subjects of the Church is lowered in times of abund-
ance ; we desire that they shall always be paid according to the
current price. We forbid that the farmers shall pay more than
the rate fixed in their locality. . . . Every pagan or Jewish
slave who desires to become a Christian should be freed at the
cost of the Church."
*******
"We have learned also that in some farms of the Church
there exists a most unjust system, nanielj^, that out of seventy
bushels, the farmers exact (from their tenants, or serfs) three
and a half. . . . We wholly detest this custom. . . . Do you
appoint . . . that they may pay in the whole two bushels in
seventy ; but that, beyond this, no shameful exaction be made."
STUDY ON 4.
What were the sources of law durmg this time? What was the
most powerful influence at work upon the laws ? Among whom was
this influence strongest? Name the changes evidently due to this
influence. What form did the government of the empire positively
assume ? Make a list of the powers given to the Church during this
time. What determined by what law a man should be judged?
What would determine it now? What class of men in the Church
held the most power? What kinds? What effect had the Church on
regard for labor? Through what organization did she work this
effect? Describe the ideal monk. What faults in human nature
were attacked by this ideal?
5. Stories and Extracts Illustrative of Period in the
Christian Einpire.
a. The Founding of Monte Cassino.
At the command of Benedict, the Goths of Theodoric " armed
themselves with axes and hatchets, and employed their robust
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL. 271
strength in rooting out the brushwood and clearing the soil,
which, since the time of Nero, had again become a wilderness. . . .
Many young men of rich and noble families . . . labored with
the other brethren in the cultivation of the soil and the building
of the monastery, and were bound to all the services imposed
by the rule."
b. From Sermon of St. Eloi.
"Do not consult . . . the diviners, or the sorcerers, or the
enchanters, for any cause, even for illness ; pay no heed to
omens or to sneezing ; do not be influenced by the singing of
birds when you hear them in your journeys. . . . Let no Chris-
tian pay heed to the day he leaves a house, or that upon which
he returns to it. . . . Let no one seek to invoke the demons,
such as I^eptune, Pluto, Diana, Minerva, or the evil genius. . . .
Let no one observe the day of Jupiter [Thursday] as a day of
rest. Let no Christian make vows in the temples, or by the
side of fountains, or gardens, or stones, or trees."
c. The Conversion of Clovis. (Gregory of Tours.)
'^The queen did not cease to urge the king to acknowledge
the true God, and to put away his idols ; but he could in no
wise be moved to believe on these things until at length, at a
certain time, a war was set on foot against the Germans ; in
which war he was compelled to confess what before he had
denied. For it came to pass that as the two armies were
fighting, there was great slaughter, and the army of Clovis was
about to be utterly destroj-ed. Clovis, seeing this, was grieved
in heart, and moved even to teai*s, and raising his eyes to
heaven, said, ' O thou Christ Jesus, whom Clotilda declares to
be the son of the true God, thou who art said to . . . grant the
victory to those who put their trust in thee, to thee I make my
vows. ... If thou grant me the victory over these, mine
enemies, and if I And in thee that power which those who call
on thy name declare that they have proven, I will believe on
thee, and will be baptized in thy name. For I have called upon
my gods, but I find that they are far from assisting me ; where-
272
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
fore, I believe that the}' have no power.' . . . Even while he
was saying these things, the Germans turned thoir backs and
fled. . . . After the victory, the bishop of Rheims was sent for,
and preached the gospel to Clovis, who consented to be baptized
if his people would follow."
*' But as he came into the presence of his folk, their hearts
were moved by the power of God, so that before he spoke they
THl LBOBND OF ST. MARTIN OF TOURa
(Prom a piece of tapestry of the thirteenth century in the Louvre.)
1. St. Martin shares his cioak with a poor man. 2. Sees in a dream Jesus Christ clad
with this half of his cloalc. 3. The saint's baptism. 4. He brings to life a catechumen,
who had died without baptism. 5. He recalls to life a slave, who is first represented as
hung from a gibl>et, and afterwards standing on the ground and giving him thanks.
6. St. Martin is consecrated Bishop of Tours. 7. lie evokes the spectre of a pretended
martyr, and when it appears and avows that it had been executed for its crimes, the
chapel is demolished. 8. He gives his tunic to a poor man. 9. He brings to life the
son of a peasant. 10. He drives out the evil spirit from the body of a mad cow.
11. Seeing on the banks of a river some birds watching to catch fish, he bids them fly
away. 12. Death of St. Martin. His soul, in the form of a child, is being borne off to
heaven by two angels.
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL. 278
all cried out, ' We cast away our false gods, O righteous king,
and we are ready to follow the trae God ! * "
These things are announced to the priest, who, filled with
great joy, orders the baptistery to be made ready. The altar is
decked with richly wrought coverings . . . ; the baptismal font
stands readj', the incense pours forth, and the lighted candles
send forth such sweet odor that the whole church is filled with
heavenly fragrance ; and such grace does God grant to those
standing by that they think themselves in the midst of the per-
fumes of Paradise. . . . Therefore, the king, having acknowl-
edged the omnipotent Godhead of the Trinity, is baptized in the
name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, anointed with
the baptismal oil, and sealed with the sign of the cross of Christ.
More than three thousand of his army are baptized with him.
d. Oswald, King of Northumberland,
*' * By reason of his constant habit of praying or giving thanks
to the Lord, he was wont, wherever he sat, to hold his hands
upturned on his knees.' As he feasted with Bishop Aidan by
his side, the thane, or noble of his war-band, whom he had set
to give alms to the poor at his gate, told him of a multitude that
still waited fasting without. The king at once bade the untasted
meat before him to be carried to the poor, and his silver dish to
be parted piecemeal among them. Aidan seized the royal hand
and blessed it. ' May this hand,' he cried, ' never grow old.' "
e. The Abbot and the Cart.
''There was a poor man whose cart had been overthrown
before the very gate of the king ; many people passed in and
out, and not only did they not lend him any aid, but many . . .
trod him under foot. . . . When the abbot arrived, he saw the
impiety which these children of insolence committed, and imme-
diately descending from his hoi*se, he held his hand out to the
poor man, and, both together, they raised the cart. Many of
those present, seeing him all soiled with mud, mocked and
insulted him, but he cared not, following with humility the
bumble ^sample of his Master."
274 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
/. The Crowning of Charlemagne. (From contemporary monkish
chronicles.)
"And because the name of emperor had now ceased among
the Greeks, and their empire was possessed by a woman, it
seemed both to Leo the pope himself, and to all the holy fathers
who were present in the self -same council, as well as to the rest
of the Christian people, that they ought to take to be emperor
Charles, king of the Franks, who held Rome herself, where the
Csesars had always been wont to sit, and all the other regions
which he ruled through Italy and Gaul and Germany; and
inasmuch as God had given all these lands into his hand, it
seemed right that with the help of God, and at the prayer of
the whole Christian people, he should have the name of emperor
also. Whose petition King Charles willed not to refuse, but
submitting himself with all humility to God, and at the prayer
of the priests, and of the whole Christian people, on the day of
the nativity of our Lord Jesus Christ, he took on himself the
name of emperor, being consecrated by the pope Leo." . . .
*' For this also was done by the will of God . . . that the heathen
might not mock the Christians if the name of emperor should
have ceased among the Christians."
From Letters of Alcuin to Charlemagne.
"In obedience to your exhortation and wise desire, I
apply myself in serving out to some of my pupils in this
house [monastery] of Saint Martin the honey of the holy
writings ; I essay to intoxicate others with the old wine of
antique studies ; one class I nourish with th : fruits of gram-
matical science ; in the eyes of another, I display the order of
the stars." . . .
"I have schools of singers, many of whom are already suffi-
ciently instructed to be able to teach others. ... I have also
done in this church what lay in my power, as to copying books.
... I have roofed the great church of this town, . . . and have
reconstructed a portion of the walls ; ... for the priests, I have
constructed a cloister."
THE WEST UKDEB BABBABIAN CONTEOL.
275
M06AI0 OF TBNTH OJMTUHY.
From Church of St. John in Lateran In Rome; It represenU Christ giving the spirltaal
power to Peter with the keys, and the temporal power to Conatantine, with the standard.
STUDY ON 5.
What effect would the monasteries have on the regard for labor ?
On the spread of knowledge ? What sorts of useful knowledge would
be especially favored by them ? What studies were pursued in them V
What in the Roman Empire and the Roman Church made a strong
impression on the barbarians, and thus became a source of power over
them ? What sort of Christians were Clovis and his followers ? How
did they regard Christianity? What does the sermon of St. Eloi
indicate about the beliefs of the common people and the influence of
276 STUDIES IN GENERAl. HISTOBY.
the Church ? What elements of character entered into the ideal set
by the Church ? Whence did Charlemagne and his contemporaries
believe his power proceeded ? What does the Lateran mosaic (p. 275)
teach us of the ideas of the time ? If the picture on p. 272 with its
explanation were all that we possessed to tell us of this age, what
could we learn from it?
In General. — Of what is the Church the successor in Europe ?
What are its bonds of union ? What good reason for the persecution
of heresy by popes and emperors V
6. Extracts lUustrative of the First Century of Mohan^
fnedanism.
a From the Koran.
"God, there is no God but he, the living, the eternal.
Slumber doth not overtake him, ^neither sleep ; to him belongeth
all that is in heaven and earth. ... He knoweth that which is
past and that which is to come unto them, and they shall not
comprehend anything of his knowledge, but bo far as he
pleaseth.' His throne is extended over heaven and earth, and
the upholding of both is no burden to him. . . .
" There is no piety in turning your faces towards the east or
the west, but he is pious who believeth in God, and the last
day, and the angels, and the Scriptures, and the prophets ;
who for love of God disburseth his wealth to his kindred, and
to the orphans, and the needy, and the wayfarer, and those
who ask ; . . . who observeth prayer, and payeth the legal alms,
and who is of those who are faithful to their engagements . . .
and patient under ills and hardships, and in time of trouble ;
these are they who are just, and those who fear the Lord. . . .
Whoso doeth the good works and is a true believer, whether
male or female, shall be admitted into Paradise. • . .
*' Verily we have revealed unto thee, [O Mohammed], as we
revealed unto Noah and the prophets after him, and as we
revealed unto Abraham and Ishmael and Isaac and Jacob . . .
and Jesus and Job and . . . Solomon. ...
" They to whom we have given the book of the Koran, and
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL.
277
I
I
t
if
> 5
g I
3
•g,
278 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
who read it with its true reading, they believe therein ; and
whoever belie veth not therein, they shall perish. . . .
'' Perform the pilgrimage of Mecca. . . . Make provision for
your journey ; but the best provision is piety ; and fear me,
O ye of understanding. It shall be no crime in you, if ye seek an
increase from your Lord, by trading during the pilgrimage. . . .
''They will ask thee concerning wine and lots [lottery, gam-
ing]. Answer, In both there is great sin, and also some
things of use unto men; but theu: sinfulness is greater than
their use. They will ask thee also, what they shall bestow in
alms. Answer, What ye have to spare. . . .
" On the last day, every soul shall find the good which it hath
wrought, present ; and the evil which it hath wrought, it shall
wish that between itself and that were a wide distance. . . .
" What befell them was so ordained. . . . God giveth life and
causeth to die. . . . Moreover, if ye be slain, or die in defence
of the religion of God, verily pardon from God, and mercy, is
better than what they heap together of worldly riches. . . .
" Fear God by whom ye beseech one another; and respect
women who have borne you, for God is watching over j^ou. . . .
Take in marriage of . . . such . . . women as please you ; two,
or three, or four, and not more. But if ye fear that ye cannot
act equitably towards so many, marry one only. . . .
" Men shall have the pre-eminence above women, because of
those advantages wherein God hath caused the one of them to
excel the other. . . . Honest women are obedient, careful in the
absence of their husbands, for that God preserveth them, by
committing them to the care and protection of the men. But
those whose perverseness ye shall be apprehensive of, rebuke ;
and remove them into separate apartments and chastise
them. . . .
"... Verily those who disbelieve our signs, we will surely
cast to be broiled in hell fire ; so often as their skins shall be
well burned, we will give them other skins in exchange, that
they may taste the sharper torment; for God is mighty and
wise. . . .
THE WEST UNDER BARBABIAN CONTROL. 279
'' Bnt for him who dreadeth the tribunal of his Lord are pre-
pared two gardens, planted with shady trees. In each of them
shall be two fountains flowing. In each of them shall there be
of every fruit two kinds. They shall repose on couches, the
linings whereof shall be of thick silk interwoven with gold :
and the fruit of the two gardens shall be near at hand to
gather ....
" Whosoever fighteth for the religion of Grod, whether he be
slain or be victorious, we will surely give him a great reward.
And what ails 3-0U, that ye flght not for God's true religion,
and in defence of the weak among men, women, and chil-
dren. . . .
" Verily Christ Jesus, the son of Mary, is the apostle of God,
and his Word, which he conveyed into Marj^, and a spirit pro-
ceeding from Him. Believe therefore in God, and his apostles,
and say not. There are three Gods ; forbear this ; it will be
better for you. God is but one God."
The prophet strongly enjoined the duty of kindness to slaves.
'*. . . He who beats his slave without fault, or slaps him on the
face, his atonement for this is freeing. — A man who behaves
ill to his slave wiU not enter into Paradise.*'
b. AbU'bekr to the Soldiers who conquered Syria,
'^ This is to acquaint you that I intend to send the true
believers into Syria, to take it out of the hands of the infidels.
And I would have you know that the fighting for religion is an
act of obedience to God. . . .
"When you meet with your enemies, acquit yourselves like
men, and do not turn your backs ; and if you get the victory,
kill no little children, nor old people, nor women. Destroy no
palm-trees, nor do any mischief to cattle, only such as you kill
to eat. When you make any covenant ... be as good as your
word. As you go on, you will find some religious persons that
live retired in monasteries, proposing to themselves to serve
God that way : let them alone, and neither kill them nor destroy
their monasteries."
280 STUDIES IN GENERAL HI8TOBY.
c. Conditions given by Omar at Conquest of Jerusalem*
"The Christians shall enjoy security both of person and
property; the safety of their churches shall be, moreover,
guaranteed, and no interference is to be permitted on the part of
the Mohammedans with any of their religious exercises, houses,
or institutions ; provided only, that such churches, or religious
institutions, shall be open night and day to the inspection of the
Moslem authorities. . . . No payment shall be exacted from any
one until after the gatliering in of his harvest. Mohammedans
are to be treated everywhere with the greatest respect; the
Christians must extend to them the rights of hospitality, rise to
receive them, and accord them the first place of honor in their
assemblies. The Christians are to build no new churches, con-
vents, or other religious edifices, either within or without the
city, or in any other part of the Moslem territory ; they shall
not teach their children the Koran : but, on the other hand, no
one shall be prevented from embracing the Mohammedan
religion."
d, Omar's Style of lAfe,
" He rode upon a red camel, with a couple of sacks ; in one
of which he carried . . . barley, rice, or wheat, sodden and un-
husked ; the other was full of fruits. Before him he carried a
very great leather bottle (for water) ; behind him, a large
wooden platter. Thus furnished and equipped, the caliph trav-
elled, and when he came to any place where he was to rest all
night, he never went from it till he had said the morning
prayer." At one time he had occasion to send ambassadors to
Constantinople. " The emperor asked them what sort of a
palace their caliph had ; they said it was made of mud. ' And
who,' said the emperor, ' are his attendants ? ' ' The beggars
and poor people.' 'What tapestry does he sit upon?* 'Jus-
tice and uprightness.' 'And what is his throne?' 'Absti-
nence and certain knowledge.' 'And what is his treasure?'
' Trust in God.' "
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL. 281
STUDY ON 6.
Make a list of the points of Mohammedan belief. Of the require-
ments of its worship. Of its morality. Note all the points of re-
semblance you can find between Christianity and Islam. All the
points of difference. What is the essential point of difference ? How
is Christianity superior? What faults in Islam? What reason can
you find in the extracts from the Koran for the fighting energy of the
Saracen ? What was the position of woman among the Mohamme-
dans ? How was she protected ? What sorts of pleasure and what
sorts of pain are represented as forming the essence of heaven and
hell?
What strikes you as prominent in the conditions imposed by Omar
and Abu-bekr ? What was their aim in conquest?
7. Extriusis and Facts Illustrative of Mohatntnedaniain
in Eighth and Early Ninth Century.
a. Description of Bagdad in Time of Haroun-aX-Raschid.
(Kremer.)
The city was built with great bricks, and surrounded by a
wall a hundred and twenty feet high ; at a good distance with-
out this wall rose a second, guarded by mighty bastions, and
surrounded by a moat which could be filled with water at pleas-
ure. The city was entered by four massive iron gates, through
which could ride horsemen with upright lances, and each of
which required four men to stir it. On each was a gilded dome,
where commissioned troops were on constant watch. Within
the double walls was an open space, surrounded by arcades,
which served as barracks for the troops of the palace garden.
Beyond the arcades and another open space and another gate-
way, stood the palace of the caliph and the chief mosque.
A hundred feet was fixed for the breadth of the chief, and
thirty feet for that of the side streets. In the suburbs were
great tracts of cultivated land and beautiful gardens, watered
by countless canals from the Tigris and Euphrates. The most
beautiful of these plantations were full of vines and citron
trees.
On the western bank of the Tigris rose a royal castle, tower-
282 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
ing over all that part of the city with its walls, its balconies,
and domes. Out of the sea of houses rose countless minarets ^
into the air, among them the famous " green" minaret, covered
with shining green tiles. Here, too, was the great "green
dome," a hundred and sixty feet in height.
On the western bank of the Tigris were palaces, baths,
mosques, bazaars, and among these splendid buildings lay a
confused labyrinth of the poor houses of the lower classes.
The bazaars were rich with the wares of Asia, and one was
especially famous for its costly profusion of Chinese silks.
The palace of the Caliph was set in the midst of large and
well-kept gardens, and surrounded by countless courts, open
halls, balconies, kiosks, all most richly adorned by splendid
carpets and divans, with gold-embroidered curtains and rich
vases of gold and silver, or Chinese porcelain. In the gardens
bloomed the finest plants of Asia ; within the inner chambers
were richly-clad and handsome slaves, who lived as befitted the
servants of a prince.
Our picture would be incomplete without a visit to the quays,
which stretched for miles on either shore of the river. Whole
fleets were here at anchor, sea and river boats of all sizes, fh)m
the Chinese junk to the awkward old Assyrian rafts. There,
too, were anchored countless ships of war, and between these
lay the pleasure-boats of the caliphs and the nobles, glittering
in gold and brilliant colors.
b. The Ilouse of a Wealthy Arabian of Bagdad. (Kremer.)
His doors were of costly woods, inlaid with ebony and gold ;
his courtyard was paved with marbles, often laid in mosaic
patterns, and cooled by an ever-fiowing fountain. His halls
were finished with fine stucco, and the ceilings bright with
intermingled colors of the arabesque ornament. Finest rugs
were on the floors and costly Chinese vases stood about the
rooms. . . . Heavy silken curtains in clear, rich colors hung
* See picture of St. Sophia ; the slender, spirelike parts of the buildings
are minaret$.
THE WEST UNDER BARBARIAN CONTROL.
283
before doors and windows, embroidered in gold with inscrip-
tions and arabesques. Tapestries stiff with gold hung on the
TYPICAL ARABESQUB ORNAMENT.
(From the Alhambra.)
walls, while from the centre of the domed ceiling, hung by mas-
sive chains such lamps of gold, silver, or costly crystal as the
Greeks were wont to use.
284 SfUDIfiS IK GENERAL HiSTORV.
c. Haroun-al-RascJiid and Mansour.
" One of the intimates of Haroun-al-Ragchid relates that
one day, being summoned into the Caliph's presence, he found
him in a very gloomy mood. After a few moments, Haroun
raised his head, and said, ^ Go this moment and take from
Manstir ten million dirhems, and if he refuse to pay them^ bring
me his head ! If ypu hesitate and fail to execute my command,
I swear by the soul of my father that I will decapitate you I '
Salih asked what he was to do in case Manstir paid part at
once, and gave security for the payment of the rest on the fol-
lowing da}'. Haroun answered, * If this very day he fail to
pay in ready mone}', behead him ! Let me hear no more idle
talk.' Salih felt assured from this that the Caliph was bent on
taking Mansdr's life, and came away in great distress, for the
person threatened was a friend of his own, and one of the most
influential persons in Bagdad. However, he went straight to his
house, and, taking him aside, told him what had happened.
Manstir threw himself at Salih*s feet, and weeping, said, ^ The
Commander of the Faithful must have resolved to take my life,
for he knows well enough that I have never had so much
money, and that I could not collect it in a lifetime; how,
then, am I to do so in one day?' " The money was, however,
raised, and Manstir was saved. He had fallen into this danger
because Haroun suspected his loyalty, and because he had
badly treated one of the Caliph's favorites.
STUDY ON 7.
Make a list of all the fine and industrial arts known to the Saracens.
Of the sciences and branches of learning pursued among them. (See
also lists of period.) Of their occupations. Compare this civilization
with that of Europe at this same time. How is it superior? What
historical sources for this civilization can you indicate? What facts
indicate that such were its sources ? To what things are the names
"damask" and "morocco" applied, and what does this indicate?
What new forms of construction and of ornament do you see in
the pictures on pp. 277 and 283 ? What prominent forms mentioned
in the description of Bagdad? Wliat is there admirable in these
THE WEST UNDER BABBARIAK CONTROL. 286
forms? What element of beauty seems to have been especially
admired in ornament ? Wliat relation between the Alhambra orna-
ment and tlae fact that the Saracens were commanded by their religion
strictly to obey the second commandment ?
What was the Mohammedan form of government? What was the
relation of Church and State? What point in the description of Bag-
dad showed this relation ?
286 STUDIES IN GENERAIi HISTORY.
EUROPEAN HISTORY, 814-1880.
A. Early Medimval Pwhd: Charlemagne to the Cn/sadee, 814-1096.
B. Middle Medimval Period: Crusading, 1095-1216.
C. Laie Medimval Period: Magna Charta to Columbus, 1215-1492.
D. Renaissance and Reformation, 1492-1648.
E. Modern Europe, 1648-1880.
" The future hides in it " But heard are the voices.
Gladness and sorrow; Heard are the sages.
We press still thorow ; The worlds and the ages, —
Naught that abides in it ' Choose well ; your choice is
Daunting us, — onward ! Brief and yet endless.'
" Here eyes do regard you
In eternity's stillness;
Here is all fullness.
Ye brave, to reward you ;
Work, and despair not." — GtOetue.
"There's a divinity that shapes our ends, rough-hew them how we will."
— Shakspbrb.
A, EABLT MEDIEVAL PEBIOD, OEABLEHAaiTE TO THE
OBUSADES, 814-1095.
Chief original and contemporary authorities : The laws
of the period in each European country, and the decrees
of councils and popes ; the chronicles of the monks, espe-
cially in England and France ; the works of Arabic his-
torians and poets.
Chief modern authorities in English : for Europe in
general. Gibbon, Guizot, Bryce, Lacroix; for England,
Stubbs, Green; for Byzantine Empire, Fiulay; for the
Church, Milman.
EABIiY MEDIEVAL PESIOD.
287
a. »
i^
^
■is -a
I
0* S
s ^
e ^ ^ C3 ^
^ iill i ^^
kl4
;js s
I
I
^
•s
288
STUDIES IN 6BNEBAL HISTORY.
I
I
0 o
§ a s I
«■§
III III!
a>
-3 ^ ^- - b
la
- '2 *2 §
O «8 ^ TS
5 ^-3
« " o
5 .S3 .ft -S S
'S jd ^
•^ ^ **
6 .S
C^ .?» -s a
o *» 'S
v. 5
i
a
fe * s s •
OQ
1 ^M S
Co ^
^ o »4 o
1
S i3
.1
II
■a
J
3
S":
EARLY MEDI-ffiVAL PERIOD.
289
55
2
^ M
4. g
£ I
II
S
I
■§1
^*
'S' g -S r eb
<3
" a
^
pfl ^ *^
35
,37: e«^ 09,0 ^ ^
'a ►» g
C O e4
o 8
5 be S
03 'O
P-t
I
o sc
J
22 '3
•§ 2
bo >» *-
_ hi k CO oS
6,5 5 "S «
eg
t* (U I- *
il
I
a
;;21
'S
s
a
&^o
'3
^
00
^ O <j,
►2
a
C
.2 fe •£
hij
o
*o
^ 2 ^
'*— '
'O
a
Vi o 'V
Cl«
5
1
OS
a
^= ^
•a
o
•43
^'
M 08
2 -d --
G q "S
•-« etf O
Hi
s JH g
u 0< m
O
•d
cS
2 o
&«
CO
OD
"g
04
^
a
«
as
a .s
^ o
« C3
^
<j
•2 a
e^
•M -3
^
O (M
?>
^ o
%«
^ S
'1-
g
^•s
(^
» ,3
2
"""■
§
ft^
,>»
3
tel
»^
a
rC
PE^
"3
o
bO
.5
pi4
&%
§
o
bo
s
2
Si.
6
01
a
8)
00
08
a
i
290
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
o
bo
a
M
to
8
B
a
o
RAJILY MEDLffiVAL PBBIOD. 291
c. In England.
Before William the Conqueror, the organization of Eng-
land was similar to that of France, with the following
differences : the great lords and bishops formed a council
of wise men, or Witenagemot^ with whom the king advised in
regard to war, to law, and the grants of land he gave from
time to time ; by this council levies were ordered for war,
laws were assented to, grants confirmed. These great lords
and bishops were in England called king's Thanes^ and
that which was called a fief in France was in England
named a Manor ^ and to the Seigniorial Court corresponded
the Manorial Court of England.
When William the Conqueror entered England, he de-
manded from every freeman, irrespective of his immediate
feudal lord, an oath, to " be faithful to King William within
England and without, to join him in preserving his lands
and honor with all fidelity, and to defend him against his
enemies." In a council held shortly after the Conquest,
a chronicle tells us that "all the landholders of substance
in England, whose vassals soever they were . . . became his
[William's] men, and swore . . . that they would be faith-
ful to him against all others."
STUDY ON I.
What must a man possess in order to hold power during this
period ? What kinds of power did this possession give ? What sort
of an aristocracy would thus develop ? In what country is there now
an example of such an aristocracy ? Compare the power of the king
and the barons. Of the emperor and the pope. Of the emperor and
the king of Germany. Throughout the feudal organization, what
does the superior give the inferior? What does the inferior give the
superior? What effect would you expect this system to have on the
unity and strength of kingdoms? On justice in the administration
of law? On trade? On manners? On liberty? On equality? What
was the political unit of feudalism ? What held men together in this
unit? What class in England seemed to have more power than the
292
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
same class in France ? What great change introduced by AVilliam the
Conqueror into feudal relations in England? Whose power would
thus be strengthened ? Who was the " immediate " lord of English-
men? What had the emperor by which to maintain his imperial
ix)wer? If one baron did wrong to another, or refused to abide by
SBRFS RSOBIVINO ORDERS FROM THEIR LORD BEFORE OOINQ TO WORK
Interior of fourteenth or fifteenth century ; from a French manuscript of fifteenth century.
the judgment of his peers, what was the only way left to gain justice?
AVhat effect would constant foreign warfare have upon the power of
the king and the unity of the people? Why? Before the time of
Charlemagne, we noticed that law was personal ; that is, that a man
BABLY MEDIAEVAL PERIOD. 293
was judged by the laws of his people, whether Roman, Burgundian,
Saxon; — under the feudal system, what fact determines the law by
which he shall be judged?
2. Summary of Events, 814-1095.
a. In the Byzantine Empire. »
About 900, the Magyars or Hungarians (Turanians)
attack both east and west ; repulsed by the German em-
perors, and foiled by the defences and gold of Constanti-
nople, they settle in Pannonia; soon after, converted to
Christianity by the missionaries of Rome, they become
shepherds and farmers, and thus begin modern Hungary.
Continued quarrels of Constantinople and Rome over
image-worship and other questions of doctrine and prac-
tice; these quarrels culminate in 1064 in the great
" Schism of the Church," which divides the Christians of
Europe and Asia into two communions ; that of the Greek
Church, to which the Byzantines and their converts belong,
and that of the Latin Church, to which the Latin and
German-speaking peoples adhere.
The Saracens seize on Sicily ; soon after, the Normans
invade Greece, and wrest Southern Italy from the East ;
of this, together with Sicily, of which they dispossess the
Saracens, they form the Norman Kingdom of Sicily.
The pope confirms the new kingdom, and the Normans
become his armed allies and defenders (1062). The Turks
take Asia Minor from the Empire.
b. In Mam? (Eleventh Century.)
The Spanish Arabs are slowly driven back towards the
south by the Spanish Christians, and lose Toledo; the
Asiatic Arabs are conquered by the Turks, who accept
.& . ,
1 Mam is applied to the whole body of Mohammedans and their gen-
eral status and civilization, as Christendom is applied to the peoples and
caltus of Europe.
294 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Mohammedanism as their faith; a third caliphate is
founded at Cairo. Christian pilgrims to Jerusalem meet
constant insult, cruelty, and all manner of persecution
from the Turks.
c. In Holy Roman Empire.
At Charlemagne's death, the Empire is divided among
his successors ; their dissensions and wars end in roughly
defining the three kingdoms of Italy, Germany, France.
At first, the imperial title belongs to the king, now of one
and then another land ; but after Otto the Great
the rulers of Germany are also kings of Italy
969.
and emperors of the Holy Roman Empire, which from
this time on practically includes Germany and Italy.
During this period, Germany suffers on the south-east
from the Magyai-s or Hungarians, on the north from the
Danes or Northmen, on the north-east from Slavs. Against
the first, the emperors found the Eastern-Mark,^ the begin-
ning of modern Austria; against the second, the Mark of
Sleswig ; against the third, the North-Mark, the beginning
of modern Prussia (through Brandenburg). These marks
are given into the charge of the best fighters and com-
manders among the imperial vassals. (For the division of
the Empire among its various rulers, see map, pp. 316, 317.)
In the beginning of Otto's reign, the Dukes of Fran-
conia, Bavaria, and Lorraine rise against him, but with
the help of French nobles who are in revolt against their
own king, he subdues them. The Danes obtain peace on
condition of the baptism of thek king ; the Bohemians, on
condition of ceasing to persecute Christianity; the Poles,
on condition of allowing the founding of a bishopric. — In
^ " Mark " or " march " means a border state whose defence and govern*
ment is particularly strengthened in order to make it a bulwark against a
foreign foe.
EARLY MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 295
1046, three candidates at once claim the papal chair ; the
emperor deposes them all, and makes a German bishop
pope.
Pope Gregory the Seventh, known also as
Gregory the Great and as Hildebrand, insists
on the celibacy of the clergy throughout Chris-
1073
TO
1005.
tendom ; this causes a dissension amounting to war between
Lombard and German prelates, on the one hand, and the
Italians and Normans supporting Hildebrand, on the other;
but the pope, with the help of the monks, succeeds in mak-
ing celibacy the rule of the Church. — The famous quarrel
over " lay investiture " ^ now occurs between Hildebrand
and the Emperor Henry IV., king of Germany. The
emperor claims the right of investiture, as being the theo-
retical owner of the ' domains of the bishops, who are in
their relation to him " lords spiritual," and whose lands
amount to half the German territory; the pope claims
the right because the bishops are Church oflBcials, and
insists upon it, lest the king use the rich abbey-lands to
reward his own men. Neither pope nor emperor yield
the point ; the pope writes to Henry, urging him to " pre-
fer the honor of Christ to his own, and give full liberty to
the Church, the Spouse of God " ; he threatens him with
excommunication unless on a fixed day he shall appear in
Rome to be judged by the pope for all his offences.
Henry, in answer, calls a council of German prelates, from
whom he asks the deposition of the pope. They grant it
" with loud unanimous acclamation " ; the decision is sent
to Rome, where Gregory sits in council in the midst of his
bishops ; it is addressed, " To the false monk, Hildebrand."
The pope immediately passes sentence on the emperor:
" I absolve all Christians from the oaths they have sworn
' "Lay investiture '' simply means the appointment of bishops and
other prelates to their offices by a layman.
296 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
or may swear to bim, and forbid all obedience to bim as
king." The Bishop of Utrecht, on the king's behalf, ex-
communicates the pope, but soon and suddenly dies.
This death, with other causes, turn men more and more
against the excommunicated emperor ; all who have any
talk or dealing with him are themselves declared excom-
municated. The pope commands the Germans to elect a
new emperor if Henry do not at once repent; the Imper-
ial Diet accordingly meets to choose " a man to go before
them, and to wage the war of the Lord." Henry, desir-
ous of saving his kingdom, goes across the Alps in the
dead of winter to seek the forgiveness of Hildebrand
(1077). The pope is at Canossa, a strong fortress of
the Apennines; in its outer courtyard, barefoot, in the
white robes of a penitent, for three "days and nights the
emperor awaits the pleasure of Gregory. Even this grace
is not given until the emperor promises to confess himself
"unworthy of the royal name and dignity." , At last,
admitted to the papal presence, he is required to attend
the pope where and when Hildebrand desires, to answer the
charges of his people ; if cleared, the pope will restore him
to imperial power ; if not, Henry is to remain a private man.
In 1095 the Council of Clermont is called by Pope
Urban II., and a " Holy War," or " Crusade," of Chris-
tian Europe is declared against the Turks who hold Christ's
Holy Sepulchre in Jerusalem, and who greatly persecute
the pilgrims who come from all parts of Europe to visit
this sacred place, and to expiate their sins by this long
and dangerous journey.
(For Schism of the Church, see above.)
STUDY ON 2, a, 6, c.
What in the history and circumstances of the East and the West
have prepared the way for the " Schism of the Church " ? Why is it
EARLY MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 297
useless for the pope to oppose this ** Schism " ? How does the history
of the Turks resemble that of the Teutons ?
What events strengthen and form the German frontier? What
fact in their origin accounts for the long succession of strong rulers
in Austria and Prussia? In order that new peoples may enter the
empire, what is necessary ? What relation between this fact and the
imperial organization ? Why does the Holy Roman Empire practically
include only Germany and Italy ? What or who has the chief power
in this empire? Prove it. Some time ago Bismarck said, "We
will not go to Canossa"; explain the reference. On what does
the papal power rest ? What are its weapons? On what the imperial?
What is shown by the imperial title in regard to the . imperial office ?
What ideal does Gregory VII. insist upon in the Church? What does
he make the central power in its organization?
In calling the peoples of Europe to a crusade, what does Pope
Urban assume in regard to their comparative allegiance to himself
and their own princes?
d. In France,
The kings are often fighting against the counts of
Flanders, the dukes of Burgundy, the princes of Brittany
and Aquitaine. In 877 the king, needing help in his wars,
grants his vassals hereditary possession of their lands;
the nobles compel his successor to confirm the grant, and
at the death of the latter, divide the realm between his
two sons.
In the early ninth century, Northmen (Normans) in-
vade and ravage France ; in company with the Duke of
Lorraine, they besiege Paris ; deserted by their king, the
Parisians choose their heroic defender, the Count of Paris,
as their monarch. The great nobles build castles to de-
fend themselves and their folk against the invaders ; the
Normans continue to haiTy the land ; at last, in the tenth
century, the Prankish king sends the archbishop of Rouen
to tell their famous war-chief Hrolf (RoUo) that if he
will become a Christian, acknowledge the king of France
his lord, and live in peace, he shall have the dukedom of
298 STUDIES IN GENEKAL HISTOKY.
Normandy as his hereditary possession. Hrolf accepts the
offer, and his followers settle Normandy.
In 987, the line of Charlemagne having come to an end
in the person of an inefficient monarch, the nobles choose
Hugh Capet as their king, and from him all the succeed-
ing kings of France have sprung. This election is con-
firmed by the Archbishop of Rheims. In the time of
Hugh, there are fifty-five feudal units in France. In the
eleventh century the clergy declare the "Truce of God,"
or a cessation of quarrels and warfare from Wednesday
night to Monday morning of every week.
e. In England.
At 800 there are still seven different English kingdoms,
often hostile, sometimes partially united, but always fight-
ing Picts and Scots to the north, and Welsh to the west ;
but early in the ninth century, Ecgbehrt, king of the West-
Saxons, becomes overlord of all the other kings, forming
the so-called "Saxon Heptarchy'*; under him and his
successors the Northmen constantly invade and harry
England, and settle in Northumbria, East Anglia, and
parts of Mercia.
Under Alfbed the Great the struggle of
Englishmen and Northmen still continues; Al-
fred builds a fieet, and ends invasion for a time ;
871
TO
1006.
issues a body of English law, founds new monasteries, has
the monastery-schools teach all who wish to attend them,
reading, writing, and theology ; but instruction in English
is to precede that in Latin.
After his death border-wars with Picts, Scots, and
Welsh continue, as well as constant struggle with Danes,
ending at 1017 in the elevation of Danish monarchs to
the English throne. In 1042 the English kings are
restored, and Edward the Confessor becomes king under
EARLY MEDUSVAL PERIOD.
299
1066.
the leadership of powerful nobles, notably Earl Godwin,
whose daughter he marries.
William the Conqueror, Duke of Normandy,
claims a right to the English throne on a promise
of his cousin, Ed-
ward the Confessor;
the pope declares
in his favor, and en-
joins him to bring
England into due
obedience to the
Papacy ; he leads
a Norman army
into England, and
at the battle of Sen-
lac, or Hastings,
makes good his
claim. The Eng-
lish king is support-
ed by his earls ; but
by threatening their
domains, and forc-
ing them to desert
rneir monarcn, vvii- ^ ^^^ ^^^^ ^j ^^^^ .^ Nonbumbrim,
liam gains London, chief seat of Danish settlement.
and the English nobles choose him king.
ENGUNDaboui 600 A.D.
^m = KetU
I = Teufo
or Britons.
Teufons or. Angles, Saxons Jutes.
STUDY ON 2,a-e.
What case in France parallels the entrance of the Hungarians into
the European commonwealth? Name two points of resemblance.
What facts can you find in c, d, and e to confirm your statements in
regard to the effects of feudalism ? Name two things shown by the
"Truce of God." From what great external disturbance does the
whole of civilized Europe suffer during this period? What mark
distinguishes civilized from uncivilized Europe ?
300
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Name the modern countries or provinces of Europe which begin
their individual existence during this period. At whose expense does
each begin it? What organization is steaiily increasing its power in
Europe? What sorts of power? Give two proofs. In the study of
organization, we noted that the lords and bishops apparently had
more power in England than on the continent ; what events would neu-
tralize this power, and make the king stronger and England more
united ? What races of people are mingled at the close of this period
in France? In England? In Italy? In Sjxain? In the Byzantine
Ejnpire ?
In what places and in wliat ways do Mohammedans and Christians
come into contact in this period ? What facts would make the whole
journey to Jerusalem a dangerous one? Contrast the journey then
and the same journey now.
8. List of Great Names of tlie Period.
a. Of the Ninth Century,
Mame,
Birth and Oiroumatancea.
Deed8 and Works.
Language
u—d.
Alfred the
English ; king of Eng-
Translator of History
English.
Great.
land.
of Orosius, Bcethius'
Consolation of Phil-
osophy, and Bede's
Ecclesiastical His-
tory ; establishes a
school at his court
for young nobles.
(See 2 c.)
Albumazar.
Arabian, of Turkestan.
Writes on astronomy.
Arabic.
Al Mamun.
Son of Ilaroun-al-
Causes to be translated
Arabic.
Hashid ; caliph of
into Arabic the manu-
Bagdad.
scripts sent by the
Greek emperor to his
father ; sends a com-
mission to Cyprus for
books ; erects two
observatories, founds
colleges, has a degree
EARLY MEDIEVAL PERIOD.
301
Mame.
Dwds and Works.
used.
of the earth meas-
ured ; calls Syrian
and Egyptian physi-
cians to his court ;
author of theological
and critical works ;
causes the great work
of I*tolemy on astron-
omy and geometry to
be translated from
Greek into Arabic;
makes very accurate
astronomical tables.
Asser.
Welsh monk, afterward
Author of Life of King
Latin.
bishop.
Alfred(?); assists in
the king's literary
reforms.
Hincmar.
Of noble French fami-
Author of theological
Latin.
ly; monk; adviser of
and political writings;
the French court;
defends the doctrine
archbishop of Rheims.
of "Free Will";
causes a splendid
shrine in silverwork,
. adorned with statu-
ettes, to be made in
his church.
John, called
Irish layman ; is said
Writes on philosophic
Latin.
the Scot or
to have travelled in
and theological sub-
Erigena.
the East ; head of
jects; defends abso-
palace school of
lute freedom of the
Frankish kings.
will ; is considered
heretical; shows ten-
dencies toward the
Platonic philosophy ;
makes translations
from the Greek.
302
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Name.
Btrth and Olroumstancea,
Deeds and Works,
Language
used.
Ilnzi, or Rhazes.
Arab doctor, from
Author of works on
Arabic,
Khorassan.
medicine and chemis-
trans-
try ; director of hos-
lated
pital at Bagdad ;
into
seeks for the " Water
LaUn.
of Life"; his medi-
cal works largely
founded on, or bor-
rowed from, Galen
and Hippocrates.
b. Of the Tenth Century.
Albategni,
" Arabian
Ptolemy."
Dunstan, St.
Gerbert
(Sylvester II.).
Arab of Mesopotamia ;
worked at Rakka
and at Antioch.
Of noble Saxon fami-
ly; hermit; King
Edgar's prime min-
ister, and archbishop
of Canterbury.
French shepherd-boy ;
monk ; archbishop of
Rheims ; teacher of
a French king and
German emperor;
pope.
Has charge of an astro-
nomical observatory
at Rakka, near the
Euphrates; advances
the knowledge of
astronomy beyond
previous observers,
including Ptolemy,
whom he diligently
studied.
Reforms English
monasteries on the
basis of Benedictine
rule ; forbids the
marriage of the clergy,
Studies mathematics,
astronomy, medicine,
mechanics with the
Spanish Arabs ; brings
the Arabic numerals
into France ; famous
mechanic ; first ap-
plies weight as a mo-
Arabic,
trans-
lated
for
Europe
in 16th
cen-
tury.
Latin.
Latin.
EARLY MEDIEVAL PERIOD.
303
Name.
Birth and Circumataneea.
Deeds and Works.
Language
used.
tor power to clocks ;
establishes a work-
shop for the manufac-
ture of organs, in the
monastery of which
he is abbot ; is thought
a magician ; author of
letters and of philo-
sophical, mathemati-
cal, and ecclesiastical
works.
Hugh Capet.
Son of Duke of France.
Founder of French
monarchy. (See 2.)
French
Otto I. (Otho),
Son of the Saxon duke ;
Establishes relation of
Ger-
the Great.
king of Germany and
Germany to Holy
man.
emperor.
Roman Empire. (See
2.)
Conqueror and first
RoUo (Hrolf).
Norwegian pirate.
* * *
duke of Normandy.
(See 2.)
c. Names of Eleventh Century.
Albucasis.
Arab of Cordova ;
Writes on anatomy and
Arabic,
physician.
physiology; invents
trans-
new surgical instru-
lated
ments and operations.
into
Latin.
Alhazen.
Arab of Bassorah (near
Makes important dis-
Arabic.
ancient Babylon) ;
coveries in optics ;
teaches and studies
thorough student of
in Cairo.
Ptolemy.
Anselm.
Italian of Piedmont ;
Scholastic, — that is, he
Latin.
of noble, wealthy
tries to make the
family; studies in
truths of religion
Norman monastery ;
clear to the reason ;
304
STUDIES IN OEKEBAIi HISTORY.
Name,
Deeds and Worka.
Language
used.
archbishop of Can-
writes on transubstan-
terbury.
tiation;* opposes
nominalism ; '<' makes
his monastery a fa-
mous seat of learning.
Avicenna,
Persian ; Mohammedan.
Doctor in several
Arabic.
"Prince of
Asiatic courts ; writes
Doctors."
a medical encyclo-
pedia which becomes
the basis of medical
science in Europe for
six or seven centuries ;
travels through the
East to find new
medicines.
Cid(RuyDiaz).
Of noble Spanish birth;
Famous Christian
Span-
warrior.
champion in the wars
of the Spaniard and
the Moor; afterward
a "free lance," flghtr
ingwith his followers,
now for one and now
another prince, Mos-
lem or Christian ;
ish.
1 Transubstantiation is the doctrine which teaches that the bread and
wine of the Holy Communion are by a miracle turned into the living body
and blood of Christ (^RecU Presence),
^ Nominalism teaches that general terms are but abstractions of the
mind, simple names ; while particular objects and actions alone possess
reality ; thus virtue is but a name used for convenience to group together
individual virtuous actions, which are realities. The Realists, on the other
hand, of whom Anselm was greatest, insisted that such general terms
named real essences, and that virtue, for instance, existed as an actual
substance, quite apart from any individual action. Since the Nominalists
g^ve great prominence to the separate and real existence of the three
persons of the Trinity, thus tending toward polytheistic views, their doc-
trines were condemned as heretical.
KABLY MBDI^VAIi FBBIOD.
805
Nam9,
D9Wl9 and Works.
U8€d.
after his death be-
comes the hero of
many stories and
poems.
Robert
Younger son of a petty
Conqueror of Southern
Nor-
Guiscard
Nonnan baron.
Italy and Sicily.
man-
(Wiscard).
(See 2.)
French.
Hildebrand,
Son of a carpenter;
See 2 c.
LaUn.
Gregory VII.
afterwards pope.
Lanfranc.
Italian of goveming
Writes on transubstan-
Latin.
class ; studies at
tiation ; defends the
Paris ; archbishop of
" real presence."
Canterbury.
Urban H.
French; monk; cardi-
Orator; proclaims the
Latin;
nal-bishop; pope.
first crusade.
French.
William the
Duke of Normandy.
See2e.
Nor-
Conqueror.
man-
French.
William of
Norman; monk.
Author of History of
Latin.
Jumi^ges.
the Normans.
William of
Norman; companion of
Author of Life of
Latin.
Poitiers.
William the Con-
William the
queror; soldier and
Conqueror.
chaplain.
306
STUDIES IK OENERAl, HISTORY.
EARLY MEDIEVAL PEKIOD.
307
DITAIL OF DUOAL FALASO, VMSttM,
308
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Famous Foundations and Works of the Time^ not named in
the Lists,
Ducal palace and church of St. Mark's built at Venice,
by architects and artists from Constantinople, under direc-
tion of the doge, or the chief magistrate of the Venetian
republic. — Toward the t^nth century cotton or linen paper
is brought into Europe from Greece by the Venetians.
— Cathedral of Pisa, with its leaning bell-tower, built;
many Greek fragments inserted. — Medical schools estab-
FAOADB OF DUOAL PALAOB. VXNIOBL
lished at Salerno and Monte Cassino, the former being
founded by an Italian pupil of Avicenna, who had spent
thirty-nine years in the East.
German organ-makers very famous ; an organ with key-
board invented towards the close of the period. — Hospitals
and other houses of relief for the unfortunate founded in
the eleventh century, under encouragement of the empe-
ror, in various parts of Germany.
EARLY MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 809
English homilies are collected and preserved by Alfred
the Great. — The English annals are more regularly kept
by the monks of Winchester and Worcester. — Medical
recipes and lists of plants and animals translated from
Greek and Latin into English. — Survey of England is
made and recorded in Domesday Book by William the
Conqueror.
French annals regularly kept by the monks. — Manu-
factures of tapestry for church decoration established at
several French monasteries ; the famous Bayeva^ tapestry^
representing the Battle of Hastings, executed under direc-
tion of Matilda, wife of William the Conqueror. — Beauti-
ful church in Caen built by William the Conqueror, in
gratitude for his victory at Hastings.
The Pseudo-Isidorean, or False Decretals, appear in
the ninth century, a corrupt and unreliable collection
of canon law made by a French ecclesiastic, but never-
theless accepted by the Church for several centuries;
their general tendency is to strengthen the-power of the
pope.
In Cairo, Egypt, fine mosques are built, and a library
established of 100,000 volumes, which are freely lent out
to the citizens. — In Bagdad, an observatory is erected
sind a college founded, which upwards of 6000 students
attend. — In Spain, the Arabs have as many as eighty col-
leges and seventy public libraries.
STUDY ON a
What influence is felt by the west of Europe during this period ?
What are the centres of intellectual impulse? What countries are
beginning to have an independent intellectual civilization ? What fact
or facts mark this independence ? Among whom is this civilization
most advanced? What directions does it take? Proofs. What traces
of secularization appear in the Church ? Of revolt against her? (Cf.
2.) What proofs that she is still the great intellectual and civilizing
310 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
power of the period ? That her spirit is essentially democratic? How
is she still civilizing Europe? .What reason is there in the events of
this period for its small amount of literary and artistic production ?
What race produces the warrioi-s and conquerors of the epoch? What
race produces the scientific men ? What historic reason can you give
for this latter fact ? What reason can you give for the former ? What
can you prove one great source of Moorish civilization to have been ?
What influences do you see embodied in St, Mark's ? In the ducal
palace? What do you find beautiful, and what characteristic or
original, in each of these buildings ?
4. EoctrcLcta and Stories Illustrative of European Life
of the Period.
a. The Pope and the King of Bulgaria.
In the ninth century, Bulgaria was converted, through the
influence of a Christian prince^ss, whose husband wanted her
God on bis side in war. His subjects, however,' revolted in
favor of the old religion, and the king took cruel vengeance
on them; thereupon, the pope writes him that he '^is now
under the rule of a more merciful God, to whom such wide-
spread slaughter is not pleasing." Apostates from the faith are
to receive no toleration, but God is to judge those who are with-
out the Church. The pope commands him no longer to use the
old national sign of the horsetail, but the cross, when he goes
foi*th to battle ; and instead of using enchantments, songs,
and auguries before a fight, his soldiers are to go to church,
confess, perform good acts, such as opening prisons, giving to
the poor, and freeing slaves. He forbids polygamy, and advises
that the king allow his wife to eat with him.
b. ByrhtnotKs Death in a Battle of the English against the
Danes (991).
Byrhtnoth, the Saxon, brought his force into battle-array,
and dismounting, took his place among his thanes. On the
opposite shore of the river stood the herald of the Viking-Danes,
who spoke with strong and threatening voice ; *' ' Actiye sea-
EARLY MBDLfflVAL PERIOD. 311
men send me to thee ; they bid me say to thee, that thou must
quickly send rings for safety ; and it is better for you that ye
buy off this spear-rush with tribute than that we share such
hard fight. If thou who art the richest here dost decide that
thou wilt redeem thy people, wilt give the seamen money at
their own prizing, in exchange for peace, then we will enter our
ships with the treasures, go afloat, and keep peace with you.'
Byrhtnoth held fast his shield, swung his slender ash aloft, and
answered with scorn and derision: ^Hearest thou, seafarer,
what this folk saith? They will give you spears for tribute,
the [)oisonous lance-point, and the old sword, war-trappings
that are not good for you in battle. Messenger of the water-
men, announce again, say to thy people warlike words : A noble
earl stands here with his band, who will protect this inheritance,
^thclred's my prince's country, folk and lands.' . . . Then
the time was come when those consecrated to death should fall ;
. . . spears flew from the hands ; the bow was busy ; the shield
received the point ; bitter was the rage of battle ; warriors fell.
On both sides lay the young fighters." Byrhtnoth himself was
sorely wounded. " But the gray battle-hero still cheered on the
youths ; his feet refused to serve him ; he looked toward heaven
and said : ' I thank Thee, Ruler of Peoples, for all the joys that
I have had in the world. Now, mild Creator, I have most need
that thou grant my spirit good, that my soul . . . may pass with
peace into thy power.' . . . Then the heathen stnick him down.
. . . ^thelred's earl, the people's prince, had fallen ; all of his
kindred saw that their lord lay slain. The proud warriors
rushed up, willed either to avenge the dear one or to yield their
lives. JElfric's son . . . exhorted them. He said : * Never
shall the thanes reproach me among the people, that I would
desert this host, and seek my country, now that my prince lies
slain in battle. That is my greatest grief : he was both my
kinsman and my lord.' Then he strode forward, thinking of
blood- vengeance. . . . Swinging his lance, he bade all heroes
avenge . . . Byrhtnoth : ' Never may he hesitate who thinketh
to avenge his lord in the people, nor care for his life.' . . .
312 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
The kinsmen began a hard fight; they prayed Grod it might
be granted them to avenge their kin and chief, and to work
slaughter among their enemies. . . . Byrhtwold, the aged com-
rade, spoke as he grasped fast his shield and shook his ash : . . .
*• Courage should be the greater, the more our forces lessen ;
here lieth our prince cut down, the brave one, slain in the dust.
... I am old in days ; I will not go away, but I think to lie
by my lord's side ; I will lie by such a beloved warrior.' "
c. From Anselm.
" Whether that is true which the universal Church believes
with the heart and confesses with the mouth, no Christian can
be permitted to place in question ; but, while holding fast to it
without doubting, and loving and living for this faith, he may
and should search in humility for the grounds of its truth. If he
is able to add to this faith, intelligence, let him thank God ; if
not, let him not turn against his faith, but bow his head and
worship."
d. From John Scotus^ or Erigena.
"Authority is derived from reason, and not reason from
authority, and authoritj' which is not acknowledged by reason
seems valueless. . . . We should not allege the opinions of the
holy fathers, . . . unless it be necessary thereby to strengthen
arguments in the eyes of men, who, unskilful in reasoning,
yield rather to authority than to reason. ... I am not so fear-
ful of authority, and I do not so dread the rage of minds of
small intelligence as to hesitate to proclaim aloud the things
which reason clearly unfolds."
"What, then, is the object of philosophy, but to set forth the
rules of true religion, whereby we rationally seek and humbly
adore God, the first cause and sovereign of all things? From
thence it follows that true philosophy is true religion, and con-
versely, that true religion is true philosophy."
RAJILY MEDLEVAL PERIOD. 313
6. Letter from the Pope to the French King concerning Scotus
Erigena,
'^ It has been reported to our apostleship that a certain John,
of Scotch origin, has lately translated into Latin the work which
the blessed Dionysius wrote in the Greek language. . . . This
book ought to have been sent to us according to custom, and
approved by our judgment ; the more so, that this John . . . has
not always, it is everywhere said, been sound in his views upon
certain subjects. We recommend, therefore, very strongly,
that you cause the said John to appear before our apostleship,
or, at least, that you do not permit him any longer to reside
at Paris in the school of which he is stated for a long time to
have been the chief, in order that he may no longer mingle his
tares with the wheat of the holy word ; giving poison to those
who seek for bread."
/. Prom Ordericus VitcUis^ on the State of Normandy, a.d. 1094.
" At this time, sharp hostilities took place between William
de Breteuil and Ascelin Goel [two powerful Norman barons] ;
. . . there was a great feud between them, and each tried to
injure the other.
*^ In the month of February, Ascelin called to his aid Richard
de Montfort and the retainers of King Philip, and engaging in
battle with William . . . defeated him and made him a captive.
. . . Elated with the victory, he became exceedingly arrogant,
and cruelly tormented ... his captives. He kept them in close
confinement in his castle, . . . and often, in the severest weather,
. . . exposed them in their shirts, well soaked in water, at a
window in the highest stage of the tower to the blasts of the
north or south winds, until their only covering was frozen into
a sheet of ice around their bodies. At length, by the interfer-
ence of friends, peace was concluded, and William was let out
of prison ; . . . but the peace was of short duration.
*' The year following, William . . . renewed his hostilities,
and established ... a garrison in the convent of monks, which
314 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Robert d'lvri had founded in honor of the Vkgin Mary. Upon
this, Goel, who held the castle, led a body of troops to the
convent. . . . William de Breteuil made his escape with
more difficulty, and ... at length engaged to pay Philip,
king of France, seven hundred livres, as well as large sums to
Robert, duke of Normandy, ... if they would faithfully succor
him.
''*• In consequence, during Lent, the king of France and the
duke of Normandy laid siege to Breval. . . . The priests and
their parishioners brought their banners, and the abbots, assem-
bling their vassals, joined the besieging army. . . . Goel was a
most desperate freebooter, daring and crafty, and a violater of
churches . . . who till that time had been used to laugh at kings
and dukes in his secure retreat. ... He had noble and brave
kinsmen, by whose aid he had fortified the castle of Breteuil
. . . and with their courage and succour he had manfully sus-
tained the burden of such f requeut hostilities. But now finding
that so many great and valiant princes were firmly leagued
against him, he sued for peace."
STUDY ON 4.
AVhat changes in the direction of civilization does Christianity
encourage in Bulgaria? What is evidently the aim of Danish invasion
as shown in 6 ? What does this fact indicate incidentally of the com-
parative prosperity of England just before the invasion ? What spirit
shown by Byrhtnoth's answer to the Danes ? What feeling or senti-
ment? What do we know of Byrhtnoth'a religious belief? Of his
religious feeling? What sentiment shown by his followers? What
barbarian organization appears in this battle? "What spirit shown by
Byrhtwold? Make a list of the English virtues displayed in this
story.
What seems to be the aim of Erigena? What his spirit? What
difference between his attitude and that of Anselm? What resem-
blance ? What right does the pope claim in regard to the tliought of
Europe ? What harm can heresy do to the Church ? What conclusions
previously made in regard to the feudal system are confirmed by the
chronicle of Ordericus Vitalis ?
EABLY MBDL£VAL PSRIOD. 816
6. IkuOs and Stories lUustrtiiive of Isiam during this
reriod.
a. TTie Greek Embassy to Bagdad,
^^In the beginning of ... 917, two ambassadors fh)m the
Greek emperor . . . arrived in Bagdad on a mission to its
caliph, bringing an abundance of costly presents. . . . The
caliph, having appointed a day on which he woold receive them,
ordered that the courts and passages and avenues of his palace
should be filled with armed men, and that all the apartments
should be fhrnished with the utmost magnificence. A hundred
and sixty thousand armed soldiers were arranged in ranks in
the approach to the palace ; next to these were the pages of
the closets, and chief eunuchs, clad in silk and with belts set
with jewels, in number seven thousand, — four thousand white,
and three thousand black, — besides seven hundred chamber-
lains ; and beautifully ornamented boats of various kinds were
seen floating on the Tigris hard by. The two ambassadors
passed first by the palace of the chief chamberlain, and, aston-
ished at the splendid ornaments and pages and arms which they
there beheld, imagined that this was the palace of the caliph.
But what they had seen here was eclipsed by what they beheld
in the latter, where they were amazed by the sight of thirty-
eight thousand pieces of tapestry of gold-embroidered silk
brocade, and twenty-two thousand magnificent carpets. Here,
also, were two menageries of beasts, by nature wild, but tamed
by art, and eating from the hands of men : among them a hun-
dred lions, each with its keeper. They then entered the palace
of the Tree, enclosing a pond from which rose the Tree : this
had eighteen branches, with artificial leaves of various colors,
and with birds of gold and silver [or gilt and silvered] of every
kind and size perched upon its branches, so consti-ucted that
each of them sang. Thence they passed into the garden, in
which were furniture and utensils not to be enumerated ; in the
passages leading to it were suspended ten thousand gilt coats of
mail. Being at length conducted before the caliph himself,
they found him seated on a couch of ebony, inlaid with gold
320 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
St. Bernard as an emissary of the pope preaches
the second crusade. The king of France and
the emperor lead its forces, but return unsuccess-
1145
TO
1149.
ful after a disastrous march and heavy losses in Palestine.
I 1149 TO 1171. I * * *
Saladin deposes the Moslem rulers at Cairo,
and restores it to the caliphate at Bagdad; re-
conquers Jerusalem for Islam, but allows the
1171
TO
1187.
Latins to leave the city.
A third crusade is preached in Europe. Rich-
ard I. the Lion-Heart, of England, Philip Augus-
tus of France, and the Emperor Frederick I. the
1187
TO
1194.
Red-bearded (Barbftrossa) set forth for the Holy Land.
In England, the Saladin tithe, a tax of a tenth, is levied on
all who do not personally join the crusade. Frederick
dies in Asia Minor ; during the siege of Acre the soldiers
die by thousands of a pestilence. Philip Augustus and
Richard quarrel on the way and after their arrival at
Acre. On the surrender of this town, Philip returns
to France; quarrel between Richard and the Duke of
Austria ; the armies, too much weakened to attack Jeru-
salem, are broken up, and make their way as they can
back to Europe. Richard, passing through Austria in dis-
guise, is recognized and imprisoned ; for a heavy ransom
raised from the English people the emperor releases him.
} 1194 TO 1198. I Unsuccessful crusading.
Innocent IH. commissions Fulk of Neuilly to
preach a new crusade, tlie chief leader? of which
are French barons ; they ask the Venetians for
1198
TO
1204.
provisioned ships ; unable to pay for them in money, they
agree with the Doge to pay for them by conquering
Zara ; the Doge himself joins the crusade, and the Vene-
tians are to have half of all the conquests made; Zara
conquered, the crusaders take up the cause of a dethroned
STUDY ON CRUSADING 1>ERI0D. S2l
Byzantine prince, whom they undertake to restore to the
throne ; the pope protests ; nevertheless they depose the
reigning emperor on behalf of his rival, whom they in turn
dethrone, since he fails to pay the money promised to the
crusaders. Baldwin, Count of Flanders, is now chosen
emperor of the East, and the Latin Empire of Constanti-
nople is founded.
STUDY ON I a.
What and who has the commanding force in Europe in 1095?
What facts show this ? What does the long siege of Antioch show in
regard to the comparative military power of Christian and Turk?
What is the cause of the third crusade? Compare the treatment of
Jerusalem by the crusaders and by Omar and Saladin. What do
many of the crusaders evidently consider their first Christian duty ?
What civilizations are brought into contact by the crusades ? What
new material forces do they put at the disposal of the pope ? What
increase of wealth do they bring to the Church ? What proof can you
find that the crusading zeal diminishes during this period? What
reason can you assign ? Why should France lead in these movements
rather than Germany ? Why should the French emperors of Constan-
tinople and the kingdom of Jerusalem be called Latin f Why should
Europeans stiirbe called "Franks " throughout the East?
b. Summary of Events in Empire.
Quarrel of investitures settled by the Concordat
of Worms^ by which the emperor retains but one-
half his former rights. It is established that the
TO
1159.
emperor must receive his power from a conclave of Ger-
man princes, temporal and spiritual. — Under Arnold of
Brescia^ Rome attempts to revive her old republican gov-
ernment, free from the rule of the pope. — The Polish
dukes conquer West Pomerania, whose people promise to
recognize the lordship of Poland, and to become Christians.
Frederic Barbarossa, of the Swabian house of
Hohenstaufen, is elected emperor; the cities of
Northern Italy form the Lombard League to pre-
1159
TO
1190.
S22 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
serve their independence against him ; long wars with the
League end in the emperor's acknowledging the rights of
the cities ; war with Henry of Saxony and Bavaria, and
quarrels with the popes, in which the papacy comes off
victorious. The followers of the emperor are named
Ghibelins^ those of the popes, GiLelfs, — Frederic dies
while engaged in the third crusade.
Continued strife of pope and emperor, — of Guelph
and Ghibelin ; strife of emperor and powerful Ger-
man princes ; large privileges granted to cities. -
1190
TO
1J815.
Naples and Sicily won from the Normans by the emperor.
<?. In France,
King Lewis VI. (the Fat) fights with several of
his great feudal lords over questions of sovereignty
and the administration of justice, in behalf of the
church and their own vassals ; is on the whole victorious,
and gains much love from the common people.
King and pope quarrel over investitures ; the
king having burned a church full of people, makes
peace with the pope on condition of going upon a
1108
TO
1137.
1137
TO
1180.
crusade (second). Suger, abbot of St. Denis, is regent
(luring his absence; on his return, war breaks out with
Henry II. of England, who has claims to various parts' of
the French territory.
Philip Augustus upon the throne; the great
vassals make war upon him, but the king, victor-
« ioua, gains control of new lands; goes upon third
crusade ; on his return, wars with Richard and John of
England for Normandy, which he wins from the latter,
and makes a part of France.
In the south, the sects of the Albigenses and Waldenses
are spreading doctrines denying the spiritual lordship of
Rome ; the pope, unable to convert them, declares a cru-
1180
TO
1223.
STUDY ON CRUSADING PERIOD. 828
sade against them ; the South of France is ravaged by
men from all parts under the lead of Simon of Montfort,
and the heresy is practically exterminated.
Disaffected Flemish barons, joined by John of England
and the German emperor, make war on Philip ; the latter,
assisted by the burghers of the Flemish cities, defeats
them at Bouvtnes (1214).
d. In England,
The barons oppose King Henry I. ; he grants a
charter, giving privileges to them and to the clergy;
helped by the common people of the realm, whom
1100
TO
1154.
Anselm rouses to his aid, he defeats a rival claimant to
the throne. His successor wages war with various aspi-
rants to the royal power.
King Henry H. makes Thomas Beket arch-
bishop of Canterbury and his chief councillor.
The latter insists that the clergy shall be judged
1154
TO
1188.
by the law and the officers of the Church alone, while the
king insists that they shall be judged by the common law
of England, and in the king's courts. To decide it, bishops
and barons meet at Clarendon, and issue the "Constitutions
of Clarendon," by which the king's court is to decide in
each case to whom the judgment shall belong, and which
otherwise strengthen the king against the pope. The
quarrel of Henry and Thomas continues, ending in the
murder of Thomas, who is declared a saint by Rome, and
greatly honored by the English people.
With the approval of the pope, Henry invades Ireland,
and makes it a part of the English realm. Wars with the
French and Scotch, in the midst of which, Henry, fearing
defeat, does penance at the tomb of Thomas Beket.
He establishes circuit courts to do the " king's justice,"
and collect the " king's dues," and allows appeals from
824 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
these to himself and his own councillors; imposes the
" Saladia tithe," a tax levied on all goods and chattels, to
support a contemplated crusade.
Richard, the Lion-hearted, sells bishoprics, sher-
iffdoms, tind other offices, and with the money goes
on a crusade, leaving England under the regency
1189
TO
1»15.
of bishops ; on his return, he meets revolt and disaffec-
tion in England and Normandy, and under his successor,
John, Normandy is finally lost to the English crown;
John quarrels with the pope over the election of the arch-
bishop of Canterbury ; his kingdom is put under interdict,
and himself excommunicated ; his barons are against him,
because of his failure to keep his promises to redress their
wrongs ; he seizes their castles and confiscates the lands
of the Church; the pope deposes him and proclaims a cru-
sade against him; John yields, surrenders England as a
fief to Rome, and receives it again as "pope's man";
under the lead of the archbishop of Canterbury, the
English barons demand a recognition of the rights given
by the charters of former kings; John promises, but delays
to fulfil.
STUDY ON bf c, d.
What facts show uneasiness under papal rule? Compare this
uneasiness with that shown in preceding period. What facts show
increase of papal power? The weakness of the imperial name ? What
new opposition has the emperor to meet? What does the fact and the
result of this opposition show of the power of those making it?
What part of the government is increasing in power in France?
In England? What reason can you find for this in the crusading
movement? What efforts made by the pope in the interest of
Christian unity ? What class shows itself on the side of the kings ?
What reason can you imagine for this? What significant fact ap-
pears in the victory of Bou vines? Explain the loss of Normandy
to England. Name three things shown by the affair of Thomas
Beket.
STUDY ON CRUSADING PERIOD.
825
2. List of FatnouB Names and Works of Twelfth
Century*
Names.
Birth and
EdueaUon,
Cause of Fame.
Abelard.
French; of
Wanders
Teacher in
Latin.
a noble
from school
schools of
house.
to school,
studying
with fa-
mous mas-
Paris; applies
the doctrines of
Nominalism
(see p. d04) to
ters; stu-
theology, and con-
•
dent at
demned as a
t
Paris.
heretic.
Aben-Ezra.
Jew of
Toledo.
Rabbinical.
First to write
exhaustive and
scholarly criti-
cisms on the
Holy Scriptures.
Hebrew.
Averroes.
Spanish
Studies the-
Teaches phil-
Arabic.
Arab;
ology, juris-
osophy, law.
judge in
prudence.
and medicine
Seville,
mathema-
at Cordova ;
Cordova,
tics, medi-
author of a
and
cine, and
complete trans-
Morocco.
philosophy.
lation of and
commentary on
Aristotle.
Arnold of
Italian
Studies in
Attacks the
• • •
Brescia.
priest.
France
under
Abelard.
temporal power
of the pope
and the wealth
of the clergy ;
agitates for
the restoration
of the ancient
republic.
826
STUDIES IN GEITBBAL HISTORY.
Names.
Birth and
Edueatton.
Cause of Fame,
Beket,
Son of a
Studies at
Seel.
Latin and
Thomas.
London
trader and
magis-
trate; of
Norman
descent.
University
of Paris;
court-life.
English.
Bernard, St.
Frenchman ;
Monastic.
Orator; commis-
Latin and
of noble
sioned by the pope
French.
•
birth;
abbot.
to preach the
second crusade ;
author of sermons,
letters, moral and
religious works;
founds many mon-
asteries of the
Cistercian order.
Frederic
Son of Swa-
Life in
Seel.
German.
Barbarossa.
bian duke ;
elected
emperor.
camp and
court.
Geoffrey of
Welsh; arch-
Monastic.
Translates the his-
Latin.
Monmouth.
deacon and
bishop.
tory of the Bri-
tons from the
Welsh.
Godfrey of
French count
Social and
See 1 ; author of
« « «
Bouillon.
of the
military
Assizes of Jerusa-
Kmpire
life.
lem, tlie best col-
(Nether-
lection of feudal
landish).
law.
John of
Saxon ; arch-
Studies at
Writes a satirical
Latin.
Salisbury.
bishop of
Paris
work on " The
Canter-
under
frivolities of
bury.
Abelard.
Courtiers, and the
footsteps of Pliilos-
ophers"; poet.
8TUDT ON CBTJSADING PBBIOD.
327
/Home*.
Birth wd
Eduoailon.
0aua9 of Fam;
Maimonides.
CordoYan
Proficient in
Mathematician,
Hebrew
Jew; phy-
theology
astronomer, phi-
and
sician to
and medi-
losopher, and theo-
Arabic.
Saladin.
cine ; roas-
ter of
Greek and
Arabic
philoso-
phy.
logian, following
Moses and
AristoUe.
Malmesbury,
English;
Monastic ;
Author of chroni-
Latin.
William of.
monk ;
studied
cles of contempo-
monastery
with
rary and tradition-
librarian.
learned
bishop.
al English history.
Map, Walter.
Anglo-Nor-
Studies at
Poet, using Keltic
Latin and
man; arch-
Paris.
stories; writes
French.
deacon of
satirical poems.
Oxford ;
friend and
counsellor
of the
English
king;
diploma-
tist.
Ordericus
Anglo-
Studies in
Poet; author of
Latin.
Vitolis.
Norman;
French
general Ecclesias-
monk.
monaster-
ies.
tical History.
Peter the
Italian; of
Studies at
Founds the
Latin.
Lombard.
obscure
Bologna,
Sckdastic
birth;
Rheims,
philosophy, an at-
bishop of
and Paris.
tempt to reconcile
Paris.
the philosophy of
Aristotle with the
theology of the
Church.
828
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
.«.
Birth and
Circumstance,
Education,
Cau9B of Fame,
Lanffuage.
Philip
Hereditary
Life of court
Seel.
French.
Augustus.
king of
France.
and camp ;
crusading.
Richard I. of
Hereditary
Life of camp
Poet, musician, and
French.
England.
king of
England.
and court;
crusading.
knight.
Roger of
English;
Studies at
Historian of con-
Latin.
Horeden.
legal ad-
viser of
Heniy IL
of Eng-
land;
magistrate.
Oxford(?).
temporary events.
Saladin.
Arab sol-
dier; sul-
tan of
Egypt and
Syria.
« « «
See 1. Founder of
Mohammedan
dynasty, ruling
from Cairo.
Arabic.
Wace.
Of a noble
Studies in a
Uses the chronicle
French.
(baronial)
monastic
of Geoffrey of
Norman
school at
Monmouth for
family ;
Caen.
French poetical
monk.
romances of Ar-
thur and early
Britons, and writes
a poetical history
of Rollo and the
Norman dukes.
STUDY ON CRUSADING PERIOD. 829
Famous Foundations^ Enterprises^ Works not named in Lists.
School of Bologna^ founded at least as early as begin-
ning of twelfth century ; famous for the study of Roman
and canon law. The Roman law there taught (Justin-
ian's) translated into French in this same century; the
canon law, based on the Pseudo-Isidorean Decretals (see
p. 809), codified by a Benedictine monk, one o.f the Bo-
lognese professors.
Schools of Paris^ famous for the study of Scholastic phi-
losophy ; a study which received much impulse from various
students and teachers who had studied Averroes in Spain.
Turpin^s Chronicle^ a half-romantic work written in
Latin by German and Spanish monks, and fqrmiijg the
basis of much of the mediaeval romance in regard . tp
Charlemagne.
Foundation of Orders of Military Monks: a. Knights
of St. John^ or Mospitallers ; b. Templars; c. Teutonic
Knights. These orders were great brotherhoods of knight-
monks whose duties were to defend and care for all Chris-
tian people and places, while their vows bound them to a
half-monastic life. Their property was held in common ;
the care of sick or disabled pilgrims or knights was one
of their special duties.
STUDY ON 2.
Write a statement, in the form of a tabular view or an essay, of all
that is taught us by 2.
&• Extrcu^tB €md Stories lUusiraHve of the Period.
a. Appeal of Pope Urban IL at the GouncU of Clermont.
(Orderieus Vi talis.)
'* * The Turks and Persians,' said Pope Urbao, * the Arabians
and Saracens, have seized Antioch, Nicsea, and Jerusalem
itself . . . with other Christian cities, and have now turned
their mighty power against the Empire of the Greeks. . . .
880 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
In the churches, where the divine sacrifice was once celebrated
by the faithful, the Gentiles now stable their horses. . . .
They have dragged away captives into far-distaut countries,
into the seats of barbarism, and yoking them with thongs, set
them to labor in the fields, compelled them to plow the land
like oxen, and to undergo other toils befitting beasts rather
than men. . . . Our brethren are flogged with whips, urged
witli goads^ and abominably subjected to innumerable suffer-
ings. . . .' No sooner had Pope Urban eloquently poured forth
these complaints into the ears of Christians, than, by the inspira-
tion of God's grace, thousands were iuflamed with excessive zeal
for undertaking the enterprise, aud resolved to sell their lands
and leave all they had for the sake of Christ. Rich and poor,
monks and clerks, townsmen and peasants, were all seized with
a wonderful ardour to march to Jerusalem or succour those
that became pilgrims. . . . Estates of great value' were sold
for a trifle, and arms were purcliased to inflict divine vengeance
on the Saracens. Robbers, pirates, aud other criminals, touched
by the grace of God, rose from the depths of iniquity, con-
fessed and renounced their sins, and . . . joined the ranks of
the pilgrims. The prudent Pope stirred up all who were able to
bear arms, to fight against the enemies of God, absolving by
his authority all penitents from their sins fi*om the hour they
should take the cross, and releasing them from all obligations
of fasting and other mortifications of the flesh."
6. The Same, (From another contemporary chronicler.)
The Pope addressed himself to all the nations represented at
tlie Council, particularly to the French, who were in the major-
ity : " Nation beloved by Grod," said he, " it is in your courage
that the Christian church has placed its hope. . . . Recall,
without ceasing, to your minds the danger and the glorj^ of
your fathers. . . . More noble triumphs await you, under the
guidance of the God of armies ; you will deliver Europe and
Asia ; you will save the city of Jesus Christ, — that Jerusalem
which was chosen by the Lord, and from whence the law is
STUDY ON CRUSADING PERIOD. 331
come to OS. . • . Christian warriors, who seek without end
vain pretexts for war, rejoice, for you have to-day found true
ones. You, who have been so often the terror of your fellow-
citizens, go and fight against the barbarians, go and fight for
the deliverance of the holy places ; ... if you triumph over
your enemies, the kingdoms of the East will be your heritage ;
if you ai-e conquered, you will have the glory of dying in the
very same place as Jesus Christ, and God will not forget that
he has found you in his holy ranks. . . . Remember well what
tlie Lord has said to you : ^ He who loves his father and his
mother more than me is not worthy of me ; whoever will aban-
don his house or his father, or his mother, or his wife, or his
children, or his inheritance, for the sake of my name, shall be
recompensed a hundredfold, and possess life eternal.' " Rising
as one man, with one voice, the people answered, ^^ It is the
will of God ! It is the wiU of God ! "
c. The Sacred Spear,
When the Christians were besieged in Antioch, they suffered
fearfully from famine and weakness ; their commander even
had to burn down some sections of the city in order to force
them to fight with the Moslem. The Count of Flanders became
a beggar in the streets for the coarsest and poorest food, and
many a knight sold all his arms for the food for a single niglit.
In the midst of this misery, one of the princes cried out, ** O
God, what is become of tliy power? If thou art still an all-
powerful God, what is become of ihy justice ? Are we not thy
children, are we not thy soldiers?"
At this critical state of affairs, a priest declared that it had
been revealed to him by a thrice-repeated vision that near the
altar of one of the churches of Antioch lay buried the head
of the spear which pierced our Lord, and that if this were
found and borne at the head of the army, certain victory would
follow. The report flew among the soldiers ; for three days
they prayed and fasted so as to prepare to find the lance. On
the morning of the third day, twelve chosen crusaders began
882 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
the Bearch. At midnight the lance was found, the city resounded
with shouts of joy, and the Christians were eager to meet their
foes. The next night was passed in prayer and devotion. On
the following day the plains of Antioch rang with the battle-
cry of the crusaders : " It is the will of Gk)d.'* This army,
ragged, famished, sick, but inspired by faith in the divine aid
promised by the lance, advanced in perfect order and certain of
victory, to attack the Moslem thousands. The battle went hard ;
but as victory waned, say the historians, there appeared a
squadron descending from the mountains, led by tiiree horse*
men in white, and clad in shining armor. '^ Behold," cned a
bishop, '^the holy martyrs, George, Demetrius, and Theodore,
come to fight for you." Again the war-cry sounded : "It is
the will of God " ; the Saracens were put to flight, and the Chris-
tians fell on their deserted camp, where they found food and
raiment and "admirable riches." For days they were busy
carrying the spoil into Antioch, and " every crusader," accoixling
to the remark of Albert d'Aie, " found himself much richer than
when he quitted Europe." When afterwards, the vision of the
lance was questioned, the priest who saw it resolved to end all
doubt by submitting to the ordeal by fire. In the presence of
the arm}', and full of faith, he entered the high flaming blaze in
his simple robes. He passed the ordeal alive, but not unscathed,
and in a few days died ; " and the miraculous lance fmm that
time ceased to work miracles."
cZ. Fvom the Bulls of the Pope regarding the Second Orusade.
" We grant to those who will devote themselves to this glori-
ous enterprise the privileges which our predecessor Urban
granted to the soldiers of the cross. We have likewise ordered
that their wives and their children, thek worldly goods, and
their possessions, should be placed under the safeguard of the
Church, of the archbishops, the bishops, and other prelates.
We order, by our apostolic authority, that those who shall
have taken the cross shall be exempt from all kinds of pm>
suit on account of their propert3*."
STUDY ON CBUSADIKO PERIOD. 888
• ••••••
^^ He who shall have contracted debt shall pay no interest.
• . • If the lords of whom he holds will not, or cannot lend
him the money necessary, he shall be allowed to engage his
lands or possessions to ecclesiastics or any other persons.
As our predecessor has done, by the authority of the all-power-
ful God, and by that of the blessed St. Peter, prince of the
apostles, we grant absolution and remission of sins, we promise
life eternal to all those who shall undertake and terminate the
said pilgrimage, or who shall die in the service of Jesus Christ,
after having confessed their sins with a contrite and humble
heart."
e. After the Second Crusade.
Many complaints were made of its preacher, St Bernard, and
his partisans, ^^ struck with stupor," could only say among
themselves : ^^ God in these latter days has neither spared his
people nor his name ; the children of the Church have been
given over to death in the desert, or massacred by the sword,
or devoured by hunger ; the contempt of the Lord has fallen
even upon princes ; God has left them to wander in unknown
ways, and all sorts of pains and afllictions have been strewed
upon their paths."
/. Impreasiona of the Orusadera.
During the first crusade "they believed at every moment
that they were approaching tlie end of their pilgrimage. . . .
Many of the great lords, who had passed their lives in their
rustic donjons, knew very little more on tliis head than their
vassals ; they took with them their hunting and fishing appoint-
ments, and marched with their falcons on their wrists, preceded
by their hounds."
As the crusaders approached Palestine, <Mn the plains and
on the hills were oranges, pomegranates, and many other sorts
of trees unknown in the West. Among these new productions
was the sugarcane," which the pilgrims brought back to Europe,
S34 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
whilst the Saracens introduced it into the kingdom of Grenada,
whence the Spaniards afterwards conveyed it to America.
The chroniclers exclaim over the beauty of the gardens of
Damascus and its "variegated" marble edifices; they admire
'* the industry and the commerce of Tyre, the fertility of its ter-
ritory, its dyes so celebrated in all antiquity, that sand which is
changed into transparent vases." " As for Antioch/' says one
of the chroniclers, " this place was an object of terror to those
who looked upon it, for the number of its strong and vast towers,
which amounted to three hundred and sixty," while its ramparts,
solid as rock, were three leagues in extent. On reaching
Constantinople, a French chronicler exclaims : " Oh, what a
vast and beautiful city is Constantinople ! " A German histo-
rian says that " such magnificence could not be believed were it
not seen." It is said that the French knights, on seeing its
towers and palaces, " could not persuade themselves that there
could be such a rich city in all the world."
When, finally, Constantinople fell into the hands of the cru-
saders, knights, barons, and soldiers exclaimed in delight,
'* Never was so rich a booty seen since the creation of the world ! "
*' The Venetians, more enlightened than the other crusaders,
and bom in a city constructed and embellished by the arts,
caused several of the monuments of Byzantium to be transported
into Italy."
g, FVom a Letter of Saladin.
" God has performed the promise he made to raise his reli-
gion above all religions. Its light is more brilliant than that of
the morning ; the Mussulmans are restored to their hentagc,
which had been wrested from them. ... He only made war
on those who opposed Him, that the word of God might be
spread ; for the word of God is exalted."
h. Tlie Bargain of' the Venetians with the Crtiaaders, (VUlehar-
douin.)
When the doge of Venice granted aid to the crusaders, he
said, '^ We will make transports which will carry 4500 horses
STUDY ON CRUSADING PERIOD. 886
and 9000 squires ; and in ships we will conyey 4500 knightp
and 20,000 foot-soldiers. And the contract shall cover nine
months' provision for all these horses and all these people.
This is what we will do on condition that we are paid four marcs
for every horse and two for every man ; and the contract shall
begin to take effect from the day in which we set sail from
Venice, in the service of God and Christendom." The doge also
promised fifty armed galleys '* for the love of God," on condition
that French and Venetians should share half and half in all
their gains.
STUDY ON 3.
Name all the motives which, in your opinion, moved men ^o go
crusading. Of these, which were characteristic of the time? Which
common to all times ? What is the relation of the pope to the cru-
sades ? What historic reason why the pope should appeal especially
to the French ? What was the value of the sacred lanoe to the cru-
saders? What would naturally become of much feudal land as a
^sult of such circumstances as the crusaders found themselves in at
Antioch? What effect would such circumstances have upon their
faith ? What proofs that this effect was produced ? What effect upon
the population of Europe ? What class would become relatively weak
in point of numbers? What did crusading evidently teach the cru-
saders? What benefits evidently accrued to Europe from this cru-
sading? What occupations would rise in value in men's regard?
To whom would the power formerly exercised by the perished knighto
now pass ? What do we learn as to the comparative amount of civil-
ization in the West and in the East? In what ways was the West be-
hind? Why should the Venetians be more enlightened than the other
crusaders? What practical proof in their own city of their civilization ?
What motives and what spirit seem to have actuated Saladin ? State
all that you learn about the Venetians from their bargain with the
crusaders.
836 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
a LATER MEDISTAL FEBIOD, 1215-1492 From the
Great Oharter to the Disooyeiy of Amerioa.
Chief contemporary authorities and sources of infonna-
tion: Laws of England, France, the Empire, and the
Church; charters and petitions of guilds, towns, orders;
the monastic chroniclers, such as Matthew Paris and the
monks of St. Denis; the chronicles of courtiei*s and travel-
lers, such as those of Joinville, Froissart, Marco Polo;
literary remains ^ in poetry and prose, notably of Chaucer,
Dante, Roger Bacon ; monuments of period, — its castles,
cathedrals, town-defences and town-halls; frescoes and
tapestries, painted and wrought for churches, castles, or
town-halls.
Chief modern authorities in English, as before, adding
Rogers' " Six Centuries of Work and Wages," and Bren-
tano's "Essay on Guilds" for industrial history.
1. Organizations of the Period,
a. States.
The kingdoms of Europe are still, in theory, feudal
monarchies; the Empire still the Holy Roman Em-
pire; in each country, however, now appear prominently
Assemblies of Estates; that is, assemblies composed of
men from the Estate (rank or order) of Nohility^ to which
men are admitted by birth and training ; from the Estate of
the Clergy^ to which they are admitted by vows of devo-
tion to the Church ; and from the Third Estate^ the Estate
of Commons^ that is, of free, untitled men. In France,
this assembly is called into existence by King Philip the
Fair, and is named the States- 0-eneral ; in Spain, it is
the Cortes ; in England, the Parliament ; in Germany, the
1 For the literary remains of England, see the publications of the Early
English Text Society.
LATEB MEDL£VAL PERIOD.
337
Diet. Practically, on the continent, the merchants pre-
dominate in the third estate ; in England, the merchants
and the country gentry (knights of landed property)
alike compose it. These assemblies of estates are called
together at the desire of kings or emperors, to vote sup-
plies of money for the needs of the monarch, and some-
times to be consulted on the affairs of the realm. In the
empire the emperor is now elected by a body of seven
electors, three of them archbishops, four of them princes
or dukes of great German fiefs.
b. The Church.
The following table shows the elements and relations
of the ecclesiastical organization : —
Pope, elected by cardinals >
for life, or untU neces-
sary cause of deposition.
General coondls of bish-
ops and archbishops,
called together by pope
or emperor.
Archbishops and bishops,
appointed or confirmed
by the pope.
Appoints cardinals, archbishops, and often
bishops ; determines in regard to the forma-
tion of new religious orders, and appoints
their generals; has general oversight of
unirersity instruction, and suppresses books
and men whose teachings seem injurious to
religion; appoints papal legates (ambassa-
dors to yarious European courts) ; calls from
all Christendom for money -contributions,
the expenditure of which he himself directs ;
final Judge in all cases pertaining to arch-
bishops and bishops ; maker of all new canon
law, and final judge in regard to the old.
Decide in cases of conflicting authority be-
tween popes ; determine what is heretical
and what orthodox in regard to points of dis-
puted doctrine.
Same as before ; ecclesiastical rulers of prov-
inces and towns, under the general super-
vision of the pope; Judges, amenable to
pope and papal legates.
1 Cardinals, ecclesiastics chosen by the pope f^r his chief advisers and
administrators.
338
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Secular clergy.
Monastic orders author-
ized by pope.
Mendicant orders, Domin-
icans and Franciscans.
Military orders, authorized
by the pope, who con-
firms or appoints their
masters or generals.
Papal legates.
Same as before ; resident preachers and pas-
tors under the bishops.
Same as before ; bound together by oaths of
poverty, chastity, and obedience, living in
communities under strict rules of labor and
worship.
Bound by tows of poverty, chastity, and obedi-
ence ; itinerant preachers, living on the alms
of the people.
Bound by the vows of pc rerty, chastity, and
obedience, and enjoined to duties of hospi-
tality and of arms, exercised in behalf of
pilgrims, and in general of Christians in the
East; defend and hold Eastern fortresses.
Represent the interests of the pope at various
courts ; ambassadors; plenipotentiaries of the
pope, whose decisions overrule those of biah-
ops and archbishops in disputed cases.
All this body of clergy claim and obtain freedom from
all taxation by secular princes, excepting only feudal
dues and voluntary grants; they are also generally free
from the jurisdiction of the secular courts, being judged
by ecclesiastics.
c. The Guild.
In the towns of this period we see men binding them-
selves together in Guilds ; their organization may best be
studied from the following extracts from their consti-
tutions : —
From the Guild of Bermck-on-Tweed, 1283-1284.
^' Common fines shall go into the stock of tho guild. Brethren
shall bequeath something to the guild, if they make wills. If
a brother be foul-mouthed to another, he shall be fined ; and,
on repetition, shall be further punished. Heavy fines shall be
paid for bodily hurt done. Weapons shall not be brought to
guild -meetings. None shall be taken into the guild without
LATER MEDIAEVAL PERIOD. 889
paying at least forty shillings, saying the sons and daughters of
guildmen. Help shall be given to poor and ailing brethren.
Dowries shall be given to poor maidens of good repute [in the
guild]. Poor brethren shall be buried at the cost of the guild.
Help shall be given to brethren chained with wrong-doing. If
the brother has been rightly charged, he shall be dealt with as
the aldermen ^ and brethren think well. No lepers shall come
into the borough, a place for them being kept outside the town.
No dung or dust-heaps shall be put near the banks of the Tweed.
'^ Underhand dealings in the way of trade shall be punished.
If any one buy goods, misled by false top samples, amends must
be made. Forestalling of the market shall not be allowed.
Wools and hides shall not be engrossed by a few buyers. The
affairs of the borough ' shall be managed by twenty-four discreet
men of the town, chosen thereto, together with the mayor and
four provosts. The mayor and provosts shall be chosen by the
commonalty.
" Bewrayers of the guild shall be heavily punished. Out-
dwelling brethren of the guild must deal in the town on market-
days. ...
" No woman shall buy at one time more than a chaldron (36
bushds) of oats for making beer to sell. . . . Whoever buys a
lot of herrings, shall share them, at cost price, with the neigh-
bors present at the buying. . . . Tanned leathers, brought in by
outsiders, must be sold in open market and on market-day. . . .
No one shall have more than two pair of mill-stones."
The CarperUers' Ouild at Norwich promises "help to those
fallen into poverty or mishap, if not brought about through folly
or riotous living."
From the Lancaster Ouild of the Holy Trinity and St. Leonard,
" No guild-brother shall wrong the wife or daughter or sister
of another, nor shall allow her to be wronged so far as he can
hinder it."
^ Aldermen, = Eldermen, the chief elected officers of the guild.
^ In this case all the citizens of the borough were guildsmen.
840 STUDIES IK 6BNBRAL HISTORY.
*' A wax light shall be kept burning before the holy cross,
on the days when they go in procession in honor of the holy
cross."
"None of them shall work after dinner on Saturdays, nor
on any days which they ought to keep as festivals, according to
the law of the Church.
"If any one wishes to learn the craft, no one shall teach it to
him until he has given twopence to the wax [for the light].
" If any of the brotherhood is justly charged with theft to the
value of a penny, he shaU be put out of the company.'*
From the Bakers' QuUd at Exeter.
" Search shall be made at hucksters' houses for bread made
outside the town. Such bread is forfeited.
" Horse loaves shall be made two for a penny, of clean beans ;
otherwise, a fine must be paid, which goes half to the city and
half to the guild. No baker shall be allowed in the town, unless
a freeman, and also one of the guild."
d. The Town.
The organization and relations of the town may be seen
in the following extracts and summaries of various town-
charters : —
From the English Charter of Leicester.
" The townsmen made a covenant with the Earl of Leicester
that they should give him threepence yearly for each house in
the High Street that had a gable, on condition that he should
grant to them that the twenty-four jurors who were in Leices-
ter from ancient times should from that time forward discuss
and decide all pleas they might have among themselves."
From French Charters given by the King to Orleans (of twelfth
century, but typical of this period) .
** We will and order that all men who live and shall live at
Orleans be henceforth free and exempt from all tax and duty,
and we will seize neither them nor their goods, theu: wives,
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 841
sons, nor daughters, and will do them no yiolence, so long as
they desire to and do receive the judgment of our court. . . .
Now we make them all these concessions, on condition that all
those to whom we give this grace . . . henceforth, each year,
upon each four gallons of wine or com which they shall have,
shall pay us two deniers.^ . . . Now, every year, we will send
to Orleans one of the people who serve us in our house, and
who, with our other sergeants in the town, and ten good burghers
[peers], whom the burghers of the town shall elect in common,
shall annually collect this tax of bread and wine. . . . All men
dwelling within the indosure of the walls of the town and in
the suburbs, of whatever seignior the land which they inhabit
be held, shall swear to the borough, unless some of them abstain
by the advice of the peers, and of those who have sworn the
borough. ... If he who has committed a crime take refuge in
any strong castle, the peers of the borough shall confer with the
seignior of the castle. And if satisfaction be done upon the
enemy of the borough according to their sentence, let that suf-
fice ; but if the seignior refuse satisfaction, they shall them-
selves do justice, according to their judgment, upon his property
or his men. . . . The peers of the borough shall swear to
favor no one out of friendship, and to give up no one out
of enmity, and do all things in justice according to their
conviction. . . ." Under Philip Augustus, " Thirteen peers
are to be elected in the borough, among whom, if it be the
wish of those who have sworn the borough, one or two shall be
made mayors."
The Charter of Beaumont^ granted by its Bishop, '^ made all
the inhabitants of the commune of Beaumont proprietors of a
sufl9cient quantity of land to give them means of subsistence,
with the use of the woods and water-courses ; every precaution
was taken to prevent fraud in commerce and trade, especially
in regard to the millers, the bakers, and the butchers ; and the
administration of the commune was entrusted to a number of
burghers, elected by the most notable citizens."
^ A French coin of less value than an English penny.
842 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON I.
In whose interest are the assemblies of estates evidently called
together? For what object? What does the presence of the third
estate show in regard to its wealth? What kind of importance do
these assemblies give to this estate? What does the composition of
the third estate in England show?
What characterizes the organization of the Church? Of what
advantage is this characteristic ? What acts as a check on the central
power? At what part of its organization has the Church entirely sepa-
rated itself from the empire ? What actual material powers has the
papacy at its command? What kinds of power does it exercise?
What spirit in the Church is embodied in the mendicant orders ? In
the military orders? What point of contact has this organization
with a? In what way is the papacy better as a form of government
than an ordinary monarchy ? What two points of Church organization
threaten the prosperity and peace of states ?
What class of men compose the guilds? Make a list of the objects
of guilds. What is their attitude toward morality? Peace? Pub-
lic cleanliness and health ? Of what value is each of these things to
the guildsmen? What is the political organization of the guild?
Make a list of all the benefits you can think of as likely to residt from
such organizations to the guildsmen. To the community at large.
Towards what injustice do you see a tendency ? What two bonds of
union exist within them? What do they constantly seek to pre-
vent in trade ? What do the extracts tell you of the position of women
in the class represented by the guilds ? What great difference between
the relation existing between men of the same occupation in the same
town then and now?
What kind of power are the towns gaining? Men of what occu-
pations and classes are gaining this power? What is the political
constitution of the towns ? What power have they by which to gain
liberties and privileges? Whose power must decline, theirs rising?
What kinds of oppression and injustice evidently existed before the
granting of their charters? Whom will they favor, kings or nobles,
and why? How is the work of the towns and guilds now done?
In General. — It may be said that this is a period in which powers
and classes are being defined; give illustrations from the organizations.
What sort of organizations are the town and the guild as contrasted
with the kingdom, the empire, and the papacy? What general effect
would they have on peace and order ? On political independence ?
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 848
Z. Summary of Events, 1215-1492.
a. In the Empire.
1315
TO
1S54.
Jenghiz Khan and his Mogul successors ravage
Eastern Europe, threatening the empire. — Con-
stant strife of papal \^Q^uelf'\ and imperial [fl^Ai-
helin'] parties over disputed rights of appointment and of
jurisdiction in various territorial possessions, notably in
Sicily. — The emperor grants bishops and nobles legal
sovereignty in their own domains when he is not in person
present.
""^Chreat Interregnum^ ;t\iQ electors being di-
vided in their votes for emperor, the pope threat-
ens to appoint one if they do not choose. They
1264
TO
1273.
then elect Rudolf of Hapsburg, founder of the House of
Austria, and the pope confirms their choice. — During this
time, the Duke of Poland has himself crowned its king,
and Poland thus becomes independent of the empire. —
The pope offers the crown of Sicily to the French count
of Anjou, who conquers it by force of arms. — More than
sixty cities of the empire, under the lead of archbishops,
form the League of the Rhine^ for mutual defence against
the nobles. About the same time,, eighty other German
cities form the League of the Hanee^ with Lubeck, Cologne,
Brunswick, and Dantzig at their head. This league has
four principal foreign stations, — London, Bruges, Bergen,
and Novgorod. Its objects are, common defence, security
of routes by land and sea, a court of arbitration in case of
dispute, and the extension of trade to foreign parts.
Wars and dissensions of nobles, princes, cities,
parties, and emperors ; the papal chair [1309] is
removed from Rome to Avignon, which is the
1278
TO
1878.
pope's residence during nearly the whole century. — The
three forest cantons of Switzerland form a league for mut-
ual defence. — The island of Sicily revolts against Anjou,
344 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
and chooses a Spaniard of the House of Aragon for its king.
Thus " The Two Sicilies " were separated, one being under
French, one under Spanish rule. — In 1888, the electors of
the empire declare that " the imperial dignity is derived
from God alone," that " it is by their choice " the titles of
king and emperor are given; and that it is unnecessary for
the pope either to approve or confirm.
In Rome, Cola di Rienzi, who takes the title of tribune
of the people, attempts to revive the old Roman republic. —
in 1356, the emperor, Charles IV., issues the Golden Bully
by which it is formally declared that the emperor shall
gain his office by the choice of the seven electors of the
empire.
Continued residence of popes at Avignon;
continued wars of parties and cities in Italy.
"Great Schism of the West," caused by a
double election of popes, one at Rome, one at
Avignon, dividing the allegiance of Western
1856
TO
1878.
1878
TO
1418.
Europe. A series of Church councils are held, to settle
the papal disputes, and to try to limit the papal power; a
settlement is finally accomplished by the Council of Con-
stance, which is called by the emperor, and elects a single
pope to rule from Rome. By this same council, John
Huss and Jerome of Prague are burned, because they are
preaching through Bohemia doctrines opposed to the
papacy, following the lead of Wiclif, who had preached
similar doctrines in England.
War in Bohemia between the followers of
Huss and the king. A large and formidable
body of the former, under the name of Taborites,
1418
TO
1492.
cry out for "equality! no more kings 1 no more priests!"
During this time the imperial dignity passes permanently
to the House of Austria. — War between the various Italian
cities ; war between cities and military adventurercf and
LATER MEDLEVAL PERIOD, 345
lords of the empire ; the cities sometimes independent,
sometimes in leagues, sometimes under the tyranny of
other cities, sometimes under that of a wealthy family,
i. In the East,
Jerusalem is retaken by Mohammedans (Chorasmians),
who are fleeing from the Moguls, and the Christian king-
dom of Jerusalem ends ; the Moguls seize upon Bagdad,
thus ending its caliphate m 1258. — Constantinople is re-
gained by the Greek emperors, 1261, and held by them
until 1453, when, after vain appeals to the West, and
promises of reunion of the Eastern and Western Church,
it is taken by the Ottoman Turks, and made the capital of
Turkey in Europe ; the Turkish conquest of Greece and
the Greek islands soon follows.
c. In France.
I 1«15 TO 1«MI. I
Time of Lewis IX., the Saint. War of the
barons against the king, whom Paris and all the
communes (towns) of France swear to defend.
18M
TO
1870.
Unsuccessful struggle of the bishops against the king. In
all these troubles, Blanche of Castile, the king's mother, is
the regent of the realm, the king being a minor.
New war of barons, with some help from England,
against the king; the king proclaims that every baron
holding fiefs both under him and the English king must
choose one of them for his master ; most of them choose
Lewis. — Two unsuccessful crusades, one practically end-
ing in Egypt, and one in Tunis.
During this reign, the royal domain is enlarged towards
the south by purchase and by conquest.
The whole of Toulouse falls to the crown on
the death of its childless count. — The king, in want
of money, taxes the clergy, sells privileges to
1»70
TO
18S7.
B46 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
towns, and freedom to serfs ; the pope issues a bull, for-
bidding the clergy to pay taxes to any civil power, without
his permission. Thereupon, a violent quarrel arises be-
tween the pope and the king ; the latter calls to his sup-
port the estates of France, — the nobility, the clergy, the
burghers or third estate. This meeting of the estates at
Paris is the first " States-General." This body declares for
the king ; revolt in Flanders ; the French nobility march
to put it down, but are beaten by the Flemish burghers,
and their golden spurs are hung as trophies in the cathe-
dral of Courtrai. In this " Battle of the Spurs " many
lords of fiefs perished. Continued quarrel of king and
pope. The king grants the independence of Flanders,
except from his feudal lordship. The knights templars
are suppressed, and their wealth passes to the king.
Hundred years'* war between England and
France. Edward III. of England claims the
right to the French throne and the lands of
1887
TO
1458.
Aquitaine ; war follows. Under Edward III. and his son,
the Black Prince, the English win the victories of Crecy
and Poitiers; later still they win Agincourt, and the
English right to the throne is conceded. France refuses
to acknowledge the treaty, and war continues. Jeanne
d'Arc, claiming the direct inspiration of God, appears,
rouses the French to enthusiasm and faith. They drive
the English from France, and the whole land except
Calais comes under the lordship of the king of France.
Jeanne d'Arc, delivered a captive to the English, is burned
for witchcraft and heresy.
In the midst of the war comes the Black Death, taking
half the population and visiting all ranks; the king, in
need of money for the war, convokes the States-General ;
the nobles vote for war and taxes, the clergy and the
third estate ask delay and reform. In this demand, Etienne
348 STtJDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Marcel, provost of the Paris merchants, leads ; the king,
paying no heed, and dismissing the estates, Paris is forti-
fied. The king still delaying reform, Paris revolts, and
demands (1) tares levied by the States-General; (2)
checks to the extravagance of the court; (8) reform in
the administration of justice; (4) good money; (6)
the arming of all men as a national guard. The king
promises to yield to the conditions ; breaks his promise.
Paris revolts again; war between the king and Paris;
meanwhile, in the country, Jacqiteg (the peasant) rises
against the nobles "with iron-shod sticks and knives";
this revolt is known as a " Jacquerie " ; castles are iiiined
and burned, nobles and peasants slain ; but the peasants
in the country, and the burghers in Paris, are alike sub-
dued by king and noble.
The great nobles and lords form the " League
of the Public Good," and make war on king
Lewis XI. in behalf of their ancient independence
1453
TO
1499.
and privilege, but the king at last subdues them.
During this time the territorial gains of the French
monarchy are as follows : Dauphiny and Montpellier are
bought from their heirs ; Provence on the death of its last
count goes to the French king; Aquitaine is conquered
from the English in the hundred years' war ; Burgundy is
annexed by Lewis XL By sale, inheritance, dowry, or
conquest, the royal domain in France very nearly comes
to correspond to that indicated in the map, p. 397.
STUDY ON 2.
Make a list of all the signs of weakness that you see in the imperial
office. What signs that the towns are strong? The Church? The
nobles? What proof that no one of these powers predominates?
Name two evidences of the special relation between France and the
papacy. What evidences of German hostility to the papacy? What
political reason for this hostility ? What is meant by referring to the
liATER MEDLEYAIi PERIOD. 849
imperial title as a dignity rather than a power? What states come to
an end daring this period, what begin, and what are fully formed?
What strong parties appear in France, and how related ? Compare
with Germany. Of what value is the enlargement of the royal do-
main? What new powers and resources does the king thus gain?
What does the king appear to feel an especial need for during this
period ? What gain to the people arises from this necessity ? What
special reason why the desire for territorial possession should be a cause
of war between England and France ? Why should the nobles vote
for war? Why the clergy for peace? Why the third estate? What
evils evidently exist in France at the time of this war ? On the whole,
what part of the state gains power during this period, and by what
means?
d. In England.
The baroDS in arms under Stephen Langton,
Archbishop of Canterbury, with the nation to
back them, demand of John the signing of the
Great Charter (Magna Charta), in confirmation of ancient
rights; at Runnymede they force him to sign it; the pope
excommunicates the barons; war between them and the
royal and papal forces; John dies, and the charter is pro-
claimed in the name of his successor, Henry III.
The king wanting money, gets it on condition
of a fresh confirmation of the charter ; the pope
needs money, and sends to England for it ; the
1815»
ISltt.
1816
TO
1878.
king promises it; the barons refuse, but a tithe of all cleri-
cal property is demanded ; the king surrounds himself with
foreigners, to whom he gives much money, and with whom
he keeps an extravagant court ; again in need of money,
he calls the great council of the realm ; they grant it on
condition of economy and confirmation of the charter ; the
king promises, but breaks his faith ; the clergy complain of
the heavy papal taxes that are sanctioned by the king;
under the lead of Simon de Montfort the baronage in
arms demand their liberties from tlie crown. The king
350 8Ttn>IBS IN 6BNEBAL HISTORY.
yields and makes new promises; breaks them, the pope ab-
solving him from his oath ; the barons and the towns, under
Simon, make fresh war upon him ; the king is captured, and
Simon calls a parliament, summoning nobles, clergy, and
commons ; the latter comprising knights, two elected from
each shire, and citizens, two from every borough. War
continues, but finally ends with the fresh confirmation of
the rights of the realm, and the promise that taxation shall
only be imposed with the consent of the great council.
Edward L reigning, confirms the charter and
keeps his word. Needs money for conquest of
Wales ; parliament grants him a tax on every sack
127S
TO
1307.
of wool exported; Wales is subdued and joined to the
English realm. War threatens from Scotland and from
France; Edward calls (1295) a parliament of the realm
to aid him with counsel and gold; to it he calls knights,
nobles, barons, clergy, and two burgesses, "from every
city, borough, and leading town," The money granted is
spent in the war, and more required; tax on wool is
raised and grows oppressive; forced contributions of
money and com; barons revolt ; Edward confesses himself
wrong; is granted new moneys by clergy and commons
in return for the confirmation of their rights, and the
promise not to tax without the consent of the taxed.
Victory over the Scotch under Wallace, but new war
against them under their new leader, Bruce, in the midst
of which King Edward dies.
Contests between the royal power and the
baronage over supplies and charters ; the Scotch
war presses ; the king confirms the charters before
1307
TO
14M.
given, and parliament grants supplies ; the Scotch under
Bruce beat the English at Bannockhum; truce between
England and Scotland made by the king under the influ-
ence of his favorites ; parliament thereupon deposes him
LATEB MEDLEVAL PERIOD, 861
on the charges of "indolence, incapacity, the loss of Scot-
land, the violation of his coronation oath, oppression of
the Church and baronage," and his son reigns in his stead *
under a council of barons. Scotch war renewed; all
south of the Frith of Forth is ceded to England, and hom-
age is done for the rest. Hundred years' war breaks out,
and Scotland becomes independent. Constant war ; con-
stant demand on the part of the king for money ; parlia-
ment meets every year, and many laws favorable to the
trading classes are passed; the House of Commons sits
as a separate body, and its petitions often become law.
Victories over the French, at Crecy, Calais, Poitiers;
meanwhile the exactions of the court of Avignon increase,
the pope appoints foreigners to English livings, and finally
demands the payment of the annual sum promised by
John Lackland, in token of the temporal lordship of Rome.
King Edward refers the matter to parliament. Both
houses answer that " neither King John nor any king can
put himself, his kingdom, nor his people, under subjection
save with their accord or assent." Wiclif^ scholar and
preacher at Oxford University, boldly preaches the inde-
pendence of the English Church, and attacks the practices
and the doctrines of Rome. His followers are known as
"ioHardf*," and their revolt against established belief
and practice produces much agitation and disturbance
(^Lollardry).
In the midst of the French war comes the ^^Blach Deaih^^
destroying more than half the English folk. Laborers ask
for higher wages; employers refuse them; taxes grow
heavier. The peasants revolt, demanding the abolition of
serfdom ; by fair promises the king disperses them. Their
leaders are punished, and the king refuses to keep his
word ; nevertheless, from that time serfage begins to dis-
appear and labor to be paid in wages.
352 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
'Wars of the Roses"; wars between the
houses of York (white rose) and Lancaster
(red rose) over their rights of succession to tte
1455
TO
1485.
English crown ; settled at last by the marriage of a York
and a Lancaster, from which union springs the Tudor line
of the sixteenth century.
e. In Other Countries of Europe.
In Spain and Portugal continual strife of Christian and
Moor; the Arabs driven back to the sole possession of
Granada ; Sicily joined to Aragon ; just before the sixteenth
century, by the marriage of Ferdinand and Isabella, Castile
and Aragon are united ; by conquest of Ferdinand, Gre-
nada is freed from the Moors and joined to the Spanish
realm. — In 1283 the General Privilege, the Magna Charta
of Aragon, is granted, which provides for the fair and open
administration of justice, for defining the powers of cities,
for securing property against the arbitrary use of crown,
for preserving the privileges of t^wns and nobles. In the
north and east of Europe, a crusade is preached against the
heathen of the Baltic, to which the pope and the emperor
commission the Order of Teutonic Knights, who win from
heathendom Prussia and Baltic lands adjoining. — The
Moguls invade Europe and conquer Russia, which comes
again, however, under native rule before the close of the
period. — Hungary and Poland become the bulwarks of
Christendom against the Turk, beating him back south-
ward from the imperial frontier.
STUDY ON d.
Make a list of the facts in England which correspond to facts in
France during this same time. What great difference do you notice
in the outcome of events in these two countries ? What occupation
would seem to be a source of English wealth, which we have not
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD,
353
noticed on the continent as such ? Give two indications pointing to
this conclusion. What great and constant check on despotism in
England? What new class appears as a contending party in Eng-
land ? What indication that this class is more intelligent in England
than in France ? How far is this a proof ? What relation between the
*' Black Death " and the demand for higher wages ? How is a wage-
laborer better oft than a serf ? A serf than a slave ? How does the
power of Ferdinand, king of Spain, compare with that of other kings ?
Why?
In GeneraL — Against what barbaric races is Europe called upon
to protect herself? What additions are made to the European com-
monwealth? What is lost to it? What fact do you see common to
the Empire, France, England, Spain ? What to the Empire, France,
and England? What general cause for the calling of estates? What
acts as a check upon royal power? On the power of the nobles?
What does the fact that the events in each country must be treated
separately indicate ?
8. List of Famous Names of Period.
a. Tliirteenth Century (1215-1300).
.^
Birth and
EdueaUott.
Cmiat of Fam:
Albertus
Swabian ; of
Student at
Follows Abelard
Latin.
Magnus,
old family ;
Padua, %
with caution; stud-
the " Uni-
student;
Bologna,
ies, teaches, and
versal
Dominican
Paris.
writes on all sub-
Doctor."
monk; lec-
tures in
Paris and
Cologne ;
bishop.
jects then pursued ;
seeks in natural
science the basis
of knowledge;
writes on proper-
ties of stones,
plants, and ani-
mals ; author of
many chemical re-
cipes ; accused of
magic.
354
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
MameB.
Birth and
CIreumBtano:
EducaUon.
CotfM of FamB,
Alfonso the
Hereditary
Life at his
Uas Bible translated
Spanish.
Wise, of
king of
father's
into Spanish ;
Castile.
Castile.
court at
Castile.
author of poetical
and scientific
works; codifies
Spanish law on
basis of Roman
and native laws.
Aquinas,
Neapolitan ;
Studies at
Lectures at Paris
Latin.
St. Thomas,
Dominican
Naples and
to great audiences
the "Angel-
monk; lec-
Paris; pu-
on theological
ic Doctor."
tures in
pil of
philosophy; his
Paris, and
AlbertuB
theology forms
many Ital-
Magnus.
the basis of that
ian towns.
afterward taught;
inclines to Real-
ism ; seeks in
theology the
basis of knowledge.
Bacon,
Franciscan
Studies at
Realist; author of
Latin.
Roger,
monk.
Oxford and
the '* Great Work,"
the "Ad-
Paris. (See
a cyclopedia of the
mirable
Geber, p.
thirteenth centuiy
Doctor."
264.) •
knowledge of
geography, mathe-
matics, music,
astrology, physics,
anatomy; invents
the telescope and
discovers gun-
powder; accused
of heresy and
imprisoned.
Cimabue.
Florentine;
Watches the
Fresco-painting,
• • «
of noble
Greek
studied from
family.
painters
who had
nature ;
paints for
LATER MEDIMVAI. PERIOD.
S55
Mamn.
Birth and
Education.
Cauac of Famo.
Ixuiguago,
been called
churches; empha-
to Florence
sizes expression
to decorate
in painting.
a chapel.
Dominic, St.
Spaniard;
Studies at
Religious zealot ;
« « «
of honora-
the Univer-
champion of the
ble family;
sity of Sal-
Church; becomes
monk.
a mendicant
preacher, hoping
to work reforms in
Church abuses ;
establishes the
Dominican order
of monks.
Edward I.,
King of
Life of camp
Organizes and ar-
English.
1272-1807.
England by
and court.
ranges the body
hereditary
abroad and
of English law;
right
in England.
gives form to
House of Com-
mons; conquers
Wales.
(See 2.)
Francis, St.,
Italian ; son
A little
Establishes Francis-
« « «
of Assisi.
of a trades-
study with
can order of
man ; monk.
the parish
priests.
monks, vowed
to poverty and
simplicity
of life;
preaches
self-renunciation
in Illyrica, Spain,
Holy Land,—
everywhere
gaining
disciples.
356
STUDIES IK GEKERAIi HI8T0BY.
Mamu.
Birth and
Circumtttuice.
EduoaUon.
CauBe of Fame*
Grossetesle,
English ;
Studied law,
Author of a treatise
Latin.
Robert.
bishop of
theology,
on the sphere ;
Lincoln.
and medi-
cine at
Oxford;
Greek and
Hebrew at
Paris.
author of about
200 books; tran»<
lates from Greek ;
poet, writing short
poems on moral and
religious subjects.
Joinville.
French ;
Life of
Author of chronicles
French.
knight.
camp and
court.
of the Crusades,
in which he took
part, and life of
St. Lewis ; author
of a chronicle of
contemporary
events; employed
in matters of state.
Layamon.
English ;
Studies in
Translates Wace's
English.
priest.
English
monastic
school.
Chronicle of
Britain (the
"Brut").
Langton,
English ;
Studies at
Involved in consti-
Latin and
Stephen.
archbishop
University
tutional struggles ;
English.
of Canter-
of Paris;
instigator of the
bury ; chan-
distin-
demands of the
cellor; mem-
guished in
Magna Charta.
ber of pope's
theology
household ;
and philos-
cardinal-
ophy.
priest.
Lewis, St.
King of
Educated at
Author of the
French.
France.
court under
the direc-
tion of his
mother,
Blanche of
Castile.
"Establishments
of St. Lewis," a fa-
mous collection of
French legislation,
largely modified by
Boman law.
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD.
867
Mamu,
Birtk and
CltounwtuiiOB,
Edueatlott,
Caute of Fame.
Matthew
English
Studied at
Author of chronicle
Latin and
Paris.
monk;
Paris Uni-
of contemporary
French.
friend and
versityC?).
events; employed
advisor of
in matters of state.
English
king, Henry
III.
Montfort,
French ;
« • «
See 2.
French
Simon de.
noble;
English
king's
seneschal
and am-
bassador.
and
English.
Peter de
Italian;
• « «
Writes a cyclopedia
Latin,
Crescenzi.
of wealthy
of all the botanic
translated
Bolognese
knowledge of his
into
family.
time, adding there-
to his own obser-
vations; this work
goes through fif-
teen or twenty
editions before
close of period.
French
and other
language!
Polo, Marco.
Venetian;
Trayel and
Travels in Asia and
French
high officer
life.
dictates an account
and
of Great
of his travels.
Italian.
Khan of
which is published;
Tartary.
first to make the
existence of Japan
known to Europe.
Villehardou-
Noble and
Life of
Author of "Con-
French.
in.
warrior of
camp and
quest of Constan-
Cham-
court;
tinople," very pop-
pagne.
crusading.
ular in the middle
ages.
358 STUDIES IK GEKEBAL HISTORY.
b. Names of Fourteenth Century.
Mamtt.
Btrtk and
Clreumatanee.
Eduoatiott.
Cau8€ of Fame.
Language
Artevelde,
Of distin-
Society and
Leader of citizens
« « «
Jacob van.
guished and
wealthy
family;
member of
brewer's
guild, which
he joins to
gain influ-
ence.
politics.
in their struggle
for independence
against the Count
of Flanders.
Boccaccio.
Italian ; son
Studies in
Author of the "De-
Italian.
of a mer-
Florence,
cameron," a series
chant ;
travels in
of stories or novels
poet; pair
France.
based on real life
ronized by
or on medisBval
queen of
French romances.
Naples.
Bruce,
Scottish
Life in camp
Leader of Scotch
Scotch.
Robert.
noble; king
of Scotland.
and court.
revolt against Eng-
lish rule; compels
recognition of
Scotch independ-
ence.
Chaucer.
Londoner;
Student at
Father of English
EngUsh.
son of a
Oxford or
poetry ; author of
merchant ;
Cam-
"Canterbuiy
courtier,
bridge(?).
Tales," a series of
scholar,
stories told in
soldier,
verse, partly origi-
poet.
nal, partly taken
from French,
Italian, and classi-
cal sources.
Dante,
Florentine
Studies the
Author of the
Italian.
AUgbieri.
patrician.
classics ;
"Divine Comedy,"
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD.
859
NtUMBm
Birth and
Education,
0aM99 of Fam9.
Language.
also philos-'
a poem describing
ophy.
the visions of a
astrology.
journey through
mathemar
Hell, Purgatory,
tics, rhe-
and Paradise;
toric.
lover of Beatrice,
in whose honor he
writes "The New
Life."
Froissart.
Frenchman ;
Life in camp
Author of "Chroni-
French.
priest, poet.
«nd court.
cles " of contempo-
musician.
rary French and
English history.
Giotto.
Italian
Pupil of
Paints frescoes for
• • «
shepherd-
Cimabue.
churches; archi-
bo/.
tect of the famous
bell-tower of
Florence cathedral.
Glanyil,
English ;
Studies at
Compiles a cyclo-
Latin,
Bartholo-
monk.
Oxford,
pedia dealing with
translated
mew.
Paris, •
all kinds of natu-
into
Rome.
ral objects, which
is reprinted ten
times.
French,
English,
Spanish,
Dutch.
Langland,
English;
Monastic.
Author of the "Vis-
English.
William.
monk.
ion of Piers Plow-
man," a satirical
allegory of human
life, especially
sharp against the
clergy.
MandeyiUe,
EngUsh;
Society and
Explores parts of
French,
Sir John.
knight
travel.
Africa and Asia,
and writes a book
of his travels.
English,
Latin.
360
STIIDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Mam9S,
Birth and
Olreumatanoe,
EdueaUon.
Cwite of Fame,
Language,
Marcel,
Son of a
Business
See 2.
French.
Etienne.
Parisian
draper;
rich mer-
chant.
and affairs.
Occam,
English ;
Studies at
Nominalist; lec-
lAtin.
William of,
Franciscan
Oxford; at
tures at Paris ; aids
the " In-
monk and
Paris with
the French king in
yincible
physician ;
Duns Sco-
his quarrel with
Doctor."
teacher of
theology.
tus.
the pope ; author
of many philosoph-
ic and theologi-
cal works.
Petrarch.
Italian; son
Studies the
Author of sonnets
of a no-
classics;
in honor of his
Latin.
tary; poet
lives at
lady Laura; found-
and prose-
courts.
er of " Humanism,"
writer,
or the interest in
patronized
the life and litera-
by various
ture of classic
princes ;
antiquity.
ambassa-
•
dor.
Rienxi,
Roman; of
Well-
Attempts to re-
ItaUan.
Cola di.
obscure
birth; no-
tary ; papal
ambas-
sador.
educated.
store the ancient
Roman liberties
under the forms
of the old repub-
lic; the "Last of
the Tribunes."
Tyler, Wat.
English
peasant.
« * «
Leader of the peo-
ple unsuccessfully
revolting against
the king because
of oppressive
taxation.
English.
LATBB MEDIEVAL PERIOD.
861
Mmn9B.
Birth ami
Education,
Cause 0/ Famt.
Language.
Wallace, Sir
Scotch
Life of
Leader in Scottish
Scotch.
William.
knight;
camp and
wars for independ-
guardian of
court.
ence.
Scotland.
Wiclif.
English
Studies at
Translates the Bible
English.
preacher
Oxford.
from Latin into
and lect-
English; eloquent
urer at Ox-
preacher; urges
ford; pat-
reform in the doc-
ronized by
trine and practice
English
of the Church;
king.
denounces the
begging friars
(Dominicans and
Franciscans).
#. Names of Fifteenth Century,
JEaesLS
Italian ; of
Studies clas-
One of the first
Latin.
Sylvius,
old but
sics and
mathematicians
Pius IL
poor fami-
ly; diplo-
mat for
emperors
and popes ;
pope.
law.
of his age ; cosmog-
raphist; writes on
geography and his-
tory.
Angelico,
From a
Monastic
Paints miniatures
• * *
Fra.
wealthy
and ele-
for manuscripts ;
family near
mentary.
also many pictures
Florence;
on religious and
monk.
scriptural subjects
for churches.
Brunellcs-
Florentine ;
Apprenticed
Architect of the
« « «
chi.
son of a
to a gold-
great dome of
notary ;
smith;
Floreiice.
member of
studies
362
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
MamM.
Birth and
Oireumgtance.
EducaUon,
Oaum of fanm.
Lmgitaff;
the gold-
sculpture.
smith's
perspective,
guild.
and geome-
try.
Cardan.
Son of a
lawyer and
physician ;
professor
of mathe-
matics and
medicine at
university
of Pavia.
• « «
Writes a famous
treatise on mathe-
matics; writes
also on scientific
and philosophic
subjects.
Latin.
Caxton,
English ;
Mercantile ;
First English prin-
English
William.
merchant
learns art
ter; translates
and official.
of printing
in Flanders.
many foreign
(mostly French)
works into English.
Comines,
French ;
Life at
Author of "Me-
French.
PhiUp de.
noble ;
councillor
and cham-
berlain of
King Lewis
XL
court.
moirs," which give
a vivid picture of
Lewis XI. and his
time.
Cusanus
German ;
Studies law
Writes on philoso-
Latin.
(Nicolas
cardinal-
and mathe-
phy; in astronomy.
Krebs).
bishop.
matics at
Padua ;
studies
theology.
the forerunner of
Copernicus ;
matliematiciail,
theologian, philos-
opher.
Donatello.
Florentine ;
Apprenticed
Makes beautiful
• • t
of noble
to a gold-
statues and carv-
family;
smith ;
ings, mostly of
sculptor
studies
religious subjects ;
and painter.
mtique
models.
studies from
nature.
LATER MEDLEVAL PERIOD.
363
Mam€8.
B/rth and
.^.
CoifM of fame.
Ghiberti.
Florentine.
Apprenticed
to a gold-
smith.
Sculptor of reliefs
on the famous
bronze doors of
the Florence
Baptistery; sub-
jects scriptural,
but studies from
nature; famous
jeweller.
« « «
Gutenberg.
Grerman ; of
noble
descent.
• « •
InvenU printing by
movable types.
« « «
Huss, John.
Bohemian ;
Studies at
Follower of Wiclif;
Latin.
University
preacher and
professor
of Prague.
writer; accused
in Univer-
of heresy, and
sity of
condemned to
Prague.
death.
Jeanne d* Arc.
French;
peasant-
girl.
Beligious
instruction
from her
mother.
See 2.
French.
Jerome of
Bohemian ;
Studies at
Follower of Wiclif
« « •
Prague.
of good
Prague,
and associate of
birth.
Paris,
Oxford.
Huss; condemned
and burned for
heresy.
Kempis,
German ;
Beligious
Beputcd author of
Latin.
Thos. k.
monk.
and mon-
astic.
the "Imitation of
Christ."
MachiaYelli.
Florentine ;
of the pros-
perous mid-
Classical.. .
Author of a history
of Florence, and
of "The Prince,"
Itolian.
dle class ;
a work on states-
,
lawyer,
manship, showing
clerk.
how princes may
diplomat.
gain and keep their
power.
364
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Name»,
Birth and
Circumstance.
Education.
Cau89 of Fame,
Language,
Masaccio.
Italian; son
Studies with
Disregards conven-
• « •
of a notary ;
other lUl-
tionalities of for-
belongs to
ian artists.
mer artists, and
a guild of
studies nature for
druggists,
his types.
then of
painters.
Medici,
Wealthy
Literary
Founds House of
* • «
Cosimo di.
Florentine ;
and com-
Medici, long the
merchant.
mercial
culture.
practical rulers of
Florence; imports
into Italy many
Greek manu-
scripts new to
Europe.
Medici,
Son of
Studies with
Ruler of Florence;
« « «
Lorenzo.
Cosimo.
famous
men of
letters ;
travels to
various
European
courts.
statesman, poet,
scholar; patron
of artists and
authors; spends
much on public
buildings and
in founding
schools and
libraries.
Mirandola.
Italian; of
Studies at
Author of a cyclo-
Latm.
princely
Bologna
pedia of mediieval
birth;
and other
knowledge, con-
patronized
universi-
taining much of an
by the
ties.
astronomical and
Medici.
•
mathematical
nature; attempts
to reconcile re-
ligion and philoso-
phy; condemned
as a heretic.
LATEB MEDIEVAL PERIOD.
365
NQIK€9*
Birth and
Circumttanoe.
EdueaUon,
Cause of Fame.
Perugino.
lUlian;
Studies with
Teacher of Raph-
« • «
painter.
other
Italian
artists.
ael ; paints madon-
nas, holy families,
and other scrip-
tural subjects.
Savonarola.
Ferrara; of
Studies
Foretells and
Italian.
noble Ital-
Aristotle
preaches the
ian family ;
and
reformation of the
Dominican
Aquinas.
Church.
friar;
preacher.
Van Eycks,
Flemings ;
Study
Painters ; one of
« « «
brothers
court paint-
with father
them reputed to
and sister.
ers for
and other
have invented oil-
various
artists.
painting, so much
princes and
does he improve
wealthy
its methods ;
merchants.
pictures of madon-
nas and other
scriptural subjects ;
portraits.
STUDY ON 3.
In what new ways do men now achieve greatness ? Men of what
classes? Make a list of all the different directions in which the
intellect manifests itself. In what country is each manifestation
strongest? In what class of men? What classes patronize art?
What three influences enter into this art? What intellectual influ.
ences are felt throughout Europe? What do you notice about the
laws of Spain, France, and England ? What about language in Spain,
France, England, Italy, Germany? What countries are the most
famous centres of learning? Contrast this list with the corresponding
list, pp. 236-240; what great differences strike you? In what new
ways are men educated ? What relation between a man's education
and his work? What activities are on the increase during these
three centuries ? What on the decrease ? What effects of crusading
do you think you see here?
366 STCJDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
4. List of Famous Inventions f IHseoveries, Enterprises,
Foundations, and Works, Unnamed in 8«
Cathedrals^ — of Notre Dame in Paris, of Cologne,
Strasbourg, Westminster in London, York, Exeter, Canter-
bury, Toledo, Seville, Milan, Rheims, Amiens, Florence,
Prague, and many others. French and Norman architects
very generally superintend their erection ; from the four-
teenth century on these cathedrals are decorated with
magnificent windows of stained glass. — Castles on the
Rhine and in other parts of Germany, in France, England,
and Spain. These castles are built by great feudal lords,
and defended by walls and moats, by position and con-
struction. — City Walls^ notably of Cologne, Nuremberg,
Paris (1180, Philip Augustus), Florence, Vienna, Prague.
— Guild Halls and Town Halls^ notably in Antwerp, Brus-
sels, Ypres, Bruges, Cologne, Florence.
The University of Paris, modelled after the schools of
Alexandria, and much favored in its beginning by Philip
Augustus, king of France ; it was especially famous for
medicine and Roman law; the universities of Prague,
Vienna, Heidelberg, Erfurt, and of Leipzig, Basle, Tubin-
gen, and Mainz, all modelled after the University of Paris;
their statutes sometimes begin with a eulogy on their
Parisiaji Alma Mater; the universities of Cordova and
Seville in Spain; in Italy the University of Bologna,
especially famous for the study of Roman law, now much
aided by the discovery of an excellent manuscript of Jus-
tinian's Pandects at Amalfi ; the University of Salerno was
famous for medicine, as well as that of Montpellier in
France. In the fifteenth century nearly forty new univer-
sities on the continent, and many of the English colleges
were founded. In these universities the courses included
grammar, rhetoric, logic, arithmetic, geography, music.
LATEE MEDIEVAL PEBIOD. 867
astronomy, theology, law, medicine. The language of
their books, their professors, and often of the students,
was Latin ; the instruction was generally given by monks
and other churchmen. After the fall of Constantinople,
however, the study of Greek was very generally intro-
duced, and the philosophy of Plato was taught as well as
that of Aristotle.
Numberless popular %<mg% and romances belong to this
period ; in Germany alone were to be found, in the twelfth
century, more than three hundred Minnesingers^ or wan-
dering poets and bards, who lived by singing from castle
to castle and from town to town. They sang of love, of
the beauties of nature, of contemporary events and per-
sons ; all the old myths of the German heroes appeared in
their ballads, and at this time were produced in their
present form the Hero-book and the Song of the Niblungs,
long poems full of the mythical adventures of national
heroes; all this mass of poetry was sung or written in
German, while the romances were largely translations
from French stories. In the fifteenth century appeared
an illustrated " Book of Nature," which was one of the
first to be printed ; " Reynard the Fox^^^ a satirical poenj
keenly attacking the vices and faults of all classes of
society, notably of the clergy, was widely read and widely
translated.
In France we find the same class of wandering singers
as in Germany, under the name of Troubadours in the south
and Trouveres in the north. Romances of King Arthur
and Charlemagne were very popular, and Alexander the
Great was a favorite hero. In general, the subjects of
mediaeval romance were taken from the crusades, froija
national chronicles and traditions, from classical or Bibli-
cal sources. The famous chronicles of the monks of St.
Denis were translated from Latin into French.
368 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
In England, the romances of the period were translated
from the French, but a collection of homilies appeared in
English, and the period was rich in chronicles.
Printing presses were set up in Italy, France, and Eng-
land ; the most famous of all being that of Aldi in Venice
(Aldine editions), and that of Caxton in England. Before
1500, 16,000 editions of printed books had appeared. The
following is a list of the books printed by Caxton : Pil-
grimage of the Soul; Directions for keeping Feasts all
the Year ; Four Sermons ; The Golden Legend (a collec-
tion of lives of the Saints), three editions ; The Art and
Craft to know well to Die, from the French ; The Infancy
of our Saviour ; The Life of St. Catherine of Sens ; Mirror
of the Blessed Life of Jesus Christ ; A Directory of Church
Worship ; A Book of Divers Ghostly Matters ; The Life
of St. Wynefrid ; Tlie Provincial Constitutions of Bishop
Lyndwood of St. Asaph, in Latin ; The Profitable Book of
Man's Soul, called the Chastising of God's Children ; The
History of Troy, translated from the French ; The Book of
the Whole Life of Jason ; Godfrey of Boloyn ; The Knight
of the Tower, from the French ; The Book Royal, or the
Book for a King ; A Book of the Noble Histories of King
Arthur and of Certain of his Knights ; The History of the
Noble, Right Valiant, and Right Worthy Knight Paris
and of the Fair Vienne ; The Book of Feats of Arms and
of Chivalry, from the French of Christina of Pisa; The
History of King Blanchardine and Queen Eglantine his
Wife. To these may be added, the History of Renard
the Fox, translated by Caxton from the German; The
Subtle Histories and Fables of ^sop, from the French ;
The Works of Chaucer, Gower, and Lydgate ; Translations
of Cicero, Boethius, Virgil, from the French, and Cato ;
Chronicles of England ; The Description of Britain ; The
Polychronicon ; The Life of Charles the Great, twice
LATER MEDLEVAL PERIOD. 869
printed ; Siege of the Noble and Invincible City of Rhodes ;
Statutes of the First Year of Richard III., and those of
the first, second, and third parliaments of Henry VII. ;
The Game of Chess ; The Moral Proverbs of Christina of
Pisa; The Book of Good Manners; The Doctrinal of Sapi-
ence, from the French ; A Book for Travellers.
The following inventions and improvements were either
new or now first came into general use ; the application of
gunpowder to artillery (Germany) ; its composition seems
to have been known in China, whence the knowledge of it
perhaps came into Europe by way of India and Arabia ;
the mariner's compass^ also previously known in the
East; chimneys^ clocks^ watcher; paper ^ similar to that
now made ; the paving of streets ; Paris was paved in the
twelfth, London in the fifteenth century; engraving on
wood and metal, by means of which books were illustrated
as well as printed; fine grades of decorated pottery,
embroidered tapestries, lace, linen, and woollen cloths.
The inquisition was established, a commission appointed by
the pope for searching out and trying heretics ; confession
of heresy was often extracted by torture, and the witnesses
were concealed from the accused ; those condemned were
executed at the order of the civil powers of the various
European countries. The possession of a translation of
the Bible unauthorized by the popes was considered a
mark of heresy. Canon law was thoroughly codified by
the pope.
Mendicant friars were sent as missionaries into Asia to
convert the Mongols and Chinese.
STUDY ON 4.
What new activities does 4 reveal ? What country leads in each ?
What country, on the whole, seems to you to be first in civilization,
judging from 4 alone? What kind of civilization? To what facts
870 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
noticed in 1, 2, and 3 does the building of cathedrals correspond? The
founding of universities? The building of the castles on the Rhine?
Of guild-halls and town-haUs ? What does the fact of such a body of
literature in the national tongues of Europe show about the taste of
the people ? What do the subjects show ? What influences do you see
at work in this literature ? Why is a list of the first printed books a
very valuable index to the tastes and knowledge of the people, and the
influences and interests felt by them? What does Caxton's list tell us
of England in each of these respects? What advantages have printed
books over manuscripts? Of what did they take the place for the
common people ? What new influences w^ould printing bring to bear on
them which they had not before felt? What influence would it have
upon the accuracy and clearness of their thought ?
What foundations and enterprises of this time display a genuine
spirit of Christianity? Why should the pope be unusually troubled
by heresies during these centuries? What new power or comfort
given to people by each of the inventions named? What depart-
ment of life do they more especially serve? What traces do you think
you see of the influences of the crusades?
LATER JIEDLSVAIi PERIOD.
371
a. OATHIDRAL OF AlCSNS. FRANOl.
Thirteenth century; built of stone, with stained-glaM windows; the highest tower,
210 feet in height.
872 STtJDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
b. UTTBRIOR OF THB CATHBDRAL OF OOLOGNB.
Fourteenth century.
LATER itEDIMVAL PERIOD.
373
PORTAL or NOTRE DAMB OP PARia
Thirteenth century: dedicated to the Virgin Mary, whose atatae la on the central
column, and whoae burial ia represented above; atone-carving.
874
STUDIES IN GENEBAL HISTORY.
(L VnW IN THB CX)UBT OV THS OABTHUSIAN MONASTIRY AT FAVIA.
e. BIRD'S-IkYB ViJSW OF THE CASTLB OF PIBRRIFOND.
A short distance north of Paris; built in fourteenth centurv by the Icing's brother;
stood four royal sieges; stands on n rocky height, covering nearly one acre and a half of
ground; towers 112 feet high, with walls fifteen to twenty feet thicl«; approach to the
castle over two permanent bridges and n dniwbridgc; within the castle is a reception-
room, a chapel, a library, living rooms for its master and for soldiers; dungeons; the
whole mass built around the court a.
/. OASTLB ST. TTLRKI
Fifteenth century; one of the three castles of the Counts of Rappoltstein, who bore the bcredt
tary title of •* lilnps" of all the muMicians and minstrels of the Upper Rhine, who paid them a yearly
\ tax in return for their ])rotcction, and who onco a year gathered at the castle for a joyous festival,
called the •• Pi]H'r'8 day." _^
LAT£B MEDIJJVAL TERIOD.
877
g. THB OIiOTH HALL OP TFREa
Thirteenth and fourteenth centuries: Ypres was formerly the capital of "West Flanders,
and at the time when this haJl was boiu was one of the most famous seats of the manufao
ture of linen and of lace.
378 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON PICTURES.
What parts of a serve as a basis for decoration? What new forms
of architectui-e do you see in a, ft, c, g? What new material is used
for decoration ? What subjects ? What forms are employed (see c) ?
Find something Greek, something Moorish, something Roman, in the
pictures from a tod inclusive. In which of these pictures is everything
purely original to this period ? What beauties do you find in a, b, and
rf? Why call c a portal instead of a door? Name two facts you have
before discovered which are illustrated by a, ft, and d. Compare e and
/with picture of Fountains Hall (p. 413) ; what notable differences in
construction and location? Explain the points you have mentioned
in regard to the castles, by reference to the events and organizations of
the time. Supposing we knew nothing about this period except what
we knew of these two castles, how much could they tell us ? What
could g tell us, if it were the only source of information in regard to
this time that we possessed ?
5. Extrttcts and Notes Illustrative of LaWf Custofn, and
Organization of Beriod.
a. Prom the Great Charter {Magna Charta),^
14. No scutoge or aid shall be imposed in our kingdom,
unless by the common council [parliament] of our kingdom,
except to redeem our person, and to make our eldest son a
knight, and once to marry our eldest daughter; and for this
there shall only be paid a reasonable aid.
15. In like manner, it shall be concerning the aids of the
city of London, and the cit}^ of London shall have all her
ancient liberties and free customs, as well by land as by water,
IG. Furthermore, we will and grant that all other cities, and
boroughs, and towns, and ports shall have all their liberties
and free customs, and shall have the common council of the
kingdom concerning the assessments of their aids, except in the
three cases aforesaid.
♦ ♦♦♦♦••
20. We will not, for the future, grant to any one that he
^ All laws and charters were in Latin till towards the close of the
tliirteenth century.
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 879
may take the aid of his own free tenants, unless to redeem his
body, and to make his eldest son a knight, and once to marry
his eldest daughter, and for this there shall only be paid a rea-
sonable aid.
• »•»»«•
22. Common pleas shall not follow our court, but be holden
in some certain place. . . .
33. No constable oi* bailiff of ours shall take com or other
chattels of any man, unless he presently give him money for it.
• •«••••
36. No sheriffs or bailiffs of ours, or any others, shall take
horses or carts of any man for carriage.
37. Neither we, nor our oflScers, or others, shall take any
man's timber, for our castles or other uses, unless by the con-
sent of the owner of the timber.
• «••**•
41. There shall be one measure of wine, and one of ale,
through our whole i*ealm, and one measure of com, that is to
say, the London quarter ; and one breadth of dyed cloth ; . • •
and the weight shall be as the measures.
45. No bailiff, for the future, shall put any man to his law
upon his single accusation, without credible witnesses produced
to prove it.
46. No freeman shall be taken, or imprisoned, or disseised, or
outlawed, or banished, or any ways destroyed ; nor will we pass
upon him, or commit him to prison, unless by the legal judgment
of his peers, or by the law of the land. [^Habeas corpus.^
47. We will sell or deny, or defer, right or justice to no man.
48. All merchants shall have secure conduct to go out of
England and to come into England, and to stay and abide there,
and to pass as well by land as by water, to buy and sell, by the
ancient and allowed customs, without any evil toils, except in
time of war. . . .
880 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
60. If any one hath been disposBessed or deprived by us,
without the legal judgment of his peers, of his lands, castles,
liberties, or rights, we will forthwith restore them to him ; and
if any dispute arises upon this head, let the matter be decided
by the five-and- twenty barons hereafter mentioned, for the
preservation of the peace.
• •««»««
69. AU the aforesaid customs, privileges, and liberties which
we have granted to be holden in our kingdom, as much as it
belongs to us towards our people, — all our subjects, as well clergy
as laity, shall observe . . • towards their dependents.
78. Wherefore, we will and firmly enjoin that the Church of
England be free, and that all men in our kingdom have and
hold all the aforesaid liberties, rights, and concession, truly
and peaceably, freely and quietly, fully and wholly, to them-
selves and their heirs, of us and our heirs, in all things and
places, forever, as is aforesaid.
79. It is also sworn, as well on our part as on the part of
the barons, that all things aforesaid shall faithfully and sincerely
be observed.
Given under our hand, in the presence of the witnesses
above-named and many others, in the meadow called
Runnymede, between Windsor and Stanes, on the fif-
teenth day of June, in the seventeenth year of our reign.
h. From the Establishments of St. Lewis,
'^ We prohibit all private battles throughout our domains ; . • .
whatever peaceful modes of settling disputes have been in force
hitherto, we fully continue ; but battles ^ we forbid ; instead of
them, we enjoin proof by witnesses.*'
St. Lewis decreed that the clergy should not bear arms ; that
their gold-studded belts and gilded spurs should disappear ; that
^ It was the ordinary custom in the middle ages to settle disputes by
" Wager of Battle,'* it being believed that God would give victory to truth
and right
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 881
the monasteries should follow the strictest discipline, and that
the election of bishops should no longer be tampered with by
the king or his nobles.
He also gave every man of the realm a right of appeal to the
king. By him, the goldsmiths of Paris were freed from feudal
dues. His successor (Philip III.) allowed those not nobles to
gain the lands of nobles; titled the lawyers ^^ knights of the
law," and made them chief advisors of the Crown.
c. Protest of the Nobles and Commons in 1314.
^' We, nobles and commons of Champagne, for ourselves, • . .
and for all our allies and associates within the limits of the
kingdom of France, to all who shall see and hear these presents,
healtli. It is known unto you all, that . . . our dearly beloved
and redoubtable lord Philip, by the grace of God king of
France, has made and imposed various taxes, . . . wherebj' and
by several other things which have been done, the nobles and
commons have been sorely aggrieved and impoverished, and
great evils have ensued, and are still taking place. . . . We
have at various times devoutly requested and humbly suppli-
cated the said lord king to discontinue and utterly put an end
to these grievances, but he has not attended to our entreaties.
. . . And just lately, in this present year, 1314, the said king
has made undue demands upon the nobles and commons of the
kingdom, and unjust subsidies which he has attempted by force
to levy ; these things we cannot conscientiously submit to, for
thereby we shall lose our honors, franchises, and liberties, both
we and those who shall come after us."
d. From Law of Lewis X., the Turbulent [Hutin], 1315.
'^As, according to the law of nature, each must be born free,
and by some usages or customs, . . . many of our common
people have fallen into servitude and divers conditions which
very much displease us ; we, . . . wishing that . . . the condi-
tion of the people should improve on the advent of our new
^vernment, upon deliberation with our great council, have
382 STUDIES IK QENERAIi HISTOBY,
ordered an order, that, generally throughout the kingdom, so
far as may belong to us and our successors, such servitudes be
brought back to freedom, . • . and especially that our common
people . . . be . . . no longer molested nor grieved in these
respects as they have hitherto been, whereat we are displeased,
and to give an example to other seigniors who have men in like
tenure to give them freedom."
e. Law of 1489.
The king was given power to appoint the officers of the army,
to fix the number of foot-soldiers ; to levy taxes without the
consent of the estates with which to pay the levies. Ttie great
nobles opposed this by war, but were overcome.
/. From the Oath of a Knight,
The knight promised ^' to fear, revere, and serve Grod relig-
iously, to fight for the faith with all his strength, and to die a
thousand deaths rather than renounce Christianity ; to serve his
sovereign prince faithfully, and to fight for him and his country
most valiantly ; to«maintain the just right of the weak, such as
of widows, orphans, and maidens, in a good quarrel ; . . . never
to offend any one maliciously, nor usurp the possession of
another, but rather fight against those who did so. They swore
that avarice, recompense, gain, or profit, should never oblige
them to do any action, but only glory and virtue ; . « . that they
would never fight more than one against one, and that they
would avoid all fraud and deceit ; . . . that having made a vow
or promise to go upon some quest or strange adventure, they
would never lay aside their arms except to repose at night ; that
in the pursuit of any quest or adventure, they would never avoid
bad and perilous passages, nor turn off from the straight road
for fear of encountering powerful knights, monsters, savage
beasts, or any other impediment which the body and courage of
a single man might overcome ; . . . that they would hold them-
selves bound to conduct a lady or maiden, they would serve her,
protect her, and save her from all danger, and all insult, or die
in the attempt ; . • . that . . . they would be f aithftd observers
LATER UEDIMVAL PERIOD. 888
of their word and pledged faith, and that being taken prisoners
in fair war, they would pay exactly the promised ransom, ot
return to prison at the day and time agreed upon."
h. From the English Laws.
Every man was bound to hold himself in readiness, duly
armed, for the king's service in case of invasion or revolt. . . .
All brushwood was ordered to be destroyed within a space of
two hundred feet on either side of the public highway as a
security for travellers against sudden attacks from robbers.
(Edward I.)
An ordinance was passed in Edward the Second's time, that
no person, whether an inhabitant of London or otherwise, should
be admitted to the freedom of the city unless he were a member
of one of the trades or mysteries. — Under Edward HI., the
right of election of all city dignitaries and oflScers, including
members of parliament, was transferred from the ward-repre-
sentatives to the trading companies.
^' Know all men, that we have been assured that John of
Rous and Master William of Dalby know how to make silver by
the art of alchemy ; that they have made it in former times,
and still continue to make it; and, considering that these men,
by their art, and by making the precious metal, may be profita-
ble to us and to our kingdom, we have commanded our well-
beloved Thomas Gary to apprehend the aforesaid John and
William, wherever they can be found, within liberties or with-
out, and bring them to us, together with all the instruments of
their art, under safe and sure custody."
Edward also imported and protected Flemish weavers to spin
the English wool.
In 1456, Parliament confirmed the peimission of the king to
three famous men who were experimenting to find a ^^ certain
most precious medicine, called by some the mother and queen
of medicines ; ... by others, the philosophers' stone ; by others,
the elixir of life; which cures all curable diseases with ease,
prolongs all human life in perfect health and vigor of faculty to
884 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
its utmost term, is a most sovereign antidote against all poisons,
and is capable ... of preserving to us and our kingdom other
great advantages, such as the transmutation of other metals
into fine gold and silver."
STUDY ON 5.
Make a list of the wrongs and oppressions that had evidently
existed before the time of a. Judging from internal evidence, what
classes of people present it, and in whose interests ? What modern
principle in regard to taxation does it state ? In regard to the trial
of a man charged with crime ? What extract is similar to a ?
What reforms does St. Lewis endeavor to make? Against what
part of the state are b and d directed ? c? What powers does e show
in the hands of the king? What adjective will you apply to his
power in 1439? Which is most civilized in political directions
during this period, England or France ? Prove it.
What was the occupation of the knight? Make a list of his duties.
What feeling would he have toward men who worked for money?
Wliy ? In what ways was the knight like the ideal gentleman of to-
day? What feelings would his vows encourage? AVh at virtues?
What does the first law in h prove in regard to the good govern-
ment of England ? What does each of the other English laws given
indicate?
6. lUuatrative Extracts front Literature of the Period*
a. From Roger Bacon,
The pope asked Bacon for a copy of his writings, and Bacon
writes : '' The head of the Church has sought out me, the un-
worthy sole of its foot ; the vicar of Christ and ruler of the
world has condescended to ask a favor of me, who am scarcely
to be numbered among the units of the world."
" Of natural philosophy there are many . . . special divisions
... 1. optics; 2. astronomy; 3. gravity; 4. alchemy; 5. agri-
culture ; 6. medicine ; 7. experimental science."
Speaking of Home, he says, "Morals there are most per-
verted ; pride reigns, avarice is rampant, envy corrodes all."
LATER MEDLEVAI. PERIOD. S85
^^ A knowledge of reasoniDg is given to man by nature as the
means for investigating all other sciences."
Writing of alchemy, he says : —
'^ There is another science which ti*eats of . . . the elements
and liquids simple and compound, common stones, gems and
marbles, gold and other metals ... of which we find nothing
in the books of Aristotle ; nor are . . . any of the Latins
acquainted with these things. . . . Neither the names nor the
significations of medicines can be learned, except from this
science, that is, from speculative alchemy. . . . There is also
a . . . practical alchemy which . . . not only provides money for
a state, but teaches the means of prolonging life, so far as nature
will allow. . . . But this . . . alchemy is scarcely understood
by any ; for although many throughout the world labor to make
colors truly and usefully, scarcely any know how to make
metals, and still fewer those things which avail for the prolonga-
tion of life. There are very few who can distil properly."
b. From German Minnesingers,
" When Constantine gave to the Roman chair a lance . . .
and crown, the angels wept, nM rightly, too, for now we see the
pope abuse this power, to ruin the emperor and set his princes
all against him. . . . How can the pope at Rome look Christ-
like when he sees the good-hearted Germans fast ... to fill his
coffers with their silver. I fear me, little of it reaches the
Holj- Land, for the priests are loath to give it up."
" I am noble, says many a man in whom we can see neither
virtue, nor honor, nor modesty, nor any sort of worth to rever-
ence. . . . Nobles are of two kinds : he who is noble by birth,
who yet may be a fool ; and he who is noble by virtue, and not
by an honored name.
c. From Wklif.
In Wiclif's Apology for the Lollards, he maintains : (1) That
the pope is not the vicar of Christ, nor of Peter. (2) That
the pope selleth indulgences. ... (6) That every priest is
886 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
bound to preach. . • . (10) Fastings are not necessary, while
a man abstaineth himself from other sin. ... (16) That
there is no pope, nor Christ's vicar, but an holy man. (22) That
no man is Christ's disciple unless he keep Christ's word. . . .
(24) That images of the saints are not to be worshipped.
(25) That the written gospel is not to be worshipped. (26)
That charms are not lawful. These points he maintains by
reference to the Canon law, the Scriptures, the Church fathers,
and the early Church history. By the first point Wiclif explained
that he meant that the pope is no vicar '^ when he fiUeth not in
deed, nor in word, the office of Peter . . . but doeth oontrarily ;
... the Apostle Paul saith thus : *■ If any man has not the spirit
of Christ, he is not of him ... the name maketh not the bishop,
but the life. . . .* "
In preaching to the English peasants, Wiclif says, " Good
people, affairs can only go well in England when there shall
be neither serfs nor nobles, and when all shall be equal."
d. From a Song of the Time of Edward L
^^ ... It is not sound law which gives my wool to the king.
. . . Since the king is deteimindQ to take so much, he may find
enough among the rich ; and he would get more and do better
... to have taken a part from the great, and to have spared
the little ; ... it is no trouble to the great thus to grant to the
king a tax ; the simple must pay it all, which is contrary to
God's will ... for those who make the grant give nothing to
the king. It is the needy only who give ; . . . with other
people's goods they hold great court. ... To tell unvarnished
truth, it is mere robber3^ ... If the king would take my
advice, I would praise him then to take the vessels of silver and
make money of them."
e. From Dante.
*'To Rome, which taught the ancient world good deeds.
Two suns were wont to point the twofold way.
That of the world and that to God which leads.
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 387
The one hath quenched the other, — and scarce it need be told
How ill the twain such combination brook. . . .
Know then, Rome's church, oppressed by too much weight,
Confounding the two governments, hath brought
Herself into the mire -with all her freight."
*' O glorious stars !
O light abounding in exceeding life !
To you whate'er of genius lifteth me
Above the common herd, I grateful owe ; . . .
. . . To you my soul
Devoutly sighs for courage even now
To meet the hard emprize that draws me on."
• »*»*«
" Ah, slavish Italy ! thou inn of grief !
Vessel without a pilot in loud storm !
. . . Thy living ones
In thee abide not without war ; and one
Malicious gnaws another ; ay, of those
Whom the same wall and the same moat contains.
Seek, wretched one ! around thy sea-coasts wide ;
Then homeward to thy bosom turn ; and mark,
If any part of thee sweet peace enjoy.
• «««»»
Oh German Albert ! who abandon'st her lltaly']
That is grown savage and unmanageable.
When thou shouldst clasp her flanks with forked heels.
Just judgment from the stars fall on thy blood ;
« « « « » «
For that thy sire and thou have suffered thus.
Through greediness of yonder realms, detained, [Germaiiy']
The garden of the empire to run waste.
. . . Come, cruel one !
Come and behold thy Rome, who calls on thee,
Desolate widow, day and night with moans,
' My Csesar, why dost thou desert ray side?'"
388 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Ill the visit to Inferno (Hell) , Virgil thus speaks to Dante : —
*' There above [on earth]
How many now hold themselves mighty kings
Who here like swine shall wallow in the mire."
And as they proceed on their way from circle to circle of
misery, Dante finds immersed within the ^^ crimson seething
flood"
"... the souls of tyrants, who were given
To blood and rapine. . . . Here Alexander dwells
And Dionysius * fell, who many a year
Of woe wrought for fair Sicily.
Christ said not to his first conventicle,
* Go forth and preach impostures to the world,'
But gave them truth to build on ; and the sound
Was mighty on their lips ; nor needed they,
Beside the Gospel, other spear or shield
To aid them in their warfare for the faith.
The preacher now provides himself with store
Of jests and gibes ; and, so there be no lack
Of laughter, while he vents them, his big cowl
Distends, and he has won the meed he sought."
/*. From MandeviMs Travels. (Time of King Edward III.)
*'In tiiat countree of Libya is the See more highe than the
Land ; and ... in that See of Libye is no Fissche, for thei
mowe [may] not lyve in dare, for the gret hete of the Sonne ;
for the watre is evermore boyllynge, for the gret hete. . . ."
" And in that Yle there is a gret marvaylo, more to speke of
than in any other partie of the world. For all manners of
Fisches, . . . comen ones in the Zeer [year] . . . and casten hem
self to the seebank of that Yle, so gret plentee and multitude
that no man may unnethe [nothing] see but Fissche ; and there
1 Tyrant of iSyracusi*.
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 889
thei ab^'den 3 dayes ; and every man of this countree taketh
of hem as many as him lykethe. ..."
" And alle the men and women of that Yle [Nacumera] have
houndes hedes. ... In that eontree . . . there been wylde Gees,
that have 2 Hedes."
"And in another Yle, toward the Southe dwellen folk . . .
that have no Hedes ; and here Eeyen ben in here scholdres."
" At myn Hom Comynge I cam to Rome, and schewed . . .
to oure holy Fadir the Pope . . . this tretys . . . and besought^
his holy Fadirhode, that my Boke myghten be examyned and
corrected be avys of his wyse and discreet conseille. ... By
the whiche, my Boke was pruved for trewe."
g. From tJie Prologue to Ghaucefs Canterbury Tales}
'' A knight there was, and that a worthy man,
That from the tira6 that he first began
To rid6 out, he lov6d chivalry.
Truth and honor, freedom and courtesy. . . .
And though that he was worthy, he was wise
And of his port as meek as is a maid.
He never yet no mean, rude thing had said
In all his life, unto no manner wight.
He was a very perfect, gentle knight
'* With him there was his son, a young squire, . . •
Embroidered was he, as it were a mede
All full of fresh6 flowers, white and red.
Singing he was or fluting all the day . . .
Well could he sit on horse, and fairly ride.
And songs he could compose, and stories tell,
Joust and eek dance, and well portray * and write. . . .
Courteous he was, lowly and serviceable,
And carved before his father at the table.
^ In the following extracts, all the accented syllables should be pro-
nounced.
2 Paint.
390 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
^^ There was also a nun, a prioress,
That of her smiling was full simple and coy ;
Her greatest oath was but by Saint Loy ;
And she was clep^d madame Eglantine.
Full well she sang the service divine. . . .
And French she spoke full fair and cleverly. . .
At meat well-taught was she withal ;
She let no morsel from her lipp^s fall,
Nor wet her fingers in her saucer deep. . . .
In courtesy was set full much her heart.
««««««
" A monk there was, that lov^d hunting well ; . .
Full many a dainty horse had he in stable : . .
Greyhounds he had as swift as fowl in flight ;
Of riding and of hunting for the hare
Was all his love, for no cost would he spare.
I saw his sleeves adorned at the wrist
With costly fnr, the finest of the land.
And for to fasten his hood under his chin
He had a curious pin of well-wrought gold :
A love-knot in the greater end there was. . . .
He was a lord full fat, and in good point ; . . .
A fat swan loved he best of any roast.
««««««
•' A friar there was, a wanton and a merry, . . .
He was an easy man in giving penance.
Where'er he knew he'd get a goodly pittance ; .
He knew the taverns well in every town.
And every worthy host, and hostess too,
Better than any leprous beggar folk . . .
It looks not well, and profits not
To deal at all with folk of that low sort, . . .
And over all, wherever profit could arise.
Courteous he was, and lowly of service.
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 391
' ' A Hatter and a Carpenter,
A Weaver, Dyer, and Upholsterer
And they were clothed all in livery
Of an important, great fraternity. . . .
Their knives were plated not with brass.
But all with silver wrought full clean and well.
Their girdles and their pouches quite the same. . . .
And each one by the wisdom that he had,
Was fitted for to be an alderman ;
For goods had they enough and rent.
«««««««
" A good man was there of religion.
And was a poor parson of a town ;
But rich he was in holy thought and work. . . .
Wide was his parish, with houses far asunder.
But yet he ceased not for rain nor thunder.
In sickness and in mischief for to visit.
The farthest in his parish, great and small.
Upon his feet, and in his hand a staff.
This noble ensample to his sheep he gave,
That first he wrought, and afterward he taught. . . .
And Christ, his lore, and his apostles twelve.
He taught, but first he followed it himself."
h. From Froissart,
(The Prince of Wales entertains his prisoner, the king of
France, after the battle of Poitiers in 1356.)
"When evening was come, the Prince of Wales gave a
supper in his pavilion to the king of France, and to the greater
part of the princes and barons who were prisoners. The prince
seated the king of France and his son, the Lord Philip, at an
elevated and well-covered table ; with them were Sir James de
Bourbon, the Lord John d'Artois, the earls of Lancarville, of
Estampes, etc. The other knights and squires were placed at
different tables. The prince himself served the king's table as
VfT^U ^9 t^^ others, with eveiy mark of humility, and would not
892 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
Bit down at it, in spite of all his entreaties for him to do so,
saying, that ' he was not worthy of such an honour, nor did it
appertain to him to seat himself at the table of so great a king,
or of so valiant a man as he had shown himself by his actions
that day.* He added also with a noble air, * Dear sir, do not
make a poor meal because the almighty God has not gratified
your wishes in the event of this day ; for, be assured that my
lord and father will show you every honor and friendship in his
power. ... In my opinion, you have cause to be glad that the
success of this battle did not turn as you desired ; for you have
this day acquired such high renown for prowess, that you have
surpassed all the best knights on your side ; I do not, dear sir,
say this to flatter you, for all those of our side who have seen
and observed the actions of each party have unanimously al-
lowed this to be 3'our due, and decree you the prize and garland
for it.' At the end of this speech, there were murmurs of
praise heard from eveiy one ; and the French said the prince
had spoken truly and nobly, and that he would be one of the
most gallant princes of Christendom, if God should grant him
life to pursue his career of glory. When they had supped and
sufficiently regaled themselves, each departed to his own lodg-
ing with the knights and squires they had captured. Those
that had taken them asked what they could pay for their ran-
soms, without much hurting their fortunes, and willingly be-
lieved whatever they told them ; for they declared publicly that
they did not wish to deal harshly with any knight or squire, that
his ransom should be so burdensome as to prevent his following
the profession of arms, or advancing his fortunes."
The Common People in Englaiid.
**It is customary in England, as well as in several other
countries, for the nobility to have great privileges over the
commonalty, whom the}^ keep in bondage, that is, they are
bound by law and custom to plough the lands of gentlemen, to
hai^vest the grain, to carry it home to the barn, to thresh and
winnow it ; they are also bound to harvest the hay and carry it
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 393
home. . . . The evil-disposed . . . began to rise, sa3ing they
were too severely oppressed; that at the beginning of the
world there were no slaves, and that no one ought to be treated
as such, unless he had committed treason against his lord, as
Lucifer had done against God ; but they had done no such
thing, for they were neither angels nor spirits, but men formed
after the same likeness with their lords, who treated them as
beasts. This they would not longer bear, but had determined
to be free ; and if they laboured or did any work for their lords,
they would be paid for it."
t. From Sermon of John Ball.
" Good people, . . . things will never be well in England so
long as goods be not in common, and so long as there be vil-
leins and gentlemen. By what right are they whom we call
lords greater folk than we ? On what grounds have they de-
served it? Why do they hold us in serfage? If we all came
of the same father and mother, of Adam and Eve, how can
they sa3- or prove that they are better than we, if it be not that
they make us gain for them by our toil what they spend in their
pride ? They are clothed in velvet and warm in their furs and their
ermines, while we are covered with rags. They have wine, and
spices, and fair bread ; and we oat-cake and straw, and water
to drink. They have leisure and fine houses ; we have pain and
labour, the rain and the wind in the fields. And yet it is of us
and of our toil that these men hold their state."
j. From the Memoirs of Philip de Comines.
**The hearts of kings being in the hands of God Almighty
alone, he disposes them in such important affairs as is most
proper for the events which He, in His heavenly wisdom, has
determined to bring to pass. For, certainly, had it been His
Divine pleasure that our king should have continued in the
resolution which he had formed before the Duke of Burgundy's
death, the wars which have since occurred, and still continue,
would never have happened. But we were not ready on either
hand to receive so lasting a peace."
894 STUDIES IN GENKRAL HISTORY.
" For if great princes once get possession of any towns or
castles, though they may belong to their nearest neighbors . . .
neither natural reason « nor love of our neighbor, nor anything
else . . . will prevail with them to restore them ; and after they
have once published some artful reasons or specious pretence
for keeping them, everybody applauds theur reasons, especially
those that are nearest about them. . . . The bmtishness and
ignorance of princes are very dangerous and dreadful, because
the happiness or misery of their subjects depends wholly upon
them. . . . Who can apply any remedy in this case but God
alone."
" There is a necessity that every prince or great lord should
have an adversary to restrain and keep him in humility and
fear, or else there would be no living under them, nor near
them."
k. Astrological Prescription,
^^ Engrave the image of Jupiter, who is a man with a ram's
head, upon tin or upon a white stone, at the day and hour of
Jupiter, when he is at home, as in Sagittarius, or in the Pisces,
or in his exaltation, as in Cancer, and let him be free from all
obstruction, particularly from the evil looks of Saturn or of
Mars ; let him be rapid, and not burnt by the sun ; in a word,
wholly auspicious. Carry this image upon you, made as above,
and according to all the above-mentioned conditions, and you
will see things which will surpass your belief."
STUDY ON 6.
From a, /, and k^ what opinion do you gain of the scientific knowl-
edge of the period ? (Compare laws, p. 383.) For what objects was
much of it pursued ? To what sciences would alchemy lead ? Astrol-
ogy ? What opinion do you gain of the attitude of the people towards
the Church ? What class of the clergy seems to have excited this
attitude? What reason can you give for this? In what countries
is this feeling expressed most strongly? (Compare lists.) Wliat
LATER MEDIEVAL PERIOD. 895
abuses seem to have existed within the Church ? What strong senti-
ments are expressed in regard to human equality? What social
oppression is strongly felt? By what class? With what other feel-
ing does it appear associated ? What excuse for this feeling in the
laws and organizations of the period? (See h also.)
What class on the whole do you judge were the oppressors of the
period? Proofs. Was Dante Guelf or Ghibelin? What fact is
illustrated by each quotation from him? Make a list of knightly
qualities and accomplishments. In what extract do we see an illus-
tration of the chivalric spirit ? In what way was this spirit limited ?
What was the great desire of each of the characters described by
Chaucer? What characteristics of the period illustrated by each
extract? To what class did Froissart belong in his sympathies?
What proof do these extracts give of the pope's endeavor to direct
the thought and knowledge of his time ? What would A, i, j\ and k
teach you of the history of this period, if you had no other source of
inf ormaUon ?
In Qeneral. — What is your judgment in regard to the jus-
tice of applying the term " Dark Ages " to this period ? Why ?
What nations lead during this time m. politics, in art, in material
civilization?
396 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
D. RENAISSANCE AND REFORMATION ERA,
1492-1648 (1649 IN England).
Discovery of Atnerica to Treaty of Westphalia.
" Thundering and bursting, In torrents, in waves ;
Carolling and shouting O'er tombs, amid graves ;
See on the cumbered plain, Clearing a stage,
Scattering the past about. Comes a new age !
All things begin again ; Life is their prize ;
Earth with their deeds they fill; Fill with their cries."
Emkrson.
" Up friends, forsake these secondary schools,
Which give grains, units, inches for the whole I
• «•«««•
The world's the book where the eternal Sense
Wrote his own thoughts. . . .
Tuni we to read the one original."
CAMPAirEI.LA.
STTTDT OK BEFOBHATIOIT AISTD BEKAIBSAVOE EBA,
1490-1648.
Chief contemporary sources of history : State papers of
various European courts, consisting of treaties, diplomatic
correspondence, official records ; laws ; contemporary liter-
ature of France, England, and Germany; contemporary
works of art, consisting chiefly of Italian and German
pictures; formulated creeds and confessions of various
sects, such as the Augsburg Confession, Theses of Luther,
Scotch Covenant ; Hakluy t's Voyages ; private letters and
diaries.
Chief modern authorities in English : In general, Dyer's
Modern History ; Heeren's Works upon the period ; Von
Raumer's History of the Sixteenth and Seventeenth Cen-
398 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
turies; for the Reformation, Ranke's Era of the Reforma-
tion; for the Thirty Years' War, Gardiner; for Spain,
Prescott's Ferdinand and Isabella, and Philip II.; for
the Netherlands, the works of Motley; for England,
Green's History of the English People, Gardiner's England
under the Stuarts, and Civil War, Ranke's Seventeenth
Century in England ; for France, Gnizot, Crowe ; for Italy,
Symond's Italian Renaissance.
RBNAISSANOB FRIBZB-PATTBRN FROM A VBNBTIAN OHUBOH.
Questlona on Map. — Compare this map with that of Europe in
the twelfth century ; — what great changes have occurred, and in what
countries ? What part of the feudal organization has been strength-
ened by these changes ? liow does the map show this ? AVhat great
differences between such states as France, Spain, and England, and
such states as you studied in ancient Greece ? What was the centre
of political power in the Greek, and later in the Roman state?
Wliat fact constitutes the basis of power in these states of the
Renaissance ?
1. Events and Movetnents of Periodm
a. In general.
Three great facts characterize this epoch : 1st, a revolt
from the ecclesiastical headship of Rome, known as the Prot-
estant Beformat ion; as a consequence of this revolt, Germany
and England are entirely separated from the Latin Church,
and form independent churches under the control of their
own political rulers ; 2d, a great artistic and literary out-
burst, called the Renai88a7ice^l2LTgelj influenced by the study
of ancient art and poetry ; and 3d, the foundation of Euro-
^ REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 399
pean colonies along the American coast and in the newly
opened East (India). In the first of these movements
Germany leads ; in the second, Italy ; in the third, Spain
and Portugal, the former opening the Western, the latter
opening the Eastern world to Europe.
6. Imperial (German).
Maximilian, emperor-elect, takes the title of
King of Germany. — Luther, an Augustinian
monk, attacks the abuses of Church practice
1493
TO
1519.
1519
TO
1556.
and certain points of doctrine by ninety-five theses, which
he nails upon the church-door in Wittenberg, and declares
himself ready to defend (1617) ; this act is held to date
the opening of the Reformation. — Zwingli preaches ref-
ormation doctrines in Switzerland.
Charles Fl, Emperor ; — from his grandfather,
Ferdinand, he inherits Spain, Sardinia, and the
Two Sicilies; through his grandfather, Maxi-
milian, he is archduke of Austria, and is thus naturally
elected emperor; from his grandmother he inherits the
Netherlands. — Pope and emperor force the Florentines to
receive as rulers the Medici, to whom they give the title
of Grand Dukes of Tuscany ; the popes gain new Italian
territory, claiming it as overlords of reverting fiefs. — The
pope issues a bull against Luther, who burns it (1520).
Luther is condemned by a diet of the empire at Worms,
but is protected by his own sovereign, the Elector of
Saxony, and many princes and cities receive his doctrines;
a peasant's war against Church and State breaks out, and
proves cruel and difficult to end. — The Diet of Spires
(Speyer, 1529) passes a decree against any change in the
Church ; against this the Lutherans protest^ and are hence-
forth called Protestants,
The Turks meanwhile push northward, seize Belgrade,
400 STUDIES IN GENEBAL HISTORY.
besiege Vienna, and conquer large parts of Hungary. The
Hungarian king perishing in battle, his title passes into
the hands of the House of Austria, who thus become rulers
of Bohemia and Hungary. During this same time the
emperor is disputing with the king of France over various
Italian territories.
Protestants make a formal statement of their faith in
the Confession of Augsburg (1530), and the Protestant
cities and princes form the League of Smalkald. — Calvin
preaches Protestantism in its Presbyterian form in Geneva;
his followers spread through France under the name of
Huguenots, while Knox preaches his doctrines in Scot-
land.— The Council of Trent is called by pope and
emperor, in order to reform practical abuses in the Church,
and fix its doctrines more definitely (1545).
After the death of Luther (1546) war breaks 5ut be-
tween the Catholic and Protestant princes of the empire ;
war closed by the Peace of Augsburg (1555), which al-
lows the prince or ruling power of each state to establish
the religion of his own domains at his own will.
While war thus goes on within the empire, the king of
France and the emperor are fighting over their border
territories ; in the end, France wins from the empire the
bishoprics of Metz, Toul, Verdun.
A Protestant union and a Catholic league are
formed under leadership of strong princes of the
empire.
The Thirty Years' War. — The king of
Bohemia, who becomes Emperor Ferdinand the Sec-
ond, oppresses and persecutes his Protestant sub-
liSM
TO
1618.
1618
TO
1648.
jects; Catholic princes join the emperor, Protestant princes,
the people ; general war follows between the Catholic and
Protestant princes of Germany. The emperor with his
generals, Tilly and Wallenstein, is gaining the upper hand;
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 401
the Protestant princes, forming a Protestant league, get
help from the Protestant king of Denmark ; when he is
defeated, Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden, leads the
Protestants, and with him they are for a time successful :
but at the battle of Lutzen (1632) he is killed.
The French now enter the war, giving very effective aid
against the emperor, and in 1648 affairs are settled by the
Treaty of Westphalia, whose important conditions are as
follows: —
A general and complete amnesty to political offenders,
and a restoration of their territories, rights, and dignities ;
every estate of the empire allowed to vote in the Diet,
which is to be summoned regularly; the vote of the ma-
jority to stand as its decision, except in case of questions
of religion ; each prince to be sovereign in his own province,
under the emperor, — that is, his territorial power is com-
plete ; he can levy tolls and taxes, coin money, and make
alliances as he himself pleases; the right of each prince
to rule the religious affairs of his own province reestab-
lished with modifications; an end put to the ecclesiastical
jurisdiction of Catholics over Protestants.
The entire independence of the republics of Switzerland
and the United Provinces (Holland, Netherlands) is ac-
knowledged by the emperor and by Europe ; Sweden re-
ceives some territory in the north of Germany; France
gains a footing in Elsass (Alsace) ; the lands of Branden-
burg are increased.
c. Imperial (Italy).
Savonarola, leader of the democratic party in Florence,
preaches and popularizes asceticism, and violently attacks
the papacy. Charles VIII. of France invades Italy, and
conquers the kingdom of Naples. Wars between the
empire, Fiance, and Spain over Naples, end in 1504 in the
402
STTTDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Y//////A
imiiiHiim I
Fbrfugal , Englanil « Scotland , Ireland , Korwsy, Russia*
Qermany ITbe Empiirl , France , Lands of Church.
Holland, SwifzeHandiVeneHan Republic, Genoese Republic.
Spanish HssMssions » Riland • || f -a Fmnche Comte.
Mohammedan Landa , Denmark. i ^ '^ Milan.
Swadish R»s«»aions 1 1^ ^ Tuscany.
The Lnperial Boundary II LL »' LoiTBma.
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 408
Spanish possession of the Two Sicilies. Ferdinand, king of
Spain, Lewis, king of France, Maximilian, emperor-elect,
and Pope Julius the Second, form the League of Cambray
(1508) in order to divide the territories of Venice between
them. War between Venice and the League ; Venice is
weakened, but survives. War between the members of the
League, ending in the expulsion of the French from Italy.
Francis I, of France attempts a new invasion of Italy ;
war between him and the pope and emperor ; Francis is
forced to renounce his Italian claim to the emperor, Charles
v., who is crowned king of Italy. The smaller Italian
states are ruled by the dictates of pope and emperor, who
support their influence by force of arms.
STUDY ON I, a, b, AND c.
What tendencies and events of the later mediseyal period culminate
in each of the three great facts named in a ? What historic or geo-
graphic reason can you give for the special lead taken respectively by
Italy, Germany, Spain, and Portugal ? What fact makes Charles V.
the strongest monarch of his age? How does America compare in
political value with his other possessions? In what does its value
consist? What tendencies and facts noticed in the fourteenth and
fifteenth centuries make Luther's success certain? Judging from
these facts, is the Reformation movement dependent on Luther for its
strength ? AVhat facts prove that he is a representative man of his own
time ? What historical fact or relation tends to explain the popularity
of the Reformation movement in Germany ? What quality of Teu-
tonic character? How does Charles V. acquire the right to govern
the lands of Spain, Austria, Naples, and the Netherlands? This
fact plainly shows that land is regarded by the monarchs of Europe in
what way? Prove from the facts of the century 151&-1618 that the
imperial power in Germany is exceedingly weak. In whose hands is
the political power of the empire? What event proves that the
Church is in need of reformation? Why should the religious differ-
ences of European states cause war between them? What injustice
in the Peace of Augsburg? What plausible reason could be given
to sustain this injustice ? Of what tendencies is the Thirty Years'
404 BTUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
War the culmination ? Do you consider this war important or not,
and why ? What proofs have we in the Peace of Westphalia that
the emperor is weaker than any of his neighbors ? How was it for
the interest of France to fight against the emperor? How would
you describe the government of Germany at the close of this war?
Judging from c, what is the great ambition of the European
powers ? When we say European powers at this period, what have
we in mind?
d. Spanish.
Age of Ferdinand and Isabella, Columbus
takes possession of his American discoveries in
the name of the sovereigns of Spain and the Holy
14918
TO
1516.
Catholic faith. Florida is discovered and claimed for Spain.
Ferdinand conquers Granada and that part of Navarre
lying south of the Pyrenees; holds Sardinia and Sicily,
and conquers Naples from its rival claimants.
Age of Charles L (Emperor Charles FI). Con-
quest of Mexico for Spain by Cortez ; of Peru by
Pizarro; Chili and New Granada are also con-
1516
TO
1556.
quered and claimed by Spaniards. — Negro slaves are im-
ported from Africa to work the silver mines of the New
World, under Spanish direction.
Age of Philip IL Persecution of Moors, Jews,
and Christian heretics (Protestants) ; Philip de-
crees that death shall be the penalty for any one
1556
TO
1646.
who sells, buys, or reads a book proscribed by the Church.
The Inquisition condemns heretics to the fire by whole-
sale (autos^efS), — Protestantism spreads through the
Northern Netherlands (Holland), where the tyranny
and intolerance of Philip rouse all classes to revolt.
Though quiet is restored, Philip sends the Duke of Alva,
with 20,000 Spanish troops, into the Netherlands, and
taxes and restricts them more than before. New revolt
breaks forth, ending in the practical independence of the
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 405
seven northern provinces of the Netherlands under the
rule of William of Orange. (1579).
The help rendered to the Netherlands by Elizabeth of
England, together with her treatment of the Catholic
Mary Queen of Scots, induces Philip to fit out against
England the Great Armada. This famous fleet is de-
stroyed partly by terrible tempests, and partly by English
seamanship and valor (1558). — 800,000 peaceful and in-
dustrious Moora (Moriscoes) are expelled from Spain.
e. PortiLffttese.
Portugal (Vasco da Gama, 1498) discovers the Eastern
Ocean route to India round the Cape of Good Hope; colo-
nizes all along the coasts of Guinea, Liberia, Mozambique,
and the Congo in Africa ; in Asia, places commercial sta-
tions (^factoriei) on the eastern and western coasts of
India (Malabar and Golconda), and in Java, Sumatra, and
the other East India Islands; in America, she occupies
and settles Brazil.
/. Butch.
Holland, having become practically independent, from
1602 onward, begins to send out trading expeditions to
America and India. In 1613 the Dutch establish a trading
colony (New Amsterdam) on Manhattan Island, thus be-
coming the founders of New York City. They make vari-
ous settlements along the Hudson (notably Albany), and
also in Connecticut, whence, however, they are driven by
the English.
g. French.
Age of Francis I. Francis makes a "Con-
cordat" with the pope, by whidh he gains the
right to appoint bishops and abbots, on condition
1492
TO
1547.
406 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
of giving the pope the first year's revenue from their lands*
Persecutes the Huguenots. Wars with Charles V. (see J) ;
Continued persecution of the Huguenots ; war
of the French king with Charles V., resulting in
the French seizure of Metz, Toul, Verdun, three
1547
TO
1568.
bishoprics lying toward the Rhine. France is largely
ruled by Catherine de Medici, the Italian queen-mother.
Age of the Civil Wan and Henry IV. The
period is full of the civil wars of Catholics and
Protestants, the former under the lead of the
1568
TO
1610.
French monarchs, the latter headed by great nobles, the
chief among whom is Henry of Navarre, In 1572 the
king, urged on by the queen-mother, orders the Massacre
of St, Bartholomew^ in which more than 30,000 Huguenots
are slain. In the course of these wars, the succession falls
to Henry of Navarre (Henry IV.), who is not recognized
as king until 1593, when he professes himself a Roman
Catholic. He finally brings the conflict to a close by the
Edict of Nantes, which gives political equality to Catho-
lics and Huguenots, and allows the freedom of the new
faith to certain nobles and to the citizens of certain towns,
but forbids its exercise at the Court or in Paris, or in any
cities where bishops and archbishops reside.
French colonies settle Quebec and Port Royal (Annap-
olis in Nova Scotia).
Age of Richelieu and Mary de Medici (Italian
queen-mother). States-general called together
in 1614 for the last time before the French Revo-
1610
TO
1648.
lution (1789). Wars of king with the nobles and with
the Huguenots ; wars with Spain over territories in Italy,
and on the Spanish-French frontier ; alliance with German
princes against the emperor in the Thirty Years' War; at
the Peace of Westphalia, new gains of territory Rhine-
ward (see p. 402).
KEFOKMATION AND KENAISSANCB ERA. 407
In America, the progressive settlement of St. Lawrence
region and of Nova Scotia (Acadia). Many Huguenots
emigrate. — Constant quarrels with English over disputed
territories.
N. B. During all this period, it may be considered that
there is a constant struggle between the crown and the
powerful nobles.
h, Engli%h,
Contests of king and parliament; the whole
North American coast claimed by reason of the
voyages of the Cabots, who discovered uncertain
portions of it between Newfoundland and Florida.
Age of Henry VIII. and Cardinal WoUey.
Troubles between king and parliament ; quarrel
between Henry and the pope because the latter
1492
TO
1500.
1500
TO
1547.
delays and refuses to grant him a divorce from his true and
lawful wife, Catherine of Aragon ; as a result of this quar-
rel, Henry denies the right of the pope to meddle in English
political or civil affairs, and declares himself the head of the
Church in England ; parliament by the Act of Supremacy
declares the English king "Protector and only Supreme
Head of the Church and Clergy in England." Refusal to
acknowledge this is punished with death. The English
monasteries are visited, examined, dissolved, and their
property is confiscated to the king. An English translation
of the Bible (Tyndale's) is published by order of the king,
find parliament defines the doctrines which must be held
by the English ChurcTi.
Edward VL (^Protestant) and " Bloody Mary "
( Catholic), Reformed doctrines introduced ; par-
liament orders a uniform service throughout the
1547
TO
1558.
churches, and the king introduces the book of common
prayer. — Quarrels in regard to the succession. — Persecu-
408 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
tion of Protestants by Mary; hundreds burned at the
stake. England loses Calais to France.
Age of Elizabeth, The English Church is fully
established with a uniform service, uniform
prayers and confessions, arranged by the parliar
1568
TO
1603.
nient and the queen, who is the recognized head of the
" Established Church." The government has much trouble
with the "Dissenters" from this arrangement; contests
arise in Scotland between the Catholics, headed by Queen
Mary, and the Protestants, headed by John Knox. The
crown of Elizabeth is claimed by Mary, who is supported by
a strong party, and in whose behalf conspiracies and plots
are constantly formed, until Elizabeth finally orders her
beheaded. — Spanish Armada (see p. 405). — Virginia is ex-
plored and claimed for England by Raleigh ; Sir Francis
Drake sails round the world, and claims for his queen the
northern Californian coast ; the East India Company is
chartered for India trade. — Troubles arise in Ireland.
Age of the StuartB {James L and Charles /.).
The House of Tudor ending with Elizabeth,
James, son of Mary Queen of Scots, succeeds to
1603
TO
1649.
the thrones of both England and Scotland ; laws are passed
unfavorable and grievous to Puritans, Roman Catholics,
and other dissenters from the English Church. The king
imposes taxes without consent of parliament; quarrels
between king and parliament as to the amount of money
to be granted to the king. — New translation of the Bible
made under the direction and authorization of the king
("King James' Version"). — Constant and increasing
quarrel of king and parliament on the question of the right
of the king to impose taxes and laws without parliamentary
consent. This quarrel continues under Charles the First
until parliament, unable to obtain any redress of grievances
from Charles, and led on by Sir Join; Eliot, Oliver Crom-
REFOBMATION iU^D RENAISSANCE EUA. 409
well, Pym, Hampden, and their supporters, assumes con-
trol of the army, and declares war in behalf of the public
safety (1642). In Scotland, the "Solemn League and
Covenant" to defend the principles of the Reformation
and resist innovation is signed by large numbers, and the
Scottish " Kirk " is formed, a church independent of the
State. — Civil war follows, between the king, supported by
loyalists and followers of the established Church, on the
one hand, and the parliament, supported by dissenting
troops under the lead of Cromwell, on the other. The king
taken prisoner, refuses the terms imposed ; the Scots de-
liver him to parliament, who judge him guilty of death, and
Jan. 30, 1649, Charles I. is executed. During this time
Virginia, Maryland, Massachusetts (Boston and vicinity),
Rhode Island, and Connecticut are colonized, largely by
those who do not find sufficient religious liberty at home ;
these colonies obtain their charters from the king, who
grants them sometimes to nobles like Lord Baltimore,
sometimes to trading corporations like the Plymouth
Company.
STUDY ON \,d-h.
What proofs in these events that Spain, France, and England ha^ e
become strong, centralized feudal monarchies? Give examples from
each comitry. What proves their strength? Their centralization?
Their feudal character? Why should reading become a crime?
What political danger in it for an absolute monarch ? For the unity
of the Church ? What historic and what geographical reason for the
maritime and commercial activity of the Dutch ? What historic anta-
gonism strengthened the hostility of Catholics and Protestants in
France? What two causes would you name for the establishment
of an independent Church in England? What oppression is con-
nected with this establishment ? What would you name as the two
causes of the "civil wars" in England? When did each of these
causes begin to work ? By what measures could these wars have been
averted? On whom does their responsibility rest? In what ways
did the Stuarts violate the " Great Charter."
410 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
GENERAL STUDY ON I.
What are the two leading interests of European nations? Which
of these two appears to you the stronger ? Support your opinion by
facts. Prove that these interests are common to peoples and their
kings. During this age, in what two ways does America serve Europe ?
What great change in the relation of Church and State tends to t-ake
place in this period ? In what countries is that change completely
made ? What are the political units of Europe in this period ? What or
who represents these units ? W hat are the bonds of union within them ?
2. Li8t of Fatnaus Work8, Structures, Foundatiot^, lu'-
ventions, IHscaveries, Fnterprisesj and Improvements
of the Period.
a. Literary Works.
English dramas, based on historical and romantic stories,
drawn from English, classic, and Italian sources ; many of
these dramas were modelled on the laws of the Greek
stage, but their characters, language, and situations were
taken from actual, contemporary life, while they were
written to be acted before audiences containing people of
all ranks. Their most famous authors were William
Shakespeare, the son of a well-to-do English trader, and
Ben Jonson, the son of a clergyman. — The poem of the
" Faery Queen," written in honor of Queen Elizabeth, and
embodying contemporary ideas in religion and politics, and
a number of contemporary characters, under allegorical
forms of knights and ladies and dragons of mediaeval ro-
mance ; many of the allusions and illustrations, however,
are classic; its author was Edmund Spenser, of gentle birth
and classic university training. He and his contemporaries
greatly enriched the English language by introducing new
poetical forms, suggested by or copied from Italian models.
Of these the most famous and useful were the sonnet and
blank verse measure. — The Italian poems of " Orlando
Furioso" and the "Jerusalem Delivered"; the subject
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 411
of the former was taken from the mediseval romances con-
cerning Roland, the nephew of Charlemagne ; its author
was Ariosto, a man of good Italian family, and a finely
educated Latinist. The latter is based upon the rescue of
Jerusalem by the crusaders, and its hero is Godfrey of
Bouillon ; its author, Tasso, was of good family, and
finely educated in the classics. — The Portuguese poem of
the '^ Lusiad," by Camoens, the son of a sea-captain, but a
man of classical training, who desired to be to his own
country what Homer was to Greece. Though thus in-
spired, the poem abounds in scenes and allusions drawn
from contemporary life, action, and circumstances.
English essays on various practical, social, moral, and
intellectual subjects ; the most famous of these are those
written by Bacon, the son of a noble house, and highly
educated at Cambridge University. — French essays, simi-
lar to the above, written by Montaigne, a man of baronial
rank and an admirable Latinist.
Romances, originating for the most part in France and
Spain, taking their characters and motives from the chiv-
alrous life and legend of the middle ages, their chief
interest lying in love and adventure. — " Don Quixote," a
Spanish romance written to satirize the knights and ladies,
and improbable situations of the popular romance. Its
author, Cervantes, was a poor but well-born Spaniard. —
" Gargantua and Pantagruel," a satirical romance written
by Rabelais, a French priest and physician, thoroughly
trained in linguistic study. This work attacks, under
fictitious names and a fanciful plot, all the civil and relig-
ious authorities of the time. — The "Praise of Folly," a
satire on the foolishness of all classes of society, but par-
ticularly fearless in its attacks upon the Church. Its
author, Erasmus, was a Dutchman of obscure birth, but of
admirable classical training.
412 STUDIES IN GENERAI. HISTORY.
Translations of the Bible made from Latin and Greek
into the languages of modern Europe ; of these the most
famous are King James' Version (see p. 408) and Luther's
German translation. — Chapman's translation of Homer
into English. — The whole age is famous for its transla-
tions, from both classical and modern tongues, as well as
from the Arabic.
b. Works of Art (Painting and Sculpture).
The frescoes on the ceiling of the Sistine Chapel of the
Vatican palace, painted for Pope Julius II.; subjects,
scriptural ; the tomb of the Medici, made for the Medici
family in Florence, adorned with portrait-statues studied
from the life, and with allegorical figures ; the statue of
David, executed for the city of Florence ; that of Moses,
made for Pope Julius 11. All these were the work of
Michael Angelo Buonarotti, a man of noble birth, trained
by one of the best artists of the time, and a thorough stu-
dent of the remains of Greek art and of the living human
anatomy. — Frescoes painted for Pope Julius II., in vari-
ous rooms and passages of the Vatican; subjects, scrip-
tural, their style largely influenced by the study of Greek
and Roman art ; pictures of the Virgin Mary, at various
notable periods of her life, and pictures of the Holy
Family, executed, for the most part, for churches; figures
in these pictures studied from real life ; frescoes for vari-
ous palaces in Rome, executed from the study of living
models, on various mythological and allegorical subjects ;
portraits of wealthy ecclesiastics and nobles; — this work
was all done by Raphael, born of a family of artists,
and trained by the best artistic masters. — The fresco-
painting of "The Last Supper," painted for a Milanese
convent by Leonardo da Vinci, a man of noble birth and
artistic training ; this same artist also painted many per-
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA.
413
traits. — The scriptural, allegorical, and historical paint-
ings of Rubens, a German artist, trained in Italy, and
employed to decorate churches and palaces in the Nether-
lands and in France. — The portraits, studies from every-
day life, and liistorical and scriptural paintings of Rem-
fUUMTAinS HALL
A Yorkshire lord's country-honae of the seventeenth century.
brandt, a miller's son, trained by artists in Holland. — •
The paintings and engravings of Albert Diirer, the son
of a German goldsmith, educated to his art by working
with painters, and by travel in Italy and Germany. His
subjects are largely scriptural and allegorical, but their
414 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
details are studied -from actual contemporary life. — The
portrait-pictures of the younger Holbein, and of Vandyck.
Vandyck was court-painter of Charles I., and acquired
his art by Italian study and travel and by the training of
Rubens; Henry VIH. was the patron of Holbein, who
studied with his father, a German painter, and travelled ;
his " Dance of Death," one of the most popular works of
the time, was a series of pictures designed to show the
equality of all men and the vanity of human pride.
Aside from these greatest works, this age produced
numberless pictures of a high order of merit, ordered by
kings, popes, cardinals, princes, and wealthy merchants,
for the adornment of palaces and churches.
c. Buildings^ UstablishmentSy and Foundations.
The Escorial (see p. 416). — The Louvre, a royal palace
built by Francis I., who erected other great palaces in various
places, notably that of Fontainebleau, to which was attached
a great royal forest, miles in extent, kept to give the king
and his court the pleasures of the hunt. — The Tuileries,
built in Paris by the queen-mother, Catherine de Medici,
and continued by Henry IV. — Whitehall Palace, built in
London for the Stuarts. — Many of the famous palaces of
Genoa, Venice, Florence, Rome, date back to this period ;
they were built by wealthy or noble families, often by mer-
chants, and were adorned with fine marbles and alabas-
ters, enriched with carving and inlaid work, and often
contain masterpieces of painting. — Many of the fine Eng-
lish country-houses also belong to this time (see Fountains
Hall for typical example).
St. Peter's at Rome (see p. 417). — Cathedrals in Sego-
via, Salamanca, Saragossa.
New colleges added to the universities of Oxford and
Cambridge; schools for elementary instioiction, uncon-
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA.
415
I _'> ^^J**^
416
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
nected with the Church, established in Florence (Savona-
rola), Germany (Luther), England (Colet), Scotland
(Knox), Geneva (Calvin).
Manufactures of fine pottery established and aided by
THl B800RIAL.
Thi<i bailding was erected near Madrid by Philip II* in conaeqa«iM!6 of a vow made In
battle. It Is at once a palace, a mausoleum, a monastery, and a church. It contains
a library of 130,000 volumes, and thousands of Arabic Mss.
the wealth of kings and nobles, in Italy, France, Ger-
many, and Holland. — Tapestry manufactures established
in France by Francis I. and Henry IV. The latter im-
REFORMATION AKt) RENAlSSAKCE ERA. 417
h
2:1
D.Q.
IS.
i i
O CD
o J>
g 5
I
418 STtTDlES IN OENEBAL HISTORY.
ported from Italy skilled workmen in gold and silk. -
Manufactures of wool firmly established in England.
d. Vbyoffes and Unterprises,
Columbus, a Genoese sailor of plebeian birth, well-read
in geograpliy and mathematics, with funds furnished by
Ferdinand and Isabella, the monarchs of Spain, sailed west-
ward to find a route to India ; discovered the West Indies,
and took possession of them for Spain and the Church. —
The Cabots, sailing under the auspices of Henry VII.,
discovered the mainland of North America, and opened the
Newfoundland fisheries to English enterprise. — Spaniards
and Portuguese, constantly exploring and settling, planted
colonies through the American islands and coasts lying
south of the West Indies. — The Spaniard Balboa crossed
the Isthmus of Darien, and discovered the Pacific. — Magal-
h&es (Magellan), a Portuguese in Spanish service,
made the first voyage round the world, entering
the Pacific around Cape Horn. — Pizarro and
1519
TO
iffsa.
Cortez discovered and conquered — the former Peru, the
latter Mexico — for Spain. While Spanish and Portu-
guese thus worked southward, the coasts of North America
were gradually explored and colonized by English, Dutch,
and French (see 1). — In the reign of Elizabeth the whale-
fishery was established.
During this period the Order of Jesuits, or the Order of
Jesus, was founded by the Spaniard Loyola, with the avowed
object of turning to the true Roman Catholic faith both
heretics and heathen. This order rapidly spread, and its
members, who were men of good education and earnest
purpose, were found in every part of the world. They
labored alike to arrest the doctrines of the Reformation
and to reform the practical abuses of the Church; they
bound tliemselves by the old monastic vows of chastity,
BEFOBMATION AND BENAIS8ANCB ERA. 419
poverty, and obedience. As missionaries to the heathen,
they went fearlessly to India, China, Japan, East and West
Indies, and all the new American coasts. In Paraguay
they succeeded in Christianizing and civilizing the whole
native population.
e. Inve8tigation9 and Studiei.
The "Novum Organum" of Bacon, — a development of
the scientific or inductive method of study as opposed
to the deductive method of Aristotle. Bacon maintained
that knowledge begins with experience of details, and that
only by observing and comparing these details can men
arrive at any trustworthy general truths. This method is
that now followed in all scientific study. — The astronomi-
cal discoveries of Copernicus, Kepler, Galileo. The last
and greatest was an Italian professor in North Italian
universities; he invented the telescope, and established
the fact of the revolution of the earth about the sun;
this being directly opposed to the astronomical teaching
of the Church, he was persecuted, arrested, and silenced
by the Inquisition. — The revival of the Platonic philoso-
phy as opposed to that of Aristotle, and the study of the
original Greek ; these studies were much sympathized in
and partly urged forward by the reformers, notably by
Erasmus and Melancthon, and by Dean Colet and Sir
Thomas More, in England. — The philosophical system of
Descartes, a French mathematician and scientist, who de-
rived all authority for truth from the statement, " I think,
therefore I am." — The discovery of the circulation of
the blood by Harvey, an English physician who had
studied medicine at Cambridge and in Padua. — The
study into the principles of international law, and the
foundation of that study as a science, by the Dutchman,
Hugo Grotius.
420 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
/. Inventions and Improvements.
Gunpowder came into general use in war, and was com-
monly employed in the wars of Charles V. and Francis I.
in connection with cannon and rude forms of firearms. —
The streets of Paris were publicly lighted. — Stoves, chim-
neys, glass for windows, coaches, carpets came into com-
mon use among the well-to-do.
STUDY ON 2.
What new forms of literature appear in this age? What new class
of men appear as authors ? From what occupation has this class been
freed, and how ? What nation leads in literature ? What influences ap-
pear in English literature ? What relation between the appearance of
these influences and the invention of printing ? What influence will the
translations of the period have upon the unity of Europe ? Why ? What
is there original in this literature ? What do you find in this literature
resulting from or sympathizing with the Reformation movement ?
What art belongs especially to the Renaissance period ? What three
influences are felt by this art? Illustrate. Wliat country leads in
art ? What country stands second ? On whom does art depend for
its success and opportunity?
What notable differences between Fountains Hall, p. 413, and Pierre-
fond Castle, p. 375? What cause can you assign for the differences?
What influences can be seen in the Borghese Court, p. 415? In St.
Peter's, p. 417 ? In whose hands is the wealth of Europe massed ?
I^roofs from b and c. What relation between the military power of
the kings and their employment of standing armies, and the use of
wealtli by the nobles of the Renaissance ?
What relation between the Reformation and learning? What re-
lation between the kings and the material and commercial progress
of the period? It is said that the discovery of America and the
circumnavigation of Africa ruined the prosperity of the Italian cities ;
why should this be so ? What new route to India, established in our
own time, might partially restore their importance? What faith
accompanies the European civilization ?
What class of studies becomes important in this era? What change
in the authority to which men look? What country leads in this
intellectual movement?
Whom do the inventions and discoveries of this age serve? How
does each of the mottoes on p. 39G apply to this ]^)eriod ?
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE EKA. 421
S. Extniets Illustrative of Life and Thought of the
Time.
a. From Lettej's of Columbus to the Spanish Chancellor of the
Exchequer and to the Spanish Monarchs^ ''^respecting the
Islands found in the Indies" (Hakluyt Society.)
^' Believing that you will take pleasure in hearing of the great
success which our Lord has granted me in my voyage, I write
you this letter, whereby you will learn how in thirty-three days'
time I reached the Indies with the fleet which the most illus-
trious king and queen, our sovereigns, gave to me, where I
found very man}- islands thickly peopled, of all which I took
possession ... for their Highnesses. . . . San Domingo is a
wonder, its mountains and plains, and meadows, and fields
are so beautiful and rich for planting and sowing, and rearing
cattle of all kinds, and for building towns and villages. The
harbours on the coast, and the number and size and wholesome-
ness of the rivers, most of them bearing gold, surpass anything
that would be believed. . . . Our Redeemer hath granted this
victory to our illustrious king and queen, . . . who have ac-
quired great fame by an event of such high importance, in
which all Christendom ought to rejoice, and which it ought to
celebrate with great festivals and the offering of solemn thanks
to the Holy Trinity, . . . both for the great exaltation which
may accrue to them in turning so many nations to our holy
faith, and also for the temporal benefits which will bring
great refreshment and gain, not only to Spain, but to all
Christians."
"... In all the countries visited by your Highnesses' ships,
I have caused a high cross to be fixed upon every headland,
and have proclaimed to every nation that I have discovered, the
lofty estate of your Highnesses and of your court in Spain.
I also tell them all I can respecting our holy faith and of the
belief in the holy Mother Church. . . . Your Highnesses have
become the masters of another world, where our holy faith may
become so much increased, and whence such stores of wealth
may be derived."
422 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
6. From Sir Walter Raleigh* 8 Account of the Discovery of
Guiana, (Hakluyt Society.)
"... The common soldier shal here fight for gold, and pay
himself e in steede of pence, with plates of halfe a foote brode,
whereas he breaketh his bones in other warres f or . . . penury.
Those commanders and Chieftaines, that shoote at honour and
abundance, shal find there more rich and bewtifuU cities, more
temples adorned with golden Images, more sepulchera filled with
treasure, than . . . Cortes found in Mexico, . . . and the shining
glorie of this conquest will eclipse all those so farre extended
beames of the Spanish nation. . . . The soile besides is so
excellent and so full of rivers, as it will carrie sugar, ginger,
and all those other commodities which the West Indies hath. . . •
For whatsoever Prince shall possesse it, shall bee greatest, and
if the king of Spayne enjoy it, he will become unresistable. . . .
I trust in God . . . that he which is . . . Lorde of Lords, will
put it into her hart which is Lady of Ladies to possesse it."
c. Why the Abbot of Wardon resigned his Office in 1538.
'* Item^ that whereas we be commanded to have early lecture
of divinity, we have none ; and when it is read, few or none of
the monks come to it. Item^ I did assign Thomas Londone to
read the divinity lecture, and he (unknowing to me) did read
the books of Eccius Omelies, which books be all carnal and of
a brutal understanding, and treat of many things clean against
the church of England. And so soon as I had knowledge of
this, I caused my brother to read the lecture ; and then few or
none of them would come at him. Item^ for as much as I did
perceive ignorance was a great cause why that these my brethren
were thus far out of good order and in continual unquietness,
I caused books of grammar to be bought for each of them, and
assigned m}- brother to instruct them, but there would come
none to him but one Richard Balldok and Thomas Clement.
Item^ they be in number 15 brethren, and except 3 of them,
none understand nor know their rule nor the statutes of their
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 423
religion. Iterriy in Lent I did send forth Thomas Wardon in
this house's business, and he did sit at Shesford all night at
the ale house, and came home in the morning at matin time,
for the which cause I would have ministered correction to him,
but he declared openly before the convent that I had no au-
thority to correct him, and stirred them seditiously against me,
insomuch that Christopher threatened me and my servants.
Thus I was in such fear that I did command my' servants to
watch my chamber 4 nights after till their fury was somewhat
assuaged. . . . //em, William Carington, Thomas Bikkliswade,
Thomas London, John Cliff tone, Christopher Wardon, be com-
mon drunkards."
John ap Rice writes about 1535 of the monastery of Bury :
'* Amongst the relics we found much vanity and superstition,
as the coals that St. Lawrence was toasted withal, the paring
of St. Edmund's nails, St. Thomas of Canterbury's penknife
and boots, and divers skulls for the headache, and pieces of
the holy cross able to make a holy cross of."
d. From Letters of Luther to Pope Leo X. (about 1518).
" I have heard the worst account, most blessed father, touch-
ing myself, namely, that certain friends have made my name
most odious to you and yours, as of one who was labouring to
diminish the authority and power of the keys and of the Su-
preme Pontiff; and that I am called a heretic, an apostate, a
traitor, and a thousand other ignominious names. These things
shock and amaze me ; one thing only sustains me, a sense of
innocence."
He goes on to speak thus of his theses : " By what unlucky
chance it is, that these particular propositions of mine, more
than all others, should go forth into nearly all the earth, I am
at a loss to know. They were set forth here for our use alone,
and how they should come to everybody's knowledge is incredi-
ble to me. . . . But what shall I do? Recall them I cannot;
and yot I see that their notoriety bringeth upon me great odium.
In order, then, to soften my adversaries and to gratify many
424 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
friends, I send forth these trifles [proofs, etc.] to explain my
theses. For the greater safet}' I let them go forth, most blessed
father, under your name, and under the shadow of your protec-
tion. Here, all who will may see how sincerely I honour the
ecclesiastical power and reverence the Keys, and also how basely
I am reproached and belied by my enemies. . . . Save or
sla}', call or recall, approve or disapprove, as it shall best
please you, I will acknowledge your voice as the voice of Christ
presiding and speaking in you."
To his friend Spalatin he writes : " A heretic I will never be ;
err I may in disputation. But I wish to decide no doctrine ;
only I am not willing to be the slave of the opinions of men."
To Staupitz, ''I see that attempts ai*e made at Rome that
the kingdom of truth, t.e., of Christ, be no longer the kingdom
of truth. . . . But I desire to belong to this kingdom. ... I
learn from experience that the people are sighing for the voice
of their Shepherd, Christ, and the youth are burning with won-
derful zeal for the sacred oracles. A beginning is made with
us in reading of Greek. We are all giving ourselves to the
Greek for the better understanding of the Bible. We are ex-
pecting a Hebrew teacher, and the elector hath the business in
hand." On seeing the first brief which condemned him, he
exclaims : '^ It is incredible that a thing so monstrous should
come from the chief pontiff, especially from Leo X. . . . If,
in truth, it did come forth from the Roman court, then I will
show them their most licentious temerity and their most ungodly
ignorance."
e. From the Decrees of the Council of Trent ^ held 1545-1563
to " exttrpcUe Heresies and reform Manners." (SchaflPs
Creeds.)
"In order to restrain petulant spirits," it decrees "that no
one, relying in his own skill, sliall in matters of faith . . . wrest-
ing the Sacred Scriptures to his own senses, presume to inter-
pret the said Sacred Scripture contrary to that sense which Holy
Mother Church . . . hath held and doth hold, or even contrary
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 425
to the unanimous consent of the Fathers." In regard to jus-
tification by faith, it declares, *' If any one saith that man may
be justified before God by his own works . . . without the grace
of God through Jesus Christ, let him be anathema. . . .
'^ If any one saith that, since Adam's sin, the free will of
man is lost and extinguished, ... let him be anathema, . . .
^' If any one saith, that by faith alone the impious is justified,
... let him be anathema," Concerning the real presence of
Christ in the Eucharist, it decides : —
*'The holy Synod teaches . . . that . . . after the consecra-
tion of the bread and wine, our Lord Jesus Christ ... is truly,
really, and substantially contained [within them]." The fol-
lowing is its doctrine of penance : —
" If any one denieth that for the entire and perfect remission
of sins there are required three acts in the penitent ... to wit,
contrition, confession, and satisfaction ... or saith that there
are two parts only ... to wit, the terrors with which the con-
science is smitten upon being convinced of sin, and the faith
. . . whereby one believes that his sins are forgiven him through
Christ, let him be ayiathema." Concerning sacred images, it
decrees, " that the images of Christ, of the Virgin Mother of
God, and of the other saints are to be . . . retained . . . and
that due honor and veneration are to be given them ; not that
any divinity, or virtue is believed to be in them ... or that
trust is to be reposed in images. ... In the . . . sacred use of
images, every superstition shall be removed, all filthy lucre be
abolished. . . . Let so great care ... be exercised by the
bishops, as that there be nothing seen that is disorderly . . .
nothing that is profane, nothing indecorous." The council thus
teaches in regard to indulgences : —
" Whereas, the power of conferring indulgences was granted
by Christ to the Church . . . the sacred holy Synod . . . con-
demns with anathema those who either assert that they are
useless, or who deny that there is in the Church the power of
granting them. In granting them, however, it desires that . . .
moderation be observed. . . . And being desirous that the
426 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
abuses which have crept therein, and by occasion of which this
honorable name of indulgences is blasphemed by heretics, be
amended and corrected, it ordains ... by this decree, that all
evil gains for the obtaining thereof ... be abolished."
f. From the Augsburg Confession, ^^ presented to the Invincible
Emperor Charles F. Coesar Augustus,'* 1530. (Schaff.)
'* . • . Inasmuch as your imperial majesty has summoned a
convention of the Empire at Augsburg, to deliberate in regard
to aid against the Turk, the most . . . ancient enemy of the
Christian name and religion, because, moreover, of dissensions
in the matter of our holy religion ... we now offer . . . the
confession of our preachers and ourselves. ..."
Of Justification, — " Men . . . are justified freely for Christ's
sake through faith, wlien they believe that Ihey are received
into favor, and their sins forgiven."
Of the Real Presence in the Eucharist. — "The body and
blood of Christ are truly present, and are communicated to those
that eat."
Of Free Will, — " Man's will . . . hath no power to work the
righteousness of God, or a spiritual righteousness without the
Spirit of God."
" We beg that your imperial majesty would clemently hear
both what ought to be changed, and what are the reasons that
the people ought not to be forced against their consciences to
observe those abuses."
Of the Mamage of Priests, — **God hath commanded to
honor marriage ; the laws in all well-ordered commonwealths
. . . have adorned marriage . . . but now men are cruelly put
to death ; yea, and priests also for no other cause but marriage.
. . . But as no law of man can take away the law of God, no
more can any vow whatsoever."
Concerning Relation of Church and State, — *' Seeing, then,
that the ecclesiastical power concerneth things eternal ... it
bindereth not the political government any more than the art
BEFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 427
of singing hinders political government. . . . Wherefore the
ecclesiastical and civil powers are not to be confounded. The
ecclesiastical power hath its own commandment to preach
the Gospel. . . . Let it not by force enter into the office of
another; let it not transfer worldly kingdoms ... as Christ
saith '* my kingdom is not of the world."
g. The Objects of the Peasants' Wars of the Reformation.
The peasants of Alsace-Lorraine state their objects in a pro-
gram of which the following are leading and typical points -
(1) The Gospel ought to be preached according to the truth,
and not according to the interests of priests and lords. . . .
(2) The interest on land should be reduced to 5 per cent. . . .
(4) All waters ought to be free. (5) Forests should return to
the commune (village of peasants). ... (7) There should be
no more serfs. (8) We ourselves will choose our own rulers.
We will have for our sovereign he who shall seem good to us.
(9) We will be judged by our peers. . . .
The German leader, Miinzer, thus taught, —
'* We are all brothers, and have a common father, Adam. . . .
The land is a common heritage. . . . When have we ever
yielded our rights in this paternal inheritance ? Who can show
us the contract by which we have given it up ? "
*' Never listen to those men who prove to you out of the
Gospel that you are free, and end by exhorting you to bow
your head in slavery."
" Curses on the false priests who have never understood the
essence of Christianity ! "
STUDY ON 3, a-g.
What are the two prominent objects of exploration and conquest in
the mind of Columbus ? Name three qualities of character displayed
by his letters. What motives for exploration are shown by Sir Walter
Raleigh ? "V\Tiat national rivalry ? Taking a and h as typical, what
classes of men will be drawn to the new countries ? Judging from c,
what reformation is needed in the Church? What is the attitude
of Luther toward the Church ? Toward what he believes to be the
428 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOKY.
truth? What do these extracts show of his character? What rea-
son do they show for the attitude of the reformers toward Greek
scholarship ? Compare the decrees of the Council of Trent and the
statements of the Augsburg Confession. What differences do you find ?
What points of the Confession most seriously affect the existing insti-
tutions of Europe? What are evidently the objects of reformation in
the minds of the peasants? Why should they naturally associate
political and social with religious change ?
Ji. The Spanish Armada, (Hakluyt's ** Voyages.")
" The most notable and great enterprise of all others which
were in the foresaid yeare atchieved . . . was the expedition which
the Spanish king, having a long time determined the same in
his minde, and baying consulted thereabout with the Pope, set
foorth and undertooke against England and the lowe Countreys,
to the end that he might subdue the Realme of England, and
reduce it unto his Catholique Religion. . . . Moreover the
Spaniards were of opinion that it would bee fan'e more behove-
full [fit] for their King to conquere England and the lowe
Countreys all at once, than to be constrained continually to
niaintaine a warlike Navie to defend his East and West Indie
Flcetes, from the English Drake, and from such like valiant
enemies. . . . Unto this famous expedition and presupposed
victorie, many potentates, princes, and honourable personages
hied themselves ; . . . Likewise the Pope ... as the}' used to
do against Turkes and infidels, published a Cruzado, with most
ample indulgences. . . . Some there be which affirme that the
Pope had bestowed the realme of England with the title of
Defender of the Faith, upon the King of Spaine, giving him
charge to invade it upon this condition, that hee should enjoy
the conquered realm, as a vassal and tributarie ... to the see
of Rome. To this purpose, the said Pope proffered a million of
gold, the one-halfe thereof to be paied in readie money, and
the other halfe when the realme of England . . . was subdued."
But the fleet having set sail, were met in the narrow seas
by the English under Howard and Drake and by them defeated ;
then, thinking it good '^ to fetch a compass about Scotland and
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 429
Ireland, and so to retume for Spaine . . . were driven with
many contrary windes; at length . . . they were cast by a
tempest . . . upon divers parts of Ireland, where many of their
ships perished. ... Of 134 ships, which set saile . . . there
returned home 53 onely, small and great. . . .
'^ For the perpetuall memorie of this matter, the Zelanders
caused newe coine of silver and brasse to be stamped, which on
the one side contained . . . this inscription: Glort to God
onelt; and on the other side, the pictures of certaine great
ships with these words: The Spanish Fleet, and in the cir-
cumference about the ships : it came, it went, it was. Anno
1588. That is to say, the Spanish fleet came, went and was
vanquished this yere ; for which glory be given to God onely.
Also • . . they have stamped in Holland divers such like coines,
according to the custome of the ancient Romans.
^^ While this wonderfuU and puissant Navie was sayling along
the English coastes, and all men did now plainely see and
heare that which before they would not be perswaded of, all
people thorowout England prostrated themselves with humble
prayers and supplications unto God ; . . . knowing right well,
that prayer was the onely refuge against all enemies, calamities
and necessities, and that it was the onely solace and relief e for
mankinde, being visited with affliction and misery. Likewise
such solemne dayes of supplication were observed thorowout
the united Provinces. . . .
" Likewise, the Queenes Majestic herself e, imitating the ancient
Romans, rode into London in ti'iumph, in regard of her owne
and her subjects glorious deliverance. For being attended
upon very solemnely by all the principall estates and officers of
her Realme, she was carried ... in a tryumphant chariot, and
in robes of triumph, from her Palace unto the Cathedrall. . . .
And all the Citizens of London in their Liveries stood on either
side of the street, by their severall Companies [guilds], with
their ensignes and banners, which . . . yeelded a very stately
and gallant prospect. Her Majestic being entered into the
Church, together with her Clergy and Nobles gave thanks unto
480 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Gk)d. . . . And with her owne princely voice she most Chris-
tianly exhorted the people to doe the same: whereupon the
people with a loud acclamation wished her a most long and
happy life, to the confusion of her foes."
i. ** From a joyful song of the royall receiving of the Qtieenes
most eoDceUent majesty into her highnesse campe at Tilbury^^
in Essex; on Thursday and Fryday^ the Sth and 9th Aug.<i
1588." (Percy Society.)
*' What princely wordes her grace declarde,
What gracious thankes in every worde
To every souldier, none she sparde
That serv6d anywhere for England.
• • • • *
*' Then might she see the hats to flye,
And everie souldeir shouted hye,
For our good Queene wee'l fight or dye
On any foe to England,
And many a Captain kist her hand
As she passed forth through everie band
And left her traine far off to stand
From her marshall men of England
*****
" And thus her highnesse went away
For whose long life all England pray,
King Henries daughter & our stay,
Elizabeth, Queene of England."
/. Oonceming Queen Elizabeth, (Lyl3''s "Euphues.")
* * I doubt whether our tongue can yeelde wordes to blaze that
beautie, the perfection whereof none can imagine. . . . [She
is] equal to Nicatrata in the Greek tongue ; . . . more learned
in the Latine than Amalasunta; passing Aspasia in Philoso-
phic, who taught Pericles; exceeding in judgement Themisto-
^ Hie place of master for the forces called against the Armada,
BEFOBMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 481
des, who instructed Pythagoras ; adde to these qualities, . . .
the French tonge, the Spanish, the Italian, not meane in every
one, but excellent in all. . . ."
^* Hir politique government, hir prudent counsaile, hir zeale
to religion, hir clemencie to those that submit, hir stoutnesse
to tliose that threaten, so farre exceed all other vertues, that
they are more easie to be mervailed at, than imitated."
k. Of the State of England. (More's " Utopia.")
^^The most part of princes have more delight in warlike
matters and feats of chivalry than in the good feats of peace ;
and employ much more study, how by right or by wrong to
enlarge their dominions, than how well and peacefully to govern
that the}' have already. . . .
^^ There is a great number of gentlemen which cannot be con-
tent to live idle themselves, like drones, of that which others
have labored for — their tenants, I mean; whom the}' poll and
shave to the quick, by raising their rents . . . these gentlemen.
I say, do not only live in idleness themselves, but also carr}- abou^
with them ... a great flock ... of idle and loitering serving-
men, which never learned any craft whereby to get their livings.
... In what parts of the realm doth grow the finest and
therefore the dearest wool, these noblemen and gentlemen, yea.
and certain abbots, holy men, no doubt, not contenting them*
selves with the yearly . . . profits that were wont to grow to
their forefathers, • . . leave no ground for tillage ; they enclose
all into pastures (endoaures) ; they throw down houses ; they
pluck down towns. . . . And, as though you lost no small
quantity of ground by forests, chases, lands and parks, those
good holy men turn all dwelling places . . . into desolation.
. . . The husbandmen be thrust out of their own, ... or by
wrongs and injuries they be so wearied that they be compelled
to sell all. . . . Away they trudge, I say, out of their known
and accustomed houses, finding no place to rest in. . . . And
. . . what can they do but steal and then justly ... be hanged,
or else go about a begging ; . . . whom no man will set at work.
482 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
though they never bo willingly proffer themselves thereto. For
one shepherd ... is enough to eat up that ground with cattle,
to the occupying whereof about husbandry many hands were
requisite. . . . For after that so much ground was inclosed
for pasture, an infinite number of sheep died of the rot ; such
vengeance God took of their inordinate . . . covetonsness I
. . . And though the number of sheep increase never so
fast, yet the price falleth not one mite, because there be so few
sellers ; for they be almost all come into a few rich men's hands,
whom no need f orceth to sell . . . before they may sell as dear
as they lust."
I, Concerning the Puritans. (From a letter of Queen Elizabeth
to James VI. of Scotland.)
'* Let me warn you that there is risen, both in your realm and
mine, a sect of perilous consequence, such as would have no
kings but a presbytery. . . . When they have made in our peo-
ples' hearts a doubt of our religion, . . . what perilous issue
this may make I rather think than mind to write. ... I pray
you stop the mouths or make shorter the tongues of such minis-
ters as dare presume to make prayers in their pulpits for the
persecuted in England for the Gospel."
m. Hie Personal Expenses of James I. and ikB ^^Remon-
strance again^ ImpositionB.**
In a single year (1610) it was estimated that the queen's per-
sonal expenditure amounted to $70,000, and that of the princes
and princesses was nearly the same. — Extra wines, (8400. —
Plate and jewels, above $120,000. — To the ro3'al cofferer, over
$500,000; to the keeper of the privy purse, $20,000. — From
1G03-1610, James gave away presents worth about $250,000 a
year. — No less than $460,000 were spent on jewels alone in
the first four years of his reign. — The receipts meanwhile were
about $1,200,000, raised by new taxes to $2,300,000. Since
this proved insufficient, parliament was called together. Among
the speeches made after the king had asked for new grants,
REFORMATION AKD RENAISSANCE ERA. 433
was that of the member for Oxford, who asked: "To what
purpose is it to draw a silver stream out of the country into the
royal cistern, if it shall daily run out thence by private cocks?
. . . And for his part, he said, he would never give his con-
sent to take money from a poor frieze jerkin to trap a courtier's
horse withal. And therefore he wished that we might join in
humble petition to his majesty that he would diminish his
charge and live of his own,* without exacting of his poor
subjects."
The Commons being unwilling to proceed to grant any
money without knowing what the king would give in return,
the king sent back word by the treasurer to parliament " that
for his kingdom he was beholden to no elective power, neither
did he depend on any popular applause. . . . But, withal, be
did acknowledge that he had no power to make laws of himself,
or to exact any subsidies . . . without the consent of his three
estates. ..." The king afterward promised not to use the
money for the benefit of any private person, nor to impose any
taxes but in parliament, where he will propose measures for
debate. Discussion followed, ending in the presentation of the
following '' Remonstrance " : —
*' Most gracious sovereign ; whereas we your Majesty's hum-
ble subjects . . . have received ... a commandment of restraint
from debating in Parliament your Majesty's power to impose
[taxes] upon your subjects . . . yet allowing us to examine the
grievance of these impositions . . .we, your Majesty's loving
subjects, . . . are bold to make this remonstrance. . . .
" First, we hold it an ancient, general, and undoubted right
of parliament to discuss all things properly concerning the
subjects. . . ,
" And therefore for that we cannot proceed further without
concluding forever the right of the subject, which without due
examination we cannot do, we humbly desire 3'our Majesty that
we be set at liberty to proceed in our debates ..."
1 To " live of his own," that is, from the income of the royal estates
and the customary feudal dues.
434 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
This petition the king promised to grant if the Commons
would *' not impugn his prerogative, would seek his content
and satisfaction, and endeavor to unite and confirm his sub-
jects' hearts unto him/'
The House then entered into debate concerning Papists, the
taxes, and the king's support. In the debate concerning the
latter, it was argued that ^' this matter of support was a thing
strange, and never heard of in Parliament but once " ; since no
agreement could be reached concerning it, the king waived the
matter, if only present aid might be given.
n. The Civil Wars of England. (From Hobbes' " Levia-
than," or an *' Epitome of the Civil Wars of England,"
written in the form of a dialogue.)
^^A. In the year 1640, the government of England was
monarchical ; and the King that reigned, Charles, the first of
that name, held the sovereignty by right of a descent con-
tinued above six hundred years . . . ; a man that wanted no
virtue, either of body or mind, nor endeavored anything more
than to discharge his duty towards God, in the well-governing
of his subjects.
B. How could he then miscarry, having ... so many
trained soldiere? . . .
A. If those soldiers had been, as they and all other subjects
ought to have been, at his Majesty's command, the peace and
happiness of the three kingdoms had continued. . • . But the
people were corrupted generally, and disobedient persons
esteemed the best patriots.
B, But sure there were men enough, besides those that
were ill-affected, to have made an army. . . .
A. Truly, I think, if the King had had money, he might
have had soldiers enough in England. ... But the King's
treasury was very low, and his enemies, that pretended the
people's ease from taxes, . . . had the command of the
purses. . . .
B. But how came the people to be so corrupted ? . . .
REFORMATION AND RENAISSANCE ERA. 486
A. Their seducers were of divers sorts. One sort were
ministers ; ministers, as they called themselves, of Christ, . . .
pretending to have a right from God to govern every one his
parish, and their assembly the whole nation. Secondly, there
were a very great number . . . which . . . did still retain a belief
that they ought to be governed by the Pope ... in the right of
Christ. . . . And these were known by the name of Papists ;
as the ministers . . . were commonly called Presbyterians.
Thirdly, there were not a few who . . . declared themselves for
a liberty in religion. . . . Some of them, because tbey would
have all congregations free and independent, . . . were called
Independents [Congregationalists] . . . besides divers other
sects. . . . And these were the enemies which rose against his
Majesty from the private interpretation of the Scripture, ex-
posed to every man's scanning m his mother tongue. Fourthly,
there were an exceeding great number of men of the better
sort, that had been so educated, as that in their youth having
read the books written by famous men of the ancient Greek
and Koman commonwealths ... in which books the popular
government was extolled by that glorious name of liberty, and
monarchy disgraced by the name of tyranny ; they became
thereby in love with their forms of government. And out of
these men were chosen the greatest part of the House of Com-
mons. . . . Lastly, the people in general were so ignorant of
their duty as that not one perhaps of ten thousand knew what
right any man had to command him, or what necessity there
was of King or Commonwealth for which he was to part with
his money against his will ; but thought . . . that it could not
be taken from him upon any pretence of common safety without
his own consent. . . ."
" For after the Bible was translated into English, every
man, nay, everj- boy and wench that could read English,
thought they spoke with God Almighty, and understood what
he said. . . . The reverence and obedience due to the Reformed
Church . . . was cast off, and every man became a Judge of
religion and an interpreter of the Scriptures to himself. . . .
43G STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
'^ There is no nation in the world whose religion is not estab-
lished and receives not its authority from the laws of that
nation. . . . Because men can never by their own wisdom
come to the knowledge of what God hath spoken and com-
manded to be observed, . . . they are to acquiesce in some
human authority or other. ..."
0. 77t€ Scots' Solemn League and Covenant^ 1643. (Han-
sard's Parliamentary Debates.)
**We noblemen, barons, knights, gentlemen, citizens, bur-
gesses, ministers of the gospel and commons of all sorts, . . .
have now at last . . . resolved and determined to enter into a
mutual and solemn League and Covenant ; wherein we all . . .
with our hands lifted up to the most high God, do swear, —
1. That we shall sincerely, really and constantly, through the
grace of God, endeavour, in our several places and callings,
the preservation of the reformed religion of the church of
Scotland, . . . and we shall endeavour to bring the churches of
God, in the three kingdoms, to the nearest . . . uniformity in
religion, confession of faith, . . . church government, directory
for worship and catechizing; that we . . . may, as brethren,
live in faith and love, and the Lord may delight to dwell in the
midst of us. 2. That we shall in like manner, without respect
of persons, endeavour the extirpation of popery, prelacy (that
is, church government by archbishops, bishops . . .), supersti-
tion, heresy, schism, profaneness, and whatsoever shall be
found contrary to sound doctrine . . . ; that the Lord may be
one and his name one in the three kingdoms. 3. We shall,
with the same sincerity, reality, and constancy, in our several
vocations, endeavour ... to preserve the rights and privileges
of the parliaments and the liberties of the kingdoms ; and to
preserve and defend the king's . . . person and authority, in
the preservation and defence of the true religion and liberties
of the kingdoms. ... 6. We shall also ... in this common
cause of religion, liberty and peace of the kingdoms, assist and
defend all those that enter into this League and Covenantf in
REFORMATION AKD RENAISSANCE JJRA. 437
the maintaining and pursuing thereof ; and shall not suffer our-
selves ... to make defection to the contrary part, or to give
ourselves to a detestable . . . neutrality in this cause which so
much concerneth the glory of God. . . . And this Covenant
we make in the presence of Almighty God, the Searcher of all
hearts, with a true intention to perform the same, as we shall
answer at that great day when the secrets of all hearts shall be
disclosed. ..."
p. The King's Power. (From CowelFs ''Interpreter," a law
dictionary of the time of James I.)
"The King is above the law by his absolute power. . . For
otherwise were he subject after a sort, and subordinaire, which
may not bee thought without breach of duty and loyaltie. . . .
And though at his coronation be take an oath not to alter
the lawes of the land ; yet this oath notwithstanding, hee
may alter or suspend any particular lawe that seemeth hurt-
full to the publike estate. . . . Thus much in short, because
I have heard some to be of opinion that the lawes be above the
King. . . . But I hold . . . that the King of England is an
absolute King."
STUDY ON 3, h-p.
What two motives for the sending out of the Armada? What did
the English and the Dutch regard as their strongest defence against
this fleet? What historical influence is incidentally seen to be felt in
England? What feeling displayed in t andj ? AVhat causes for that
feeling are indicated in each of these extracts ? What wrong or
oppression is shown by both k and gf What class is wronged by the
" inclosures " and how ? How does this wrong become an injury to
the State? What injury arises from the massing of pasture and sheep
in the hands of the few ? AVho are injured ? What does the letter of
Elizabeth illustrate ?
What injustice to the State is seen in the expenses of James I.?
How is this illustrated in the member for Oxford's speech? What
does the " Remonstrance " and the accompanying discussion show to
438 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
be the point at issue between the king and parliament? Why does
the matter of the king's support seem strange to parliament ? What
difference between the feudal and modern theory of a king's
support ?
Describe the causes of the civil wars in England from a Royalist's
point of view. From a Covenanter's. What objection to the general
reading of the Scriptures is urged by Ilobbes? What justification
for the union of Church and State ? What intolerance do you discover
in the " Solemn League and Covenant " ? What different view of the
king's power taken by Cowell and the Covenant?
E. MODEEBf ETIKOPE, 1648-1880.
Periods of History.
I. The "Old Regime,"! 1648-1789. Peace of Westphalia to the
French Revolution.
Aa. In Europe in general
Ah. In France,
n. French Revolution and wars of Napoleon, 1789-1815.
III. Nineteenth Century, 1815-1880.
I. THE "OLD REGIME."
" Infinite Providence, thou wilt make the day dawn. —
" But still struggles the twelfth hour of the night ; nocturnal birds of
prey shoot through the darkness ; spectres rattle ; the dead play their
antics; the living dream." — Richteb.
Aa. General Study on the ** Old Regime ^^ in Europe ^
age of Lewis XIV., Frederick the Great, Anne and
the Georges, Maria Theresa, Peter the Gre€U.
Chief original sources of its history : State documents,
consisting of government records, of treaties, diplomatic
correspondence, and laws ; contemporary letters and jour-
nals (notably of St. Simon and Pepys) ; pamphlets
and newspapers ; contemporary art and literature ; the
^ This general phrase can hardly be applied to England after 1688.
MODERN EUKOPB. 489
** Annual Register," published yearly since 1758, and con-
taining a record of the events and a retrospect of the
literature, science, and art of each year.
Chief historians: Same as for 2>; also Schlosser's His-
tory of the Eighteenth Century, and Lecky's History of
Rationalism in Europe, and his History of England.
1. Chronological Summary of Leading Events*
a. IiitennatianaL
Continued war between France and Spain over
boundaries. This wa3r ends by the Peace of the
Pyrenee%^ which gives France new territory to-
1648
«0
1660.
ward Spain and the Spanish Netherlands; at the same
time a marriage is arranged between Lewis XIV. and a
Spanish princess, the former giving a solemn promise to
claim no rights to Spanish lands by reason of this union,
in consideration of a large sum of money to be paid by
Spain.
Naval war between England and Holland, caused by
mutual irritation over colonial and commercial relations,
and finally precipitated by the passage of the " Navigation
Act " by the English parliament. By this act no goods
are to be brought from Asia, Africa, or America into Eng-
land save in English ships. The war ends by a treaty in
which the Dutch agree to salute the English flag when
they meet it on the high seas, and to repair injuries done
to English commerce in the East Indies and elsewhere. —
Commercial treaties advantageous to England, made be-
tween her and Denmark, Portugal, and Sweden ; Portugal
grants the English the exclusive right of commerce with
herself and her colonies. — One English fleet dispatched
by the government (Cromwell's) seizes Jamaica from
Spain, while another is sent out to annoy the Spanish
galleons. War with Spain, iu which the English join
440 SttJDIES 11^ GENERAL HISTORY.
forces with the French, and which is ended by the Peace
of the Pyrenees.
War of Sweden against Poland, because the king of
the latter country claims a right to the Swedish crown ;
Russia, Denmark, Germany, and the elector of Branden-
burg join Poland. The war ends with the Peace of Oliva
and two other treaties, by which it is agreed that the
Polish king shall renounce all claims to the Swedish
throne, and acknowledge Brandenburg as the independent
ruler of Prussia, while Denmark gives up all claims to
possessions in the Scandinavian peninsula.
On pretexts arising from his Spanish marriage,
Lewis XIV. invades and conquers parts of the
Spanish Netherlands and of the Spanish county
1660
TO
1700.
of Burgundy (Franche-ComtS^. England, Holland, and
Sweden form a Triple Alliance against him, and he signs a
temporary peace. He then buys off the king of England
(Charles II.) from this alliance by promising an annual
payment of $1,000,000 in return for English aid in his
wars with Spain and Holland; he also buys the aid of
Cologne and Miinster, and concludes a private treaty with
Sweden. Thus prepared, he attacks Holland; the latter
is aided by the elector of Brandenburg, the emperor, and
Spain. This war ends with the Peace of Nimwegen^ by
which Holland promises neutrality, Brandenburg gains
confirmation of possession of lands near the Rhine, Lewis
XIV. gains Franche-Comt^ and important parts of the
Spanish Netherlands (1678-1679). Lewis establishes
"Chambers of Reunion," or special French courts, to
decide just what towns and cities belong to him according
to treaty ; whatever is adjudged his, he occupies with his
troops, and thus gradually wins the larger part of Elsass
(Alsace) ; he treacherously seizes Strasburg, invades the
remainder of the Spanish Netherlands, occupies Lorraine.
MODERN EUROPE 441
The emperor protests, and makes a truce with Lewis, by
which, however, the latter retains his "Reunions'* and
Strasburg as well.
While France thus crowds back the boundaries of the
Empire from the west, the Turks attack her on the Hun-
garian side, take Belgrade, and besiege Vienna itself
(1683), whence they are turned back by Sobieski, king of
Poland, and Charles, duke of Lorraine ; they are driven
further and further southward, and the crown of Hungary
becomes hereditary in the House of Austria.
Charles II. of England, desirous of gaining supplies
from parliament, and supported by the English merchants,
who are jealous of the Dutch commercial power, sends
out a fleet to attack and annoy the Dutch colonial pos-
sessions ; New Amsterdam is seized by the English and
named New York ; new war with Holland follows, ended
by the Treaty of Breda, which confirms New York to Eng-
land and Surinam to Holland.
Lewis XIV. claims new lands toward the Rhine (^Pa-
latinate) on the pretext of inheritance, and at once begins
to occupy and devastate them by force of arms. The
emperor, the kings of Sweden and Spain, several German
princes, England and Holland, form the "Grand Alliance"
against him ; war is waged in Europe and the European
colonies, ending by the Peace of Ht/swick^ which leaves
things much as before ; Lewis is compelled to make some
restorations to Spain and a few to the emperor, but is
allowed to keep Elsass and Strasburg.
War of the Spanish Succession, — The king of
Spain, having willed his dominions to the grand-
son of Lewis XIV., who accepts the crown in his
1700
TO
1714.
behalf, the second Grand Alliance is formed by England,
Holland, and the emperor, with the avowed objects of
cpncj^uerijig the Spanish Netherlands as a protection for
442 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Holland, of conquering Italy away from Spain, of hinder-
ing France from gaining the Spanish Indies, and of gain-
ing favorable commercial terms for England and Holland
in the Spanish trade ; above all, the union of France and
Spain under the same crown is to be prevented. The
Alliance declares war against Lewis, and prosecutes it in
Italy, along the Rhine and the Danube, in Spain and the
Spanish possessions ; its most distinguished generals are,
for the imperial forces. Prince Eugene, a noble Savoyard,
and for the British, Marlborough. The war is closed in
1713 and 1714 by the treaties of Utrecht and Rastadt.
These treaties provide as follows : That France shall aban-
don the claims of the Stuarts to the English throne, cede
to Great Britain Acadia (Nova Scotia), Hudson's Bay, and
Newfoundland, and make such arrangements for the suc^
cession in France as shall prevent any possible union of
French and Spanish crowns ; that the elector of Branden-
burg shall be recognized by the title of King of Prusna^
and that France shall cede to him certain territories in
the Spanish Netherlands, on condition of the Catholic
religion being still upheld ; that the duke of Savoy shall
gain new Italian territories and become the king of Sicily ; *
that France shall surrender all those parts of the Spanish
Netherlands still held by her, and not otherwise disposed
of, to Austria ; that Spain shall give Minorca and Gibraltar
to England, on condition of neither Jews nor Moors being
allowed therein ; that the trade in African slaves shall be
given to an English company for thirty years ; that all
places on the right bank of the Rhine shall belong to the
empire; that the archduke of Austria (emperor) shall
retain all the parts of Italy which he occupies, namely,
Sardinia, the duchy of Milan, and the kingdom of Naples.
1 In 1720 Sicily was exchanged for Sardinia; thus the duke of Savoy
became the king of Sardinia.
MODERN EUROPE. 448
At the same time commercial treaties are concluded be-
tween France and Great Britain, and between France and
Holland.
Meanwhile war between Russia, Poland, Denmark, and
Sweden, each country desirous of gaining firmer foothold
on the Baltic lands with their important harbors. The
war ends with treaties (1719-1721) which give Russia the
Baltic lands about St. Petersburg, and gives the king of
Prussia, who had entered the war as a " free lance," added
teiTitories in Northern Germany.
Prince Eugene fights against the Turk in Hun-
gary, and Belgrade is won again for the emperor.
— Spain, dissatisfied with the Peace of Utrecht,
1714
TO
1740.
conquers Sardinia wholly and Sicily partially, whereupon
England, France, Holland, and the emperor form the
Quadruple Alliance against her, force her to retreat, and
renounce Sicily and Sardinia forever; the emperor and
the duke of Savoy exchange the two islands, and thus
the two Sicilies are again united, and the duke of Savoy
becomes the king of Sardinia (1720). — War of the Polish
Succession^ caused by a quarrel over the election to the
Polish throne ; the emperor and Russia support one can-
didate, the kings of France, Sardinia, and Spain the other ;
war ending in a treaty by which Sardinia gains a part of
the Milanese lands, Spain gains the two Sicilies for a
younger branch of its ruling house (Bourbon), Lorraine
is to pass to France, and its duke, son-in-law of the em-
peror (archduke of Austria), is granted the rule over
Tuscany. — The Turks once more win Belgrade.
Wars of Frederick the Great. — The two
first of these wars are parts of the general
European war of the "Austrian Sucoession."
1740
TO
1763.
This succession, in 1740, falls to Maria Theresa, daughter
of the preceding emperor, who had made her his heir by
444 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
the ^^ Pragmatic Sanction " ; since many of the princes of
Europe entirely disapprove of this disposal of the Austrian
inheritance, several of them combine to dispute it in behalf
of rival claims, and the War of the Austrian Succes^ian is
opened by the king of Spain and some of the German
princes, first among them being Frederick the Chreat^ king
of Prussia. On the grounds of some half-forgotten and
remote claims of inheritance, this king claims and seizes by
force of arms the duchy of Silesia. In return for it, he
promises Maria Theresa his alliance in war, his vote among
the electors for her husband as emperor, and $2,000,000.
Maria Theresa rejects the bargain ; the war now opens be-
tween Prussia, allied with France, Spain, Bavaria, Sardinia,
and Saxony on the one side, and Austria, supported by
Great Britain and Holland, on the other ; it closes (1748) by
the Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle, which confirms the " Prag-
matic Sanction," but gives Silesia to Frederick.
The " Seven Years' War " is the third of these wars
of Frederick. Austria, dissatisfied with the loss of Sile-
sia, forms secret alliances and plans against Frederick.
The latter, knowing these schemes, suddenly invades
Saxony, seizes Dresden, and precipitates war. Russia,
Saxony, Sweden, and France fight with Austria against
Frederick, who is supported by England and later by Peter
the Third, who brings Russia to his aid on account of his
personal admiration of the Prussian king. The war ends
by a treaty which confirms Silesia to Frederick, while the
latter promises to give his vote for emperor to Maria
Theresa's son.
Both of these wars are waged, on the part of England
and France, in their colonial possessions as well as in
Europe, causing, among other conflicts, the so-called
" King George's War " and " The Old French and Indian
War." These colonial wars end in the Peace of Pariz^ by
MODERN EUBOPE. 445
which France cedes to England Nova Scotia and Canada,
while a line drawn from the source to the mouth of the
Mississippi is to make the boundary between British and
French possessions on this continent; she also grants
certain lands in Africa, in the West and East Indies, and
promises to keep no troops in Bengal. Great Britain re-
stores certain West Indian territory to France; Spain
gives England Florida and other Spanish colonies east
of the Mississippi, the right of the Newfoundland fish-
eries, and the privilege of cutting logwood in the bay
of Honduras. France agrees to give Spain Louisiana,
including New Orleans.
Wars of Catherine the Second of Russia; the
formation of the United States. Catherine the
Second of Russia and Frederick the Great of
1768
TO
1789.
Prussia interfere in Polish affairs, dictating in regard to
the internal government of the country ; the Poles revolt,
and war ensues in which Russia decidedly gains the
upper-hand. Prussia and Austria, fearing the advance
of Russian power through Poland, make an agreement
to divide Poland between themselves and Catherine. This
agreement, carried out by force of arms, is known as the
First Partition of Poland (1772).— War of Russia and
Turkey, ending in the advance of Russia into the Crimea,
and in general towards the Black Sea, in her assuming
the position of protector of certain Christian peoples
under Turkish rule, and in her obtaining free commercial
navigation in Turkish waters. — A plan of armed neu-
trality at sea during time of war proposed by Russia
(1780), and soon supported by other powers of Europe ;
this plan demands the unmolested passage of neutral
ships, and declares that blockades must be enforced by
armed ships in order to be recognized.
Revolt of American colonies against England, followed
446 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
by the " War of Independence," in which they are joined
by France, Spain, and Holland ; the war ends in treaties
signed at Paris and Versailles, which recognize the United
States of America as an independent power; which give
them the right to the Newfoundland fisheries ; and which
leave the navigation of the Mississippi open both to the
United States and Great Britain.
STUDY ON I a.
Of what nature are these international relations ? What three groups
of countries do you distinguish in these relations ? What historical
and what geographical reasons can you give for these groups ? What,
in general, are the objects and causes of the wars of this period?
Compare these objects and causes with those of the wars from 1492
to 1648. In whose interests are these wars waged ? Wlio suffer from
them ? How do they suffer ? In whose hands is the disposal of Euro-
pean territory ? What relation between the feudal organization and
the object of a war like that of the Austrian or Spanish succession ?
What part of the feudal organization has overshadowed all the others?
Prove it. In what countries? In private life how would you charac-
terize the actions of men like Lewis XIV. (the Great), Charles II. of
England, and Frederick II. of Prussia (the Great) ? What similarity in
the royal titles of the kings of Prussia, Hungary, and Sardinia ? What
country \» evidently the strongest in Europe in the war of the Spanish
succession ? Prove it. Why should so many princes have combined
against Maria Theresa? What country grows most rapidly in Euro-
pean power during the period? Prove it. What coimtry is the
weakest in Europe during the whole period? Prove it. What
country greatly decreases in power during this time? Prove it.
What is your judgment of the strength of the empire? What is the
first great commercial and naval power of Europe in this age? The
second? Sustain your judgment by facts. What relation between
the geographical situation of Brandenburg, Savoy, and Austria, and
their importance in European wars? Wliat is the importance of
Gibraltar to England? During this age this phrase arose: "The
Balance of Power " ; explain it in such a connection as this : To pre-
serve the balance of power, the kings of Europe formed alliances
against Lewis XI V.
MODEBN EUBOPB. 447
b. Internal Affairs of England,
The Commonwealth, or the Unglish Republic.
The title and office of king and of the House of
Lords is abolished by the army under the lead of
1649
TO
1653.
Cromwell; the "Rump Parliament," consisting of about
fifty independents and commoners thoroughly in sympa-
thy with and supported by Cromwell and his " Iron-sides,"
governs England. Scotland proclaims Charles II. king
on his subscribing to their covenant, and Ireland rises in
bis favor. Cromwell defeats the Scotch at Worcester,
suppresses the Irish demonstration, and Charles escapes
disguised to France.
Growing difficulties between the army and the parlia-
ment; Cromwell at last forcibly turns out the "Rump,"
and a new parliament (" Barebones* ") is chosen, as thor-
oughly as possible in sympathy with his own ideas;
after a little they resign their power to Cromwell, who is
named " Lord Protector " of England.
The Protectorate. — Cromwell, Lord Pro-
tector of the Commonwealth of England, Scot-
land, and Ireland, rules according to " the
1653
TO
1660.
instrument of government," a written constitution defin-
ing the powers, rights, relations, and duties of the various
ruling powers of England. By this instrument parlia-
ments are to be triennial, are to have sole power of granting
supplies and levying taxes ; a standing army is to be sup-
ported, and the Lord Protector is to be the chief executor
of the state.
England is now divided into military districts, each
under a major-general, whose troops are supported by tax-
ing royalist estates. Episcopal clergymen are forbidden
to preach, and priests are banished; all publications are
examined by the government, and only those it approves
are allowed to circulate.
448 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
On the death of Oliver Cromwell (1658), his son Rieh<
ard is proclaimed Lord Protector in his stead. The army
and parliament quarrel; Richard, helpless to reconcile
them, resigns, and the English portion of the army expels
the parliament (re-assembled "Rump"); divisions arise
in the army, and Monk, the general of the Scottish troops,
marches on London and proclaims a " Free Parliament."
By this " Free Parliament," or convention, Charles II. is
proclaimed the king of England, on the conditions which
he himself offers, — a general amnesty to his enemies, and
toleration of all religious opinions not hurtful to the state
(^Declaration of Breda').
The Restoration. — Charles abolishes all the
old feudal dues, in consideration of a yearly in-
come of $6,000,000, and disbands the army. Par-
1660
TO
168S.
liament, under the lead of Clarendon, repeals the measures
of the preceding twenty-eight years ; orders the " Solemn
League and Covenant " to be burned, and passes the Cor-
poration Act, by which all magistrates must commune
with the Church of England, abjure the covenant, and
take an oath declaring it illegal to bear arms against the
king. Continual efforts on the part of the king and his
ministers to procure measures from parliament that will
favor Catholics, and increase the forces at the disposal of
the king ; continued efforts on the part of the parliament
and the nation to keep non-conformists and Catholics out
of office, and to see that the taxes and the troops raised
by the nation be used for national purposes. These efforts
end, (a), in the passing of the Test Act, which requires all
government officers to commune with the Church of Eng-
land, and to declare against transubstantiation ; this act
calls forth a strong and definite party of Dissenters ; (6),
in the formation of a small standing army under the king's
command, to be used in the foreign wars of the period ;
MODERN EUROPE. 449
(c), in a powerful agitation against Roman Catholics, cul-
minating in an unsuccessful movement to exclude the
king's Catholic brother James from the English throne.
The troubles threatened by these conflicting efforts on
the part of the king and parliament are averted, (a), by
changes of ministers, (6), by compromises, made mostly
by the king, (c), by pensions to Charles from Lewis XIV.
of France. That is, during this reign the great measures
of state are mostly planned and urged by a small group
of the king's advisers or friends, who form a sort of min-
istry, but whom the king changes when they too greatly
displease either himself or parliament ; now, too, the king
adopts a regular policy of compromise, thus often obtain-
ing his own way while warding off the civil conflict of the
preceding reign. When, however, parliament pushes him
too hard, Charles has recourse either to some pretex^t
for foreign war, which forces parliament to grant supplies
and troops, or else obtains a pension from Lewis, which
enables him to live and reign without calling on parlia-
ment. Although no serious break occurs between the
nation and the king, great discontent is caused by the
leaning of the court toward Catholicism, by the shifting
policy of Charles, and by his secret and disgraceful de-
pendence on the French king.
In 1685 James IL, his brother, accedes. He allows Ro-
man Catholic worship, favors Papists, brings them into
office, and forbids Protestant clergymen to preach doctri-
nal sermons ; he forms a camp of 18,000 men near London,
declares liberty of conscience throughout the realm, and
orders this declaration to be read in all the churches;
seven prominent bishops petition him not to insist upon
this reading ; the king commits them to the tower, and
brings them to judgment; they are, however, acquitted,
and on the day of their acquittal an invitation, signed by
450 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
noble and leading Englishmen, is sent to William of
Orange, husband of Mary, daughter of James II., to ^' save
England from a Catholic tyranny." William comes at
once to England, James II. flees to France, parliament
offers the crown to William and Mary jointly (1689),
on condition of their agreeing that law shall neither
be imposed nor suspended, nor moneys levied without
the consent of parliament; that it shall be lawful to
petition the sovereign ; that no standing army shall be
maintained without the consent of parliament; that elec-
tion for parliament and debates within it shall be free,
and that parliaments shall be frequently held (Deelaror
tion of Rights).
William and Mary accept, and the so-called " Revolu-
tion of 1688" is accomplished. The government moves
on in accordance with the Declaration of Rights, which
becomes a settled part of the constitution; from this time
on, moreover, the Commons assume as their right the
practices which had grown up under Charles II. of giving
the king a fixed income ; of demanding from the king
and his ministers estimates and accounts of supplies de-
manded, and of voting definite sums for definite purposes.
An act of toleration is passed, freeing dissenters from
punishment for not attending the services of the Estab-
lished Church, and the censorship of the press is abolished.
Lingering dissatisfaction and revolt in Scotland and Ire-
land suppressed.
During this reign the Ministry^ led by some chief, or
Prime Minister^ becomes a recognized and constitutional
part of the government, and the ministers are held re-
sponsible for the measures of the monarch.
Annej second daughter of James II., queen.
In 1707 England and Scotland are united by the
name of Great Britain, under one monarch and
! 1709
TO
1714.
MODERN EUROPE. 451
one parliament. During this reign the custom is estab-
lished that the ministry shall belong to the party which
has the majority in the House of Commons. Parties
(Whig and Tory) become a strongly marked feature of
English politics.
Souse of Hanover or Brunswick ; William and
the first three Georges. Chief interests of Great
Britain, foreign and colonial. See a.
1714
TO
1790.
STUDY ON b.
What is the real nature of the government named the Common-
wealth? The Protectorate? What resemblance between Crom-
well and the kings of the " Old Regime " ? What difference ? What
two important changes in the relation to the king and the state are
made at the time of the Restoration ? What do the acts of the first
freely elected parliament of the Restoration indicate in ^regard to the
religious attitude of the majority of English people ? How will you
describe their nature ? After the Restoration, what or who holds the
strongest political power in England ? Prove it. What are the two
points of James' offence against England? In what ways is the
acceptance of the '^ Declaration of Rights " a revolution ? In whose
hands does it place the chief political power of England? What
power has the House of Commons U> force the government to yield to
its wishes? Illustrate. What new organ becomes a part of the
British government? Whom does this organ represent? What new
organization among the people is called forth by this organ ? When
does the government of England cease to be properly classed as a
feudal government? What remains of its old feudal organization?
2. Famous Worhs^ FounckUions, Enterprises, InveU'
tians, Investigations, and Ikiscoveries of the Period.
a. Publications of the Press,
In England, the most important books of the last half
of the seventeenth century are Milton's " Paradise Lost,"
a poem based on the story of the temptation and fall of
Adam; Bunyan's "Pilgrim's Progress," an allegory
452 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
deBcribing the progress of the human soul from sin to full
salvation and a heavenly home; Butler's "Hudibras," a
poem satirizing the English Puritans; Hobbes' "Levia-
than " (see p. 434) ; Newton's "Principia," enunciating the
principle of gravitation and the system of the physical
universe ; this work is made known to France by Vol-
taire; the poems of Dryden, the most famous of which
satirize contemporary events and persons in political life ;
Locke's "Essay on the Human Understanding," written
to show that human sensation and experience are the only
sure bases of human knowledge, and happiness the final
aim of conduct, a work popularized in France by Voltaire;
a mass of ephemeral pamphlets, written on the various
political and religious questions which are agitating Eng-
land.
The notable works of the eighteenth century are: Adam
Smith's "Wealth of Nations," a book setting forth the
natural laws of trade, especially that of "Supply and
Demand," and considered to have founded the science of
" Political Economy " or the study of these laws, at least
among English speaking nations ; Gibbon's " Decline and
Fall of the Roman Empire," a history of Rome founded
on the study of original and contemporary authorities;
Hume's " History of England."
A mass of controversial books and pamphlets, on the one
side attacking, on the other defending, the established
dogmas of the Christian church. On both sides the argu-
ments are drawn from the observed facts of nature, from
history, and from the conclusions of the human reason.
Of the opponents of Christianity Hume and Gibbon are
the most famous, while Butler's "Analogy". and Bishop
Berkeley's writings are perhaps its strongest defences.
Pope's " Essay on Man," a didactic poem, dealing with
the powers, relations, and aims of human existence; Swift's
MODERN EtTROPE. 468
" Gulliver's Travels," an imaginary journey, satirizing exist-
ing social and political institutions and customs; Addison's
"Spectator," and other periodical papers designed for
popular reading and discussing questions of mental and
moral philosophy, of society, and politics; Johnson's
" Rasselas " or the " Happy Valley," a romance showing
that every condition of life has its miseries, which should
be met by a spirit of philosophic or religious content.
The novels of Richardson, De Foe, Goldsmith, Smollett,
and Fielding, conveying moral teaching through stories
whose characters and situations are drawn from the study
of contemporary life, often from that of the middle classes. —
The parliamentary speeches of the elder and younger Pitt,
of Burke and Fox, on the political issues of the day.
The philosophic and legal writings of Jeremy Bentham,
who maintained that the fundamental aim of society, law,
and government should be " the greatest happiness to the
greatest number," and that utility should be the prime
consideration of all actions and institutions. His writings
were very famous on the continent, especially in France.
Johnson's Dictionary and Chamber's Cyclopedia, the
first important publications of this sort in the English lan-
guage ; before the close of the century, the first edition of
the Cyclopedia Britannica appeared.
In France, from 1648 to 1700, the most famous writings
are the tragedies of Racine and Corneille, written on clas-
sical themes and models, and the comedies of Molidre,
satirizing affectation in contemporary literary, social, and
religious life ; — the mathematical discoveries and specula-
tions of Pascal, who was also noted as a religious writer.
The famous French books of the eighteenth century
are the "Social Contract" and the "Emile" of Rousseau,
the former a powerful, bitter, and popular criticism on
existing governments and societies ; the latter a work on
454 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBT.
education, proposing the study of physical nature as the
basis of all culture, a theory of education largely borrowed
from Locke; — the essays, letters, and historical works of
Voltaire, containing the keenest and most effective satirical
attacks upon the contemporary state, church, and society;
— Montesquieu's "Spirit of the Laws," a book in which he
discussed the philosophy of states, the benefits, the dan-
gers, and evils of various forms of government, the relations
of liberty and taxation ; throughout this work, the British
constitution is regarded as the best existing form ; — the
philosophical writings of the sensationalists, who followed
Locke's philosophy to the extreme, in maintaining that
sensation is the basis of morals as well as of knowledge ; —
the "Natural History" of Buffon, containing a brilliant and
accurate description of a large portion of the animal king-
dom, together with philosophical theories of their relations
to each other and their environment; — the "Cyclopedia,"
a work perhaps suggested by that of Chambers, edited
and written by the best contemporary authors; it paid
especial attention to all subjects connected with natural
science; — the first standard French dictionary also ap-
peared in this century.
In Germany, the most famous publications of the seven-
teenth century were the philosophic works of the Dutch-
man, Spinoza, who sought to discover by reason the nature
of God and the universe, and their relations to the human
mind, and who claimed that his conclusions were in accord-
ance with the teachings of Christianity.
In the eighteenth century appeared the works of Leib-
nitz, dealing with problems of mental philosophy, mathe-
matics, and optics; in philosophy, he contested the
conclusions of the French sensationalists; — the most fa-
mous philosophic work of the age, Kant's "Critique of
Pure Reason," in wh' ' ^ined the origin, extent,
MODERN EUROPE. 455
and limits of human reason, and argued for the existence of
God and the absolute obligations of morality ; — Goethe's
"Faust," a drama embodying the temptations, fall, and
restoration of a human soul ; the dramas of Goethe and
Schiller, dealing largely with historical epochs and charac-
ters, studied from historical sources, and from observation of
actual life ; — a mass of lyric poetry ; — Lessing's " Nathan
the Wise," a dramatic poem in which a Jew, a Christian,
and a Mohammedan discuss religious tolerance and uni-
versal morality, reaching conclusions favorable to both.
The famous publications of other countries during this
period were, in Italy, the writings of Vico, who was the
first to found any philosophy of history, and who main-
tained the existence of Providence in the greater affairs of
men ; the dramas of Alfieri, who founded Italian tragedy,
using classical materials, but pure and noble Italian forms, —
In America, the political speeches, pamphlets, and essays
of Franklin, Washington, Jefferson, Adams ; the Declara-
tion of Independence. — In Sweden, the botanical work of
Linnaeus, who was the first systematically and thoroughly
to classify the various genera of plants.
b. Important InvestiffotionSy Studies^ and Hesearches of
the Period,
Many experiments to separate matter into its original
elements, resulting in Priestley's famous discovery of oxy-
gen in the seventeenth century in England, followed by
the discovery of many new elements, and the clear defini-
tion of chemistry. — The observations and experiments of
Huygens in Holland and of Newton in England on the
nature of light and its action on various sorts of lenses ;
the telescope is consequently greatly improved, and new
laws of optics are discovered. — During the whole period
men are engaged in observing and experimenting and
456 STUDIES IK GENERAL HISTORY.
theorizing on the nature of light, heat, and electricitj.
(See also Newton, Linnaeus, Buffon,)
c. Material Improvements of Period,
Lewis XIV. began to improve French roads during his
reign, an improvement slowly extended to other European
countries. — During his reign also (1667), Paris was well
and thoroughly lighted, and before the close of the period
Vienna and London had followed this example. — The
building of canals, especially in England. — The invention
of the " spinning-jenny," by which the work of many hand-
laborers could be done by one machine (developed by Har-
greaves, Arkwright, Crompton, weavers) ; the invention
of the Steam-Enginb, by the Scotch working-engineer
James Watt, and its application to manufactures and to
mining ; — the discovery of how to smelt iron with coal
instead of with wood. — Many small and progressive
improvements in microscopes, telescopes, clocks, pumps,
electrical conductors, and all sorts of scientific apparatus.
d. Artistic Prodiictions,
The most famous are the musical compositions of Bach,
Beethoven, and Mozart (German) ; — the landscape-paint-
ings of Claude Lorraine (French) ; — the portrait-paintings
of Gainsborough and Reynolds (English) ; — the carica-
tures of Hogarth (English), satirizing contemporary life.
e. Famous Foundations^ Institutions^ and Movements.
The foundation of European colonies in North America ;
the English and Dutch (in New York) established the
thirteen colonies which became the United States ; — the
French settled more thoroughly Canada and Nova Scotia
and established scattered forts along the Great Lakes, the
St. Lawrence, the Mississippi, and their tributaries* In
MODERN EUROPE.
467
India, English and French established trading-posts, and
the English established a system of government by which
India was more or less ruled by English merchants in the
interests of English enterprise. — The establishment of
great business or trading corporationSj such as the Bank
of England and East India Company of London. — The
establishment of societies or academies of wealthy and
learned men, for the advancement of science and learning.
BIRD'S-ETE VIEW OP THl PALAOB 09 VSRSAILLEa
Of these the most famous was " The Royal Society " in
England, whose " business was," says one of its early mem-
bers, " to discourse and consider of philosophical enquiries
and such as related thereunto, as Physick, Anatomy,
Geometry, Astronomy, Navigation . . . Chymicks, Mechan-
icks, and Natural Experiments"; such academies were
founded also in Germany, Russia, and France during the
period under royal patronage. — The observatory Rt Green-
458 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
wich was established under Charles II., and that at Paris
under Lewis XIV. — In the middle of the eighteenth
century, the British Museum was founded to serve as a
depository for collections to illustrate art, history, and
science. — Under Charles II. the Chelsea hospitul for dis-
abled soldiers, and under William and Mary that at Green-
wich for disabled sailors were established ; in Paris, Lewis
XIV. built the "Hotel des Invalides" for old and sick
soldiers. — This age saw the erection of many royal palaces
and fine town and country houses for the nobility ; of the
palaces, Versailles, built by Lewis XIV., has become the
most famous.
The latter part of the eighteenth century was marked,
especially in England, by much agitation for the improve-
ment of human conditions, especially among the silent
and neglected classes. This agitation was carried on in
behalf of the poor and sick, in behalf of the imprisoned
and the enslaved, in behalf of the savages of America and
the Hindoos of Asia ; it resulted in the establishment of
various hospitals and charities, in prison reform (John
Howard), in the condemnation of British cruelty and
oppression in India, and, under the lead of Wilberforce,
in the abolition of negro slavery in the British colonies
(early in following period). These movements were
accompanied by a great religious revival among the lower
classes (Wesleys), and by a reform within the English
Church.
STUDY ON 2.
What relation between the literature and the events of the last half
of the seventeenth century in England? Give five illustrations.
What do you find common to the literature of France and England ?
What suhjects are of general interest throughout Europe? What
three suhjects new to European thought appear during this time ?
What bases of truth are men seeking for? Illustrate. What rela-
tion between the literature and the life of this period, religious, social.
MODERN BUEOPE. 469
moral ? What new classes of literature appear ? What does each of
these classes tell us of the taste, intelligence, or interest of the time?
Of these classes, which has developed greatly in our own day ? In
which country is the literature most revolutionary ? What relation
between English and French thought? What is the general attitude
of the publications of the period toward toleration? Freedom?
Morality ?
Make a list of the new arts, sciences, industries, or activities shown
by 6, c, cf, and e. Wliich of these has further developed in our own
century? What relation between the material and intellectual prog-
ress of the period and the kings ?
I. kh* Special Study of the '^Old Regime*' in France.
Age of Lewis XIV.9 Lewis XV., and Lewis XVI.
(Eighteenth Century).
Chief contemporary sources of its history: The "(7a-
hiers^^ of the departments of France, called in by the
States-General of 1789, and containing memoranda of griev-
ances, and official statements of conditions; private letters
and diaries ; the travels of Arthur Young, an Englishman
who made careful observations in France on the eve of
the Revolution ; the works of Voltaire, Rousseau, and
other writers of the time.
Chief historians of period: De Tocqueville, Taine,
Stephens.
460
STUDIES IN GENBRAX. HISTORY.
— Q P
HI
1-^
I
5 08
lis
III!
I
•9 ^
&^
& s 5 5 c .2
00,0
s-
I
S -^ ^
I
ft S § o
<5
o ^
S2I ft;§S|
>
I
f
SCO .^ 2
§ ^ 5
O 1-^ o
4!.
a
o -. ^ ^
60 bfi
ft S .2 S
g 5 2 ^
I
I
7S g:
a
O ^3
0) et a>
6 -I
08 O
ou 1^ .sr .s s
-^S o »? e
■^ ^ o S
b § « fl e
1 '5 ^
,^ to "w
5 §^
s
1§ II
MODERN EUROPE.
461
X
'O _§ 'd
1-2 IS.
g .
- i
2 •« -a -g 5
^ o
a
a> * 5
i - -
3 - *- "
3 2 5 g -p
■5 3 e "SJ s o .5:
a
es
^3
a
lis 3
^ * C ^ 53
5^ 'C a a S3 JS
I
s s
si
5 5^2
^3
C
1
I
w
a
o
!<
?
fl -^
pa
3 "2 I 5 I
462 STUDIES IK GENERAL HISTORY.
2. Extracts and Facts Illustrative of Organization.
Six iDinLsters divide the kingdom geographically be-
tween them; thus the minister of war has charge of all
the affairs of Dauphiny and some other territor}''; the
minister of foreign affairs regulates pensions and all the
affairs of Normandy and a few other provinces. Some of
these provinces largely manage their own affairs ; others,
the king rules absolutely; in some, one per cent of taxes is
assessed, in othei*s, a large per cent; in taking goods from
one province to another, duties are always exacted at the
frontier, but the amount levied varies with every boun-
dary. If a village church needs repairing, if the road is
bad, if a parish-meeting is to be called, if the "falling
gables of the parsonage even of a village most remote
from Paris" are to be rebuilt, the king's oflftcer attends to
it. If the king wants to make a new road or a new palace,
he seizes the land and tears down the houses of those who
live on the spot. Perhaps he pays them, perhaps not.
Punishments are left to the discretion of the judges;
but* in general, when death is the penalty, nobles are be-
headed, others burnt, broken at the wheel, torn in pieces,
or hung. Says one writer, " A poor wretch, whose chil-
dren have nothing to eat, engages in some contraband
trade ; is found out and punished. A gentleman, riding
in his post-chaise, is caught doing the same thing ; he kills
the custom-house officer and gets off free." Sometimes
men are judged by the king's law, sometimes by the law
of the Church, sometimes by tlie law of the province or
the town ; in one part of Auvergne, the i)eople obey the
written Roman law, in another the customary law. In
one part of France, a brigand with a band of two hundred
men is able to desolate the country for ten years without
being brought to judgment.
Not only do the judges buy their places, but sometimes
MODEBK EUROPE. 468
Wo or three men hold the same office at the same time.
" An officer, instead of raging and storming over the year-
book, busies himself in inventing some new. disguise for
a masked-ball ; a magistrate, instead of counting the con-
victions he has secured, provides a magnificent supper."
In 1692, Lewis XIV. displaces in favor of his own nomi-
nees the elected mayors and judicial assessors of every
city except Lyons ; in one city alone he creates and sells
nineteen royal offices. The sixty royal tax-collectors
sometimes levy twice as much as they give to the treasury.
From the close of the sixteenth to the end of the eigh-
teenth century, the royal government breaks its word
fifty-six times. — For the war of 1688, the French people
pay about 1200,000,000, for that of 1701, .twice that
amount ; not to mention a heavy peusion paid to the king
of England during several years to keep him quiet and to
help him in his despotic designs at home.
In the array there are more than one thousand generals;
in one single regiment of four hundred eighty-two men,
there are one hundred and forty-two officera. One duke be-
comes a colonel at eleven, another at seven, another a
major at twelve. These boys are relations or favorites of
people at court, who buy or beg the offices for them from
the king. The common soldiers are chosen by lot from
the lowest class. Those chosen "conceal themselves in the
forest, where they must be pursued with arms in the hand.
In one canton . . . the young men cut off their thumbs to
escape the draft." The officers have plenty of money,
good living, leisure, pleasure; the soldier "has six sous
a day, bread fit for dogs, and . . . kicks like those given to
a dog"; add to this, no chance of promotion.
Catholicism is the religion of the State ; in 1685, by
the revocation of the Edict of Nantes, Protestants are
forbidden to worship in public ; all pastors must leave the
464 STUDIES IN GBNEBAL HISTORY.
realm in fifteen days ; the galleys for life ... if they dare
to officiate again; all children must be educated as
Catholics.
The " bank of conversions " is an institution peculiar to
the " Old Regime." It is a fund out of which people are
hired to be converted; some need conversion several
times; others have troops billeted on them until they
subscribe to the religion of the State, when they are to be
free for two years. This last arrangement is known by
the name of the ^^ Dragonnades."
The income of the Church may be reckoned at $26,000,-
000 ; in some parts of France, the clergy own more than
one-half the territ^'jy. Over these domains they have the
same feudal rights as the nobles. On the other hand, the
parish priest gets about f 100 a year ; he may have several
parishes to look after and visit, perhaps on foot; he must
teach the village school ; advise and comfort the peasants.
In trade, if a man wants to sell hats, he must belong to
the hatter's guild ; this may be entered by being the son
of a guildman, by paying a large sum of money, by
passing a severe examination set by the guild ; once in, he
can neither sell caps nor gloves, but only hats, for other
guilds have the exclusive right to sell caps, others to sell
gloves. So with other trades; at Rouen, one company
buys grain for the city, another delivers it, another grinds
it; not only must each company do its own particular
work and no other, but the people must deal with it
and with no one else. The guilds pay the king large sums
of money for these exclusive privileges. The king's
government, we are told by De Tocqueville, constantly
dictates how long pieces of cloth shall be woven, and what
pattern is to be chosen.
Voltaire, wishing to publish in France the wonderful
discoveries of Newton, is forbidden by the authorities to
MODERN EUROPE. 465
print his work. — In 1770, Imbert translates Clarke's letters
on Spain, one of the best works then existing on that
country, but it is suppressed as soon as it appears; the
reason given is that it contains some remarks on the pas-
sion of Charles in. for hunting, which are considered
disrespectful to Lewis XV., himself very fond of the chase.
These instances are typical out of a large number.
8. Attempted Reforms in 1.
Turgot, the first minister of Lewis XVI., 1774, proposes
to do away with the forced and unpaid labor of the peas-
ants ; to tax the lands of the nobles and clergy ; to give
a larger part of the revenues of the clergy to the parish
priests ; to allow men to worship according to their con-
sciences ; to fix one code of law for the whole kingdom ;
to abolish the guilds and the fees for engaging in trade,
and to make the trade in grain entirely free ; to make
thought free, and to establish a great system of public
schools ; but in 1776 the king dismisses him, because the
queen, the nobles, and the clergy oppose him.
Necker, his next minister, suppresses many of the offices
about the king's household; he frees the serfs on the
king's domain, is the first to publish to the French people
any account of the income and outlay of the government ;
but courtiers and officials alike demand his dismissal.
Necker's successor, Calonne, is obliged to own an annual
deficit of $20,000,000 ; calls for a land tax on all classes,
for economy in the administration and in the king's house-
hold, and at last threatens to appeal to the people. His dis-
missal is demanded from the king, and he is sent into exile.
Brienne, the next royal minister, can find no way of
raising money, and resigns after having proposed to reform
the administration of justice, the system of education, and
abolish Protestant disabilities.
466 STUDIES m general history.
Necker is now recalled, and advises that all citizens be
admitted to public employments, that the press shall be
free ; but the opposition is such as to force the calling of
the States-General (see p. 836) in order to raise money for
the king, and to deliberate on the unfortunate affairs of
the realm.
STUDY ON r, 2, 3.
What name do you give to such a goyemment as that of France
under the " Old Regime " ? Make a list of the ways in which it is an
unjust government. An oppressive one. A weak one. What is its
support ? What great diflSculty evidently hampers it ? What grave
evils follow from this difficulty ? What governments does it in any
way resemble ? What do you think about the changes proposed by
the king's ministers ? What interests evidently stand in the way of
reform ?
4. Extracts, Stories, Facts, and St€Uistics Illustrative of
Life of the Time.
The king lives mostly in his palace at Versailles. He has
some ninety gentlemen to take care of his bed-chamber, nearly
five hundred for his table, and more than fifteen hundred to
attend to his horses. These offices about the royal person and
household are considered the most honorable in the kingdom,
since they are all filled by nobles whose pay is high, while their
duties are very light or even nominal. Besides the household
officers, the king has his guards, French and Swiss, cavalry
and infantry, more than nine thousand men, costing the people
annually more than $1,500,000. When the king makes a jour-
ney, all these people must accompany him, at the expense of
the State.
In 1783, no less than $33,800 is paid for feeding the king's
horses, and more than $10,000 for feeding his hunting-dogs.
The coffee and bread for each of the ladies of the bed-chamber
costs $400 a year. The court-kitchen, according to the printed
register, employs two hundred and ninety-five cooks, and the
MODERN EUROPE. 467
total number of persons to be supported by the king amounts
to more than fifteen thousand.
The king also gives many presents ; this is especially true
of Lewis XV. ; but we find that Lewis XVI., in 1785, gives
away more than $27,000,000, and Von Sybel reckons that the
annual average given in this way should be reckoned at
$20,000,000. As for Lewis XV., it is known that in one year
he spends about $36,000,000 on his own pleasures. As for the
palace of Veraailles itself, it costs more than $50,000,000,
while ^'on the bridges, roads, public and scientific institutions"
not more than $7,000,000 are expended.
Around the king are the dukes, counts, and marquises, who
care for his household ; among them are a few men, mostly of
the middle class, whom the king has asked to take charge of
public business. These are the ministers; as for the nobles,
they spend their time with the king, gaming, hunting, making
a fine api>earance, amusing themselves.
All these nobles have great estates in the country, which
they rarely visit. Arthur Young, an English traveller of the
time, tells us that the nobility neither practise nor talk of
"agriculture" ; and as for their own lands, two of the greatest
properties of the time are described as being " wastes, deserts,
bracken," while the residence is '^probably found in the midst
of a forest, very well peopled with deer, wild boars, and wolves" ;
the owners are so lightly taxed that it is generally said that
they pay no taxes. Yet one fails on a debt of $7,000,000, and
another dies owing $16,000,000, and a third when charged bj*
the king with being largely in debt, replies, '*I will ask my
agent and inform your majesty." Another owes more than
$10,000 to her shoemaker^ another more than $30,000 to a
tailor.
Walpole writes, "It is no dishonor (in Paris) to keep public
gaming-houses ; there are one hundred and fifty of the first
qnalit}' in Paris who live by it. . . . Even the princesses of the
blood have their share in it."
St. Simon tells us that a baron, finding that the hut of a
468 STUDIES IN GENEEAIi HISTORY.
peasant destroyed the symmetry of his park, brought the man
to his own house, and kept him there while they removed the
poor man's cottage elsewhere ; a joke at which the king and
his coult laughed heartilj-.
St. Simon also tells us of a duke who '' was better liked by
the king and had more influence in society than anybody/' but
was a cheat and a gambler, while there were young men in '' this
singular society " who admitted to their tables notorious crimi-
nals, who had ^^ animating stories to tell" of their own deeds
" as forgers or highwaymen."
The daughter of the king's nephew and many of her compan-
ions are caiTied home drunk to Versailles, one night, while on
another occasion the king finds the ladies of his household
engaged in smoking, with pipes which they have borrowed
from the Swiss guards; during the reign of Lewis XIV.,
many of the nobility are detected in secretly poisoning
people.
The great middle class (bourgeoisie) compose the guilds, and
are the artisans and merchants, manufacturers and traders of
France. If a man pays his debts or has none, he is called
" bourgeois" ; if he marries the woman he loves, " very much
of a bourgeois," the term being used as one of ridicule.
Among the bourgeois, says an observer, ^' every one speaks
according to his views, inclinations, and genius ; the women
look after the house, the men after the day's business, coming
home to some quiet game." " While the great neglect to learn
anything ... of the interest of princes and public affairs, and
even of their own, . . . citizens instruct themselves in the . . .
interests of the kingdom, study the government, . . . know
what are the strong and weak points of a whole State."
The peasants live in houses of stone or eailh, without
windows and with earth chimneys. They are dressed in rags,
and never taste meat ; there are whole districts where they eat
grass, and thousands who live on the bark of trees ; they can
neither take game from the forest, nor fish from the stream, for
these belong to the lord of the estate. They have old and
awkward tools, and can get no better ; when the crops are up,
the pigeons and the rabbits and the deer destroy much that the
l^easant can raise ; but he cannot protect himself under pain of
heavy punishment, since the lord must have the pleasure of the
bunt, and when the hunt comes, hoi*se and hound may trample
down his only wheat-field. The tax-gatherer never fails to
come to get money for the king or money for the Church. Land
worth $800 may pay $600 for taxes ; it will surely pay $400 ;
can the peasant not pay, his furaitnre must be sold to meet the
tax. If he want salt, he must buy it of the king ; should be not
need it, still he must buy or go to prison or the galleys ; this
is the hated '^GabeUe,*' As for his lord, to him he must pay
for feudal dues, a part of all his fields, his orchards or his vine-
yard yield. For a certain number of days each year he must
give his own labor and that of his oxen and his horses, even
though the lord should choose to take him from the very harvest-
field {corvies) . If he is bound to give five days of such labor,
and has a bad lord, he may be forced to give one hundred.
He must bake in the lord's oven and grind at the lord's mill,
though the miller and baker would do it cheaper and better.
He can sell no wine after vintage, until the lord has had a
chance to sell for thirty or f ort}- days in the first market ; he
roust pay a toll on the road, a toll at the ferry, a tax on all he
takes to the fair. If he wish to cure the sick or discover a
thief, he will "go to a sorcerer, who divines this by means of
a sieve." In 1789, it is told and believed among the soldiers,
that the princes and counts of Paris are throwing flour into the
Seine so as to starve the people. '' In Auvergne ... a conta-
gious fever making its appearance, two hundred men assemble
to destroy the house of a man whom they believe has caused
it by sorcery." There are very few schools; in one part of
France but ten in fifty parishes.
For two centuries, at least, before the Revolution, the favorite
resort of the Parisian populace is the place of execution, where
they see the law carrying out its horrible punishments with all
sorts of tortures, such as tearing by red-hot pincers.
470 STUDIES IK GENERAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON LIFE OF THE "OLD REGIME."
Make a list of all the ways ia which the king injures France hy
his style of life. To what class is he evidently in debt? In what
way will they regard his style of life? What other classes injure
France? What part of France or of her people is injui'ed? How
injured? What part of the French people is sound? Name the
ways in which it is sound. Name all the ways in which the French
peasant, or man of the fourth estate, is an undesirable citizen. What
part of the French people will try to destroy this " Old Regime " ?
What part will try to reform it? Give reasons for each of these
two answers. How far do you attribute the character of French
life under the "Old Regime "to the organization of the State?
Illustrate from each class of people. Wliat were the ideals of this
period ? How were these ideals injurious ?
6. Eortract8 and Sayings Illustrative of Thought and
Feeling under ^< Old Begime.'^
a. From Bossuet.
" The royal authority and person are sacred." " Kings are
gods, and share in a manner the divine independence." '^ As
all perfection and every virtue is united in God, so all the
power of private individuals is united in the person of the
king."
b. From the Kings.
" I myself am the State." "The worst calamity which can
befall a king is ... to be obliged to receive the law from his
people." **All property of whatever sort within our realm
belongs to us in virtue of the title of king." " It is the will of
God, who has given kings to man, that they should be serveti
as his vicegerents." "It is the will of God that every subject
should implicitly obey his king."
" In dispensing with the exact observance of treaties, we do
not violate them ; for the language of such instruments is never
to be understood literally."
" We ought to consider the good of our subjects more than
our own, . . . and it is a fine thing to deserve from them the
name of father as well as master." (Lewis XIV.)
MODEBK EUROPE. 471
^' I know what are the rights of the authority I have received
from God. It is not for any of my subjects to decide what are
their extent or to endeavor to limit them." (Lewis XV.)
^' It is legal,'* said Lewis XVI., in speaking of a very illegal
act, " it is legal because I will it."
c. Frorm, Voltaire.
''It may be a question which is the most useful member of
the State, the well-powdered nobleman who knows the precise
hour at which the king rises and retires for the night, ... or
a merchant who enriches his country, issues orders from his
counting-house to Surat and Cairo, and contributes to the world
at large."
********
'' How I love the boldness of the English! how I love men
who say what they think ! "
" I wish to write a history, not of wars, but of society ; and
to ascertain how men lived in the interior of their families, and
what were the arts which they commonly cultivated." ^
d. Prom Rousseau,
''Your verj- governments are the cause of the evils which
they pretend to remedy. Ye scepters of iron ! ye absurd laws,
3'e we reproach for our inability to fulfil our duties on earth ! "
"I am . . .an active and intelligent being, and ... I dare
clain: the honor of thinking."
" O conscience, divine instinct, immortal and celestial voice,
the unfailing guide of an ignorant and finite but free and intel-
ligent being." " There is no sacred and inviolable charter
binding a people to the forms of an established constitution.
The right to change these is the first guarantee of all rights."
1 In an important hietory of France put forth in 1770, the authors regret
that historians had always given the history of a single man rather thac
that of a people. "In the work of Montesquieu, on the 'Spirit of the
Laws/ he studies the way in which ... the legislation of a people is
connected with their climate, soil, and food."
47^ STUD££d IK 6EK£BAL HiSTOftT.
^^ All being equal through the law, they must be brought up
together and in the same manner. The law must regenerate
. . . their studies. They must, at the very least, take part in
public exercises, in horse-races, in games of strength and of
agility."
^^ He who first enclosed a plot of ground, and took it into his
head to sa},' This belongs to me,' and found people simple enough
to believe him, was the true founder of civil society. What
crimes, what wars, what murders, what misery, and what
horrors would have been spai*ed the human race if some one,
pulling up the landmark and filling up the ditch, had cried out
to his fellows : Be wary of that impostor, you are lost if you
forget that no one has the right to the ground, and that its fruits
are the property of all ! "
"The deputies of the i)eople are not, nor can they be, its
representatives ; they are simply its commissioners, and can
establish no final compact. Every law not ratified by the
people themselves is null and is no law."
The new "Heloise" of Rousseau was only let out of the
public libraries for an hour at a time, and in 1788, Marat was
to be heard reading the '' Social Contract'* of the same author
in the streets of Paris to enthusiastic hearers.
€. Prom Helvetius and his Followers.
*'In England, the people are respected; every citizen can
take some part in the management of affairs, and authors are
allowed to enlighten the public respecting its own interests."
Helvetius taught that all notions of duty and of virtue must
be tested by their relation to the senses, that everything we
have and everything we are, we owe to the external world. . . .
Condillac, in his widely-read work on the " mind," asserts that
** everything we know is the result of sensation . . . and that to
nature we owe all of our knowledge."
"To preserve one's self, to be happy, is instinct, right, and
duty."
" But, to be happy, contribute to the happiness of others : if
MODERN EUROPE. 478
you wish them to be usefal to you, be useful to them. . . ."
^^ Be good, because goodness links hearts together ; be gentle,
because gentleness wins affection ; ... be citizens, because
a country is necessary to ensure your safety and well-being."
/. From Taine.
^^ A small temple to Friendship is erected in a park. A little
altar to Benevolence is set up in a private closet. Dresses
(t Ux Jean Jacques Rousseau are worn analogous to the princi-
ples of that author. Headdresses are selected with puffs au
sentiment, in which one may place the portrait of one's daughter,
mother, canary, or dog, the whole garnished with the hair of
one's father or iutimate friend."
"The queen arranges a village for herself at the Trianon,
where, dressed in a frock of white cambric muslin and a gauze
neck-handkerchief, and with a straw hat, she fishes in the lake
and sees her cows milked."
"The Duchess of Bourbon goes out early in the morn-
ing incognito to bestow alms, and to see the poor in their
garrets."
" When a society-author reads his work in a drawing-room,
fashion requires that the company should utter exclamations
^nd sob."
" Bachaumont, in 1762, notices a deluge of pamphlets, tracts,
and political discussions, a rage for arguing on financial and
government matters." As the Revolution approaches, " agri-
culture, economj-, reform, philosophy," writes Walpole, " are
tJie style, even at the court." Another contemporary writes : —
"The exiled parliaments are studying public rights at their
sources, and conferring tc^ether on them."
STUDY ON THOUGHT AND FEELING UNDER "OLD REGIME."
What ideas were evidently abroad in regard to the relation between
loyalty to the king and to religion ? The relation between the king
and tiie law ? The king and property ? What historic origin for
^ach of these ideas ? AVhat faults do such ideas cultivate ? What
474 bTUDIES IK GENERAL HISTORY.
reason for a severe censorship of men like Voltaire and Bousseaa?
How were their ideas and those of their contemporaries dangerous to
the ** Old Regime " ? Was the feeling of the noble and rich for the
poor a fashionable sentiment or a sincere sympathy? Prove it
What trace of English influence on French thought? Find other
traces in the general history of the period. What thoroughly modern
ideas do you find in these extracts ? What ideas that are still con-
sidered dangerous? What excuse for these dangerous ideas to be
found in the '*01d Regime''? What facts prove the power of Vol-
taire? Of Rousseau? What spirit appears in the extracts &om
Rousseau? What do Helvetius and his followers make the founda-
tion of right-doing ? What danger in this ?
In Oeneral. — Why was thoughtfulness dangerous to the ** Old
Regime"? What great difficulties in the way of reform? What
special difficulty in the peasant class ? How did the badness of the
French roads ajffect the ease of reform? In what ways did the people
need Liberty, Fraternity, Equality? What force in the motto chosen
for this study (p. 438) ?
IL THE FIRST FRENCH REVOLUTION AND THE WARS
OF NAPOLEON. STATES-GENERAL OF 1789 TO CON-
GRESS OF VIENNA, 1815.
" For I the Lord thy God am a jealous God, visiting the iniquity of
tlie fathers upou the children unto the khird and fourth generation." —
Exodus.
•'The milU of God grind slowly, but they grind exceeding small."
Chief contemporary and original sources of history : the
reports and the petitions uf departments sent up to the
States-General of 1789 ; files of the " Moniteur," the lead-
ing newspaper of Paris, and of other contemporary joui-
nals ; private letters and diaries ; state papers as before ;
official and private correspondence of Napoleon, Stein,
Metternich and their official contempoi^es ; the Annual
Register ; contemporary literature.
MODBBN EUROPE. 475
Chief historians accessible in £nglish, in general, as for
2); special for the period, the histories of modern Europe,
by Fyffe and Schlosser; histories of French Revolution,
by Von Sybel, De Tocqueville, Mignet, Carlyle; Seeley's
Life and Times of Stein, Lanfrey's Napoleon.
1. Chronological Summary of Leading Events f
1789-1799.
1789 to
Sept. %1,
The French government (Lewis XVI. and his
ministers) being unable to raise money, and find-
ing itself in other difiBculties, calls together the
States-General ; this assembly naming itself the National
Aasembli/^ demands the reform of many abuses, and takes
an oath ( Oath of the Tennis-court) not to separate until it
has given France a new constitution; royal troops are
collected near Paris, as the Parisians suspect, with the
design of forcibly dissolving the assembly, or of coercing
its measures. The citizens thereupon storm the Bastille,
the royal prison where the government has long disposed
at will of its enemies, and utterly destroy it ; they form
themselves into a ^^^ National Guard^^* under the command
of Lafayette, in order to protect the National Assembly;
other cities follow the example of Paris; the peasants in
the provinces revolt against the nobles, recklessly burning
and destroying, especially title-deeds of land and all papers
relating to feudal tenure ; many nobles leave the country
(^Emigranti) ; on the night of Aug. 4, 1789, the nobles
in the Assembly surrender all their feudal rights and priv-
ileges. The Paris mob, accompanied by the national guard,
compel the king and the National Assembly to come from
Versailles to Paris ; a constitution is offered to the king
which demands that a representative assembly shall form
part of the government; this assembly is to have the
476 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
power of making laws and voting taxes, and neither war
nor peace are to be declared without its consent. The
property of the clergy is confiscated to the use of the state,
which in turn agrees to support them. The king accepts
the constitution, but endeavors secretly to leave France.
The Parisians, arresting him on the way, and suspecting
him of an alliance with other European monarchs to
put down the revolution by force of arms, bring the
royal family back to Paris and set a close watch upon
them.
Austria and Prussia now demand of France satisfaction
for the German princes who have lost lands in Elsass and
Lorraine through international treaties ; satisfaction to the
pope for the loss of Avignon, and the repression of revo-
lutionary movements calculated to disturb other states.
France answers by a declaration of war, and sends out
three armies to the Rhine-frontier. Their ill-success is
attributed to treachery at home ; the king and the ^^ emi-
grants" are believed to be the instigating cause of
foreign attack and domestic failure. The mob there-
upon storms the Tuileries, and imprisons the king (Aug.
10, 1792).
All resident nobles and all suspected of sympathizing
either with king or emigrants are imprisoned or massacred
(^September massacres) by the Parisian mob, under the
direction of Danton. These massacres include even con-
stitutionalists who defend the constitution signed by Lewis
XVL Sept. 21, 1792, France is declared a Republic, and
offers her aid to all peoples who wish to overthrow the
"Old Regime."
Owing to imprisonment, emigration, and mas-
sacre, the governing power falls lai^ly into the
hands of the Parisian mob and their armed sup-
Sept. »i,
July, 1708.
port, that is, into the hands of men, poor, ignorant, and
MODERN EUROPE. 477
inexperienced. War on the republic continues without;
on the pretext of guarding the revolution from all treach-
ery at home, assassination and imprisonment are still the
order of the day within ; Jan. 21, 1793, the king is con-
demned and executed. England, Holland, Spain, and the
emperor join in alliance against the French Republic;
the peasants in La VendSe declare against the revolution,
and rise in stubborn revolt ; the violent and more moder-
ate parties of Paris are in conflict ; the more violent and
ignorant by force of mob-rule and terrorism win the lead,
establish a " Committee of Public Safety," by which the
more moderate revolutionists (^Girondists' are arrested
and imprisoned.
Beign of Terror. — Robespierre, one of the
"Committee of Public Safety," and extreme
in his views of the necessity of the imprisonment
July, 1793,
TO
July, 1704.
and assassination of all who do not sympathize with the
most radical revolutionary ideas, rules France by commit-
tees, established throughout the country, with power to
watch, arrest, and execute without trial all suspected per-
sons ; imprisonment and assassination are continuous, in-
creasing in violence with the news of defeat all along the
frontier. In Nantes alone 15,000 are put to death in three
months by a single tribunal; Marie Antoinette, the queen,
is now executed; soon follows the execution of the more
moderate republican leaders (Q-irondists' ; the guillotine
is the strong arm of the law. The Convention declares
the worship of God abolished and that of Reason estab-
lished.
Continued defeat abroad; Robespierre procures the
condemnation of his enemies in the Convention ; demands
and procures a decree abolishing the worship of Reason
and acknowledging the existence of a Supreme Being ; fes-
tivals for his worship are proclaimed, Robespierre acting
478 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
as high priest; enormous increase of executions in all
classes, of men suspected by Robespierre of interference
in the revolution. All parties finally combine suddenly
against Robespierre, who is condemned and executed by
his own former supporters.
Reaction, — More moderate councils prevail in
Paris, and many emigrants return ; the French
Republic is successful on the frontier; Prus-
July, 1704,
TO
Oct., 1795.
sia makes peace with her, and Spain soon follows. A
new Constitution is adopted, which gives the executive
power to a Directory of five, and legislative power to
two representative chambers, a Council of Elders and a
Council of Five Hundred. The royalists now return to
Paris, and begin to instigate revolt against this constitu-
tion and the existing government. The Convention calls
to its aid Napoleon Bonaparte, who, by his admirable
management of its armed forces, is able effectively to guard
it ; thus the Directory is established.
The Directory, — France and Austria being
still at war. Napoleon is sent to command the
troops on the Italian frontier ; he compels the
Oct., 1795|
TO
1799.
king of Sardinia to cede Savoy and Nice to France; he
conquers Lombardy, and gains the cession of North Italian
territory from the pope.
France declares war on Venice, where she abolishes the
aristocratic government and proclaims a republic; she
forms North Italy into a Cisalpine Republic under French
protection. France and Austria come to terms, and sign
the peace of Campo Formio ; the Belgian provinces (Aus-
trian Netherlands) are surrendered to France; Venice goes
to Austria, who agrees to recognize the Cisalpine Republic.
By secret articles, Austria agrees to the cession of the west
bank of the Rhine to France, while France is to use her
influence to gain new lands for Austria from Austria's
MODERN EUROPE. 479
nearest neighbors; the navigation of the Rhine is to be
equally free to France and Germany.
The French occupy Rome, proclaim the Roman Repub-
lic, and take the pope captive ; they enter Switzerland,
proclaim it a Helvetic Republic, and annex Geneva to
France. Bonaparte sails for Egypt, intending thence to
attack the Indian possessions of England ; after winning
the "Battle of the Pyramids," he takes Cairo; but the
French fleet is destroyed by a British squadron under
Nelson at the battle of Aboukir, and the expedition is, on
the whole, unsuccessful. Napoleon suddenly returns from
Egypt, and finding the Directory ineffective and in confu-
sion, helps overthrow it, and establishes a government
according to a fourth constitution (of the year VIII.^. By
this constitution, Bonaparte is first Consul of the Republic,
and entrusted with its executive power; eighty elected
senators appoint, from names selected by popular election,
men for the two legislative chambers ; one of these cham-
bers, the tribunate, discusses the proposals of the Consul
without voting ; the other, the legislative chamber, votes
without discussing. France is divided into prefectures,
through which the law is equally and uniformly adminis-
tered according to the ^^Code Napoleon.**
STUDY ON I.
What reasonable cause do you find in the " Old Regime " in France
for each of the following events from 1789 to Aug. 10, 1792 : — The
"Oath of the Tennis-court"? The formation of a national guard?
The destruction of title-deeds in the country? The demand for a
constitution signed by the king? The confiscation of Church prop-
erty? The suspicion of a league between Lewis and other kings?
The cruelty of the Parisian mob ? The idea that to kill the king is
to strike the most decisive blow at the " Old Regime " ? The declara-
tion of the worship of Reason ?
Name three facts which prove the inherent weakness of the " Old
480 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Regime" at the opening of the Revolution. If the body of the
people had approved of it, how could it have met revolt? What
do the demands of the first constitution offered to Lewis XVI.
tell us of the wrongs felt by France ? How would the attacks of
foreign powers affect French patriotism? How affect the sympathy
with the Revolution ?
From Sept., 1792, to July, 1704, France is named a republic ; prove
from the events of the time that this government was a despotism.
In what two forms does this despotism appear? How is it supported?
Who is to blame for it ? What forces the Directory to employ Bona-
parte ? In proclaiming this or that country a republic, what republi-
can principle does France violate ?
How does the constitution of the year YIII. differ from that of
the *< Old Regime " ? What positive blessings does the rule of Napo-
leon bring to France? What resemblance between Napoleon and
Cromwell? What solid results has the Revolution accomplished?
How far has it been a political and how far a social revolution?
What is the force of each of the mottoes on p. 474?
ChronologictU Sufntnary of Leiiding Events^
1799-1816.
1790
TO
1804.
Foreign war continues ; the Second Coalition
of Russia, Austria, Great Britain, and lesser
powers is formed against Napoleon; they plan
to drive him from Belgium, Grermany, Switzerland, and
Italy. Napoleon, having returned from Egypt, crosses the
Alps by the Great St. Bernard, and defeats the allies at
Marengo. In 1801 the peace of Lun^ville is signed. This
peace confirms France in the possession of Netherlands,
and gives her the left bank of the Rhine ; gives Tuscany
to a younger branch of the House of Austria ; recognizes
the Batavian (Dutch), Helvetian (Swiss), and Cisalpine
Republics. Spain gives Louisiana to France.
France is re-organized by Napoleon ; the priests and the
\)ishops are to be appointed and supported by the govern-
mtnt ; education is organized on a uniform basis and sup-
MODERN BUBOPB. 481
ported by the state. — France and Great Britain make
peace. — Napoleon is now proclaimed hereditary emperor
of France by the tribunate and senate ; the people through-
out France confirm his title by an almost unanimous
popular election (^pUhiBcite)^ and he is crowned by the
pope (1804).
Great Britain, Russia, Austria, Sweden, con-
tinue war against France, so as to reduce her
power more nearly to a level with their own.
1804
TO
1S06.
The British naval victory of Nelson at Trafalgar (1806)
breaks the power of the French fleet. At Austerlitz (the
battle of three emperors) Napoleon defeats Austria and
Russia, and concludes a peace with Austria, by which
he gains large Italian possessions and is recognized as
King of Italy, He gives Naples to one of his brothers,
and Holland to another, giving each the royal title. The
smaller German princes form the Confederation of the
Rhine under the protectorate of Napoleon. The Emperor
Francis, keeping the title of emperor for his hereditary
Austrian estates, abdicates the crown of the Holy Roman
Empire, which now comes to an end (1806).
Prussia and Russia make war on Napoleon,
but are defeated at Jena and elsewhere. The
peace of Tilsit, dictated by Napoleon, confirms
1806
TO
1815.
the power and the titles of himself and his brothers, gives
him for free disposal all lands between the Rhine and
the Elbe, and extorts from Prussia the promise not to
keep a standing army of more than 42,000 men.
One of the brothers of Napoleon is declared king of
Spain; the Spaniards rise in revolt in defence of their
national king. They are aided by the British, and prove
a serious barrier to the Napoleonic advance. Austria
endeavors to free Germany from his power, but is disas-
trously defeated at Wagram, and compelled to sign the
MODERN EUBOPE. 488
peace of Vienna ceding 32,000 square miles to Napoleon
and his allies. War between Russia and Napoleon, the
latter now having as allies Austria and Prussia. Napoleon
invades Russia and occupies Moscow; Russian patriots
burn it, and Napoleon retreats ; cold, famine, and continual
attacks from Russian troops and Cossacks disorganize his
army, and cost him at least 300,000 lives.
Prussia and Russia, joined by Sweden and Austria, unite
against Napoleon in the " War of Liberation " ; the French
are driven back ; the allies enter Paris itself in triumph,
and the French senate are compelled to declare that
Napoleon has forfeited the throne. He abdicates, and is
banished to Elba. Lewis XVIII. is declared king of
France, which he is to rule according to a constitution
somewhat imitating that of England, but with too many
limitations to be satisfactory. Napoleon, hearing of the
discontent of France, returns, is received with enthusiasm
by army and people, and enters Paris in triumph. King
Lewis flees to Ghent, and the sovereigns of Europe pro-
claim a ^^ ban " against Napoleon, and raise great armies to
defeat him. This final attack upon his power ends in the
battle of Waterloo (1815), a thorough defeat for the
emperor, who is banished as prisoner of war to St. Helena,
where he dies in exile. The allied monarchs now enter
Paris, and again reinstate Lewis XVIII. as king of the
French. The monarchs of Russia, Austria, and Prussia
now form the "Holy Alliance" in order to detend the
established order in morality, religion, government. The
aflairs of Europe are settled at the Congress op Vienna,
by the Pentarchy of Cheat Powers (England, France,
Austria, Prussia, Russia) acting through their ministers,
prominent of whom are Metternich, Wellington, Talley-
rand. The chief points of settlement are as follows: —
Austria receives Lombardy and Venice, and Prussia re-
484 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
ceives various German territories ; the states of Germany
form a confederacy to take the place of the old empire ;
Holland and the Austrian Netherlands are to form a king-
dom of the Netherlands. The Partition of Poland between
Russia, Prussia, and Austria is confirmed.^ The old royal
dynasties are restored to the various Italian states and to
Spain.
STUDY ON 2.
What domestio and foreign necessity has France for Napoleon?
What two reasons have the monarchs of Europe for their fear of
Napoleon ? During the Napoleonic wars what natural boundary does
France regain? When has she had this boundary before? What
republican principle acknowledged by the elevation of Napoleon?
fiy what acts does he violate republican principles? What supports
the Napoleonic power in France? The dominion of Napoleon io
1810 (see map) is almost identical with the dominion of what former
French ruler? When and with whom did the title of Emperor, which
comes to an end in 1806, originate? What countries of modem
Europe have been formed from the ** Holy Roman Empire ** ? What
feeling calls the Spaniards to war against Napoleon ? Where next
does he meet the same enemy to his advance ? What is the evident
reason for the temporary alliances of Austria and Prussia with Napo-
leon? Napoleon banished, why do the European monarchs feel it
necessary to form the ** Holy Alliance " ? Is the Congress of Vienna
representative of the " Old Regime " or of the Revolution ? Prove it.
1 Poland suffered three partitions among these powers, — those of
1772, 1793, and 1795. The causes leading to its division may be seen in
the following diplomatic statement on the part of Russia : —
*' Should Poland be firmly and lastingly united to Saxony, a power of
the first rank will arise, and one which wiU be able to exercise the most
sensible pressure upon each of its neighbours. We are greatly concerned
in this, in consequence of the extension of our Polish frontier; and Prussia
18 no less so, from the inevitable increase which would ensue of Saxon
influence in the German Empire. We therefore suggest that Prosaia,
Austria, and Russia should come to an intimate understanding with one
another on this most important subject."
Ostermann added " that the question lay entirely with the three powen,
that if they were agreed, they might laugh at the rest of the world.**
A = - — '■
' }<
i^fS-j^ ^ \
t^^f^i>l
^
ikS^^ir^kl/'
IrA aR^ JuSs
J^
^^ILx^ /-o'^^:^''''^'"^'''^!! '
^a •^fl_«— Jy >*^ — l^ij r*v r**^
-— TiTi/Pr /;?!
'i;^^)^yJM'2f- /P
'?-^"">^^;:;iliF'* C^^V '
V^WVfcj^ C«'
^^^^vfM^^^/^ J '" ri^"'
^n*M^C^i?^sli^
i^s^^fs'iPr^- • JI2
P
^il^^l^H^
1^"^^
^
'fl^-^c:' ) •"°I?''^i^^^'''9
■11
i_^^^^^
^Rr--
y
.jjjfpSite
Dioinio C\mSM 12 (
r^ Tsl ^ j^^_
'^' — / — 3dV^3\ llw^ l\ll*^ ~A
W /^J \J /^^U— # W
/ .^^^Bl ^\" ^ ^ — y 'H /— rl V, -,\ •
.Yy^--fl[j7 /^r^ » ^ 1
j^^fffi^
^^W iiti
1^^^ ^ "^ — "^ — ^^r ^^^» / i_/ ^
/ > fl/ ^" 1
^^^^^^^_ ^^ ^^^■^■~— n^^
/ c y^ *S
"^^w? / ~'^~^
/-J. "^ ",
486 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
3. Speeldl Study of the Prussian devolution and the
Prussian Leadership in the " War of Liberationm^'^
I. Prussia at the Treaty of Tilsit.
In 1806 Germany falls into three chief divisions, — the
Confederation of the Rhine, a union of German states
under the lead of Napoleon ; the empire of Austria ; the
kingdom of Prussia (see map, p. 482). By the treaty
of Tilsit, Prussia accedes to the following special terms
from Napoleon: the loss of nearly half her territory,
which is parcelled out to various powers; the payment
of $28,000,000, secured, meanwhile, by French occupa-
tion of her fortresses, the garrisons to be supported at
Prussian expense ; the reduction of her army to 42,000
men.
The organization of the Prussian state is that of the
"Old Rdgime": an absolute rule of the king and his
favorites, uninfluenced by any popular assembUes; three
fixed, hereditary classes among the people, — nobles, citi-
zens, serfs. Furthermore, the land, like the people, is
divided into noble-land, citizen-land, serf-land ; nor can it
either be given or sold from one class to another. Thus
runs the law of Frederick the Great: "The peasantry
can not alienate a field, mortgage it, cultivate it differ-
ently, change their occupation, or marry, without their
lord's permission. If they leave his estate, he can pursue
them in every direction and bring them back by force.
He has the right of watching over their private life, and
chastizes them if they are drunk or lazy. When young,
they serve for years as servants in his mansion ; as
cultivators, they owe him corvSes,^'*
As in France, the king is supposed ** to live of his own,"
1 Throughout this study, I wish to acknowledge mj indebtedness to
Prof. Seeley's Life and Times of Stein,
MODERN EUROPE. 487
the nobles are free from taxes, and in a crisis such 'as this
of the Treaty of Tilsit, there is no constitutional way of
aiding the king by national taxes. The bulk of the army
is composed of serfs forced into service, for whom there is
no promotion, the officers being nobles, and nobles alone.
Military punishments are degrading, and there is no uni-
formity in the demand for service, some districts of Prussia
being even freed from furnishing troops.
Meanwhile, the people are pervaded by the principles of
the French Revolution, of which Napoleon appears to the
popular mind as the personified leader.
J. Prusiiafrom TiUit to the War of Liberation.
In order to meet the difficulties of the above situation,
and render Prussia fit to meet Napoleon, Steik, the prime
minister of the Prussian king, and the statesmen associated
with him propose and carry out the following leforms:
free trade in landy that is, the peasant, noble, or citizen
may buy or sell any sort of landed estate, whether noble,
citizen, or peasant land; — free choice of occupation;
thus the noble or the peasant may become a trader or
an artisan ; abolition of serfdom (Emancipating Edict
of 1807). Furthermore, all Prussians without distinc-
tion of rank are to serve in the army and to be the armed
defenders of their state; disgraceful corporal punishment
is to be abolished, and promotion to depend on merit
alone.
In 1808 Napoleon enters Spain, and issues a manifesto
opening as follows, with his titles: "Napoleon, by the
Grace of God, Emperor of the French, King of Italy,
Protector of the Confederation of the Rhine." He is met
by an uprising of the Spanish people, whose feeling is
expressed by the following extracts from a Spanish pam-
phlet of the time : " Yes ! Napoleon, that is, Napodragon,
488 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
ApoUyon, Ruler of the Abyss, King of the monsters of
hell, heretics, and heretic princes, Abominable Beast, Pro-
tector, Head and Soul of the Confedei-ation of the Rhine,
that is, of the Seven Heads and Ten Horns of the Beast
which bear blasphemies against Jesus Christ and his
Church, against God and the Saints. That is the body
of the Beast, and Napoleon is the head." Napoleon had
promised them reform, to which they answer : " You will
bring us a Calvinist reform, to introduce the innovations of
the Protestants, as your Ministers, Senators, etc., are mostly
of this sect, or else apostates, atheists, and Jews. . . ."
This popular insurrection fails, but causes Napoleon such
serious difificulty that Stein, watching from Prussia, writes
thus of it: "Affairs in Spain make a deep impression;
they prove what one should have seen long ago. It will
be a good thing to spread the news of them cautiously
among our people. . . . Indignation grows day by day in
Germany. We must encourage it, and seek men who may
fire it." Soon after, in an ofiBcial report he writes:
"What, then, is to be done? Shall we submit or resist?
We must therefore keep alive in the nation the feeling of
discontent with this oppression, with our dependence on a
foreign nation, insolent and daily growing more frivolous.
We must keep them familiar with the thought of self-
help, of the sacrifice of life and of property, which in
any case will soon become a possession and a prey to the
ruling nation. . . ."
Meanwhile, in Berlin itself, Fichte is delivering a most
popular coui*se of lectures, afterwards published in book-
form, from which the following extracts are taken : —
" What, then, is the spirit that can be put at the helm in
such a case [as that in which Germany now finds herself] ? . . .
What but the consuming flame of the higher patriotism, which
MODERN EUROPE. 489
conceives the nation as the embodiment of the Eternal ; foi
which the high-minded man devotes himself with joy, and the
low-minded man . . . must be made to devote himself. . . .
You at least have heard the Germans spoken of as one. You
have seen a visible sign of their unity, an Empire and an Impe-
rial Union, . . . among you have been heard from time to time
voices that were inspired by that higher patriotism. Your suc-
cessors will grow accustomed to other views, they will adopt
foreign forms and another current of life and affairs, and how
long will the time be till no one lives any longer who has seen
Germans or heard of them ? "
Meanwhile, secret societies are formed in Prussia and
other parts of Germany, having for their object indepen-
dence of Napoleon; prominent among these are the
gymnastic unions (Turn-Vereine), whose founder, Jahn,
has the idea that the German youth should be trained for
war by strenuous exercises in time of peace. Gradually
two strong parties grow up in Prussia, the policy of one
being to conciliate Napoleon, that of the other, to rid the
country of everything French.
Napoleon now demands of the Prussian king the dis-
missal of Stein. Stein, temporarily banished, is invited
to Russia by the czar. Once in St. Petersburg, he bends
every energy to unite Russia with Prussia and with other
German states against Napoleon; to this end he causes
proclamations, pamphlets, songs of a patriotic nature, to
be circulated throughout the Prussian army and among
the Prussian people.
c. " War of Liberation.'*^
In the midst of these endeavors comes Napoleon's reverse
at Moscow, and his consequent retreat. The czar, urged
on by Stein, follows Napoleon into Prussia, and declares
himself ready to free her from the tyrant of Europe. The
490 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
king, bound to Napoleon by treaty, is helpless ; his chief
general Yorck, however, thus decides : " Our enemy only
gains time by our delay ; we lose it ; every moment for us
is an irrevocable loss. With bleeding heart I burst the
bond of obedience, and wage war on my own account.
Tlie army wants war with France, the people want it, and
so does the king, but the king has no free will. The army
must make his will free." The czar, also, regarding the
Prussian king as under compulsion, declares Stein provi-
sional ruler of Prussia, with power to organize the people
for war. Stein calls together meetings of the old Assem-
blies of Estates in various provinces, and the people with
one enthusiasm declare for a "War of Liberation," and
in alliance with Austria and Russia, arm themselves for
victory. For the result, see 2.
STUDY ON 3.
In order to free herself from Napoleon, what two material forces
must Prussia command? What moral feeling among her people?
What in the Prussian organization stands directly in the way of her
possessing each of the two former necessities? From this point of
view, what is the value of each of the reforms proposed by Stein and
his associates ? What parallel between these reforms and those pro-
posed by the French Revolution ? How far back must we go to find
the historic origin of the three classes of Prussia? What reason for
the Prussian sympathy with Napoleon ? What effect will the Prus-
sian reforms have upon this sympathy? What feeling will be aroused
to counteract it ? What reason do you now discover for the intense
popular dislike of Kapoleou in Spain? Why does Stein wish to
spread the news of the Spanish insurrection in Germany? What
power does he perceive in it which can be employed against Napo-
leon? Of what value is Fichte to the Prussian Revolution? Of
what value are the secret societies? What do you think of Jahn's
idea? What historic example could he quote? WTiat was Napo-
leon's opinion of Stein's measures ? How do you know? What does
Stein evidently consider the greatest power he can employ against
Napoleon? What feelings in Yorck prove the strongest? What
MODERN EUBOPB. 491
reyolationary principle recognized by Stein in calling together the
old Prussian estates? What relation between the Prussian Revolu-
tion and the <*War of Liberation"? Was that revolution funda-
mentally political or social?
III. NINETEENTH CENTURY, 181^1880.
Chief contemporarj and origmal sources :
(Fill these out from your own knowledge and observation.)
Chief historiaus accessible in English : In general, same
as for D and E\ for special period, Schlosser, Alison,
Mackenzie, FyfFe.
"Ring out, wild bells, to the wild sky.
The flying cloud, the frosty light ;
• • • « «
" Ring out a slowly dying cause.
And ancient forms of party strife ;
Ring in the nobler modes of Ufe,
With sweeter manners, purer laws.
• • • • «
" Ring out false pride in place and blood.
The civic slander and the spite ;
Ring in the love of truth and right ;
Ring in the common love of good.
• • « « •
"Ring in the valiant man and free,
The larger heart, the kindlier hand ;
Ring out the darkness of the land.
Ring in the Christ that is to be." — Tbnntson.
^This world means something to the capable." — Goethb.
" The truth shall make you free." — Chbist.
492
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
1. OrganiziUiona of the Nineteenth Century.
The organizations of the nineteenth-century state may
be seen in the following typical constitutions : —
a. Constitution of Q-reat Britain^ 1880.
ParU of the
atattin
War.
Finance,
Law.
AdmMstrathn.
a. Monarch ;
Declares
Supported by
Sanctions
Must convoke d at
hereditary
war and
a fixed regu-
laws
least once a year ;
king or
peace in
lar grant
passed by
dissolves it ; sends
queen.
the name
from the
rf; con-
and receives am-
of the na-
public
sulted by
bassadors and
tion; chief
revenue.
6; may
other diplomatic
of the ar-
propose
agents; makes
my and
laws; has
alliances and com-
navy, but
right of
mercial treaties.
can main-
pardon.
subject to consent
tain neither
of d ; appoints b.
in British
territory
without
consent of
d.
6. Prime
Decides on
Lays the
Proposes
Chief of the Cabinet
minister
measures
financial
new meas-
bringing their
(Premier) ;
of war and
demands of
ures (hiUs)
measures before d ;
appointed
peace in
the govern-
which
executive chief of
by the
council with
ment before
take pre-
the government.
monarch
a and c.
rf6;
cedence
from the
and subject
salaried
of other
most prom-
to consent
official.
bills in
inent lead-
of d.
the dis-
ers of the
cussions
dominant
of d.
party in
the House
of Com-
mons;
MODBBK EUROPE.
493
ParUofthe
State in
War.
nnance.
Law.
AtlmMHraUoH,
changed
with
changes of
party
power.
c. Cabinet;
Discuss
Propose
Discuss
Subordinate execu-
council of
and decide
taxes and
and for-
tives in the various
the minis-
on course
the direction
mulate
departments of
ters of the
of action
of national
bills to be
the government.
treasury,
to be pro-
expenditure
laidbe-
State, war,
posed to
todb;
^re the
navy, etc.
the country.
salaried
Com-
{Secretor
officials,
mons.
ries).
paid from
public
«k.
treasury.
rf. Parliar
roent, com-
posed of
da. House of
Give or with-
Propose
Criticis:.
Lords,
hold consent
and dis-
spiritual
to measures
cuss, re-
and tempo-
of a, b, and
ject or
ral ; sitting
c (the govern-
pass,
for life or
ment), v/hich
bills; su-
a term of
they thor-
preme
years;
oughly dis-
court of
seatSy here-
cuss and
appeals.
ditary,
freely criti-
given by
cise.
the mon-
arch or
the vote
of nobles,
or by vir-
tue of ec-
clesiasti-
cal office.
494
STUDIES IN GENERAI. HISTORY.
Pore* of th§
StaUIn
War.
FInane;
Law,
db. House of
Same as
Serves un-
Proposes
Criticises.
Commons;
above.
paid; con-
and dis-
British
sents to or
cusses, re-
citizens
rejects
jects or
elected
financial de-
passes,
from any
mands and
bills;
class of
proposals
court of
people by
of cabinet
judgment
the popu-
for min-
lar suffrage
isters and
of «.
«
high
officials.
e. Citizens;
Enter the
Pay taxes to
Are equal-
Elect members of
all born or
army and
support the
ly judged
the House of Com-
naturalized
navy as paid
govern-
by same
mons; if they ex-
men living
officers.
ment
laws.
press disapproval
In Great
soldiers,
of the course of
Britain and
and sailors.
the existing par-
Ireland, of
liament or premier,
competent
the monarch dis-
age and
solves Parliament
mind, un-
and allows public
convicted
opinion to express
of crimi-
itself in a new
nal offen-
election; enter the
ces or of
dvU service on
bribery,
competitive exami*
and having
nation.
some prop-
erty
MODBBN BUBOFE.
495
, Constitution of France. (Dating from 1876, and formed by
a National Assembly elected in 1871, directly after the close
of the Franco-Prussian war.)
Porta of the
8taUln
War.
F!ntuic€,
Law.
Adminiatratton,
a. President;
Declares
■
Paid for his
Proclaims
Executive of the
chosen
war, sub-
service to
the laws
State; names the
from any
ject to c
the State.
passed
cabinet, dissolves
class of
and(/.
by c and
c and df and con-
citizens for
d; pro-
vokes special ses-
seven years
poses
sions ; appoints to
bycandif.
laws
which c
and (/dis-
cuss, crit-
icise, re-
ject, or
accept ;
can de-
mand
the re-
consider-
ation of
a bill;
grants
pardon
to con-
victed
crimi-
nals.
civil and military
office ; presides nt
national solemni-
ties ; receives and
appoints foreign
ambassadors ;
makes treaties
with foreign pow-
ers, subject to c
Andd.
h. Cabinet of
Advises and
Together
AdvLses
Countersigns the acts
ministers.
and con-
with a, lay
and
of the president ;
secretaries
sults.
the finan-
consults.
sub-executives in
of war.
cial needs
the various parts
State, etc..
of the gov-
of the State.
similar to
ernment
British
before d.
cabinet.
496
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
ParU of th9
War.
^
Lam.
AdmMtiraUoa.
c> Senate,
Discusses,
Paid for ser-
Proposes,
Discusses, criticises.
chosen for
approves,
vices to the
discusses.
adopts, or rejects
a term of
or disap-
State.
and pass-
measures offered
years from
proves.
es bills;
by a in regard to
citizens of
must re-
foreign affairs.
France and
ceive
the colo-
financial
nies, partly
measures.
by electo-
such as
ral colleges
taxes.
composed
from d\
of officials
judges in
and other
case of
men locally
necessity
eminent in
(high
France and
treason)
the
a, minis-
colonies,
ters of
partly by
SUte,
d and c
and
itself.
others.
<f.> Chamber
Approves or
Paid for ser-
Proposes,
Same St e.
of Depu-
disap-
vices to the
discusses,
ties, chosen
proves.
State;
and
for a term
passes
passes
of years.
all bills re-
bills; can
from
garding
call to
France and
taxes and
account
her colo-
expendi-
a and the
nies by
ture.
universal
tersof
suffrage
State.
of citizens.
i h and c in joint session form the National Assemblif, and meet in this
body for the revision of the constitution and the nomination of the
president.
MODEBK EUROPE.
497
Porta of the
ataUin
War.
Flnanet,
Law.
AdmMstraUon.
6. Citizens ;
Form the
Support by
Are equal-
Elect deputies and
all born or
army and
their taxes
ly judged
manage local
adopted
navj as
the govem-
by the
afifain.
French-
paid volun-
mentir
same
men, living
teers or
laws.
in France
conscripts.
or her colo-
nies, of
proper age
and sound
mind, un-
convicted
of crime.
c. Constitution of Oerman Empire, dating from 1871 (at the
close of the Franco-Prussian war) .
The empire is composed of German states of various ranks,
each having its special constitution, — as the duchy of Brunswick,
the republics of Bremen, Lubeck, and Hamburg, the consti-
tutional kingdoms of Prussia and Bavaria. Each state man-
ages its own affairs according to its own constitution, while the
business common to all, as war, colonization, general trade
and commerce, common railways, steamboats, and other means
of communication, is attended to by the empire, whose organi-
zation is as follows : —
Porta of th€ Empire
War.
Law.
Administration.
hereditary
monarch
of Prussia.
Declares war,
subject to dy
and concludes
peace; com-
mander of the
Publishes laws
of the empire.
General executive ;
convokes, opens,
dissolves d and
e, which must be
.convoked annual*
498
STUDIES IN OENBBAL HI8TOBT.
ParU of the Empin
in
War.
Law.
AdmMatraUon.
troops of the
ly; receires and
empire.
appoints foreign
envoys, concludes
•
alliances with
foreign states,
subject to d and
e ; appoints men
to the military
and naval service
of the empire ;
names the
chancellor.
b. Chancellor of
Proposes bills to
Presides over and
the empire.
c, after consul-
directs the delib-
tation with a.
erations of d ;
must counter-
sign all measures
of a, and be
responsible for
them.
d. Federal Coun-
Approves or dis-
Discusses and
Can dissolre «,
cil (Bundes-
approves of
passes on billv
with consent of
rath)\ composed
declaration of
offered by e ;
a ; holds states
of about sixty
war.
proposes meas-
responsible for
eminent offi-
ures; discusses
their mutual and
cials, chosen
constitutional
federal duties ;
by and repre-
measures;
consent neces-
sentative of
court of appeal
sary to conclu-
the various
in case of dif-
sion of foreign
German states
ficulties be-
alliances relating
(seventeen
tween states.
to general
are from
interests.
Prussia.)
e. Imperial par-
Proposes and
Consent necessary
liament (/Ze«cA<-
discusses bills,
to give validity
tag), composed
which must be
to treaties of
of about four
submitted to
alliance affecting
MODERN EUROPE.
4i:9
Parte of the Empire
In
War,
Law.
Administration,
hundred Ger-
and accepted
general German
man cituens
by a and d
interests.
chosen by/;
before they can
about two hun-
become laws of
dred and thirty-
the empire.
six members
are from
Prussia.
/.Citizens; all
Serve in the
Judged and gov-
Criticise.
Germans living
army for a
erned equally
in the German
term of years,
by laws of the
empire, of suit-
and always
empire.
able age, and
liable to mili-
unconvicted
tary service in
of crime.
caee of war.
NoTK. — Since the government of Germany is so highly localized by
states, each state bears the expense of and raises taxes for its own gov-
eniment. For the empire there is no regular system of taxation, and its
expenses are met by the revenues from excise and customs-duties, and
from the postal and telegraph services.
Note. — In all these constitutions, the proceedings of
the government and of the legislative bodies are as public
as it is thought the good of the State will allow. The
proceedings of the lower chamber are generally published
in the newspapers of the day. In all of these constitu-
tions, again, elections are decided and bills are carried
by the votes of the majority.
STUDY ON I,
a. How 18 the power of the monarch checked ? That of the premier ?
Of the House of Commons? What parts of this constitution seem
unnecessary? What is the historic origin of each part ? Which part
is distinctively modem? What parts are representative? How does
(he fact that the members of the House of Commons are unpaid
500 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
affect their representative value ? Their independence? Where does
responsibility rest in this constitution ?
b. Compare the power of the British monarch and the French presi-
dent. What necessary check to the power of the latter which the
former does not feel? How does the relation of colonists to the home
government differ in England and France? Which strikes you as
the wiser arrangement, and why ? Which has the most thoroughly
representative government, England or France, and why ? Supposing
you knew nothing of the French Revolution, but knew the organiza-
tions of France under the " Old Regime " and at present, what great
political change would you mark? What great social change? What
great religious change ?
c. What is the leading state of the German empire? What check is
felt by each part of the constitution ? To what in the English con-
stitution does each part of c correspond? Each part of 6? What
types are evidently copied by b and c ?
What general difference between the upper and lower Houses in
these constitutions? What is the bond of union in the nineteenth-
century state? By what arrangement does it secure itself against
domestic tyranny ? Against foreign invasion ? What equality exists
within it? What does the modem state owe to the feudal state?
What has it in common with the Athenian and Roman republics?
What difference between its popular assemblies and the assemblies of
mediaeval estates? The popular assemblies of antiquity? What
serves the purpose of the old market-place ? What modern inventions
enable the large state to be governed as equally and as much by the
whole people as the little "city-state" of antiquity? In the modern
state by what means must power be gained or held? How does the
army of the modem state differ from that of antiquity? Of the
middle ages?
STUDY ON OTHER ORGANIZATIONS OF OUR CENTURY.
Looking about you here in America, what new facts of religions
organization do you see? Make a list of all the organizations — social,
industrial, commercial, educational — that you can think of or find
out about which are different from those you have seen in your studies
of previous history. For whose benefit are these organizations?
What do they show the nineteenth century to be caring for ? Do any
of them correspond with any organizations you have met before?
What relation has each of these organizations to the State ?
MODERN EtJROPE. 501
2* Oeneral Summary of Leciding Events of the Century.
a. IntemationaL
1815 ^
TO
1848.
International congresses of European kings and
royal ministers called to consider how to suppress
or manage revolutionary movements in Naples,
Spain, Germany, and Piedmont, whith seem to imitate
the beginning of the French Revolution; as a result of
these conferences, the Italian uprisings are put down by
force of Austrian arms, and the absolute rule of the vari-
ous princes is restored; French armies are sent into Spain,
where they liberate the imprisoned king and restore him
to power, securing the restoration by numerous execu-
tions; the teaching in the German universities is super-
vised, lest the professors inspire the students with princi-
ples of political liberty.
The Greeks revolt against Turkey, who calls Egypt to
her aid; its Pasha invades and ravages Greece; England,
Russia, and France interfere in her behalf, and drive the
Turks from the peninsula ; Turkey, hard pressed by Euro-
pean powers, notably by Russia, at length consents, by the
treaty of Adrianople, that Greece shall become an inde-
pendent European power; England, France, and Russia
select a Bavarian prince for her king, whom the Greeks
accept as their constitutional monarch.
War breaks out in the kingdom of the Netherlands,
created by the Congress of Vienna, between the Dutch
Protestants of Holland and the Belgian French-speaking
Catholics of the old Austrian Netherlands. At a London
conference, the Great Powers consent to the separation of
Holland and Belgium, allowing the latter country to
become an independent state, under the rule of a constitu-
tional king : thus arises the kingdom of Belgium, 1830. —
New Italian uprisings in favor of independence and con-
stitutional government are suppressed by Austrian arms.
602 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
— The viceroy of Egypt makes war on the Turkish sultan,
but it forced by the European powers to make peace.
The Italians, under the leadership of the king
of Sardinia, attempt to drive the Austrians out
of Northern Italy ; they are defeated at Novara,
1848
TO
1853.
and the Austrians more firmly fixed in power than before.
— The Hungarians (Magyars), under the lead of Kossuth,
revolt against Austria in behalf of a local Hungarian gov-
ernment and a restoration of the old Hungarian constitu-
tion. The Russian agrees to help the Austrian empire,
and by her aid the Hungarian uprising is entirely sup-
pressed, its leaders executed or imprisoned, and the con-
stitution of Hungary is declared abolished. — The duchies
of Schleswig-Holstein, to the south of Denmark, are
proclaimed annexed to Denmark by the Danish king.
The people of the duchies revolt, and are aided at first by
the Germans and Prussians ; afterward, they fight alone.
The German confederacy at last enforces peace, and Hol-
stein is occupied by Austrian troops, who deliver the
duchy to the Danes on condition that its '* rights shall be
respected." In 1862, the Treaty of London, signed by the
five Great Powers (Pentarchy) and Sweden, appoints a
single king for Denmark and the duchies, without con-
sulting the estates of the latter.
War of Russia against Turkey because the lat-
ter refuses the former a protectorate over all Chris-
tians of the Greek Church in the Turkish empii-e.
1853
TO
1856.
England, France, Sardinia, ally themselves with Turkey,
and the Crimean War opens, — which may be described
as a war of Western Europe against Russia. Sebastopol,
in the Crimea, is the objective point of attack, in order to
ruin the naval power of Russia in the Black Sea. The war
ends with the Peace of Paris, in which Turkey agrees to
make her Christian subjects equal to the Mohammedans
MODERN EXTROPB. 503
ill their relatious with the State, while Russia foregoes her
demand to become their protector. Russia promises not
to establish arsenals on the Black Sea nor to keep more
ships there than the Turkish Porte. The following rules
of naval warfare are at this time agreed upon by the Euro-
pean powers: Privateering is and remains abolished;
neutral ships and neutral goods are not liable to capture ;
blockades, to be binding, must be effective.
France and England join in an expedition
against China, on account of the latter country's
violation of the treaty with England. They
1856
TO
1870.
occupy Canton, march upon Pekin, and force the Chinese
to agree to admit traders and missionaries into China,
and allow European embassies to reside at Pekin.
Sardinia, now allied with France, once more attempts to
rid Northern Italy of the Austrian ; wins the battles of
Magenta and Solferino and signs the Peace of Villafranca,
in which Austria gives Lombardy to Sardinia (1859).
Austria and Prussia make war on Denmark because her
king has incorporated Schleswig with Denmark; the war
ends by a treaty in which the king of Denmark renounces
all his rights to Schleswig-Holstein in favor of the empe-
ror of Austria and the king of Prussia ; Austria occupies
and governs Schleswig, and Prussia, Holstein.
Disputes between Austria and Prussia over the manage-
ment of Schleswig-Holstein lead to the Austro-Prussian
war of 18G6, in which Prussia receives the alliance of
Italy and the smaller states of North Germany, and Aus-
tria is aided by the stronger German states. The battle
of Sadowa decides the conflict, and by the terms of the
peace Austria consents to the organization of a new
German confederation, from which she shall be excluded;
Schleswig-Holstein is resigned to Prussia, who also gains
other German territory nearly 30,000 square miles in
604 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
extent ; the Austrians yield their claims on Venice, which
joins itself to the new kingdom of Italy.
War threatens between France and Prussia on account
of claims to frontier territory made by Napoleon III. A
conference is called at London which recognizes Italy as
one of the Great Powers, and for the present reconciles
Prussia and France.
Franco-Prussian War. — A prince of Hohen-
zollern is elected to the Spanish throne; Iiis
withdrawal is demanded by France. After he
1870
TO
1871.
voluntarily resigns his claims, the French emperor
demands of the Prussian king a promise "that he will
never again allow the candidacy of the prince for the
Spanish crown." The king will not promise, and the
manner of his refusal displeases the emperor, who regards
it as an insult, and declares war of France against Prussia.
The French, hard pressed by Prussia, withdraw their
troops from Rome, which declares itself annexed to the
kingdom of Italy, whose capital it becomes. The French
are badly beaten at Sedan ; the German armies march on
Paris, besiege it, and compel a peace. By its terms (Con-
vention of Versailles), France cedes Elsass (Alsace) and
German Lorraine to Germany. Germany is now declared
an empire under the leadership of Prussia, whose king
takes the title of German Emperor.
The period is marked by a struggle of Church
and State in Prussia, Switzerland, Italy, in regard
to the functions of each in regard to education.
1871
TO
1876.
marriage, and the appointment of clergy. In Italy, the
monasteries are dissolved and their property appropri-
ated by the State; in Switzerland, a national Catholic
Church is formed, whose clergy are elected by the people ;
in Germany, marriages and the registration of births and
deaths are made a part of the business of the Stat«. In
MODERN EUROPE.
505
Spain, civil war between republicans and two claimants
of the Spanish throne, ends in the restoration of a con-
stitutional monarchy.
The Christian subjects of the Turkish Porte
revolt against him in behalf of religious tolera-
tion and just taxation. The revolt is suppressed
1876
TO
1880.
with great violence and cruelty; Russia once more de-
clares lierself protector of the Greek Christians, and
threatens war. The Powers hold a conference at Con-
stantinople, in which they unsuccessfully attempt to com-
\'
"^^sr
fio
^0,>i
K\
^$>-^ \
mz^""^^--^ ^-m^
BULGAPl.v;
TURKISH DOMINION in EUROPE before and afterTREATY of BERLIN.
^ ■■■■ • J — Turkish dominion.
pose the existing difficulties. The Porte being unwilling
to submit to their dictation, they leave Constantinople,
and Russia makes war on Turkey (^Turco-Bussian war^
1877-78). The war ends in the Peace of San Stefano,
which makes Servia and Montenegro independent, and
enlarges their boundaries at Turkey's expense ; Roumania
becomes independent, while Bulgaria remains tributary to
the Porte, but with a Christian prince and independent
administration and troops; the Porte promises reform
506 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
within his European lands, and agrees to give Russia large
parts of Armenia and some new European territory.
England and Austria, being dissatisfied with this treaty,
threaten to make war on Russia; Germany mediates for
peace, and the Congress of Berlin is called, under the
presidency of Prince Bismarck, prime minister of Prussia;
the Peace of San Stefano is somewhat modified in favor of
Turkey ; Southern Bulgaria is restored to the immediate
rule of the sultan, under the name of East-Roumelia ;
Russian troops are to leave the Christian provinces within
a year ; Turkey is advised to cede a part of Epirus and
Thessaly to Greece ; in all the states of the Turkish penin-
sula political equality is to exist for men of all creeds;
Austria is allowed military occupation and administra-
tion of Bosnia and Herzegovina. The Porte delays to
deliver over the promised territories, and is threatened into
obedience by the presence of a squadron sent by all the
Great Powers. A conference of their ambassadors, mean-
while, meeting at Constantinople, persuades the sultan to
yield to Greece territories on her northern frontier.
Russia threatening Germany by an alliance with France,
Bismarck negotiates a defensive alliance of Prussia and
Austria
STUDY ON 2, a.
What check is placed upon the aggressive tendencies of any great
power of Europe ? What protection have the smaller states of Europe
against such a fate as Poland suffe^'ed ? What are the political units
of Europe? What bonds of unity exist within these units? What
natural reasons for war between the two parts of the kingdom of the
Netherlands ? What new states have been formed within our cen-
tury? At whose expense? How far are these true political units of
the kind named above? What true political units exist still unre-
cognized? What tendency is shown in the political congresses, con-
ferences, and treaties of this time ? What do the wars of our centuiy
show to be tlie leading desires of the European peoples and go\'em-
ments? What great good has been accomplbhed by these wars?
MODERN EtJBOPB. 607
What injustice appears in some of them? What state is Europe
especially watchful of? Which of the wars of this century do you
regard as notably important? Why? Why should Turkey be called
the << sick man"?
6. France,
Lewis XVIII. proclaims a liberal constitution,
but presently laws are passed that restrict the
freedom of the press and of elections. Parties
1815
TO
arise, in favor of the " Old Regime," in favor of consti-
tutional monarchy, in favor of the Bonapartes, in favor
of a republic. Under his successor, Charles X., the na-
tional guard is disbanded. — Algeria is conquered and
occupied by the French (1830). — New elections take
place, which return a liberal majority to the parliamentary
chambers; the government declares the elections illegal,
restricts the right of suffrage to rich land-owners, pro-
hibits the publication of newspapers and pamphlets with-
out the permission of the king. The Parisians revolt, and
Thiers protests; a national guard is again formed, under
Lafayette. Charles X. abdicates and Louis Philippe, of
the younger line of the House of Bourbon (Orleans),
comes to the throne; he proclaims liberal measures and
better constitutional government. His life is attempted
by means of an "infernal machine," and laws are once
more passed restricting the liberty of the press.
Louis Napoleon, the nephew of Bonaparte, tries to get
himself proclaimed as emperor; still further development
of parties ; demands for reforms in elections and in the
civil service rejected by the government (1848). Revolu-
tion, largely conducted by members of secret socialistic ^
societies. Louis Philippe abdicates, and a republic is
^ In general, the aims of socialism are to organize society in the inter-
ests of labor rather than capital ; and to substitute for the principle of
competition in industry some form of social and cooperative labor.
608 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
proclaimed. Louis Blanc, a leading socialist, agitates for
the organization of labor, and public workshops are estab-
lished at the expense of the State, although not in accord-
ance with the designs of Blanc ; they are closed, and an
insurrection of laborers ensues, which is suppressed by
the government troops and the national guard. Louis
Napoleon is elected president of the republic.
Louis Napoleon, by a " stroke of state " Qeoup
d'Stat of Dec. 2, 1861), causes the leaders of the
Republican and Orleanist parties to be arrested
1848
TO
1870.
and imprisoned, dissolves the national assembly, annuls
the constitution, crushes the rising revolt of Paris, and
summons the whole people to an election. They elect
Louis Napoleon president of the republic for ten years.
He banishes his most important political enemies, establishes
a constitution like that of the First Empire, and restricts
the liberty of the press ; in the following year he is made
Napoleon III., Emperor of the French, by decree of the
senate, confirmed by vote of the whole people (^pUbiBcite).
During the siege of Paris the socialistic party
in Paris gain the upper hand, and hold rule for a
short time under the title of the Paris Commune.
1870
TO
1871.
They are aided by socialists from all nations. The na-
tional troops attack and conquer them ; 40,000 or 60,000
socialists are arrested, and their leaders are shot or trans-
ported. Meanwhile, after the defeats of Sedan and the
fall of Paris into the hands of the Prussians, France is
proclaimed for the third time a republic, with Thiers for
its first president.
Owing to a hostile combination of the various
monarchical parties, Thiers is forced to resign,
and MacMahon is chosen president by the National
1871
TO
1880.
Assembly. The long discussions over the constitution end
in 1876, with the form given on p. 496. The president,
MODERN EUROPE. 609
MacMahon, unable to work effectively and harmoniously
with the legislative chambers, resigns, and Gr^vy takes
his place. Education is taken entirely out of the hands
of the priests.
c. Great Britain.
During the period of the French Revolution England
had granted representative institutions to Canada; an
agitation had arisen in Ireland for entire separation from
England, and a national government. This agitation was
put down by force of arms and by " cruel severities," and
the act of union was passed, by which the government of
Ireland and England was combined under a single imperial
parliament, while the Irish and English Churches were
united into one " Protestant Episcopal Church." In 1807
the slave-trade had been abolished in the British domin-
ions. The sudden and extensive introduction of machinery
into many important manufactures had thrown many hand-
workers out of employment, and produced great misery in
the manufacturing districts. This misery led to riot, ma-
chine-breaking (^Luddites} ^ and demands for legal protec-
tion for the rights of laborers ; the newspaper called the
" Weekly Political Register " did much to foment discon-
tent, and from every side came demands for social and
political reforms.
Holland having joined France in war against England
(1795), England seized the colonial possessions of the
latter, notably the Cape of Good Hope and Ceylon, which,
from this time forward, British colonists began to settle
and rule. Australia was also taken possession of, the fust
colonists being British convicts.
The British compel the dey of Algiers to abol-
ish Christian slavery. — The sufferings of the la-
boring classes cause violent agitations, culminating
1815
TO
1848.
510 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTOBY.
in giant meetings at Manchester, demanding parliamentary
reform. These meetings are broken up by government
troops; the "Aaiea« corpu%^^ is temporarily suspended, and
acts are passed in parliament, designed for the suppression
of publications and assemblies calculated to disturb the
peace. From this time dates the rapid development of
Conservative and Liberal parties in English politics.
Lord John Russell moves the repeal of the corporation
and test acts, thus admitting Protestant dissenters to pub-
lic office. This is soon followed by the Catholic relief act,
which opens government positions to Catholics also. Un-
der William IV. (1830-1887), Lord John Russell brings
forward a reform bill, by which the right of suffrage is
much more widely and more justly given ; rejected by
parliament, parliament is dissolved; brought forward in
the next parliament, it is passed by the Commons, rejected
by the Lords ; riots ensue throughout England. In 1832
it is finally passed, and thus the large manufacturing towns
more nearly receive a due share of political power. In
the same year a bill passes parliament abolishing slavery
throughout the British dominion, and giving a recompense
of 1100,000,000 to the slave-owners.
Acquisition of new territory and new dominion in India;
in some cases the English become, by request, the guar-
dians or protectors of Hindoo chiefs or monarchs. Widow-
burning is abolished, and the order of Thugs^ or hereditary
assassins, suppressed.
Accession of Victoria. — The working people of
Birmingham and vicinity (^Chartists) meet and
1837.
draw up a people's charter, which asks for annual parliar
ments, universal manhood suffrage, vote by ballot in-
stead of by acclamation, abolition of any property qualifica-
tion for seats in parliament, and the payment of members.
Parliament rejects their demands ; riots follow, which are
MODERN EUROPE. 511
put down. — At Manchester John Bright and Richard
Cobden form an Anti-Com-Law League in favor of free
trade. Owing to this agitation the Corn-Laws^ are re-
pealed, and many other duties are either abolished op
lessened (1846). — Famine in Ireland and commercial dis-
tress in England. — Continued difficulties with the labor-
ing classes, many of whom are thrown out of work, while
the rest work at starvation prices on account of the in-
troduction of machinery. Legislation to fix wages and
suppress discontent proves inefficient. — In the East the
British try to force a ruler on Afghanistan, subservient to
their interests. The Afghans revolt and expel the British,
who soon return with strong military forces and replace
their own appointee. The Chinese emperor forbids the
opium-trade, and the Chinese destroy great quantities of
opium in the hands of the British; the latter continue
the trade and claim redress, whereupon the Chinese make
war upon them, but are in the end forced to meet their
demands ( Opium war).
Rebellion in Ireland and renewed chartist agita-
tion in England ; both suppressed.
The navigation laws are repealed in favor of
free trade. Property qualification of members of
parliament removed, and Jews admitted to seats ;
1848.
1848
TO
1868.
the British dominion in India constantly extends, and
the queen gains the title of sovereign of India (1858). —
^ In general, the term applied to laws intended to protect grain-
growers from foreign competition by forbidding importation of wheat
without heavy duties, which shall raise its price to that demanded by
native land-owners. The Corn-Laws here referred to, however, were
especially notorious and grievous, since a succession of bad harvests and
the Napoleonic wars had raised the price of English wheat to absolutely
famine prices. In order to profit by these circumstances as long as possi-
ble, the Corn-Laws of 1815 were passed in order to force a continuation
of the high prices of com.
612 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
The suffrage is greatly extended. — Submarine cables
unite England with France and America. — Canada, Nova
Scotia, and New Brunswick are formed into the Dominion
of Canada, each province managing its own local affairs ;
representative governments are formed for Australia and
other Pacific colonial possessions.
Liberal elections in Great Britain, resulting in*
placing Gladstone, the Liberal leader, at the head
of affairs ; the Irish Church is disestablished, thus
1888
TO
1880.
freeing Catholic Ireland from the injustice of supporting
a Protestant Church. — The Suez Canal is opened. — The
Irish land act is passed (1870), an act which endeavors to
correct some of the unjust and oppressive conditions of
the tenants of Irish landlords, compensate them for im-
provements and protect them from sudden and unreasonable
eviction. Education is made compulsory, and provided for
by the State ; voting by ballot is introduced.
Disraeli, prime minister ; shares in the Suez Canal are
bought from the khedive of Egypt; the queen receives
the title of Empress of India. — Constant agitation in
Ireland for juster arrangements in the management of
land, the relations of land-owners and tenants, and above
all, for independence from English control in local govern-
ment. The most notable leader in these agitations is
Parnell. In 1880, under Gladstone, an Irish land act is
passed, which provides for free sale, fair rents, fixed ten-
ure (the three ^'s), and establishes a special court for
trying differences between landlords and tenants.
Colonial difficulties with frontier tribes : in Africa, with
Zulus and Ashantees ; in India, with Afghans.
d. Notable Events and Changes in other Countries.
The Spanish and Portuguese colonies in South America
become independent states of the constitutional, and very
MODERN EUROPE. 513
generally of the republican, type. — Mexico revolts against
Spanish rule, and becomes a republic (1823). — The Poles
revolt against tlie Russians in favor of national independ-
ence ; they are subdued by force of arms, and deprived of
their former constitution. — In Russia serfdom is abolished
by an imperial decree (1858-1863); — a strong Nihilist
party is formed opposing the whole Russian system ; having
no legislative bodies and no free press by which to urge re-
form, modify the absolutism of the czars, and correct
the abuses of the State, they diffuse as widely as possible,
through secret organizations and publications, extreme
revolutionary ideas of society and politics. — Austria, after
her defeat at Sadowa, reorganizes her government in ac-
cordance with constitutional principles, becomes reconciled
with Hungary, and restores her constitution. — Civil wars
in Spain between various parties and rival claimants to
the tlirone end in the establishment of a constitutional
monarchy. — In the United States, long agitations against
slavery end in the Civil War and the Emancipation Proc-
lamation of Abraham Lincoln, which gives freedom to the
negroes without compensation to their masters.
STUDY ON 2. b-d*
What point in the remark that the kings of the Restoration (Bour-
bons) •* had learned nothing and had forgotten nothing "? From the
events and measures of the period in France, what would seem to be
regarded as the most formidable of modern political forces? Why
should it be so regarded ? How can you account for the popularity
of Louis Napoleon? What new revolution threatens France? What
principle seems to have been thoroughly established by the first
French Revolution?
What political tendency is growing in England during this whole
century? What common measures are taken in both countries to
suppress agitation ? Compare the demands of the " Chartists " with
the various acts of pailiament from 1848 onward ; how far have they
been answered? What acts of injustice in the colonial policy of
614 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
England? What beneficial measures has she initiated? What long-
standing religions injustices are righted in this century ? Whom did
the corn-laws benefit, and how ? Whom injure ? Explain how it was
that the introduction of machinery caused great misery among the arti-
san classes. What social and what political trouble appears in Ireland ?
What is the importance of the Suez Canal to England ? What great
social revolution has taken place in this century, both in England and
the United States? With what difference? In what other country
has a similar revolution occurred ? What other facts do you find in
d similar to facts and tendencies noticed in b and c ? Compare Hun-
gary and Ireland. What acts of civilized countries in this century
would you name unchristian ?
STUDY ON MAP, PAGES 516, 517.
What countries in Europe have political boundaries corresponding
with their natural boundaries? Within these natural boundaries,
what bonds of union exist among the people? Between what coun-
tries will you expect to find ill-feeling on account of the question of
boundaries? What natural geographical units are not yet political
units ? What events or agitations correspond to this fact ? Judging
from the map alone, what pait of Europe would you expect to find
most easily involved in war?
STUDY ON MAP, PAGES 520, 521.
What relation between Europe and the rest of the world ? What
great movement of population is evidently taking place ? What must
result to the world from this movement in point of material civiliza-
tion ? In point of cosmopolitanism ? Of community of institutions
and thought? How does this movement coiTespond to the Greek,
Macedonian, and Roman movements of population? How does it
differ? What countries are likely to crowd each other in this move-
ment? ^Vh at effect will this have on the international relations of
Europe ? Compare the civilized area shown by this map with that
seen in map on p. 2. Compare the civilizations.
8. Special Study on the Development of the Gernuin
Empire, 1815-1880.
At the Congress of Vienna, Stein demands that
constitutional governments be established in the
states of the new German Confederation, This
1816
TO
1M8.
MODERN EUBOFE. 515
proposition is overruled by the influence of the Austrian
minister, Metternich, and each prince is left free to rule
as he pleases, with or without a constitution. Metternich's
view of the matter appears in the following extract from
his political " Confession of Faith " : —
' ' Kings have to calculate the chances of their very existence
in the immediate future ; passions are let loose and league to-
gether to overthrow . . . religion, public morality, laws, customs,
rights, and duties. . . .
'^ Union between the monarchs is the basis of the policy
which must now be followed to save society from utter
ruin. . . .
" We are certainly not alone in questioning if society can
exist with the liberty of the press, a scourge unknown to the
world before the latter half of the seventeenth century, and
restrained until the end of the eighteenth, with scarcely any
exception but England. . . .
" The first principle to be followed by monarchs . . . should
be that of maintaining the stability of political institutions
against the disorganized excitement which has taken possession
of men's minds ; . . . and respect for laws actually in force
against a desire for their destruction. . . .
" The first need of society is to be maintained by strong
authority, and not to govern itself. . . . The first and greatest
concern for the immense majority of every nation is the stability
of its laws, . . . never their change."
The action of the Congress of Vienna rouses great in-
dignation throughout the German universities. Student-
societies and gymnastic-unions are everywhere formed,
with German unity and liberty for their real aim. In
1817 occurs the three-hundredth anniversary of the nailing
of Luther's theses to the church-door of Wittenberg. The
students hold a commemoration festival on the Wartburg,
when, with speeches and huzzas, they bum in a roaring
30 Longitude 20 Wert 10
gitude 20 Wert
10 Long
Loniritude
618 STUDIES IN GBNBBAL HISTOBY.
bonfire certain writings favoring absolutism, and form
upon the spot a new association for the advancement of
liberty and unity.
This outburst is deemed worthy of serious attention on
the part of the Great Powers of Europe, who regard the
universities with suspicion ; tlieir feeling is thus expressed
by a writer of the time: "What are the Universities?
Gothic remains of the Middle Ages, irreconcilable with
the institutions and need of our own century. They
confuse our youth ; they mislead public opinion. ...
" They are archives of all the errors of centuries ; they
beget anew and perpetuate the false theories of the past."
Another writer of the time says: "Ignorant professors
tell the young student that it is his duty to reform his
country."
It follows that, in 1819, a Congress of German minis-
ters, under the control of Metternich, issues the following
law: "A censor appointed by government shall reside at
every university to control the student societies there, to
watch the instruction given, and to dismiss immediately
any professor whose teaching may be injurious to the gov-
ernment. No book of less than twenty pages shall be
published without the consent of the governments; a royal
commission shall sit at Mayence to examine and punish
any person who may be suspected of having used seditious
language against the government."
In carrying out these decrees, "Houses are entered
everywhere ; private correspondence is examined. When
letters are discovered expressing dismay at the new tyr-
anny, the writers are instantly and often severely pun-
ished. To have been heard singing a patriotic song, to
have been seen wearing the old German colors, are crimes
that can be punished with many months' imprisonment."
In Austria, however, the school-children are taught
MODERN EUROPE. 519
" to honor the sovereign as they would their father and
mother, and to remember that he has absolute power over
their bodies and over all their goods."
After the news of revolutions in favor of constitutional
liberty and national independence in Spain, Greece, and
Italy, three new German societies are formed to agitate for
similar ends, — the Teutonia^ Oermania^ and Arminia ;
the latter is named after Arminius or Hermann, the old
defender of Germany against the Romans. Of these, the
Qermania consists of the followers of Victor Hugo and of
Heine, and spreads the doctrine, "Forget nationality;
think only of humanity ; princes only have diverse inter-
ests ; the people of all countries are friends." Continual
agitation, met by the continual opposition of princes, in-
stigated, and to some extent forced, by Metternich. In
some of the states, the princes try palliative, in others,
repressive measures.
During this period occurs at Hambach the festival of
the German May. More than 25,000 people, from all
classes and from all parts of Germany, are present ; bands
play the national airs that princes have forbidden ; the
feasters wear the old German colors of black, red, and
gold ; and upon a banner are inscribed the words, " Ger-
many desires ' Unity, Freedom, Equality! ' " But the chief
speakers at this German May are arrested and convicted ;
speech and press are more strictly gagged ; even those
princes who have promised constitutions, " mostly forget,"
as Freeman says, " to give them."
Meanwhile, a new king, Frederick William the Fourth,
has come to the throne of Prussia, and the people hope
for a change; but he declares: "A sheet of paper shall
not come between me and my subjects ; paragraphs shall
not rule us, nor shall they replace our time-honored reli-
ance on one another."
y^
524
STUDIES IN OEKEBAL HISTORY.
STUDY ON 3.
What are the two aims of agitation in Germany up to 1870?
Which of these aims is peculiar to Grermany? Which is character-
istic of the century ? What advantages does Metternich see in kings?
Why does he call the " liberty of the press " a scourge? What power
ITALY
IN
1815.
1=1
^= NaKvettBHan dominion;
T= Papal dominion
Territory ander
foreign doxDinlon or Inff uences^
Spanlfib QrAustriaa4
is closely allied with this in Germany? What power is set to work to
counteract it in Austria? What oppressions in Germany are peculiar
to this century? What is the weak point in what Frederick Wil-
liam IV. says ? What events prove that the internal peace and order
of one European country are of value to every other? How far do
events in Germany prove the use of the agitations and difficulties of
MODEBN EUllOPE. 625
the oentoiy ? What principle of goyemmeiit . do they thoroughly
recognize ?
What feelings are shown in the circular letter of Lewis of Bavaria?
In the address of the Prussian king to the army ? What trouble does
Germany experience from 1871-1880, in common with other countries
of Europe?
4. Special Study an the Development of the Kingdom
of Italy.
a. STUDY ON MAP OF " ITALY IN 1815."
What part of Italy is under native Italian rule? What historic
reason is there for the presence of Austrian and Spanish rulers ? For
the pope as a temporal ruler ? Of these various rulers, which will
appeal most to Italian sympathies, and why?
b. Summary of Leering Italian JEventSy 1815-1870 ; (com-
pare with 2).
Revolution in Spain ; the Spaniards demand and
temporarily obtain a written constitution of the
English type. — The Neapolitans at once revolt
1820
TO
1821.
and declare their right to the same privileges as the
Spaniards ; their king yields, and swears to rule by a free
constitution. An unsuccessful Sicilian revolt for inde-
pendence follows. The Austrian prime minister, Metter-
nich, calls a congress of the kings, emperors, and prime
ministers of Europe, and Austria, Russia, and Prussia com-
bine to suppress the south Italian rebellions ; this congress
issues the following manifesto: *'The events that have
recently taken place in Naples have necessarily created a
sentiment of profound uneasiness in the minds of the Sov-
ereigns who have charged themselves with the duty of
watching over the tranquillity of Europe. They have
recently crushed the Revolution, and yet they now
find that it is still alive. . . . They have, therefore,
agreed to hold counsel together, and, if necessary, to
take up arms in common with the view of putting an
626 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
end to the disturbances in the kingdom of the Two
Sicilies. ..." — An Austrian army enters the kingdom of
the Two Sicilies and restores the absolute royal power;
" about a thousand persons are condemned to death, pri-
son, or exile ; " to all this the Neapolitan king voluntarily
consents.
Meanwhile "Young Italj'," a secret society for
making Italy free and independent, is growing
up under the leadership of Mazzini.
The Sardinian king grants a new constitution
to his people ; Sicily and Naples revolt, and a free
18»1
TO
1848.
1848.
constitution is again granted by their king. — Northern
Italy revolts against Austria ; the Sardinian king joins the
insurgents, and Austria is for the time worsted. The re-
volts in southern and central Italy increase in fury, and
the Sicilian king is compelled to grant a new democratic
constitution; Venice, temporarily free from Austria, is
proclaimed a republic under the leadership of Manin. —
The Sardinians fight the Austrians at Novara; are de-
feated and submit to peace on condition that all shall
be as before. — Victor Emmanuel becomes king of
Sardinia. Revolution in Rome against the papal govern-
ment ends in the establishment of the Roman republic.
Garibaldi is its general, and Mazzini its most prominent
leader.
Insurrection for popular rights breaks forth in Genoa,
Leghorn, Florence; France, Spain, and Austria send
troops into Italy to restore the old order. The French
enter Rome; Garibaldi and Mazzini escape; Venice is
retaken, and the Austrian power re-established in north-
ern Italy.
Sardinia, in alliance with France and England,
gives them effective aid in the Crimean war.
When the peace of Paris is concluded, Cavour, the
1854
TO
1859.
MODERK EITBOPB. 527
prime minister of Victor Emmanuel, urges strongly the
dangers to Italy from Austrian occupation ; Napoleon III.
agrees to help Sardinia in case of a war with Austria, and
Victor Emmanuel's daughter is married into the Napoleon
family. Austrian troops are now concentrated on the Sar-
dinian frontier, and Sardinia prepares for war ; volunteers
from all Italy join her ; Florence, by a popular vote, de-
clares that Italy shall be independent of Austria, and
places herself under the leadership of Sardinia and Victor
Emmanuel. Austria now demands that Sardinia shall dis-
arm and dismiss the Italian volunteers. War follows ; the
Italians under Victor Emmanuel, allied with the French
under Napoleon III., win the victories of Magenta and
Solferino. Milan, evacuated by the Austrians, declares
itself annexed to Sardinia. Modena and Parma likewise
declare themselves to be under the lead of Victor Em-
manuel. The war ends with the peace of Villafranca;
Austria cedes the greater part of Lombardy to Napoleon,
who is to give it to Sardinia ; the two emperors promise to
urge an Italian confederation, with the pope for its hon-
orary president, but the rights of the Austrian dukes ruling
in north Italy are expressly reserved. Romagna at once
declares in popular assembly for annexation to Sardinia,
and its government is organized by Victor Emmanuel.
The pope excommunicates all the promoters of this usur-
pation; but the placards of excommunication require an
armed force to protect them. Tuscany, in popular assem-
bly, votes that the Austrians are deposed and the country
annexed to Sardinia.
Northern Italy, except Venice, is now united
under Sardinian rule ; Sicily desires to join this
union, but Victor Emmanuel hesitates to accept
I860
TO
1870.
this new responsibility. Garibaldi, however, aided by
Mazzini and a band of volunteers, enters Sicily, heads
628 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
a revolt against the Spanish Bourbons, wins Sicily and
Naples, becomes their dictator, but shortly declares Victor
Emmanuel " king of Italy." The king, however, does not
accept this trust until he is chosen ruler by the votes of
the people themselves. This following soon, he becomes
king of all Italy save of Venice, still in the hands of
Austria, and Rome, under the temporal rule of the pope,
upheld by French troops. In 1866, comes the battle of
Sadowa, after which Austria surrenders the possession of
Venice ; Venice at once, by universal suffrage, votes her-
self a part of the new Italy. Rome alone remains under
foreign influence ; but, on account of the Franco-Prussian
war, France is forced to recall her troops from Rome.
Victor Emmanuel enters the city, and the Romans enthu-
siastically vote themselves his loyal subjects. Thus Italy
is united under the constitutional rule of Victor Emmanuel,
and is once more governed from its historic centre.
STUDY ON 6.
What are the two leading movements in Italian history, 1815-1870?
What great feeling inspires each movement ? Name the other events
in Europe which correspond to each of these movements. What facts
of Italian history stimulate each of these movements ? What logical
reason is there for the interference of European monarchs in Neapo-
litan affairs? What facts sustain this logic? How could the Nea-
politan king have secured his power and established peace ? What
power is on the side of Austria ? On the side of the Italian agita-
tors ? Of what use to Italy was the participation of Sardinia in the
Crimean war? Of what political value is the marriage of Victor
Emmanuel's daughter? Of what historic enmity does Cavour take
advantage in his alliance with Napoleon III. ? What two facts make
Victor Emmanuel the natural leader in the two Italian movements of
our century ? What great modern principle is recognized in the union
of the various states of Italy to Sardinia? What two facts make
Rome the natural capital of Italy ?
MODERN EUKOPE. 629
c. Incidents and Sayings Ilhistrative of the Life and Character
of Victor Emmanuel, (Dicey.)
Victor Emmanuel and his brother rose at dawn, " studied
hard, lived simply, and were trained, almost before they were
out of short clothes, to wear a uniform and carry arms."
" Summer or winter, wet or dry, Charles Albert [their father]
never missed the weeklj^ reviews of the garrison of Turin, . . .
and at these reviews he was invariably accompanied by his two
boys." " Victor Emmanuel . . . learned to speak Italian per-
fectly, as well as French, the former accomplishment being b}'
no means a common one in Piedmont, where French was the
language of society, while the people spoke Piedmontese, a
strange patois, ... in which the Italian element is barely pre-
dominant. He was also taught Latin, Roman history, the
Catechism, and the art of war."
After the battle of Novara, '' as Victor Emmanuel rode away
at the head of his shattered regiments, he turned around towards
the Austrian columns, which were pressing close upon his heels,
brandished his sword towards the enemy, and said with a deep
curse, * But Italy shall be.* . . . Whether the words were used
or not at the time assigned, it is certain that, from the day of
Novara to that on which he entered Rome as king, Victor
Emmanuel never wavered in his resolve that ' Italy should be.' "
In 1849, in an appeal to the electors, Victor Emmanuel writes :
" Never till the present day has the House of Savoy appealed
in vain to the loyalty, the good sense, and the affection of its
subjects ; I have therefore the right to trust in my people at
the present moment, and to feel assured that, united one with the
other, we shall be able to uphold the Constitution, and to pre-
serve the country from the dangers which threaten us."
In 1859, referring to obligations alike to European powers
and to Italy, Victor Emmanuel thus speaks to his parliament :
" Our condition is not free from danger, because, although we
respect treaties, we are not, and cannot be, insensible to the
cry of anguish which is raised towards as from so many parts
of Italy, Strong, however, in union, confident in our good
880 STUDIES IK GENERAL HISTORY.
right, we await, at once prudent and determined, the decrees of
Divine Providence."
When war was finally declared by Sardinia against Aastria,
and Cavour returned from Paris with the promise of French
aid, he was welcomed with strong enthusiasm by the people of
Turin. When he went to tell the king of his reception, Victor
Emmanuel interrupted with the words: "There is no need
for you to tell me anything, for while you were standing on the
balcony, I was standing amidst the crowd below, shouting,
' Hurrah for Cavour ! * with the best of them."
For this war, as he said, the king "had prayed and waited
ten long years."
Speaking of Mazzini at this time, he said : " You may
depend upon it that, if I had believed Mazzini had had it in his
power to make Italy independent, I should long ago have been
a Mazzinean myself."
" Indeed, at this moment Victor Emmannel's elation of
spirit was so great, that his generals and ministers thought it
necessai'y to caution him against any reckless exposure of his
person on the field of battle ; but to all these remonstrances the
king turned a deaf ear. ^ I am going,' he said, ' to send some
thousands of men to death, and how could I ask them to die for
Italy if I was not prepared to show them by my own example
that the cause was one worth dying for ? ' "
After the Peace of Villafranca, "the advice tendered to the
leaders of the National movement in the insurgent provinces
was to continue their preparations for resistance, and to trust,
in case of need, to the House of Savoy. ' You may promise
the Bolognese,' said the king, ^ that if the Austrians should
invade the sacred soil of our country, I will abdicate as my
father did, and will come and take service as a private soldier
in the ranks of then* Volunteers.' "
When the news came to Victor Emmanuel that Rome was
again free to be the capital of Italy, he exclaimed: "At last
. . . our arduous task is accomplished, and our country is recon-
structed. The name of Rome, which is the grandest name
MODEBN EUROPE. 531
uttered by the mouths of men, is joined with the name of Italy,
the name which is dearest to my heart."
d. Words of Count Cavour.
'^ I am an honest middle-course man, desiring and hoping for
social progress with all my might, but resolved not to purchase
it at the cost of a universal overthrow. ... I foresee that a
tolerably violent crisis is inevitable. But I would have that
crisis brought about with all the discretion compatible with ex-
isting circumstances ; and, besides this, I am more than per-
suaded that the mad attempts made by the men of action do
but retard and render it more risky."
Cavour writes in 1854 : " Since Providence has so willed it
that Piedmont should alone be free and independent in Italy, it
is the duty of Piedmont to use that libei-ty and independence in
pleading the cause of our unfortunate peninsula before Europe.
We will not shrink from that perilous task ; the king and the
country are determined to accomplish it to the uttermost. . . .
My whole life is consecrated to one object, — that of the eman-
cipation of my country."
In the Sardinian parliament Cavour writes thus in regard to
sending soldiera to the Crimean war: ^' Our country must give
evidence that her children can fight courageously on the field.
Believe this, that the glory our soldiers will know how to
achieve on the Eastern coast will do more for the future of
Italy than all the noisy talking in the world. . . ."
Again, and later, '' HI luck to him who renounces the land
of his birth ; who renounces his brothers as unworthy of him.
For myself, I am decided. . . . Happy or unhappy, my coun-
try shall have my whole life."
At twenty-four he writes : " Society is marching with long
strides toward democracy. ... Is it a good? is it an evil? I
know little enough; but it is, in my opinion, the inevitable
future of humanity. Let us prepare ourselves for it, or, at
least, let us prepare our descendants, whom it concerns more
than us."
682 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
e. Extrcu^a from Mazzini (from a pamphlet pablished in Lon-
don after the battle of Novara) .
Mazzini describes his followers as '^ the sole party deserving
the name of National, because while leaving intact each man's
individual convictions, whether monarchial or republican, and
asserting that the form of government shall be decided by the
whole nation, legally represented, it inscribes upon its banner,
' War by all, and for all : The Nation for the Nation. . . . '
^^ The path, I repeat, is clear. It is the path of Action, and
they must pursue it, regardless of persecutions, delusions, or
calumny ; they must live and die in faith and in action. The
creation of Italy is an aim, which, achieved, will change the
fate of Europe, and of Humanity. They must rise to the
height of the Idea, and learn to truly love and to despise, — to
love their Italian country with all their heart and soul, and to
despise with all their soul the sufferings that inexorabl}*^ attend
upon that love. . . .*'
• ••'••••
" To labour to desti'oy the dualism set up between Piedmont
and Italy ; to Italianize Piedmont, and convince her that she is
but a zone of Ital}', — the freest, — therefore having the great-
est duties to perform. . . .
^^ To unceasingly recall the Italians to the worship of the
True; to the adoration of principles; to morality, without
which they cannot exist as a Nation ; to teach them to abhor
all those paltiy falsehoods, small artifices, and cowardlj' trans-
actions, which profane and degi'ade the cause of a People, the
number of whose martyrs already' suffices to found a religion.
^^ And, above all things, to prepare Action — Insurrection.
^^ This is the program of all who profess themselves Apos-
tles of the Nation."
• ••••••
'* We recognize no judges but God, our own consciences, and
the Italy of the future. ..."
"We hold it important to say that ... we have no duties,
save to the common country ; that we hold omnipotent the duty
MODEKN EUROPE. 533
of aiding the emancipation of our brethren ; that we believe the
material means of every Italian city sacredly to belong to the
National enterprise, that wheresoever the people desire to
mobilise them for that intent we will encourage them to do it,
as to a holy act."
"When a people is enslaved, encircled by terror, bayonets,
and spies, I know of but one possible educational initiative, —
that of violentl}' exterminating spies, ba3'onets, and terror, and
setting the people free and emancipated, face to face with their
own mission.
" Even if the Italians knew how and were allowed to read, I
would therefore still say to those who cry, ' Books, systems, not
arms,* ' Arms and Books ; first conquer yourselves a country,
— Country is Duty, acknowledged, recognized, and felt. Your
country is the idea of a mission to be fulfilled. Your country
is a link, a communion, a visible Evangel of love among twenty-
five millions of men, destined to become a Nation.' "
STUDY ON c, df 6.
How does each point in Victor Emmanuers training help fit him
for the work he is to do for Italy? Make a list of the qualities of
character and feeling shown by Victor Emmanuel. How does each
one of these qualities and each one of these feelings fit him for his
work ? Considering the character of the time and the feeling of the
people, what quality or feeling is perhaps most valuable ?
What qualities of character shown byCavour? How is each one
valuable to a statesman in his circumstances ? What quality has he
that unites him to Victor Emmanuel ? What quality necessary to
supplement Victor Emmanuel? Name three aims of the policy of
Cavour as seen in d.
What two things are indicated by the fact that Mazzini's pamphlets
are published in London? What fundamental difference between
Mazzini's plans and ideas and those of Cavour? In what does the
strength of each lie? Under the existing circumstances of Italy,
which does she need most ? Describe Mazzini's policy. What has he
in common with Victor Emmanuel and Cavour ? What has the feel-
ing felt by Mazzini in common with a religious faith?
634 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
5. Special Study on SocicUistn.
a. Extracts from St, Simon. (French Socialist of Revolution-
ary period.)
" Sire," he writes to the king, " the fundamental principles
of society require men to regard each other as brothers, and to
work together . . . for their common welfare."
" Religion ought to direct society towards the great end of
ameliorating, as rapidly as possible, the condition of the most
numerous and least wealthy class."
^^ Do not forget this ! Remember that to do grand things we
must have enthusiasm. . . . All my life resolves itself into one
great thought, — to secure for all mankind the most unfettered
development of their faculties."
** What is competition as far as the laborer is concerned ? It
is work put up at auction. An employer wants a man. Three
men present themselves. . . . One demands sixty cents a day
because he has a wife and children to maintain ; another has a
wife but no children, and will take fifty cents. A third, who
has neither, is satisfied with forty. . . . What becomes of the
other two ? . . . Who then is so blind as not to see that under
the empire of unlimited competition wages must reach their
lowest ebb ? . . ."
St. Simon proposes cooperation, the motto of which is to be :
" Every one to work according to his capacity and to receive
the means of enjoyment according to his requirements. . . ."
" The day will come when it will be recognized that he who has
received from God more strength and intelligence owes more to
his fellow-men in proportion."
The program of the St. Simonists, appearing on the first page of
their organ, the ' ' Globe," on the Slst of Jan. , 1 831 , reads thus : —
Religion.
Science. Induatzy.
Universal Association.
'^ All social institutions must have for their end the mora],
MODEBN EUBOPE. 635
intellectual, and physical improvement of the largest and poorest
class."
'' All privileges of birth without exception are abolished.''
" To every one according to his capacity, to every capacity
according to work done."
&. Prom Karl Marx (German ; author of " Capital," the lead-
ing Socialist work on political economy ; founder of theory of
Social Democracy) .
"Capital is the most terrible scourge of humanity; ... it
fattens on the misery of the poor, the degradation of the worker,
and the brutalizing toil of his wife and children : just as capital
grows, so grows also pauperism ... the revolting cruelties of
our factory system, the squalor of great cities, and the presence
of deep poverty seated hard by the gates of enormous wealth."
"Our objects can only be attained by a violent subversion
of the social order."
" We must appeal' to force to establish the rule of the
laborers."
c. FromLassalle (German ; founder of Social Democratic party) .
"Here I stand; I cannot do otherwise; God help me;
Amen ! Even if it lead to my moral death ... I cannot act
otherwise. An agitation of laborers exists ; they must have
theoretical knowledge, they must have a watchword given them.
They shall have it, even if it cost the head."
' ' The alliance of science and the laborers, these two oppo-
site poles of society, when once they shall have met and
embraced each other, will crush all the impediments of culture
within their brazen arms. This is the object for which I am
determined to spend my life so long as there is any breath in
me "
" Let others be happy ! In natures like mine it is enough to
go on struggling, ... to waste away one's own heart, and yet
to appear smiling while death is gnawing away at one's inmost
soul."
636 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
d. From the Program of the Intematioiud (a society of work-
ing-men of all countries, founded in 1864).^
^^In consideration that the emancipation of the laboring
classes must be accomplished by the laboring classes, that the
battle for the emancipation of the laboring classes does not
signify a battle for class privileges and monopolies, bat for
equal rights and duties and the abolition of class-rule ;
'' That the economic dependence of the laboring man upon the
monopolist of the implements of work [land, machinery, build-
ings, capital] . . . forms the basis of every kind of servitude,
social misery, of spiritual degradation, of political dependence ;
'^ That the emancipation of labor is neither a local nor a na-
tional, but a social problem which embraces all countries in which
modern society exists, and whose solution depends upon the
. . . cooperation of the most advanced lands ;
«««««««
*' In consideration of all these circumstances, the First Inter-
national Labor Congress declares tliat the International Workii^-
men's Association . . . recognizes ti*uth, right, and morality as the
basis of their conduct towards one another and their fellow-men,
without respect to color, creed, or nationality. This congress
regards it as the duty of man to demand the rights of a man
and a citizen, not only for himself, but for every one who does
his duty. No rights without duties ; no duties without rights."
e. From the Program of the Socialist Laborer Party in Oermany.
"1. Labor is the source of all wealth and all culture, and,
as in general, productive labor is only possible through society,
to society, that is, to all its members, belongs the aggregate
product of labor, with the universal duty of labor according to
equal rights to each according to his reasonable wants.
"In the present society the means of labor [land, machinery,
J For this extract, I am indebted to Richard S. Ely's book on "French
and German Socialism," a clear and admirable work.
MODERN EUBOPE. 587
buildings, capital] are a monopoly of the capitalist class ; the
hereby conditioned dependence of the laborer class is the cause
of misery and slavery- in all their forms.
''The liberation of labor requires the conversion of the
means of labor into common property of society, and the regu-
lation by the community of the aggregate labor, with a spend-
ing for the common benefit and an equitable distribution of the
product of labor.
"The liberation of labor must be the work of the laborei
class, in opposition to which all other classes are only a reac«
tionary mass.
*'2. Starting from these principles, the Socialist Laborer
Party of Germany strives with all legal means after the free
state and the Socialist society, the destruction of the law of
wages through the abolition of the system of labor for wages,
the abolition of plunder in every shape, the removal of every
social and political inequality.
*' (1) The Socialist Laborer Party of Germany, though work-
ing within the national framework, is conscious of the interna-
tional character of the laborer movement, and determined to
fulfil all duties which the same imposes on the laborers, in
order to make the brotherhood of all men a reality.
" (2) The Socialist Laborer Party of Germany demands, in
order to pave the way for the solution of the social question,
the establishment of Socialist producing associations, with state
help, under the domestic control of the laboring people. The
producing associations are to be called into life for manufac-
tures and agriculture, to such an extent that out of them the
Socialist organization of the aggregate labor may arise.
" The Socialist Laborer Party of Germany demands as the
principles of the state : —
''1. Universal, equal, direct right of election and voting, the
giving of the vote being secret and obligatory for all persons
belonging to the state, from their twentieth year, for all elec-
tions and votings in state or parish. The day of election or
voting must be a Sunday or holiday.
688 STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
<^ 2. Direct legislation by the people. Decision on war and
peace by the people.
^^3. Universal bearing of arms. Defense by arming of the
people instead of the standing arm}*.
^^ 4. Abolition of all exceptional laws, particularly the laws
as to the press, as to associations, and as to assemblies. Es-
pecially all laws which limit the free expression of opinion, free
thinking, and investigation.
^^ 5. The decision of law-suits by the people. The free ad-
ministration of justice.
^^6. Universal and equal education of the people by the
state. Universal school attendance. Free instruction in all
educational institutions. Religion to be declared a private
matter.
'*The Socialist Laborer Party demands under the present
society: —
^'1. The utmost possible extension of political rights and
liberties in the direction of the above demands. .' . .
" 3. Unrestricted liberty to combine.
*' 4. A fixed labor-day corresponding to the requirements of
society. The prohibition of Sunday labor.
'' 6. The prohibition of children's labor and of the labor of
women that is injurious to health or morality.
" 6. Laws protecting the lives and health of laborers. Sani-
tary control of laborers' dwellings. The superintendence of
mines, factories, workshops, and domestic manufactures by
officials elected by the laborers. An effectual law making em-
ployers responsible for injuries to their workmen.
" 7. The regulation of prison labor.
^^8. Complete independence of administration of all ftinds
for the relief or maintenance of laborers."
STUDY ON 5.
What feeling and what qualities of character displayed in atb^c'i
What principle of action \s asserted? Make a list of the aims of the
socialists. What modem institutions and theories are threatened by
MODERN EUROPE. 639
these aims? Which of these aims appear to you praiseworthy?
What have these aims in common with the teachings of early Chris-
tianity (pp. 218-220) ? By what force are these demands backed ?
6. €hreat WorkSf Faundatiana, Enterprises, Inventions^
Investigations of the Century.
STUDY ON 6.
Make lists for the nineteenth century corresponding to those given
iu preceding parts of this book for other periods. What do these
lists teach you of the characteristics of our own age? In what does
our own superiority or originality lie ?
GENERAL REVIEW STUDY.
In what period have the teachings of Christianity been most prac-
tically regarded? What is the force of each of the mottoes on p.
491 ? What contribution to civilization has been made by each nar
tion you have studied ? Wlien did the peculiar tendencies and pecu-
liar culture of the Middle Ages culminate ? What justice in opening
modern history, as some writers do, with the date 1789 ? About what
body of water did the Greek and Oriental groups of civilization
centre? The Roman group? The modem? In what age would you
rather live if you could choose your place and rank ? In what, if you
must take your chance ? What answer will you give to one who says,
" History repeats itself " ? To one who says, " There is no real prog-
ress in human affairs ; nations rise, decline, and die " ?
INDEX
INDEX.
ExPLAKATiOK. — ft, 6, I, 6, fi, y, indicate the short sounds of these
letters, and S, S, 1, 5, 11, y, their long sounds ; a = a as in fall ; « and <eli
= k ; & = J> <Lnd g = g as in get. In diphthongs the combination is pro-
nounced like the marked letter. The pronunciation followed is that of
Webster.
Ab'elard, 825.
Ant>en-£zra, 325.
Abouklr (&-boo-keer'),
479.
Aa)u-bekr, 261.
Aca'dia,407,442.
Acha§'an League, 121.
Acrap'olis, 61, 83, 120.
Act'ium, 174.
Addison, 453.
Aegos-pfit'amI, 113.
Aene'as Sylyius, 361.
Aene'id, 208, 212.
ASs'-chines, 96.
Aes'ehylus,96;
_ extracts from, 84.
Ae'tius, 234.
Aetolian League, 121.
Agamem'non, 35.
Agincourt (Azhankoor'),
346.
A'^8, 121.
Agrarian laws, 140, 170,
174, 183, 198.
Agrip'pa, 206.
Ai'dan, 261, 273.
Aix-la-Chapelle (iks-Iflr
shftpel^), peace of,
444.
Albategni (Al-bflrta-
nee), 302.
Albert'us Mag'nus, 353.
AFaric, 233, 239.
AlbigSn'ses, 322.
Albany, 406.
Albuca'sis, 303.
Alburo&'zar, 300.
Alcum(ftl'kwin),262;
extracts from, 274.
Alchemy, 383.
Al'dine press, 368.
Alexander the Great,
97, 119-126.
Alexandria, 120, 122,
124.
Alexandrian kingdoms,
119-126.
Alexandrian library,
122*124.
Alfleri (ftl-fe-a'-ree),
455.
Alfonso the Wise of
CasUle, 354.
Alfred the Great, 298,
300,300.
Alhftz'en, 303.
Alcae'ns, 51.
Alc^man, 51.
Al Mft'mun, 300.
Algeria. 607, 509.
Al'magest, 209.
Alphabet, 24, 144, 240;
Gothic, 239.
Alsace', 401, 440, 441,
604.
AI'yA, Duke of, 404.
Ambrose, St., 232, 236,
246.
Ammian'us, 236.
Amphi€tjf5n'ic Council,
36, 82, 116.
Amphie'tyony, 36, 60,
115, 117.
An&xftg'oras, 96.
Anaximftn'der, 51.
AndrGni'«u8, 163.
Angel'ico, Frft, 861.
Anglo-Saxons, 234.
Anne, 450.
An'selm, 3aS, 323;
extract from, 312.
Anthony, St, 236.
Anti-com-law-league,
511. [334.
Antioch, 126, 819, 331,
Anti'uehus the Great,
166.
544
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Antony, Mark, 174, 176.
Antonrnus Pi'iw, 201.
Apologists, Christian,
209, 210. [122.
Apollon'ins of Rhodes,
Apule'iuB (yus), 208.
Aquilei'ft (see Venice).
Aqul'n&s, St Thomas,
364.
Ar&'tus, 122.
Arbe'la, 120.
Archil'ochus, 61.
Archirae'des, 122.
Arch'ons, 62, 64, 70.
Aredp'agos, 62, 64, 70,
01.
Ar'gonauts, 34.
Adrian controyersy, 221,
232, 233.
Aristid'cs, 77, 78,84,06.
Arist6t'le, 07, 266, 826.
Aristar'ehufl, 123.
Aristdph'anes, 07 ;
extracts from, 112.
Aristdph'anes of By-
zantium, 123.
Arids'to, 411.
Ari'On, 61.
A'rius, 236.
Army, Roman, 196, 230.
Arnold of Brescia
(bresh'ft), 326.
Ar'rian, 208.
Arteveld'e, Jacob vftn,
358.
A'ryans, 227.
Asceticism, 220, 243,
245.
Assemblies of Estates,
336.
Assemblies, popular, of
Rome, 131-133, 186.
As'ser, 301.
Athana'sius, 221, 236.
At'UUds, 121.
At/tila, 233, 239.
Auguries, 132, 149, 188.
Augustine, St. (of Hip-
po), 237, 246.
Augustine, St., 264, 26a
Augustus Caesar (see
Caesar).
Augsburg Confession,
extracts from, 426.
AureHan, 204.
Auspices, 132, 149.
Austeriitz, 481.
Australia, 609, 612.
Austria, beginning of,
294; union with
Hungary, 400.
Austria, House of, 343,
344.
Austrian Succession,
War of, 443, 444.
Austro-Prussian war,
603.
Autos-da-fe (ftu'tds-dH-
f|),404.
Avars', 261.
AvCr'rois, 826.
AvicSn'na, 804, 308.
Avignon (ftveenyon^),
343,344.
BftVylon, 16, 17.
Ba'con, Francis, 411,
419.
Ba'con, Roger, 354 ;
extracts from, 384.
Bagdad, 281, 282, 316,
34r..
Baibd'ft, 418.
Baldwin, 319, 321.
" Bank of Conversions,"
464.
Bftn'nockbum, 360.
Barbarians, 231.
Barons, feudal, 288.
Bto'il, St., 237.
Bastille (bfts-teel'), 476.
Battle of the Pyramids,
479.
" Battle of the Spurn,"
346.
Bayeux (bSryuh') tapes-
try, 309.
Bede, 263.
B^Fet, Thomas, 323,
326.
Belgium, 601.
B^llsa'rius, 261, 268.
Benedict, St., 268.
Benedict, 263.
Benedictine monks, 268,
269.
Ben'tham, Jeremy, 463.
Beo'wulf , 266.
Berkeley, Bishop, 462.
Berlin, treaty of, 606.
Bernard^ St, 320, 326.
Bero'sus, 123.
Bible (see Septuagint).
Bible (Tyn'dale's), 407;
(King James' ver-
sion), 408; (transla-
tions of), 412; ex-
tracte from, 27-29;
218-220.
Bl'On, 123.
Bishops, 230, 231, 242,
288, 337.
Bismarck, 606, 623.
"Black Death," 340,
361.
"Black Prince," 346,
891.
Blanc, Louis, 608.
"Bloody Mary," 407.
niDEX.
545
Boccaccio (bok-kftt-
cho), 368.
Boe'thius, 268.
Bologna (bdlon^ja).
329.
"Book of the Dead," 6.
Boniface, Winifried,
263.
Borghese (boi^^-sa),
416.
Bosnia, 606.
Bourgeoisie (boor-
zhwaw'-zie), 461, 468.
Bonrines (booTeen'),
323.
Bramante (brft-mftn'-
ta), 417. [440, 442.
Brandenburg, 294, 401,
Brazil, 406.
Breda (br&'-d&), decla-
ration of, 448.
Breda (bra'-da), treaty
of, 441.
Brienne (bre-enne'),
466.
Bright, John, 611.
Bruce, Robert, 360, 368.
Brunelleschi (broo-
nelles'kee), 361.
Brutus, 161, 174, 176.
Buf'fon, 464.
Bulga'ria,310,606,606.
Bundesrath (bunt'es-
rftt), 498.
Bunyan, 461.
Buonftrot'ti, Michael
Angelo, 412.
Burgundians, 233, 260.
Burgundy, 348.
Burke, 463.
Butler's "Analogy,'' 462.
Byrhtnoth's (buert'-
note) death, 310.
Bj^zftn'tium, 90 (see
Constantinople ) .
Cabinet, French, 496.
Cabinet, English, 493.
C&Vots, 418.
Caecil'ius, 163.
Caedmon (k&d'mon),
261.
Cae'sar, Augustus, 174,
189, 196, 212.
Caesar, Julius, 174, 176,
182-187.
Caesar, Octavian (see
Augustus Caesar).
Cai'ro, 294, 320.
Calais (kftla'), 408.
CaUphate,266,262,294.
Calonne (k&lonnO, 466.
Calyin, 400.
Canada, 609, 612.
C&n'nae, 164, 160.
Canos'sft, 296.
"Canterbury Tales,"
368.
CftmilOus, 148, 160.
-efim'oens, 411.
Cftmpo Form'io, peace
of, 478.
Ca'p€t, Hugh, 298, 303.
Capit'ularies, 228, 263,
268.
C&rac&l'la, 203.
Car'dan, 362.
Cardinals, 337.
C&r'thage, 3, 23, 138,
162, 166, 168 (see
Punic Wars).
Cftssiodo'rua, 269.
C&s'sius, 174, 176.
Ctts'sius, Dl'on, 210.
Castle of San Angelo,
200.
Cathedrals, 366, 414.
Catherine of Aragon,
407.
Catherine the Second
(of Russia), 446.
Catholic relief act, 610
C&t'iline, 173, 183.
Cato the Elder, 163,
189.
Cato the Younger (of
Utica), 163.
Catttl'lus, 176.
CaYour (cftToor'), 626 ;
extracts from, 631.
Caxton, 362, 368. .
Celibacy of clergy, 296
Censors, 134.
Centur^iate Assembly,
132, 133, 136, 146.
Cfirvftn'tes, 411.
Cesaire (sSsair'), St,
269.
■Chafirone'a, 117.
Chalons (shalonO, 234.
Chancellor, German,
498.
Charities, 199, 201,237,
238.
Charlemagne (shar^-
le-mane), 266, 263,
274.
Charles I. (England),
408, 409.
Charles II. (of Eng-
land), 440, 447, 448.
Charles V. (emperor),
399,404.
Charles X. (France),
607.
Charies Mftrtel', 264,
263.
Chartists, 610, 611.
Chaucer, 368 ; extracts
from, 389-391.
646
STUDIES IN GEKERAIi HISTORY.
Chemistry, 466.
ChS'dps, 6.
China, French and
English war with, 608.
Chivalry, 382.
Chor&s'^mianB, 346.
Christians, 204, 213, 217,
231, 233; extracts
from writings, 218-
220.
Christianity, 232, 267.
€Jhrys6s'tom, St., 237.
Church of England,
262, 407, 408, 609.
Church law, 300, 369.
Church organization,
337.
Church and State,
struggle of, 604.
Cic'ero, 173, 175, 180,
188.
Cid, 304.
Cimabue (ch&-m&-
boo'a), 364.
Ci'mon, 90, 91, 98, 102.
Cincinna'tus, 147.
Circus, Roman, 141, 245.
Cisalpine Republic,
478.
Citizenship, English,
494.
Citizenship, French,
497.
Citizenship, German,
499.
Citizenship, Greek (see
Constitutions).
Citizenship, Roman,
140,170,172,174,194,
203 (see also Con-
stitutions).
Citizenship, Teutonic,
224.
Civil war in England,
432-436.
Civil war in France, 406.
Ciftr'endon, 448.
Clftr'endon, constiMi-
tions of, 328.
Clftud'ian,239;
extracts from, 247.
Cl»ud'ius, 197.
Claud'ius 11., 204.
Clem'ent, St., 210.
Cledm'enes, 121.
Clergy, estate of, 386.
CUs'thenes, 69.
Cloa'ca Mftx'ima, 141.
Clo'vis,250,269, 271.
Coalition, Second, 480.
Cobden, 611.
Code Napoleon, 479.
Co'la di Riend (dee
ree-en'tze), 344.
COl'«t, 416, 419.
Cdlise'um, 197.
Colonies, Dutch, 405.
Colonies, English, 409,
609, 612.
Colonies, European, 466.
Colonies, Greek, 47, 49.
Colonies, Roman, 139,
170, 171, 174,
Colonies, Spanish and
Portuguese, 406, 612.
Columns, St., 269.
Columba^'nus, St., 269.
Columbus, 404, 418, 421.
Comines (komeen-'),
Philip de, 362; ex-
tract from, 393,
Committee of Public
Safety, 477.
Commons, estate of, 336.
Commons, House of,
360, 361, 494.
Commonwealth, Eng-
lish, 447.
Commune, Paris, 608.
Compass, 369.
Concordat of Francis
I., 406.
Concordat of Worms.
821.
Confederation of the
Rhine, 481, 486.
Confession of Augs-
burg, 400.
Congress of Yienna,
483, 614, 615.
Con'stontine, 231, 237.
Constantinople, 231,
232, 267, 334, 346.
Constitutions of Claren>
don, 328.
Constitution, English,
492-494.
Constitution, French,
496; under Old R^
gime, 460,461.
Constitution, German
Empire, 497.
Constitution of the
TewrVin.,479.[622.
Constitutions, German,
Constitutions, Greek :
Spartan, 67 ; Athe-
nian, 62, 64, 70.
Constitutions, Roman:
republican, 131-186;
imperial, 193-196^
229, 247, 248.
Consuls, 132, 134.
Corcyr'a, 98, 94.
Corin'na, 61.
Comeille (comalO>46a
CorOne'a, 92.
Corn-laws, 170, 611.
Corporation act, 510.
INDEX.
647
Cor'tSfl (Spanish), 336.
Cor'tez, 404, 418.
Council of ChalceMon,
267.
Council of Clermont,
296, 320.
Council of Constance,
344.
Council of Nice, 232.
Council of Trent, 400;
extracts from, 424.
Court, Roman Imperial,
229.
Court, French, 466-468.
Crfts^sus, 173, 174.
Crecy (cres^sy), 346.
Crime^a, 445.
Crime^an war, 502.
Cromwell, Oliver, 409,
447.
Cromwell, Kichard, 448.
Crusade, First, 329-332,
333.
Crusade, Second, 332.
Cu^rials, 230, 243.
Cur^iate Assembly, 131,
133, 135.
Cusa^nus, 362.
Cuthbert, St., 261.
Cyclopedias, 453, 454.
Cynewulf (ku§n'ewulf ),
264.
Cynic philosophy, 123.
Cyprian, St., 210.
Cyp-'selus, 51.
DS'cia, 199.
Danes, 294, 298, 310.
Dari'us, 73, 75, 77, 120.
Dftn^te, 358; extracts
from, 386.
D&n^ton, 476.
Daupbiny, 348.
Debt-laws, 63, 145.
Decftm^eron, 358.
Decius, 204.
Declaration of Rights,
450.
Dficur^ions, 230.
Delphi and Delphic
oracle, 35, 36, 50, 55,
56, 68, 69, 77, 85, 86,
91, 94, 115, 119, 161.
Delphic Amphictyons,
36,50,82,115-117.
De^los, 90.
Demos^thenes, 97, 116,
121.
Denmark, 502.
Deputies, French Cham-
ber of, 496.
Descartes (darc&rt^),
419.
DTftd^ochae, 122.
Dictator, 133, 135.
Dictionaries, 453, 454.
Diet, German, 337.
Dietrich (deet^rik) of
Berne, 250.
Diocle^tian, 205.
Dlodd-'rus, 206.
DKg^enes, 123.
DIonys'ius, 206.
Directory, 478, 479.
Disestablishment of
Irish Church, 512.
Disra'eli, 512.
Dissenters, 408, 448.
Divine Comedy,358,359.
Division of Roman
Empire, 232.
Domesday Book, 309.
Domin^icans, 355.
Dominic, St., 355.
Doml-'tian, 198.
DOnateKlo, 362.
"DonQnXx^5te,"411.
Dorian migration, 35.
" Dragonnades," 464.
Drake, Sir Francis, 408.
Dtirigal^, 264.
Dunstan, St., 802.
Dryden, 452.
DG'rer, Albert, 413.
East India Company,
408.
Eastern question, 502,
505.
Eccle'sia, 70, 71, 77,
78.
Ecgbehrt (eg'bert), 298.
Edda, extracts from,
226.
EdSs'sa, 319.
Edict of Nantes (nftntz),
406,463.
Edward I., 350, 355.
Edward HI., 346, 351.
Edward VI., 407.
£g'inhard, 264.
Egypt and Egyptians,
4, 49, 79, 121.
Egyptian literature,
extracts from, 10-15.
Eloi', St., 261.
El'gin marbles, 87.
Eliot, Sir John, 408.
EUzabeth,408,429,430.
Elsftss (see Alsace).
Emancipation in Prus-
sia, 487 ; in Russia,
513; in U.S., 513.
Emigrants, French,
476.
Emperor, German, 497,
504 ; of Holy Roman
Empire, 289, 337 ;
Romany 193.
548
STtTDIES IK (^fiKERAL HISTORY.
Engraying, 360.
En^niuB, 163.
Ep&iniD5n^da8, 97, 116.
Eph''ors, 67.
Epicte^tUB, 206, 213.
Epicure'^an philoBophj,
^124.
Epicfl'ruB, 124.
Erfts^mus, 411, 410.
Eratdfl^thenes, 124.
Erige^na, 301 ; extracU
from. 312, 313.
Escu'rial, 414.
EsUblished Church
(see Church of
England).
KstabliBhmcntB of St.
Levnu, 366, 380.
Estates, 336.
Euclid, 124.
Eu^m'erOs, 124.
Eugene, Prince, 442,443.
Eurlp'ides, 07 ; extracts
from, 110, 111.
Eu^menes II., 124.
Ea^patrids, 61.
Euse^iuB, 238.
Eutr5^piuB, 238.
Exarch and exarchate,
251, 266.
ExoduB, 6, 26.
F&^iuB M&x^iraus, 160,
163, 164.
"Faery Queen," 410.
Fall of the Western
Empire, 236.
False Decre^tals, 309.
"Faust," 466.
Ferdinand and Isabella,
362, 404.
Feudalism, 287-291.
Fichte (flk^teh), 488.
Fiefs, 287.
Florida, 404, 446.
Fontainebleau (fdntan-
bloO, 414.
Fo^'rum, 140, 143.
Fox, 463.
Francis I., 406.
Francis, St., of Assisi
(asee^se), 366.
Franciscans, 366.
Franche-Comt^ (fr5nsh
kon^ta), 440.
Franco-Prussian war,
604, 522.
Franks, 233.
Frederic Barbarossa,
320, 321, 326.
Frederic the Great, 443-
446.
Frederic William IV.,
519.
French and Indian war,
444.
French Revolution,
474-479.
Froissart (frois^siirt),
369 ; extracts from,
391, 393.
Fulk of Neuilly (nweel-'-
eh), 320.
G&l^a, 214.
Ga^len, 209, 266.
G&lile^o, 419.
Gall, St., 269.
" Garg&nt^ua and Pan-
tftg^ruel," 411.
Garibaldi, 627.
Gaul, 171, 174.
Gauls, 138, 148.
Geb'er, or Jfiber (yCb^-
er). 264.
General Councils, 337.
General Privilege, 358.
G^n^ghiz Kh&n, 343.
Gen^seric, 233, 234, 239.
Geoffrey of Monmouth,
326.
Gerbert (Sylvester II.),
302.
" Germa^nia," 210 ; ex-
tracts from, 222.
German Confederation,
617.
German Confederation
(North), 622.
German Empire, 623.
Ghlb^elln, 322, 343.
Ghiberti (ge-bar^tee),
363.
Gibbon, 462.
Gibraltar, 442.
GiKdfts, 269.
Giotto (j5t'to), 359.
Girondists, 477.
Gladiators, 167, 173, 184.
215, 242.
Gladstone, 512.
Glanvil, Bartholomew,
369.
Gnostics, 220.
Godfrey of Bouillon,
319, 326, 411.
Goethe (gul-teh), 466.
" Golden Bull," 344.
Gor-'gias, 97.
Goths, 204, 232, 249.
Grftc^chi, 170, 171, 176.
Grand Alliance, 441.
Grain distribution, 166,
213, 242.
Granft^dA, 362, 404.
Grftn'icus, 119.
Great Arroft^da, 405,
428.
Great Charter, 349, 37a
INDEX.
549
Great Interregnum, 943.
Greek Church, 293.
Greek deities, 86.
Greek leagues, 121.
Greek tragedians, ex-
tracts from, 110.
Grego^'rian chant, 260.
Gregory the Great
(First), 251, 260, 270.
Gregory the Great
(Seventh), 296, 296,
306.
Gregory N&zi&n'zen, 238.
Gregory of Tours (toor),
269; extracts from,
271.
Grosseteste (grSs^'-test),
Robert, 366.
Grotius (gro-'shus),
Hugo, 419.
Guelph(gweif),322,343.
Guilds, 338-340.
Gunpowder, 369, 420.
Gustavus Adolphus,
401.
Gutenberg, 363.
Ha'beas Corpus, 379.
Ha^'drian, 200.
Hftma>ft€h festival, 520.
Hampden, 409.
Hannibal, 164, 168, 161.
H&nse, 343.
Harvey, 419.
Haroun-al-Raschid (h&-
roon^-al-rftsh^id), 264,
281, 284.
Hastings, 299.
HecataS'us, 51.
Hegl'ra, 261.
Hellenic convention
and confederacy, 89,
Hellespont, bridging of,
79.
He^lots, 48, 91.
Helve^tius, extracts
from, 472.
Helvetic Republic, 479.
Henry I., 323.
Henry II., 323.
Henry IV., 296, 296;
(of France), 406.
Henry Vm., 407.
Henry of Navarre, 406.
Herftcli'tus, 61.
Herodotus, 98 ; extracts
from, 63.
Herzegovina (hert-se-
g6-vee''-na), 606.
Hesiod (hee'-she-6d),61.
Hildebrand (see Grego-
ry VII.).
Hinc'mar, 301.
Hippar^chus, 126.
Hip^'pias, 69, 73, 76.
Hippoc'rates, 98.
Hobbes, extract from,
434.
Ho^garth, 466.
Holbein (hol-bine), 414.
Holland, 401, 404.
Holy Alliance, 483.
Holy Roman Empire,
266,294,481.
Homage, 288.
Homer, 163, 208.
Homeric poems, 35, 37.
Horace, 206 ; extracts
from, 188, 189.
Hospitals, 308,
468.
Hds'pitallers, 329.
Howard, John, 468.
Hrolf (see RoUo).
"Hu'dibra8,"462.
Hu'guenots, 400, 406,
407.
Humanism, 360.
Hume, 462.
Hundred Years' War,
346,361.
Hungarians, 293, 294.
Hungary, 234, 362, 400,
441,602.
Huns, 232, 233, 234.
Huss, 344.
Huygens (hi-gens), 465.
Hjk'sos, 6.
Image-worship, 293.
Inquisition, 369, 404.
" Instrument of Govern-
ment," 447.
International, the, 536.
lo^na, 269.
lon^ians, 48.
Ireland, 328, 609, 612.
Irish, 234, 240.
Irish Church disestab-
Ushed, 612.
Isidore^an decretals,d09.
isido'rus, 261.
Islam, 293.
IsCCrates, 98.
Is^sus, 120.
Isth^mean games, 60.
Jacquerie (zhakree^),
348.
Jahn (yftn), 489.
James I., 408, 432.
James n., 449, 460.
Jeanne d'Arc (zhftn
dark'), 346, 363.
Jena (ya^nft), 481.
Jerome, St., 238.
Jerome of Prague, 344,
363.
550
STX7DIE8 IK GENERAL HISTORY.
Jenualem (Omar's con-
questof ), 280; 320,345.
"Jerusalem Delivered/'
410.
JesuiU, 418.
John Ball, extract from,
393. [349.
John Lackland, 323, 324,
John of Salisbnrj, 326.
John Sco'^tuB (see
Erigena).
Johnson, 453.
Joinville, 356.
Jonson, 410.
Jorda^nis, 260.
Jose^phus, 206.
Jugurth'a, 171, 177, 178,
180.
JuUan, 232, 238, 243.
Julius Caesar (see
CaBsar).
Justinian, 251, 260.
Justinian Code (see
Roman Law).
Ju^renal, 200.
Kftnt, 454.
Kftr'n&k, 6.
Kelts, 154, 227.
KCm'pls, Thomas h,
363.
King, Assyrian, 17;
English, 492; feudal,
268,287,437; French,
460,466,467,470;
Roman, 131 ; Teuton-
ic, 223.
King George's War,
444.
Kirk, 409.
Knights of St John,
Knox, 400, 408.
Koran, 261 ; extracts
from, 276, 279.
Labor agitations, 509,
510 (see Socialism).
Laborers, English, 392.
Labyrinth, 5.
L&ct&n^tius, 210.
Lancaster, House of,
362.
Land acts, Lish, 512.
Land distribution (see
Agrarian Laws.)
Land tenure, Teutonic,
222.
Lanfranc (ldnfr6n^),
305.
Langland, William, 359.
Langton, Stephen, 349,
356.
La'res, 144.
L&ss&lle^, extracts from,
535.
Last Supper, 412.
Latin Church, 293.
Latin Empire of Con-
stantinople, 321.
Latin Kingdom of Jeru-
salem, 319.
Latin league, 138.
Latin right, 140.
La'tium, 129, 137, 138.
Lft Vendue (vOn-da^,
477.
Law, Church, 268, 329.
Law, international, 419.
Law, feudal, medisBval,
267, 268.
Law, Roman, 143, 145,
200, 239, 251, 267.
Layamon (ly^-armon),
356.
Lay investiture, 295,
321,322.
League of Ctmbray^,
403.
League of the Hanse,
343.
League of the "Public
Good," 348.
League of the Rhine,
343.
League of SmiUkald,
400.
Leibnitz (lip'nits), 454.
Le^o L, the Great, St.,
234,239.
Ledn^idtts, 80, 82.
L«p'idu8, 174.
Lessing, 455.
Leuk^tra, 115.
"Leviathan," 434, 452.
Lewis VI., 322.
Lewis IX., the Saint»
345,356.
Lewis XL, 348.
Lewis XIV., 439, 440,
441.
Lewis XVI., 466, 475.
Lewis XVHL, 483, 507,
Linnae^uB, 455.
Ll^vy, 207.
Locke, 452, 454.
LdKlards, 351.
Lombards, 251.
Lombard league, 321.
Lorraine^ Claude, 456.
Louisiana, 445.
Louis Napoleon, 507,
508(8ee Napoleon III.).
Louis Philippe, 507.
Louvre (loo'ver), 414.
Loyola (loiSlft), 418,
INDEX.
561
Lu-'can, 207.
Lu-'cian, 209.
Lucre'tius, 176, 188.
« Lu^si&d," 411.
Luther, 399; extracts
from, 423.
Lutzen (loot'^zen), 401.
Luxor, 6.
Lykurgus, 56, 68.
Macedon, 121, 166, 167.
Macedonian War, 166.
Mftehifty^^li, 363.
MacMahon (mftc-m&-
onO, 608.
Maece^nas, 208.
Magellan, Magalh&es
(m&gftlyft^-^s), 418.
Magenta, 603, 527.
M&g^'naChar^ta, 349.
Magnes^ia, 166.
Magyars (see Hunga-
rians).
MaimOn^ides, 327.
Mftimes^ury, William
of, 327.
MftnMeville, Sir John,
369; extracts from,
388.
Mftne^tho, 126.
M&nichae^ans, 220.
Manin (ma-neen''), 626.
Manor, 291.
Manorial court, 291.
Map, Walter, 327.
Mftr^athon, 76.
"Marble Faun," 99.
MftrceK, Etienne, 348,
860.
Marcella, St., 240.
Marcellus, 163.
Marcus AurSKius, 208,
217.
Maria Theresa, 443, 444.
Marie Antoinette (ma-
re^ 6n-twa-net^), 477.
Ma^rius, 171, 172, 176,
180, 183.
Mark, march, 294.
Mark, Teutonic, 222;
mark-moot, 223.
Mark's, St., 308.
Marlborough, 442.
Martial, 207.
Martin, St., 239.
Mary Queen of Scots,
408.
Marx, Karl, extracts
from, 535.
Masaccio (mft-z&t^-cho),
364.
Massinissa, 165, 168.
Matthew Paris, 367.
Mausoleum, 100.
Maxim'^ian, 205.
Mazzini (mfttzee^neh),
626, 627; extracts
from, 532, 633.
Medici, Cosimo di and
Lorenzo, 364 ; Mary
and Catherine de, 406.
Mel&nc^thon, 419.
Memnon, colossi of, 6.
Men&n^der, 126.
Mendicant orders, 338.
MeteHus, 178.
Metrics, 48.
Met^temich, 516, 518,
526.
Mexico, 404, 613.
Michael Angelo (see
Buonarotti).
Military orders, 388.
Jtfilti^ades, 76, 90.
Milton, 461.
Ministry, 449, 460, 461.
Minnesingers, 367 ;
extracts from, 386.
Mirandola (mee-ranMo-
la), 364.
Missionaries, 419, 369.
Mithrida^tes, 172, 173.
Moe^ris, Lake, 6.
Moguls, 343, 346, 362.
Moh&m^med, 261, 261.
Mohammedan conquest,
264, 279, 280.
Mohammedan civiliza-
tion, 300-304, 309,
315-818.
Moli^re (mo-le-air^),
453.
Monasteries, 268-260,
269,274,298; disso-
lution of, 407.
Monasticism, 236, 237,
238, 240, 243.
Monastic orders, 338.
Monk, General, 448.
Montaigne (mon-tan^),
411.
Mdn^tanists, 220.
Mon'^te Cassino (kfts-
seen^), 258, 270, 308.
Montenegro (monta-
na'.gro), 505.
Montesquieu (mon^-tes-
ku), 454.
More, Sir Thomas,
419; extract from,
431.
Moors, 254 ; in Spain,
293, 318, 352, 406.
Mfts^cow, Napoleon at,
483.
Mummies, 7.
Museum, Alexandrian,
126.
Museum, British, 468.
552
STUDIES IN GENERAL HI8TOBY.
Myo'aie, 87.
My^ron, 98.
Nac^vius, 163.
Napoleon Bonaparte,
478-484,487,489,490.
Napoleon III., 607, 508,
627.
National Assembly,
French, 475.
National Assembly,
German, 522.
Naval warfare, laws of,
603.
Navigation act, 439.
Nebuchadnezzar, 17.
Necker, 465, 466.
Nelson, 479, 481.
Ne^mean games, 60.
Ne-'pos, Cornelius, 176.
Nero, 197.
Nerva, 198.
Netherlands, 404 ; Span-
ish, 441, 442.
New Comedy, 125.
Newton, 462, 455.
New York City. 405, 441.
Nibelungen Lied (leed),
367.
Ni^'cene Creed, 232.
Nihilists, 613.
Nilom^'eter, 6.
Nimwegen (ne-mft^-gen),
peace of, 440.
Nineveh, 17.
Nobility: French, 460,
467; Roman, 244;
Teutonic, 226.
Nominalism, 304.
Normans, 293, 297.
Normandy, 298.
Northmen (see Danes
and Normans).
NoTft^ra, 626, 530.
" No^vum Orga^'num,"
419.
"Oath of the Tennis
Court," 475.
Observatories, 467.
Oc^cam, WilUam of, 360.
Odova^ker, 240.
Olympic games, 49, 80.
O^mar, 262, 280.
Opium war, 611.
Order^icus Vita'lis, 327 ;
extracts from, 313,
329.
Organs, 308.
Or'igen, 211.
Orlfin^do Furios'6, 410.
Oro^'sius, extracts from,
249.
Os-'tracism, 71.
Oth^'man, 262.
Otho, 214.
Otto the Great, 290, 303.
6^'!d, 208.
Oxygen, 465.
"Painted porch," 99.
Pal&tanate, 441.
Panathenae'^a, 104.
Pan^dects (see Roman
law).
Pantheon, 206.
Papal legates, 337.
Pa-'phos, 28.
Paper, 308, 369.
Pftpy'ri, 7.
Paris, 348; schools of,
329; peace of , 444,
602 ; and Yersailles
(ver-salr^), treaties
of, 446.
Paiisians, 297.
Parliament, 336, 350,
493; "Barebones,"
447; "Rump," 447,
448.
Famfts^sus, 36.
Par'thenOn, 71, 87, 99.
Parties, French, 607;
English, 510.
Pfts'cal, 463.
Patriarchal power, 145.
Patricians, 130, 146;
title of, 234.
Patrick, St., 234, 240.
Pausa^nias, 90, 209.
" Peace of Antai'cidfts,"
114.
Peace of Augsburg, 40Q
Peace of Oliva, 440.
Peace of Pyrenees, 43t),
440.
Peace of Westphalia,
401.
Peasants, French, 461,
468.
Peasant revolt, Eng-
land, 351.
Peasante' war, 427.
Peioponne'sian war, 93,
113.
Pentarchy, 483.
Pena'tes, 143.
Per'gamos, 121 ; library
of, 124.
Pgri&n'der, 62.
Pericles, 91, 92, 95, 99.
102; extracts from,
106-107.
Perioe'ci, 48.
Perseus, 166.
Persian wars, 78 et seq,
Perugino (parPoo-jee'-
no), 366.
Peter the Hermit^ 319;
INDEX.
563
Peter's, St., 414.
Petition of Right, 483.
Pe'trarch, 360.
Pharealift, 174, 187.
PhI'dias, 99.
PhiMon, 62.
Philip of Macedon» 116,
117.
Philip AuguatuB, 820,
321, 828.
Philip 11. of Spain, 404.
Philippi, 174.
"Philippics," 97, 116.
Philosophy, Greek, 266 ;
inductive, 419; Pla-
tonic, 419; eighteenth
century, 463-466.
Phoenicians, 79. (See
study on.)
Picts' wall, 200.
IMlgrims, 294, 296.
«* Pilgrim's Progress,"
461.
Pin'dar, 99.
Pisis'tratus and Pi-
sis'tratids, 66-69,
77.
Pitt, 463.
PI^us XL, 361.
Pizftr^jro, 404, 418.
Plate^a, 86.
Pl&'to, 99.
Plautus, 163.
Plebei^ans, 180, 146.
Pliny the Elder, 208;
the Younger, 209;
extracts from, 216.
Plu^tarch, 209.
Poitiers (poyteers^),
346, 391.
Poland, 321, 343, 362,
613 ; partitions of,
446, 484.
Polish succession, war
of, 443.
Po^o, Marco, 367.
Polyb'ius, 163.
Poiygnd'tus, 99.
Poljcle^'tus, 99.
P6mpe^i, 197.
Pompey, 173, 174, 176.
Pope, 290, 337, 343, 344.
Pope, Alexander, 462.
Por^phyry, 211.
Prae^tor, 134, 167.
PraetoMan guard, 196,
203.
Pragmatic Sanction,
444.
Praxit^'eles, 99.
President, French, 496.
Priestley, 466.
Prime Mini8ter,460, 492.
"Principia,"462.
Printing, 368.
Proconsul, 167.
ProcS'pius, 260.
Protectorate, 447.
Protestants, 399.
Protestantism, 404.
Provinces, Roman, 167,
194, 196, 217.
Prussia, 294, 362, 442,
622.
Ptolemies, 121,122,126.
Ptolemy, 209.
Punic wars, 15S et »eq.
Puritans, 408, 432.
Pyd'na, 166, 168.
Pym, 409.
Pyramids, 9.
Pyr^rh5, 126.
Pythftg^'oras, 62.
Pythian games, 60.
Quadruple Alliance, 443.
Quintil'ian, 208.
RAbelais (rft^-be-la),
411.
Racine (rft'^-seen), 463.
Raleigh (raw^li), 408 ;
extract from, 422.
R&me^ses II., 6.
Ra^phael, 366, 412.
Rastadt (rftst&t), treaty
of, 442.
Ra^zT, or Rhft^'zes, 802.
Realists, 304.
Real Presence (see
Transubstantiation ) .
Reform bUl of 1832,
610.
Reformation, 398, 422-
427,432; in England,
407; in Scotland, 409.
Reichstag (riks-tak),
498.
Reign of Terror, 477.
RSm^r&ndt, 413.
Restoration, English,
448.
" Retreat of the Ten
Thousand," 100.
Revolution, Italian, 601,
626-^28; Spanish,
601,626; of 1688,
460.
Richard I. of England,
320, 324, 328.
Richelieu (resh-eh-loo),
406.
Rien^zi, Co^ft di, 360.
Roads, Roman, 139, 164,
171, 176, 186.
Robespierre (ro^-b^s-pe-
air), 477, 478.
Roger of Hoveden, 328.
RoUo, 297, 303.
654
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
Roman Republic, mod-
ern, 479, 626.
Roses, wars of, 352.
Rouma^nia, 606.
Rousseau ( roo-sd^ ) r ^58 ;
extracts from, 471.
Royal Society, 467.
RQ^icon, 185.
Rudolf of Hapsburg,
843.
Rj^s'^wick, peace of,
441.
SSdow^a, 603, 622, 628.
Saint (for sainta, see
respective names, as
Ambrose, Augustine,
etc.).
SU^adin, 320, 324, 328.
Salamis, 77, 78, 83, 84.
SaKlust, 176.
S&lMan,240; extracts
from, 248.
Samnite war, 138, 139.
Sftn Stefan^o, peace of,
606.
Sappho (s&f^5), 62.
Sftrd&n&pa^us, 17.
Sardinia, 152, 166, 442,
443.
Sftv5nftroaa, 365.
Savoy, 442, 478.
Saxons, 256.
Saxon Heptarchy, 298.
Schism of the Church,
293.
Schism of the West,
344.
Schleswig-Holstein
(hol-stine), 602, 608.
Scholasticism, 303, 327.
Scipios (sip^ioze), 165,
161, 163, 164.
Scotland, 350, 351 ;
united with England,
460.
Sed&n^ 504.
Seleuc^idae, 121, 126.
Sen^Ac, 299.
Senate, French, Greek,
etc., see Constitutions.
Sen^eca, 208.
SSnnft«h^erib, 17.
Sensationalists, French,
454; extracts from,
472.
Septim^ius Sev§'rus,
203.
S«ptu'afcint, 126.
Servia, 505.
Servius Tullius, 132.
Sesds'tris, 6.
Seven Years' war, 444.
Sicily, 152-164, 181, 182,
293,322,343,404,443.
Sicilies, the Two, 344,
403, 443.
Sido'^nius, Apollin&^ris,
St., 240.
SUesia, 444.
Simeon Styl^ites, St.,
240.
Slmfin^ides, 100.
Simon of Montfort, 323,
357.
Simon (8ee^m5n), St.,
extracts from, 534.
Sistine (si8^teen)Chapel,
412.
SeS'pas, 100.
Slaves, in antiquity, 48,
13(H 167, 170, 171, 173,
244; Teutonic, 225,
226; mediaeval, 268,
270; modem, 404, 442,
458, 509, 510.
Slftvs, 227, 294.
Sleswig, 294.
Smith, Adam, 452.
SobiesOd, 441.
Social war, 171.
Socialism, 507, 508, 523,
534-539.
Socialist Laborer Party,
536.
Sdc^ratSs, 100 ; extracts
from, 107-110.
Solemn League and
Covenant, 409, 436,
448.
Solferino, 503, 527.
Solon, 52, 54, 63, 143.
Sophist, 97, 114.
Soph^ocles, 100.
SozOm^en, 240.
Spain, 155, 157.
Spanish Armada, 405,
428.
Spanish Succession,
war of, 441, 442.
"Spectator," 453.
Spenser, Edmund, 410.
Sphynx, 5.
Splnd'zft, 454.
Spires, diet of, 399.
States-general, 336, 846,
406, 466, 475.
Stein (stine), 487-490.
Stesieh&^rus, 52.
StiKiijho, 283, 240.
Stoicism, 203, 206, 217.
Strasbourg. 234, 440,
441.
StratS^gi, 70.
Stuarts, 408, 442.
Sueton^ins, 210.
Sulla, 171, 172, 173, 176.
180, 183.
Switzerland, 848, 401.
INDEX.
665
Taborites, 344.
Tacitus, 210 ; extracts
from, 213, 222.
Templars, 320.
Ter^ence, 163.
Terpftn'der, 62.
TertttKlian, 211.
Test act, 448, 610.
Teutonic Enighte, 329,
362.
Thames, 52.
Thanes, 291.
Thebes (theebz), 6, 86.
Themis^tocles, 77, 78,
83, 89, 100.
The6d''5ric the Great,
268, 260, 267.
Theod5^sius, 232, 239,
246.
Theodosian code, 243,
268.
ThetSe'ritus, 126.
ThermSp^ylae, 80, 83.
Thes^pis, 52.
Third estate (see
EsUtes).
Thirty Tyrants, 114.
Thirty Years' war, 400.
Thugs, 610.
Thucyd^ides, 100.
Tiberius Caesar, 196.
Titus, 196.
Tigl&th-Pile^ser, 17;
extract from, 18.
Tilsit, peace of, 481, 486.
Tours (toor), battle of,
254.
Towns (charters), 340,
341.
Trafalgar^ 481.
Trajan, 109, 216, 217.
Transubstantiation, 304,
426, 426.
Trasim6^n«, 169.
Trebo'nian, 261, 260.
Tribunes, 135, 136.
Triple Alliance, 440.
Triumvirate, first, 174.
Trojan war, 36.
Troubadours (troo^'-ba-
doors), 367.
TrouTferes (troovairs^),
367.
Troy, 36, 110, 212.
" Truce of God," 208.
Tudor, 362.
Tuileries (twee^eree),
414.
Turks, 203, 206, 345, 300,
441, 443, 445, 501.
Turco-Russian war, 605.
Turgot (toorgo^), 466.
Tum-vereine (fe-rin^-
eh), 480.
Turpin*s Chronicle, 320.
Twelve Tables (see Ro-
man law).
Tyrtae^us, 52.
Tyler, Wat, 360.
Tyrants, Greek, 50, 73.
Tyre, 23, 24, 27.
UFfilas, 230.
Ul'pian, 211.
Ultramon^tanists, 623.
United Provinces of
Netherlands, 401.
Universities, 366, 414 ;
Bologna, 366 ; Ger-
man, 601, 616, 618;
of Paris, 366.
Utrecht (utrekt^,
treaty of, 442.
Vandals, 233.
Vftndyck^ 414.
y&n Eycks (Iks), 365.
V&r^ro, 176.
Venice and Venetians,
234,320,334,403,478,
604, 626, 527.
Versailles (versak),
468 ; convention of,
604.
Vesp&^sian, 107.
Vico (vee^oj, 466.
Victor Emmanuel, 526-
631.
Villafrftn'ca, 603, 627.
Villains, 280.
Villehardouin (vel-ai^
doo-ftnO, 367.
Vinci, Leonardo da
(la-on-ard^5 dft vin'-
chee), 412.
Virgil, 122, 208; extracts
from, 212.
Visigoths, 233,236,250.
Vitru^vius, 208.
Voltaire^462,464,464;
extracts from, 471.
Wace (vfts), 328.
Wager of battle, 380.
Wrgrftm, 481.
Waldenses (wall-den-'-
ses), 322.
Wales, 350.
Wallace, Sir William,
350,361.
Wftllenstein, 400.
" War of Liberation,"
483, 400.
Wartburg festival, 616.
Waterloo, 483.
Wesleys, 458.
Westphalia, treaty of,
401.
Whitehall, 414.
656
STUDIES IN GENERAL HISTORY.
WicUf,d61,861; ex-
tracts from, 385.
Wilberforce, 458.
William the Conqueror,
201, 290, 905.
William of Jumi^ges
(zhoo-mi4LzhO> 305.
WilUam and Mary, 450.
William of Orange, 405.
William of Poitiers, 305.
Wlt^enagemot, 291.
WoUey, 407.
Wopceater, 447.
Worms, diet of, 309.
Xendph^anes, 52.
Xen^ophon, 100.
Xerxes, 77-81.
York, House of, 852.
Za^ma, 155.
Zft^rft, 320.
Zos^imus, 240 ; extracts
from, 248.
Zwingli (tswing'lee).
106
HISTORY,
Old South Leaflets.
Kdlted, whh historical and bibliographical notes, by Mr. Edwin D. Mbad, Bos-
ton. About 1 6 pages each. Price, 5 cents a copy or ^3.00 per hundred ; Nos.
14 and x8, 6 c6nts a copy or ^4.00 per hundred.
BY special arrangement with the Directors of the Old South
Studies in History and Politics we have become the publishers
for schools and the trade of the new general series of Old South
Leaflets. The Old South work is for the education of the people,
especially our young people, in American history and politics, and
its promoters believe that few things can contribute better to this
end than the wide circulation of such Leaflets as those now pro-
posed. The aim is to bring important, original documents within
easy reach of everybody. It is hoped that professors in our colleges
and teachers everywhere will welcome them for use in their classes,
and that they may meet the needs of the societies of young men
and women now happily being organized in so many places for
historical and political studies.
There are at present eighteen leaflets: others will rapidly fallow.
The following are the titles of those ready :
No. X. The Constitution of the United States. 2. The Articles
of Confederation. 3. The Dedaration of Independence. 4. Wash-
ington's Farewell Address. 5. Magna Charta. 6. Vane's "Heal-
ing Question.'' 7. Charter of Massachusetts Bay, 1629. 8. Funda-
mental Orders of Connecticut, 1638. 9. Franklin'f Plan of Union,
1754. 10. Washington's Inaugurals. zz. Lincoln's Inaugurals
and Emancipation Proclamation. 12. The Federalist, Nos. i and 2.
13. The Ordinance of 1787. Z4. The Constitution of Ohio.
15. Washington's " Legacy." 16. Washington's Letter to Benjamin
Harrison. 17. Verrazzano's Voyage. 18. The Swiss Constitution.
19. The Bill of Rights, 1689. 20. Coronado's Letter to Mendoza,
1540. 21. Eliot's Narrative, 1670. 22. Wheelock's Narrative, 1762.
See special circular giving cordial endorsements of this series.
H. B. Adams, Associate in Hist,,
f'ohns Hot kins Univ,^ Baltimort^ Md.:
do not onen express an opinion with re-
gard to text-books and other educational
material, but I have no hesitation in say-
ing that the "Old South Leaflets" which
you are now publishing, are of very great
practical value to students and teachers of
history. It was an extremely happy idea
to reprint, in a convenient and economical
form, such important state papers as those
which you have issued. 1 am sure that
thev will be widely appreciated by friends
of historical study in America,
no
POLITICAL SCIENCE,
The State ;
Or, Elements of Historical and Practical Politics. By Wood«ow Wilson,
LL.D., Author of "• Congressional GoTemment.*' Cloth. 720 pages. Retaul
price, j(2.oo. Special price for class use.
THIS book exhibits the actual organization and administratiire
practice of the chief modem governments in proper relations
with the practice of governments in the past, and with the general
principles of jurisprudence and politics, as these have been developed
by historical criticism.
The work is directly adapted to serve as a text-book for advanced
classes in High Schools and Colleges. Although extended to more
than six hundred pages, the magnitude of the subject has compelled
the omission of technical detail. It will be found interesting and in-
structive reading for all students of History and Politics, and a prac-
tical and valuable aid in the education of citizens.
A. B. Hart, Asst. Prof, ofHist.^ Har-
vard CdUgs : It has been adopted as a
standard book of reference in Constitu-
tional Government.
J. W. JenkB, Prof, of Social SHencs
andEeonomicSf Indiana Univ.y Blooming-
ton: After a careful examination I have
adopted it for my classes. The worlc
seems to me admirable both in plan and
execution.
John Wahl Queen, Prof, of Hist,
and Polit, Science, Ohio State Univ. :
The plan is well executed and the work
is thoroughly complete. It just suits me.
T. O. Karns, Associate Prof, of
Eng, Lit, and Hist., Univ. of Tenn.: It
has so pleased me, that I have ordered a
supply for my class.
Public Opinion, Washington, D.C:
Those to whom these lines of thought
and research are anfamiliar will find no
better introduction to the modem study
of historical and comparative politics.
The book is remarkable for clearness and
strength of presentation.
Atlantic Monthly: Almost for the
first time, if not for the very lint, the stu-
dent has the opportunity of comparing all
the great modem forms of government, as
well as those of Greece and Rome, in a
single volume. No one who knows Mr.
Wilson's methodical mind and clear state-
ment will doubt that he has achieved an
extraordinary success in making his book
at alL He is scientific in his method, but
he is also intuitive in his perception of the
profound relations of law which underlie
the forms of government, so tiiat the book
has a unity which is always helpful to the
student.
The Nation: The best authorities
have been followed and followed intelli-
gently, and the arrangement of detaib has
evidently been elaborated with the most
careful industry. The style is clear and
there is a certain vivacity in the narrative
that relieves the dryness of the tlieme.
The Academy, Syracuse, N. Y. :
Heretofore there has been no convenient
place where one could learn the distinctive
peculiarities of different national govern-
ments. This book is readable throughout
and abounds in fact andinformatioo.
POLITICAL SCIENCE. Ill
The State and Federal Governments of the
United States. By Woodrow Wilson, LL.D. Cloth. 140 pages. Price by
mail, 55 cents. Introduction price, 50 cents.
THIS book departs from the usual plan of making a mere formal
analysis of the federal constitution and describes our state and
national governments historically and practically. It treats of them
as parts of a single system, putting the state governments forward as
the chief, everyday instrumentalities of law-making and administration,
the federal government as the great unifying frame-work of the com-
plex whole. The local, as well as the central governments of the
states are described, so that more space falls to the discussion of
state than of federal institutions.
It is intended as a manual for schools and colleges that do not as
yet make provision for a longer course of political study.
Wisconsin Journal of Bduca-
tion : It presents a historical and philo-
sophical dUcussion both of our constitu-
tions and usages, which is well adapted to
make young readers intelligent thinkers in
American politics, and likely to be much
more useful to them than the dry and
somewhat narrow discussions of the con-
stitution which at present usually fill up
the time given to civics.
Comparative View of the Executive and
Legislative Departments of the Governments of the United States, France^ Eng-
land, and Germany, By JOHN Wenzel, Assistant Librarian of College of
Libera] Arts, Boston University. Cloth. Flexible. 26 pages. Retail price,
ao cents.
THIS book consists of outlines of the four great constitutional gov-
ernments, arranged, in parallel columns, in such a way that simi-
lar topics are grouped together. By this arrangement, comparison
can readily be made. The latest standard works in French and
English have been consulted in compiling these outlines. The little
book will be useful in fixing in mind the leading facts of these
governments.
W. B. Huntinffton, Dean of Coll. of
Liberal Arts, Boston Univ. : The book is
sure to find a wide and hearty acceptance
among teachers and students.
CA^ril 10, 1891.)
A. S. Roe, Ex-Prin. of High School^
Worcester, Mass. : I am convinced that
it will be exceedingly useful in the class-
room, and I shall unhesitatingly recom-
mend it. {.April 8, 1891.)
History.
Bheldon'8 Oeneral History. For high school and college. The only history fol-
lowing the "seminary'' or laboratory plan now advocated by all leading teachers.
Price, ^i.6o.
Sheldon's Greek and Boman History. Contains the first 350 pages of the
above book. Price, ^i.oo.
Teacher's Manual to Sheldon's History. Pau into the instructor's hand the
Atr^ to the above system. Price, 80 cenU
Sheldon's Aids to the Teaohlnir of Oeneral History. Gives list of essen-
tial books for reference library. Price, 10 cents.
Bridffman's Ten Years of Massachusetts. Pictures the development of the
Commonwealth as seen in iu laws. Price, 75 cents.
Shumway's A Day in Ancient Borne. With 59 illuatntions. Should find a
place as a supplementary reader in every hij^ school dass studying Cicero, Horace,
Tadtus, etc Price, 75 cents.
Old South Leaflets on U. S. History. Reproductions of important political
and historical papers, accompanied by useful notes. Price, 5 cents each. Per hun-
dred, ^3.00.
This general series of Old South Leaflets now includes the following subjects : The
Constitution of the United States, The Articles of Confederation, The Declaration of
Independence, Washington's Farewell Address, Magna Charta, Vane's " Healing Ques-
tion," Charter of Massadiusetts Bay, 1629, Fundamental Orders of Connecticut, 1638,
Franklin's Plan of Union, 1754, Washington's Inaugurals, Lincoln's Inaugurals and
Emancipation Proclamation, The Federalist, Nos. i and a. The Ordinance of 1787,
The Constitution of Ohio, Washington's Letter to Benjamin Harrison, Washington's
Circular Letter to the Govemora.
Allen's History Topics. Coven Andent, Modem, and American history, and gives
an excellent list of books of reference. Price, 35 cents.
Fisher's Select Biblioir* of Bcdesiastical History. An annotated list of
the most essential books for a Theological studen't library. Price, 15 cents.
Hall's Methods of Teaching History. " Its excellence and helpfulness ought
to secure it many readera." — The Nation, Price, ^1.30.
Wilson's the State. Elements of Historical and Practical Politics. A text-book
for advanced classes in high schools and colleges on the organization and functions of
governments. In Preu,
D. C. HEATH & CO., Publishers,
BOSTON, NEW YORK AND CHICAGO.
TMa Ibook should be returned to
the Library on or before the last date
stamped below.
A fine of five oents a day is iactLtred
by retalmng It beyond the specified
time, ,
Please return promptly.
out M,.;
U2}